This is a modern-English version of The Liberty Girl, originally written by Halsey, Rena I..
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
FREEDOM GIRL
BY
RENA I. HALSEY
Author of “Blue Robin, the Girl Pioneer”
and “America’s Daughter”
ILLUSTRATED BY NANA FRENCH BICKFORD
BOSTON
LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO.
Copyright, 1919
By Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co.
Norwood Press
BERWICK & SMITH CO.
NORWOOD, MASS.
U. S. A.
WITH DEEP APPRECIATION,
TO
THE SONS OF LIBERTY,—
ALL THOSE SOLDIERS, SEAMEN, AND AIRMEN,
WHO HAVE HEROICALLY GIVEN OF
THEIR BEST FOR THE
BROTHERHOOD
OF MAN
CHAPTER | PAGE | |
I | “Godspeed You” | 11 |
II | Doing Her Best | 28 |
III | The Freedom Girls | 46 |
IV | The Liberty Garden | 60 |
V | The Liberty Pageant | 73 |
VI | The Weird Letter | 89 |
VII | The Trip to Camp Mills | 106 |
VIII | Seven Pillars | 121 |
IX | The Little Old Woman in the Red House | 133 |
X | The Sweet Pea Ladies | 147 |
XI | The Trip Through the Notch | 164 |
XII | Nathalie's Freedom Squad | 179 |
XIII | “The Mountains with Snowy Tops” | 194 |
XIV | “Sons of Liberty” | 211 |
XV | The Museum of the Gods | 222 |
XVI | Butternut Lodge | 238 |
XVII | The Mountain Cabin | 256 |
XVIII | The Liberty Cheerleading | 275 |
XIX | “The White Ally” | 288 |
XX | Liberty Tea | 302 |
XXI | The Comics | 322 |
XXII | The Guy in the Woods | 334 |
XXIII | A Mystery Unraveled | 348 |
XXIV | The Prize Winner | 362 |
“Ah there, girls! How are you?” (Page 11) | Frontispiece |
FACING PAGE | |
“My name is Liberty, My throne is Law” | 76 |
“Is that your dog? Oh, I love dogs!” | 184 |
The girl found herself gazing into the sun-tanned face of a young man in khaki | 232 |
Nathalie bent over in anxious solicitude | 260 |
“Oh, it is Philip, my son!” | 376 |
THE LIBERTY GIRL
CHAPTER I
“GOD SPEED YOU”
“Oh, Nathalie, I do believe there’s Grace Tyson in her new motor-car,” exclaimed Helen Dame, suddenly laying her hand on her companion’s arm as the two girls were about to cross Main Street, the wide, tree-lined thoroughfare of the old-fashioned town of Westport, Long Island.
“Oh, Nathalie, I think that's Grace Tyson in her new car,” exclaimed Helen Dame, suddenly putting her hand on her friend’s arm as the two girls were about to cross Main Street, the wide, tree-lined street of the old-fashioned town of Westport, Long Island.
Nathalie Page halted, and, swinging about, peered intently at the brown-uniformed figure of a young girl seated at the steering-wheel of an automobile, which was speeding quickly towards them.
Nathalie Page stopped and turned around, staring intently at the young girl in a brown uniform sitting behind the wheel of a car that was racing toward them.
Yes, it was Grace, who, in her sprightliest manner, her face aglow from the invigorating breezes of an April afternoon, called out, “Ah there, girls! How are you? Oh, my lucky star must have guided me, for I have something thrilling to tell you!” As she spoke the girl guided the car to the curb, and the next moment, with an airy spring, had landed on the ground at their side.
Yes, it was Grace, who, in her lively way, her face glowing from the refreshing breezes of an April afternoon, called out, “Hey there, girls! How are you? Oh, my lucky star must have led me here, because I have something exciting to share with you!” As she spoke, the girl pulled the car to the curb, and the next moment, with a light bounce, had landed on the ground beside them.
12 With a sudden movement the uniformed figure clicked her heels together and bent stiffly forward as her arm swung up, while her forefinger grazed her forehead in a military salute. “I salute you, comrades,” she said with grave formality, “at your service as a member of the Motor Corps of America.
12 With a quick motion, the uniformed figure clicked her heels together and bent forward stiffly as her arm swung up, her fingertip lightly touching her forehead in a military salute. “I salute you, comrades,” she said with serious formality, “at your service as a member of the Motor Corps of America.
“Yes, girls,” she shrilled joyously, forgetting her assumed rôle in her eagerness to tell her news, “I’m on the job, for I’m to see active service for the United States government. I’ve just returned from an infantry drill of the Motor Corps at Central Park, New York.
“Yes, girls,” she shouted happily, forgetting her pretend role in her excitement to share her news, “I’m on the job because I’m going to see active service for the United States government. I just got back from an infantry drill of the Motor Corps at Central Park, New York."
“No, I’ll be honest,” she added laughingly, in answer to the look of amazed inquiry on the faces of her companions, “and ’fess’ that I didn’t have the pleasure of drilling in public, for I’m a raw recruit as yet. We recruits go through our manual of arms at one of the New York armories, drilled by a regular army sergeant. Oh, I’ve been in training some time, for you know I took out my chauffeur’s and mechanician’s State licenses last winter.
“No, I’ll be honest,” she added with a laugh, in response to the surprised looks on her friends’ faces, “and I’ll confess that I haven’t had the experience of drilling in public yet since I’m still a beginner. We beginners practice our manual of arms at one of the New York armories, under the guidance of a regular army sergeant. Oh, I’ve been training for a while because you know I got my chauffeur’s and mechanic’s licenses last winter.
“One has to own her car at this sort of government work,”—Grace’s voice became inflated with importance,—“and be able to make her own repairs on the road if necessary. But isn’t my new car a Jim Dandy?” she asked, glancing with keen pride at the big gray motor, purring contentedly at the curb. “It was a belated Christmas gift from grandmother.
“One has to have her own car for this kind of government job,”—Grace’s voice became filled with importance,—“and be able to handle her own repairs on the road if needed. But isn’t my new car amazing?” she asked, glancing with pride at the big gray car, purring contentedly at the curb. “It was a late Christmas gift from my grandmother.
13 “But I tell you what, girls,” she rattled on, “I’ve been put through the paces all right, but I’ve passed my exams with flying colors. Phew! wasn’t the physical exam stiff!—before a regular high official of the army medical corps. I was inoculated for typhoid, and for paratyphoid. I’ll secretly confess that I don’t know what the last word means. Yes, and I took the oath of allegiance to the United States Government, administered by another army swell,—and that’s where my Pioneer work proved O. K. And then we had the First Aid course, too, at St. Luke’s. The head nurse, who gave us special lessons in bandaging, said I was A No. 1; and in wigwagging, oh, I did the two-flag business just dandy.”
13 “But let me tell you something, girls,” she continued, “I’ve definitely been through some tough times, but I’ve passed my tests with ease. Phew! Wasn’t the physical exam intense!—in front of a high-ranking officer from the army medical corps. I got vaccinated for typhoid and for paratyphoid. I’ll admit, I’m not really sure what the last one means. And yes, I took the oath of allegiance to the United States Government, given by another army big shot,—and that’s where my Pioneer work really paid off. Then we also had the First Aid course at St. Luke’s. The head nurse, who taught us specifically about bandaging, said I was top-notch; and when it came to signaling with flags, I did a fantastic job with the two-flag system.”
“But what is your special work?” asked Nathalie, for the two girls were somewhat surprised and bewildered by all these high-sounding, official-like terms. To be sure, Grace had long been known as an expert driver, but she had never shown her efficiency in any way but by giving the girls joy-rides once in a while; yes, and once she had driven her father to New York.
“But what is your special job?” asked Nathalie, since the two girls were a bit surprised and confused by all these fancy, official-sounding terms. Of course, Grace had long been recognized as an expert driver, but she had only demonstrated her skills by taking the girls on joyrides occasionally; yes, and once she had driven her father to New York.
But war work, thought Nathalie, for this aristocratic-looking, sweet-faced young girl, whose eyes gleamed merrily at you from under the peaked army cap—with its blue band and the insignia of the Corps, a tire surmounted by Mercury’s wings—set so jauntily on the fluffy hair. To be sure the slim, trim figure in the army jacket, short skirt over trousers, and high 14 boots did have a warlike aspect, but it was altogether too girlish and charming to be suggestive of anything but a toy soldier, like one of the tiny painted tin things that Nathalie used to play with when a wee tot.
But war work, Nathalie thought, for this aristocratic-looking, sweet-faced young girl, whose eyes sparkled cheerfully at you from beneath the pointed army cap—with its blue band and the insignia of the Corps, a tire topped with Mercury’s wings—set so stylishly on her fluffy hair. Sure, the slim, neat figure in the army jacket, short skirt over trousers, and high 14 boots had a military vibe, but it was all too girlish and charming to remind anyone of anything other than a toy soldier, like one of those little painted tin figures Nathalie used to play with when she was small.
“Do? Why, I am a military chauffeur,” returned Grace patronizingly, “and in the business of war-relief work for the Government. At present I’m to act as chauffeur to one of our four lieutenants, Miss Gladys Merrill. Oh, she’s a dear! I have to drive her all over the city when she is engaged on some Government errand. You should see me studying the police maps, and then you would know what I do. Sometimes we are called to transport some of the army officers from the railroad station to the ferry, or to headquarters. Then we do errands for the Red Cross, too.
“Do? Well, I’m a military chauffeur,” Grace replied, a bit condescendingly, “and I’m involved in war-relief work for the Government. Right now, I’m driving one of our four lieutenants, Miss Gladys Merrill. Oh, she’s wonderful! I have to drive her all around the city when she’s working on some Government task. You should see me studying the police maps, and then you’d really understand what I do. Sometimes we’re called to take army officers from the train station to the ferry, or to headquarters. We also run errands for the Red Cross.
“Why, the other day I helped to carry a lot of knitted things down on the pier, to be packed in a ship bound for the other side; they were for the soldiers at the front. We do work for the National Defense, and for the Board of Exemption. I’m doing my ‘bit,’ even if it is a wee one, towards winning the war,” ended the girl, with a note of satisfaction in her voice.
“Just the other day, I helped carry a bunch of knitted items down to the pier to be loaded onto a ship heading to the other side; they were for the soldiers at the front. We’re doing our part for the National Defense and the Board of Exemption. I’m doing my ‘bit,’ even if it’s a small one, to help win the war,” the girl concluded, her voice filled with a sense of satisfaction.
“O dear, but wouldn’t I like to drive an ambulance in France! But I’ve got to be twenty-one to do that sort of work,”—the girl sighed. “But did I tell you that brother Fred is doing American Field Service? I had a letter from him yesterday, and he said that he and a lot of American boys have established a little encampment 15 of ambulances not far from the front-line trench. They live in what was once a château belonging to Count Somebody or Another, but now it is nothing but a shell.
“Oh, I would love to drive an ambulance in France! But I have to be twenty-one to do that kind of work,” the girl sighed. “Did I mention that my brother Fred is with the American Field Service? I got a letter from him yesterday, and he said that he and a bunch of American guys have set up a small camp 15 of ambulances not far from the front lines. They’re living in what used to be a château owned by Count Somebody or Another, but now it’s just a shell.”
“Oh, Fred thinks it is glorious fun,” cried the girl, with sparkling eyes. “He has to answer roll-call at eight in the morning, and then he eats his breakfast at a little café near. He has just black bread,—think of that, coffee, and, yes, sometimes he has an egg. Then he has to drill, clean his car, and—oh, but he says it’s a great sight to see the aëroplanes constantly flying over his head, like great monsters of the air. And sometimes he goes wild with excitement when he sees an aërial battle between a Boche and a French airman.
“Oh, Fred thinks it’s amazing fun,” the girl exclaimed, her eyes sparkling. “He has to check in at 8 in the morning, and then he grabs breakfast at a little café nearby. He only has black bread—can you believe that—coffee, and yes, sometimes an egg. Then he has to drill, clean his car, and—oh, but he says it’s incredible to see the airplanes constantly flying overhead, like huge monsters in the sky. And sometimes he gets so excited when he witnesses an aerial battle between a German and a French pilot.
“Yes, he declares it is ‘some’ life over there,” animatedly continued Grace, “for even his rest periods are thrilling, for they have to dodge shells, and sometimes they burst over one’s head. Several times he thought he was done for. And at night the road near the château is packed with hundreds of marching guns, trucks of ammunition, and war supplies and cavalry, all on their way to the front.
“Yes, he says it’s ‘some’ life over there,” Grace continued excitedly, “even his downtime is intense, since they have to dodge shells, and sometimes they explode right above you. Several times he thought he was a goner. And at night, the road near the château is crowded with hundreds of marching guns, trucks filled with ammunition, war supplies, and cavalry, all heading to the front.”
“But when he goes in his ambulance after the blessés—they are the poor wounded soldiers—it is just like day, for the sky is filled with star-shells shooting around him in all colors, and then there is a constant cannonading of shells and shot of all kinds. When he hears a purr he knows it’s a Boche plane and 16 dodges pretty lively, for if he doesn’t ‘watch out’ a machine-gun comes sputtering down at him. He’s awfully afraid of them because they drop bombs.
“But when he heads out in his ambulance after the blessés—the poor wounded soldiers—it feels just like day, since the sky is full of star-shells bursting around him in every color, and there’s a constant barrage of shells and gunfire of all kinds. When he hears a purr, he knows it’s a German plane and 16 quickly dodges, because if he doesn’t ‘watch out,’ a machine gun starts firing down at him. He’s really scared of them because they drop bombs.”
“But he says it would make your heart ache to see him when he carries the blessés. He has to drive them from the postes de secours—the aid-stations—to the hospitals. He has to go very slowly, and even then you can hear the poor things groan and shriek with the agony of being moved. And sometimes,” Grace lowered her voice reverently, “when he goes to take them out of the ambulance he finds a dead soldier.
“But he says it would break your heart to see him when he carries the blessés. He has to drive them from the postes de secours—the aid stations—to the hospitals. He has to go very slowly, and even then you can hear the poor souls groan and scream with the pain of being moved. And sometimes,” Grace lowered her voice respectfully, “when he goes to take them out of the ambulance, he finds a dead soldier.
“But dear me,” she continued in a more cheerful tone, “he seems to like the life and is constantly hoping—I believe he dreams about it in his sleep—that he’ll soon have a shot at one of those German fiends. Yes, I think it would be gloriously exciting,” ended Grace with a half sigh of envy.
“But my goodness,” she continued in a brighter tone, “he really seems to enjoy the life and is always hoping—I think he even dreams about it at night—that he’ll get a chance to take on one of those German villains. Yes, I believe it would be incredibly thrilling,” Grace concluded with a slight sigh of envy.
“Gloriously exciting?” repeated Nathalie with a shudder. “Oh, Grace, I should think you would be frightfully worried. Suppose he should lose his life some time in the darkness of the night, alone with those wounded soldiers? O dear,” she ended drearily, “I just wish some one would shoot or kill the Kaiser! Sometimes I wish I could be a Charlotte Corday. Don’t you remember how she killed Murat for the sake of the French?”
“Gloriously exciting?” Nathalie echoed, shuddering. “Oh, Grace, I would think you'd be extremely worried. What if he lost his life someday in the darkness of the night, alone with those wounded soldiers? Oh dear,” she concluded gloomily, “I just wish someone would shoot or kill the Kaiser! Sometimes I wish I could be a Charlotte Corday. Don’t you remember how she killed Marat for the sake of the French?”
“Why, Nathalie,” cried Helen with amused eyes, 17 “I thought you were a pacifist, and here you are talking of shooting people.” And the girl’s “Ha! ha!” rang out merrily.
“Why, Nathalie,” exclaimed Helen with a playful glint in her eyes, 17 “I thought you were a pacifist, and here you are talking about shooting people.” And the girl's laughter echoed cheerfully.
Nathalie’s color rose in a wave as she cried decidedly, “Helen, I’m not a pacifist. Of course I want the Allies to win. I believe in the war—only—only—I do not think it is necessary to send our boys across the sea to fight.”
Nathalie’s face flushed as she exclaimed firmly, “Helen, I’m not a pacifist. Of course I want the Allies to win. I believe in the war—just—just—I don’t think it’s necessary to send our boys across the sea to fight.”
“But I do,” insisted Helen, “for this is God’s war, a war to give liberty to everybody in the world, and that makes it our war. We should be willing to fight, to give the rights and privileges of democracy to other people, and our American boys are not slackers who let some one else do their work.”
“But I do,” Helen insisted, “because this is God’s war, a war to bring freedom to everyone in the world, and that makes it our war. We should be ready to fight, to grant the rights and privileges of democracy to others, and our American boys are not slackers who let someone else handle their responsibilities.”
“Our boys! You mean my boy,” said Nathalie, with sudden bitterness. “It’s all right for you to talk, Helen, but you haven’t a brother to go and stand up and be mercilessly bayoneted by those Boches. And that is what Dick will have to do.” Nathalie choked as she turned her head away.
“Our boys! You mean my boy,” Nathalie said, her voice suddenly sharp. “It’s easy for you to talk, Helen, but you don’t have a brother who has to face those Boches and be brutally bayoneted. And that’s what Dick will have to do.” Nathalie swallowed hard as she turned her head away.
“Yes, Nathalie dear,” replied Helen in a softened tone, “I know it is a terrible thing to have to give up your loved ones to be ruthlessly shot down. But what are we going to do?” she pleaded desperately, “we must do what is right and leave the rest to God, for, as mother says, ‘God is in his Heaven.’ And Dick wants to go,” she ended abruptly, “he told me so the other day.”
“Yes, Nathalie dear,” replied Helen gently, “I know it’s awful to lose your loved ones to such brutality. But what can we do?” she pleaded desperately, “we have to do what’s right and leave the rest to God, because, as mother always says, ‘God is in his Heaven.’ And Dick wants to go,” she finished abruptly, “he told me that the other day.”
18 “Yes, that is just it,” cried Nathalie in a pitifully small voice, “and he says that he is not going to wait to be drafted. Oh, Helen, mother and I cannot sleep at night thinking about it!” Nathalie turned her face away, her eyes dark and sorrowful. No, she did not mean to be a coward, but it just rent her heart to picture Dick going about armless, or a helpless cripple shuffling along, with either she or Dorothy leading him.
18 “Yes, that’s exactly it,” Nathalie said in a quietly distressed voice, “and he says he’s not going to wait to be drafted. Oh, Helen, my mother and I can’t sleep at night worrying about it!” Nathalie turned her face away, her eyes filled with sadness. No, she didn’t want to be a coward, but it broke her heart to imagine Dick going around without arms, or as a helpless cripple shuffling along, with either her or Dorothy guiding him.
“Oh, I would like to be a Joan of Arc,” interposed Grace at this point, her blue eyes suddenly afire. “I think it would be great to ride in front of an army on a white charger. And then, too,” she added more seriously, “I think it takes more bravery to fight than to do anything else.”
“Oh, I would love to be a Joan of Arc,” Grace interrupted at this point, her blue eyes suddenly blazing with excitement. “I think it would be amazing to ride at the front of an army on a white horse. And also,” she added with a more serious tone, “I believe it takes more courage to fight than to do anything else.”
“Perhaps it does, Grace,” remarked Helen slowly, “but when it comes to heroism, I think the mothers who give their boys to be slaughtered for the good of their fellow-beings are the bravest—” The girl paused quickly, for she had caught sight of Nathalie’s face, and remorsefully felt that what she had just said only added to her friend’s distress. “But, girls,” she went on in a brighter tone, “I have something to tell you. I’m going to France to do my ‘bit,’ for I’m to be stenographer to Aunt Dora. We expect to sail in a month or so. You know that she is one of the officials in the Red Cross organization.”
“Maybe it does, Grace,” Helen said slowly, “but when it comes to heroism, I think the mothers who send their sons to be killed for the sake of others are the bravest—” She quickly paused when she noticed Nathalie’s expression and felt guilty, realizing that what she had just said only made her friend feel worse. “But, girls,” she continued with a more cheerful tone, “I have some news to share. I'm going to France to do my part because I’ll be Aunt Dora’s stenographer. We expect to sail in about a month. You know she works as one of the officials in the Red Cross organization.”
There were sudden exclamations of surprise from the girl’s two companions, as they eagerly wanted to 19 know all about her unexpected piece of news. As Helen finished giving the details as to how it had all come about, she exclaimed, with a sudden look at her wrist-watch: “Goodness! Girls, do you know it is almost supper-time? I’m just about starved.”
There were surprised exclamations from the girl’s two friends as they eagerly wanted to 19 know all about her unexpected news. As Helen finished explaining how it all happened, she suddenly looked at her watch and said, “Wow! Girls, do you realize it’s almost dinner time? I’m practically starving.”
“Well, jump into the car, then,” cried Grace Tyson, “and I’ll have you home in no time.” Her companions, pleased at the prospect of a whirl in the new car, gladly accepted her invitation, and a few minutes later were speeding towards the lower end of the street where Helen and Nathalie lived.
“Well, get in the car, then,” shouted Grace Tyson, “and I’ll have you home in no time.” Her friends, excited about the chance to ride in the new car, quickly accepted her invitation, and a few minutes later, they were zooming down the street towards where Helen and Nathalie lived.
After bidding her friends good-by, Nathalie, with a tru-al-lee, the call-note of their Pioneer bird-group, ran lightly up the steps of the veranda. Yes, Dick was home, for he was standing in the hall, lighting the gas. With a happy little sigh she opened the door.
After saying goodbye to her friends, Nathalie, with a tru-al-lee, the call-note of their Pioneer bird-group, ran lightly up the steps of the porch. Yes, Dick was home, as he was standing in the hall, lighting the gas. With a happy little sigh, she opened the door.
“Hello, sis,” called out Dick cheerily,—a tall well-formed youth, with merry blue eyes,—as he caught sight of the girl in the door-way. “Have you been on a hike?”
“Hey, sis,” shouted Dick happily—a tall, well-built guy with cheerful blue eyes—as he spotted the girl in the doorway. “Did you go for a hike?”
“Oh, no, just an afternoon at Mrs. Van Vorst’s. Nita had a lot of the girls there—” Nathalie stopped, for an expression, a sudden gleam in her brother’s eyes, caused her heart to give a wild leap. She drew in her breath sharply, but before the question that was forming could be asked, Dick waved the still flaming match hilariously above his head as he cried, “Well, sister mine, I’ve taken the plunge, and I’ve come off on top, 20 for I’ve joined the Flying Corps, and I’m going to be an army eagle!”
“Oh, no, just an afternoon at Mrs. Van Vorst’s. Nita had a lot of the girls there—” Nathalie stopped, as a sudden look in her brother’s eyes made her heart race. She inhaled sharply, but before she could ask her question, Dick waved the still burning match excitedly above his head and shouted, “Well, sister, I’ve taken the plunge, and I’ve come out on top, 20 because I’ve joined the Flying Corps, and I’m going to be an army eagle!”
“Flying Corps?” repeated Nathalie dazedly. “What do you mean?”
“Flying Corps?” Nathalie repeated, feeling confused. “What do you mean?”
“I mean, Blue Robin, that I’m going to be an aviator, a sky pilot,” replied the boy jubilantly. “I made an application some time ago to the chief signal officer at Washington. I was found an eligible applicant, for, you know, my course in the technical school in New York did me up fine. To-day I passed my physical examinations, and am now enlisted in the Signal Corps of the Signal Enlisted Reserve Corps. I’m off next week to the Military Aëronautics School at Princeton University. It’s an eight-weeks’ course. If I put it over,—and you bet your life I do,” Dick ground his teeth determinedly,—“I go into training at one of the Flying Schools, and then I’ll soon be a regular bird of the air; and if I don’t help Uncle Sam win the war, and manage to drop a few bombs on those Fritzies, I’ll go hang!”
“I mean, Blue Robin, that I’m going to be a pilot, a sky pilot,” replied the boy excitedly. “I applied a while ago to the chief signal officer in Washington. I was considered an eligible applicant because, you know, my technical school course in New York really prepared me well. Today, I passed my physical exams and am now enlisted in the Signal Corps of the Signal Enlisted Reserve Corps. I’m heading out next week to the Military Aeronautics School at Princeton University. It’s an eight-week course. If I make it through — and you can bet I will,” Dick clenched his teeth determinedly, “I’ll go into training at one of the Flying Schools, and then I’ll soon be flying high; and if I don’t help Uncle Sam win the war and manage to drop a few bombs on those Germans, then I don’t know what!”
For one awful moment Nathalie stood silent, staring at her brother in dumb despair. Then she turned, and with a blur in her eyes and a tightening of her throat, blindly groped for the stairway. But no! Dick’s hand shot out, he caught the hurrying figure in his grasp, and the next moment Nathalie was sobbing on his breast.
For one terrible moment, Nathalie stood frozen, staring at her brother in helpless despair. Then she turned away, with tears in her eyes and a lump in her throat, and blindly reached for the stairway. But no! Dick's hand shot out, catching her as she hurried past, and in the next moment, Nathalie was crying on his chest.
“That’s all right, little sis,” exclaimed the boy with a 21 break in his voice, as he pressed the brown head closer. Then he cried, in an attempt at jocularity, “Just get it all out of your system, every last drop of that salted brine, Blue Robin, and then we’ll talk business.”
“That’s okay, little sis,” the boy exclaimed, his voice cracking, as he brought the brown head closer. Then he added, trying to be funny, “Just let it all out, every last bit of those salty tears, Blue Robin, and then we’ll talk business.”
This somewhat matter-of-fact declaration acted like a cold shower-bath on the girl, as, with a convulsive shiver, she caught her breath, and although she burrowed deeper into the snug of her brother’s arm her tears were stayed.
This straightforward statement hit the girl like a cold shower, causing her to shudder and catch her breath. Even as she snuggled deeper into her brother’s arm, her tears stopped.
“Dick, how could you do it? Think of mother!” Then she raised her eyes, and went on, “Oh, I can’t bear the thought of your getting ki—” But the girl could not say the dreaded word, and again her head went down against the rough gray of Dick’s coat.
“Dick, how could you do this? Think about Mom!” Then she lifted her eyes and continued, “Oh, I can’t stand the thought of you getting ki—” But the girl couldn’t bring herself to say the terrifying word, and once more her head dropped against the rough gray of Dick’s coat.
“Well, Blue Robin, I’m afraid you have lost that cheery little tru-al-lee of yours,” teased the boy humorously. “You’ve cried so hard you’re eye-twisted. In the first place, I don’t intend getting killed if I can help it. And I can’t help leaving mother. You must remember I’m a citizen of the United States—” the boy was thinking of his first vote cast the fall before—“and I am bound by my oath of allegiance to the country to uphold its principles, even if it means the breaking of my mother’s apron-strings,” he added jokingly.
“Well, Blue Robin, I’m afraid you’ve lost that cheerful little tru-al-lee of yours,” the boy joked playfully. “You’ve cried so hard your eyes are all twisted. First of all, I don’t plan on getting killed if I can avoid it. And I can’t help but leave my mom. You’ve got to remember I’m a citizen of the United States—” the boy was thinking about the first vote he cast last fall—“and I’m bound by my oath of allegiance to the country to uphold its principles, even if it means breaking away from my mom’s apron strings,” he added with a laugh.
“Oh, Dick, don’t try to be funny,” Nathalie managed to say somewhat sharply, as she drew away from her brother’s arm and dropped limply on the steps of the stairs, in such an attitude of hopeless despair that 22 Dick was at the end of his tether to know what to say. He stared down at the girl, unconsciously rubbing his hand through his hair, a trick the boy had when perplexed.
“Oh, Dick, stop trying to be funny,” Nathalie said a bit sharply as she pulled away from her brother’s arm and dropped weakly onto the steps, looking so hopeless that 22 Dick didn’t know what to say. He looked down at her, unconsciously running his hand through his hair, a habit he had when he was confused.
Suddenly a bit of a smile leaped into his eyes as he cried, in a hopelessly resigned tone, “All right, sis, seeing that you feel this way about it I’ll just send in my resignation. It will let the boys know I’ve laid down on my job, for if you and mother are going to howl like two cats, a fellow can’t do a thing but stay at home and be a sissy, a baby-tender, a dish-washer-er-er—”
Suddenly, a hint of a smile appeared in his eyes as he said, in a defeated tone, “Alright, sis, since you feel this way about it, I’ll just resign. That will let the guys know I’ve given up on my job, because if you and mom are going to yell like two cats, a guy can’t do anything but stay home and be a wimp, a babysitter, a dish-washer—”
“Oh, Dick, don’t talk nonsense,” broke in Nathalie sharply. “I didn’t say that you were not to go, but,—why—oh, I just can’t help feeling awfully bad when I read all those terrible things in the paper.” Her voice quivered pathetically as she finished.
“Oh, Dick, don’t talk nonsense,” Nathalie interrupted sharply. “I didn’t say you couldn’t go, but—why—oh, I just can’t help feeling really upset when I read all those awful things in the news.” Her voice trembled sadly as she finished.
“Well, don’t read them, then,” coolly rejoined Dick. “Just steer clear of all that hysterical gush and brace up. My job is to serve my country,—she wants me. By Jove, before she gets out of this hole she’ll need every mother’s son of us. And I’ve got to do it in the best way I can, by enlisting before the draft comes. I’ll not only have a chance to do better work, a prospect of quicker promotion, but, if you want to look at the sordid end of it, I’ll get more pay. And as to being killed, as you wailed, if you and mother will insist upon seeing it black, an aviator’s chance of life is ten to one better—if he’s on to his job—than that of the 23 fellow on the ground. So cheer up, Blue Robin. I’m all beat hollow, for I’ve been trying to cheer up mother for the last hour.”
“Well, then don’t read them,” Dick replied coolly. “Just avoid all that emotional nonsense and toughen up. My job is to serve my country—she needs me. Honestly, before she gets out of this mess, she’s going to need every single one of us. And I’ve got to do it the best way I can by enlisting before the draft hits. Not only will I have a chance to do better work and a shot at quicker promotion, but if you want to look at the grim side of it, I'll get paid more. And about the risk of being killed, as you lamented, if you and mom are going to insist on seeing it as all doom and gloom, an aviator's chance of survival is actually ten times better—if he's skilled—than that of the guy on the ground. So cheer up, Blue Robin. I’m really worn out because I’ve been trying to lift mom's spirits for the last hour.”
“Oh, what does mother say?” asked a very faint voice, just as if the girl did not know how her mother felt, and had been feeling for some time.
“Oh, what does mom say?” asked a very faint voice, as if the girl didn't know how her mom felt and had been feeling that way for a while.
“Say! Gee whiz! I don’t know what she would have said if she had voiced her sentiments,” replied Dick resignedly. “But the worst of the whole business was that she took it out in weeping about a tank of tears; all over my best coat, too,” he added ruefully. “You women are enough to make a fellow go stiff.
“Wow! I can’t imagine what she would have said if she had expressed how she felt,” Dick replied with a sigh. “But the worst part of it all was that she ended up crying a river; right on my favorite coat, too,” he added sadly. “You women really know how to drive a guy nuts.”
“Now see here, Blue Robin, don’t disappoint me!” suddenly cried the lad, as he stared appealingly into his sister’s brown eyes. “Why, I thought that you would be my right-hand man. I knew mother would make a time at first, but you,—I thought you had grit; you, a Pioneer, too. Don’t you know, girl—” added Dick, rubbing the back of his hand quickly across his eyes, “that I’ve got to go? Don’t you forget that. I’m on the job, every inch of it, but, thunderation, I’m no more keen to go ‘over there’ and have those Hun devils cut me up like sausage, than you or mother. But I’m a man and I’ve got to live up to the business of being a man, and not a mollycoddle.”
“Now listen up, Blue Robin, don’t let me down!” the boy suddenly exclaimed, looking earnestly into his sister’s brown eyes. “I really thought you’d be my right-hand person. I knew Mom would have a hard time at first, but you,—I thought you were tough; you, a Pioneer, too. Don’t you understand, girl—” Dick continued, quickly rubbing the back of his hand across his eyes, “that I have to go? Don’t forget that. I’m committed to this, every single bit of it, but, goodness, I’m no more eager to head ‘over there’ and get sliced up by those Hun devils than you or Mom. But I’m a man, and I need to live up to what it means to be a man, not a softie.”
But Nathalie had suddenly come to her senses. Perhaps it was the brush of the boy’s hand across his eyes, or the quivering note in his voice, but she roused. She 24 had been selfish; instead of crying like a ninny she should have cheered. “Oh, Dick,” she exclaimed contritely, standing up and facing him suddenly, “I’m all wrong. I didn’t mean to cry, and I wouldn’t have either,” she explained excusingly, “if you had only let me go up-stairs.
But Nathalie suddenly snapped back to reality. Maybe it was the way the boy's hand brushed against his eyes or the trembling tone in his voice, but she woke up. She 24 realized she had been selfish; instead of crying like a fool, she should have been supportive. “Oh, Dick,” she said with regret, standing up and facing him abruptly, “I’m completely in the wrong. I didn’t mean to cry, and I wouldn’t have either,” she added defensively, “if you had just let me go upstairs.”
“No, Dick, I would not have you be a slacker, or a mollycoddle, or wash the dishes,” she added with a faint attempt at a smile, “and we haven’t any babies to tend. Yes, old boy, I don’t want you to lie down in the traces, so let’s shake on it, and I’ll try to brace up mother, too,” added the girl, as she held out her hand to her brother.
“No, Dick, I don’t want you to be a slacker or a pushover, or do the dishes,” she said with a slight attempt at a smile, “and we don’t have any babies to take care of. Yes, my friend, I don’t want you to give up, so let’s shake on it, and I’ll try to encourage Mom, too,” the girl added as she reached out her hand to her brother.
“Now that’s the stuff, Nat, old girl,” cried the boy with gleaming eyes, as he took the girl’s hand and held it tightly, “and while I’m fighting to uphold the family honor and glory,—remember father was a Rough Rider,—you stay with dear old mumsie. Keep her cheered up, and see that everything is made easy for her. Do all you can to take my place here at home. Yes, Blue Robin, you be the home soldier. Gee whiz, you be the home guard!” added the boy in a sudden burst of inspiration.
“Now that’s the spirit, Nat, old girl,” shouted the boy with shining eyes as he took the girl’s hand and held it tightly. “While I’m out there fighting to defend our family’s honor and glory—don’t forget dad was a Rough Rider—you stay with dear old moms. Keep her spirits up, and make sure everything is easy for her. Do everything you can to take my place here at home. Yes, Blue Robin, you be the home soldier. Wow, you be the home guard!” he added suddenly inspired.
“The home guard! Yes, that’s what I’ll be,” cried the girl, her eyes lighting with a sudden glow. “And then I’ll be doing my bit, won’t I? I’ll cheer up mother, and do all I can,” she added resolutely; “and don’t worry any more, Dick, for now,”—the girl drew 25 a long breath, “I’ll be on the job as well as you.”
“The home guard! Yes, that’s what I’ll be,” the girl exclaimed, her eyes shining with excitement. “And then I’ll be contributing, right? I’ll make mom feel better and do everything I can,” she added determinedly; “and don’t stress anymore, Dick, for now,”—the girl took a deep breath, “I’ll be on the job just like you.”
And then Nathalie, with a wave of her hand at the boy as he stood gazing up at her with his eyes fired with loyal determination, hurried up the stairs, straight on and up to the very top of the house to her usual weeping-place, for, oh, those hateful tears would not be restrained, and if she did not have her cry out she would strangle!
And then Nathalie, waving at the boy as he looked up at her with his eyes filled with loyal determination, rushed up the stairs, straight to the very top of the house to her usual spot for crying, because, oh, those awful tears wouldn’t hold back, and if she didn’t let it out, she would suffocate!
Ah, here she was in her den, the attic. Dimly she reached out her hand and pulled the little wooden rocker out from the wall and slumped into it, and a minute later, with her face buried in the fold of her arm, as it rested on the little sewing-table, she was weeping unrestrainedly.
Ah, here she was in her hideaway, the attic. She reached out her hand and pulled the small wooden rocker away from the wall, sinking into it. A minute later, with her face buried in the fold of her arm resting on the tiny sewing table, she was crying freely.
Presently she gave a sudden start, raised her head and listened, and then was on her feet, for, oh, that was her mother’s step,—she was coming up after her. Oh, why hadn’t she waited until she had a hold on herself. The next moment the little wooden door with the padlock opened, and Mrs. Page was standing in the doorway gazing down at her.
Presently, she jumped up, raised her head, and listened, then got to her feet because, oh, that was her mother’s footsteps—she was coming up after her. Oh, why hadn’t she waited until she had herself together? The next moment, the little wooden door with the padlock swung open, and Mrs. Page stood in the doorway, looking down at her.
“Why—oh, mother!” Nathalie cried in surprise and wonder, for her mother was smiling. The girl’s eyes bulged out from her tear-stained face in such a funny way that her mother broke into a little laugh. Then her face sobered and she came slowly towards her.
“Why—oh, mom!” Nathalie exclaimed in surprise and amazement, because her mom was smiling. The girl’s eyes widened from her tear-streaked face in such a funny way that her mom couldn’t help but chuckle a little. Then her expression became serious, and she walked slowly toward her.
“No, daughter mine, mother is not weeping. Yes, 26 I heard what you and Dick said, and you are patriots, and have shamed mother into trying to be one, too.” Mrs. Page took the girl in her arms with tender affection.
“No, my daughter, mother isn't crying. Yes, 26 I heard what you and Dick said, and you are patriots, and you've embarrassed mother into trying to be one, too.” Mrs. Page held the girl in her arms with gentle affection.
“And Dick is a dear lad. Oh, Nathalie, in our grief at the thought of parting with him,—perhaps of losing him,—” her voice weakened slightly, “we have forgotten that he has been fighting a greater battle than we.
“And Dick is a wonderful guy. Oh, Nathalie, in our sorrow at the thought of saying goodbye to him—maybe even losing him—” her voice faltered a bit, “we have overlooked the fact that he has been fighting a much bigger battle than we have.”
“It is surely a great thing,” continued Mrs. Page sadly, “for a young man in the buoyancy of youth and the very heyday of life, to give it all up. For youth clings more tenaciously to life than older people do, for to them it is an untried and shining pathway, flowered with hope, anticipation, and the luring glimmer of unfulfilled aims and ambitions.
“It’s really something,” Mrs. Page said sadly, “for a young man in the prime of his life to give it all up. Young people hold on to life more tightly than older folks do, because for them it’s an untested and bright path, filled with hope, anticipation, and the tempting sparkle of unachieved dreams and ambitions.”
“And then to have to face about,” her voice lowered, “and silently struggle with one’s self in the great battle of self-abnegation, to end by taking this glorious life and casting it far behind you,—this is what makes a hero. Then to face the dread ordeal of a battlefield, and go steadily forward, buoyed only with a feeling of bravery,—the heroism of doing what you believe to be right,—and, taking your one chance for life in your hands,—plunge into the unknown darkness and the horrifying perils of a No Man’s Land.”
“And then to have to turn around,” her voice dropped, “and silently fight with yourself in the big struggle of giving up your own desires, to end up taking this amazing life and leaving it all behind you,—this is what creates a hero. Then to confront the terrifying challenge of a battlefield, and move forward with determination, lifted only by a sense of courage,—the heroism of doing what you think is right,—and, taking your one shot at life in your hands,—dive into the unknown darkness and the frightening dangers of a No Man’s Land.”
There was a stifled sob in Nathalie’s throat, but her mother went steadily on: “No, Nathalie, we must 27 not weep. We must smile and be cheerful. We must inspire Dick with courage and hope, and if it is meant that he is to give his life, we must let him go with a ‘God speed you,’ his memory starred with the thought of a mother’s love and a sister’s courage, and with the soul-stirring song of the victor over death.
There was a suppressed sob in Nathalie’s throat, but her mother continued firmly: “No, Nathalie, we can't cry. We have to smile and stay positive. We need to fill Dick with courage and hope, and if he’s meant to give his life, we must send him off with a ‘Godspeed,’ his memory filled with a mother’s love and a sister’s bravery, and with the inspiring song of conquering death.”
“And, Nathalie, Dick belongs to God; he was only loaned to me,—to you,—and if the time has come for God to call him home, we must not complain. We must gladly give him back. Then we must remember, too,” went on the patient mother-voice, “that, after all, life is not the mere living of it, but the things accomplished for the betterment of those who come after. And if Dick has been ‘on the job,’” Mrs. Page smiled, “no matter how small his share in this great warfare for the right, he will be the better prepared to enter into the Land where there is no more suffering, or horrible war, but just a glorious and eternal peace.”
“And, Nathalie, Dick belongs to God; He was only lent to me, to you, and if the time has come for God to bring him home, we shouldn’t complain. We should gladly give him back. And we must remember, too,” continued the patient mother’s voice, “that, ultimately, life isn’t just about living it, but about the things we accomplish for the betterment of those who come after us. And if Dick has been ‘on the job,’” Mrs. Page smiled, “no matter how small his contribution to this great fight for what’s right, he will be better prepared to enter the Land where there is no more suffering or terrible war, but just glorious and eternal peace.”
The last word was almost whispered, but, with renewed effort, she said: “Now, Nathalie, let us be brave, as father would have had us,—the dear father,—and go down to Dick with a bright smile and inspiring words of cheer.” Mrs. Page bent and kissed the girl lightly, but solemnly, on the forehead, and then she had turned and was making her way towards the door.
The last word was nearly a whisper, but with a determined effort, she said, “Now, Nathalie, let’s be brave, just like dad would have wanted us to—the dear dad—and let’s go down to Dick with a bright smile and some uplifting words of encouragement.” Mrs. Page leaned down and gently but solemnly kissed the girl on the forehead, and then she turned and started heading towards the door.
CHAPTER II
GIVING HER BEST
“As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free.”
“As He died to make people holy, let us die to make people free.”
Nathalie sat in the big rocker on the veranda, sewing a star on a service-flag. Yes, as soon as Dick had gone to do his “stunt,” as he called it, in the great warfare,—gone with all the honors of war, as his mother had laughingly declared as he kissed them a noisy good-by,—Nathalie had felt that it was incumbent upon her to sustain the honor of the family, and had run lightly up to the attic. Here, in the big piece-trunk she found a bundle of Turkey red, a bit of white, and then, after begging a snip of blue from Helen for the star, she had set to work.
Nathalie sat in the big rocking chair on the porch, sewing a star on a service flag. As soon as Dick left to do his “stunt,” as he called it, in the huge war—gone with all the honors of war, as his mother had jokingly declared while he gave them a loud goodbye—Nathalie felt it was her duty to uphold the family’s honor, so she quickly went up to the attic. There, in the large trunk, she found a bundle of bright red fabric, a piece of white, and after asking Helen for a small piece of blue for the star, she got to work.
She was sure that star would not come off, for she had double-stitched into every angle and on every point. She held up the patriotic square, bordered with red, and sorrowfully stared at that one lone star, although a thrill of pride stirred at her heart and caused her eyes to beam.
She was confident that the star would stay on, since she had double-stitched every angle and every point. She held up the patriotic square, framed in red, and sadly gazed at that one lonely star, even though a wave of pride surged in her heart and made her eyes shine.
She must hang it up. And then she was busy tacking the little flag to a small staff, which she had fastened to the roof of the porch so it could be seen. 29 Ah, the wind had caught it, and it was waving in a salute to its many mates curling from the neighboring porches, and to the Red Cross insignias that starred a window here and there, ofttimes overshadowed by the graceful sweep of the Stars and Stripes.
She has to hang it up. Then she got busy pinning the little flag to a small pole that she attached to the roof of the porch so it could be seen. 29 Ah, the wind caught it, and it was waving in salute to its many friends fluttering from the neighboring porches, and to the Red Cross symbols that appeared in a window here and there, often overshadowed by the graceful sweep of the Stars and Stripes.
But Nathalie’s heart was still sore, for although she had given up Dick with as good a grace as she could muster, and had tried to show that she possessed the true American spirit, yet it did seem as if it was a needless sacrifice. With a sudden turn on her heel, the girl burst into a new patriotic air that she had heard somewhere, as if hoping that it would drive away the rebellious thoughts that jarred her attempt at cheer, and hurried into the kitchen.
But Nathalie’s heart was still aching, because even though she had let go of Dick as gracefully as she could manage, and had tried to show that she had the true American spirit, it still felt like a pointless sacrifice. With a quick turn on her heel, the girl burst into a new patriotic song she had heard somewhere, as if hoping it would chase away the troubling thoughts that disrupted her attempt to be cheerful, and hurried into the kitchen.
As Nathalie stepped to the window and stared carelessly out, her eyes were caught by the gleam of yellow crocus and purple hyacinth as they peeped up at her from their beds of green. Somehow their flaunting colors reminded her of the spring blooms that used to nod so gayly to her from the flower-beds in her beautiful city home in the upper part of New York.
As Nathalie moved to the window and looked out absentmindedly, her attention was snagged by the bright yellow crocus and purple hyacinth that peeked up at her from their green patches. Their bold colors somehow reminded her of the spring flowers that used to cheerfully nod at her from the flower beds in her lovely city home in upper Manhattan.
She could hardly believe it was a year since her father’s death. The poignant grief she had suffered then again caused her eyes to fill with tears, and her mind dwelt upon the sorrowful circumstances surrounding her loss, the changes that had followed, in their financial losses, and the many sacrifices it had entailed.
She could hardly believe it had been a year since her father’s death. The deep sadness she had felt back then made her eyes well up with tears again, and her mind lingered on the painful circumstances surrounding her loss, the changes that followed, their financial struggles, and the many sacrifices it had required.
30 She again saw the sorrowful farewell to the first and only home she had ever known; she again felt the grief that came to her in the giving up of the many things that had made life so happy,—her schoolmates, her many enjoyments, and her hope of going to college. She again experienced the dolefulness that had assailed her mother, her brother Dick, her younger sister, Dorothy, and herself, on their coming to the humble cottage home in Westport, the being associated with strangers, and the many people who at first had seemed so different from their city associates.
30 She once again saw the sad goodbye to the first and only home she had ever known; she felt the sorrow that came with letting go of the many things that had brought her happiness—her classmates, her numerous joys, and her hopes of attending college. She once again experienced the sadness that had hit her mother, her brother Dick, her younger sister Dorothy, and herself when they first arrived at the modest cottage home in Westport, the feeling of being surrounded by strangers, and the many people who had initially seemed so different from their friends in the city.
Yes, there was the tree where she had found the nest of bluebirds. The girl’s eyes gleamed amusedly as she peered down the garden at the old cedar tree, and remembered that she had called them blue robins, thus giving Dick an opportunity to nickname her, Blue Robin.
Yes, there was the tree where she had found the nest of bluebirds. The girl's eyes sparkled playfully as she looked down the garden at the old cedar tree and recalled that she had called them blue robins, which had given Dick a chance to nickname her Blue Robin.
Nathalie attempted to smile, but the thought of Dick’s going away aroused her slumbering grief, and once more the tears flowed silently down her cheeks. But she bravely brushed them away and went on with her reminiscences,—the remembrance of spraining her ankle up in the woods, and how it had led to her meeting Helen Dame, her next-door neighbor, and now her dearest friend.
Nathalie tried to smile, but the idea of Dick leaving stirred up her hidden sadness, and once again, tears streamed quietly down her cheeks. Still, she bravely wiped them away and continued with her memories—the time she twisted her ankle in the woods and how it had led her to meet Helen Dame, her next-door neighbor, who is now her closest friend.
How lovely Grace Tyson had looked that day, and dear old Barbara with her near-sighted eyes, and the girls’ favorite, Lillie Bell, with her gracious charm 31 and dramatic poses. The girl smiled again as she remembered Edith Whiton, the sport, and her harum-scarum oddities. Yes, they were all dear girls. And how glad she was that she had become a Pioneer, and a real blue robin, by joining the Blue Bird group.
How beautiful Grace Tyson looked that day, along with dear old Barbara with her glasses, and the girls' favorite, Lillie Bell, with her elegant charm and dramatic poses. The girl smiled again as she thought of Edith Whiton, the energetic one, and her quirky antics. Yes, they were all wonderful friends. And she was so happy that she had become a Pioneer, a real blue robin, by joining the Blue Bird group.
And what a dear Mrs. Morrow, the Pioneer director, was that day the Pioneers called. Oh, that was the day the “Mystic” had passed. Who would have thought she would turn out to be Mrs. Van Vorst, who was so lovely. And that ride with Dr. Morrow to the big gray house, and then she mentally saw herself, with that handkerchief over her eyes, talking to the Princess, Nita, the little hunchbacked girl. And what good friends they had become through those history lessons!
And what a wonderful Mrs. Morrow, the Pioneer director, was that day when the Pioneers came by. Oh, that was the day the “Mystic” had passed. Who would have guessed she would turn out to be Mrs. Van Vorst, who was so beautiful? And that ride with Dr. Morrow to the big gray house, she could picture herself, with that handkerchief over her eyes, talking to the Princess, Nita, the little hunchbacked girl. And what great friends they had become through those history lessons!
The many useful things she had learned from the Pioneer hikes and crafts, and the joys she had experienced from their many sports and activities had certainly proved worth while. And the “overcomes” she had fought for by adopting the Pioneer motto, “I can,” had certainly meant something in her life.
The many helpful things she had learned from the Pioneer hikes and crafts, and the enjoyment she had experienced from their various sports and activities were definitely worthwhile. And the “overcomes” she had achieved by embracing the Pioneer motto, “I can,” had truly made a difference in her life.
But they did have gloriously good times at Camp Laff-a-Lot at Eagle Lake, with the Boy Scouts, Miss Camphelia, Miss Dummy, and all the other good sports. Then, too, there was the surprise, on her return to learn the good that had come to Dick through the money so kindly loaned by Mrs. Van Vorst. Indeed, that one year had brought many new things into her 32 life, for—O dear, there was all that silver to be cleaned! For, now that her mother kept no maid, this duty, with many other menial tasks, had devolved upon Nathalie. Oh, how she hated that job!
But they had an amazing time at Camp Laff-a-Lot at Eagle Lake, hanging out with the Boy Scouts, Miss Camphelia, Miss Dummy, and all the other fun people. Plus, there was the surprise of discovering the positive changes in Dick's life thanks to the money so generously lent by Mrs. Van Vorst. That one year truly brought a lot of new things into her life, but—oh no, there was all that silver to clean! Since her mother no longer had a maid, this chore, along with many other tedious tasks, had fallen to Nathalie. Ugh, how she hated that job!
With a resigned air, however, she managed to carry the basket of silver from the sideboard to the kitchen table, and then returned to the dining-room for the tea-service. After getting her cleaning cloths, her brushes, and the scouring-powder, with vigorous determination she began to rub and polish.
With a sense of acceptance, she managed to carry the basket of silver from the sideboard to the kitchen table, and then went back to the dining room for the tea set. After grabbing her cleaning cloths, brushes, and scouring powder, she began to scrub and shine with strong determination.
But somehow everything acted aggravatingly mean, for she dropped the polish, and the powder flew all over; then she knocked the tray and the knives and forks clattered to the floor. O dear! what ailed things anyway? And how her arms ached trying to polish those horrid tarnished stains on the teapot! The tableware had never seemed so obdurate, nor the means for making it bright so utterly ineffective.
But somehow everything felt really annoying, because she dropped the polish, and the powder went everywhere; then she bumped the tray and the knives and forks fell to the floor. Oh dear! What was wrong with everything anyway? And her arms hurt from trying to polish those awful tarnished marks on the teapot! The dishes had never seemed so stubborn, nor the ways to make them shine seemed so completely useless.
“Oh, I guess I am the one who is ailing,” she exclaimed glumly, as she suddenly realized that her mind was not on her task, and that the elation of playing at being a patriot had departed, with Dick evidently, leaving her as limp as a rag. Oh, it does seem such a shame that we had to get into that war—Nathalie bit off her thought like a thread, resolved not to let her mind dwell on that forbidden topic. But how angelic her mother had acted when Dick went. Well, she was a dear, anyway, so brave. But suppose he never 33 should come back after all. Something suddenly seemed to snap in the girl’s breast, and down went her head on the tray, into a heap of powder, while a great sob strangled out of her throat.
“Oh, I guess I'm the one who's feeling unwell,” she said sadly, as she suddenly realized that she wasn’t focused on her task and that the excitement of pretending to be a patriot had faded, along with Dick, leaving her feeling weak and defeated. It really does seem like such a shame that we had to get involved in that war—Nathalie cut off her thought like a thread, determined not to let her mind linger on that forbidden subject. But how wonderful her mother had been when Dick left. Well, she was amazing, anyway, so brave. But what if he never 33comes back after all? Something suddenly snapped inside the girl, and she buried her head in the tray, into a pile of powder, while a great sob escaped from her throat.
O horrors! Nathalie’s brown head bobbed up from the tray, not very serenely either, for she had heard a step on the kitchen porch. Oh, Helen always came in that way! “Where is my handkerchief?” The girl grabbed desperately at something white lying on the tray, dimly seen through a blur of tears, and began to scrub her nose energetically with alas, not her handkerchief, but the powder-cloth with which she had been polishing the silver! “Ah chee! Ah chee!” sneezed Nathalie again and again, while groping frenziedly, but blindly, for her handkerchief. She must have dropped it. And then Helen’s arms were around her, and she was kissing the flushed cheek.
Oh no! Nathalie’s brown head popped up from the tray, not very calmly either, because she had heard someone coming in on the kitchen porch. Oh, Helen always came in like that! “Where is my handkerchief?” The girl frantically grabbed at something white lying on the tray, barely visible through a blur of tears, and started to wipe her nose vigorously with, unfortunately, not her handkerchief, but the polishing cloth she had been using on the silver! “Ah-choo! Ah-choo!” Nathalie kept sneezing, while she frantically searched, but blindly, for her handkerchief. She must have dropped it. And then Helen's arms were around her, and she was kissing her flushed cheek.
“What’s struck you, honey girl?” she asked in that gentle way of hers. “Have you got the influenza? But here’s a very necessary article at times, if that’s what you’re after,” she finished with a laugh, as she stooped and picked up Nathalie’s handkerchief from the floor.
“What's bothering you, sweetie?” she asked in her usual gentle tone. “Do you have the flu? But this is definitely a must-have sometimes, if that's what you're looking for,” she added with a laugh, as she bent down and picked up Nathalie's handkerchief from the floor.
“Influenza? No,” blurted out Nathalie savagely, tortured to a pitch of desperation at her unfortunate predicament. “I’ve been rubbing my nose with that dirty old piece of rag I clean the silver with. Serves me right, I suppose, for being such a fool as to cry 34 when I should be ‘on my job,’ as Dick says.” She shamefacedly tried to hide her red eyes from her friend’s keen gaze.
“Flu? No,” Nathalie snapped, overwhelmed with frustration about her bad luck. “I’ve been wiping my nose with that filthy rag I use to clean the silver. It’s my own fault for being stupid enough to cry 34 when I should be ‘on my game,’ like Dick says.” She tried to hide her red eyes from her friend's sharp attention.
“Oh, well, it will do you good to cry, Nathalie, dear,” advised Helen softly, as she stroked the brown head caressingly, “for you were quite a heroine when Dick went away, so courageous and cheery. Mrs. Morrow says you are the nerviest Pioneer she knows.”
“Oh, well, it’ll be good for you to cry, Nathalie, dear,” Helen said gently, as she affectionately stroked her brown hair. “You were such a hero when Dick left, so brave and optimistic. Mrs. Morrow says you're the most daring Pioneer she knows.”
“But I’m not,” confessed Nathalie honestly, “in fact, I’m beginning to think that I’m a bluff. But anyway, I’m glad to get a bit of praise, something to warm me up, for I have felt like a congealed icicle for the last few days. Yes, I have smiled and smiled like the poor Spartan boy, while the fox of Grief was gnawing a hole into my internals. That sounds like one of Lillie Bell’s dramatics, doesn’t it?” she smiled pathetically into her friend’s kindly eyes.
“But I’m not,” Nathalie admitted honestly, “in fact, I’m starting to think that I’m just putting on a show. But anyway, I’m glad to get a little praise, something to warm me up, because I’ve felt like a frozen icicle for the last few days. Yes, I’ve smiled and smiled like that poor Spartan boy, while the fox of Grief was chewing away at my insides. That sounds a bit like one of Lillie Bell’s dramatics, doesn’t it?” She smiled sadly into her friend’s kind eyes.
“But, Helen, you are a dear, anyway,” cried Nathalie in a sudden burst of admiration for her tried and trusted friend, who was always such a stanch and timely comforter. “And do you know,” she added, swinging about in her chair with the teapot in one hand and the despised polishing-cloth in the other, “you grow better-looking every day. Oh, I think you are just lovely!”
“But, Helen, you’re such a sweetheart, anyway,” Nathalie exclaimed in a sudden burst of admiration for her loyal and dependable friend, who was always such a strong and timely comfort. “And you know,” she added, spinning around in her chair with the teapot in one hand and the hated polishing cloth in the other, “you’re getting more attractive every day. Oh, I really think you’re just beautiful!”
“I lovely?” mocked Helen, opening her eyes in surprise at this unexpected praise. “Well, Blue Robin, what started you on that trail? You must have been 35 kissing the Blarney Stone, for you are handing me out ‘the stuff,’ as the boys say, for fair. Poor me, with a knob on my nose, a wide mouth, and green eyes—to call me lovely is a libel on the word.”
“Am I lovely?” teased Helen, her eyes widening in surprise at the unexpected compliment. “So, Blue Robin, what made you think that? You must have been 35 kissing the Blarney Stone, because you’re really laying it on thick, as the guys say. Poor me, with a bump on my nose, a big mouth, and green eyes—calling me lovely is an insult to the term.”
“Oh, Helen, your eyes are just lovely—every one says that, for they are so expressive,” retorted her friend loyally; “and as for the knob on your nose, no one would know it was there if you weren’t constantly telling them about it. But I don’t care what you look like anyway,” she added determinedly, “for I think you are a love of a friend. But when do you go to France?” she finished abruptly.
“Oh, Helen, your eyes are just beautiful—everyone says so because they’re so expressive,” her friend replied loyally. “And about the bump on your nose, no one would even notice it if you didn’t keep pointing it out. But honestly, I don’t care what you look like anyway,” she added firmly, “because I think you’re an amazing friend. But when are you going to France?” she asked suddenly.
“I don’t quite know yet,” replied the girl; “perhaps not until a month or so. But mother is brave about letting me go. She says it will be a fine experience for me,—as long as I don’t have to go ‘over the top.’ Oh, you finished your service-flag! It’s a Jim Dandy!” Helen plunged recklessly into another topic, again blaming herself for her trick of alluding to forbidden subjects, for she had seen Nathalie’s lips quiver as she said “Over the top.”
“I don’t know yet,” the girl replied. “Maybe not for another month or so. But my mom is brave about letting me go. She says it will be a great experience for me—as long as I don’t have to go ‘over the top.’ Oh, you finished your service flag! It looks amazing!” Helen jumped recklessly into another topic, feeling guilty for bringing up taboo subjects again, especially since she had seen Nathalie’s lips tremble when she said “Over the top.”
“Yes, I finished it, and now the neighbors know where we stand, even if you consider me a pacifist,” said the girl a little defiantly. “Well, perhaps I shall think differently some day,” with a quickly repressed sigh.
“Yes, I finished it, and now the neighbors know where we stand, even if you see me as a pacifist,” the girl said a bit defiantly. “Well, maybe I’ll feel differently someday,” she added with a quickly suppressed sigh.
“Yes, and that day is coming very soon, too, Blue Robin,” rejoined Helen; “for I’ll bet you a box of 36 candy that you won’t be a pacifist after you hear Mrs. Morrow talk on liberty. Surely you haven’t forgotten that we are to go to a Liberty Tea at her house this afternoon?” she inquired as she saw her friend’s face settle down into an expression of gloom.
“Yes, and that day is coming really soon, too, Blue Robin,” Helen responded; “because I’ll bet you a box of 36 candy that you won’t be a pacifist after you hear Mrs. Morrow talk about liberty. Surely you haven’t forgotten that we’re going to a Liberty Tea at her house this afternoon?” she asked when she noticed her friend’s face shifting into a gloomy expression.
“Oh, I don’t think I’ll go,” retorted Nathalie quickly, “for I don’t feel a bit Pioneery this morning, and then I have all this silver to clean.”
“Oh, I don’t think I’ll go,” Nathalie replied quickly, “because I’m not feeling very Pioneery this morning, and I have all this silver to clean.”
“But, Blue Robin,” returned her friend cheerily, “I’m going to help you finish up that silver, and then I’m going home to dress for this afternoon. Then I’m coming over here and just make you go to that Liberty Tea with me. You know, Nathalie, it would be mean for you to desert Mrs. Morrow,” she added wisely, “for you are the leader of the band and should help to entertain the girls.”
“But, Blue Robin,” her friend replied cheerfully, “I’m going to help you wrap up that silver, and then I’m heading home to get ready for this afternoon. After that, I’m coming back here, and I’m going to make you go to that Liberty Tea with me. You know, Nathalie, it would be unfair for you to ditch Mrs. Morrow,” she added wisely, “since you’re the one in charge and should help keep the girls entertained.”
Whereupon, Helen caught up one of Nathalie’s kitchen-aprons, and a few moments later the two girls were laughing and chatting in the best of spirits, as they rubbed and polished with youthful ardor, every bone and muscle keyed to its task.
Whereupon, Helen grabbed one of Nathalie’s kitchen aprons, and a few moments later the two girls were laughing and chatting in high spirits as they scrubbed and polished with youthful enthusiasm, every bone and muscle focused on the job.
Yes, it was enlivening to be so warmly welcomed by her hostess, Nathalie decided, as she greeted her a little later in the afternoon, and her depression vanished. And how perfectly lovely Mrs. Morrow looked in that blue gown; yes, it was just the color of her blue-gray eyes. Under the fascination of this lady’s charming personality Nathalie was soon flying about, 37 showing the girls how to start sweaters, or to purl, as this task had been delegated to her by the director, who herself had taught Nathalie.
Yes, it was refreshing to be greeted so warmly by her hostess, Nathalie decided, as she met her a little later in the afternoon, and her sadness lifted. And how absolutely lovely Mrs. Morrow looked in that blue dress; it was exactly the color of her blue-gray eyes. Under the charm of this lady’s captivating personality, Nathalie soon found herself bustling around, 37 showing the girls how to start sweaters or to purl, as this task had been assigned to her by the director, who had taught Nathalie herself.
When the tea was served it was Nathalie who occupied the place of honor at the little tea-table, decorated with the United States flag, and who dispensed the dainty little china cups filled with what was patriotically called Liberty Tea in honor of the young ladies who had given it its name over a hundred years ago, and who the Pioneers had impersonated last year in their entertainment of “Liberty Banners.”
When the tea was served, Nathalie took the place of honor at the small tea table, decorated with the United States flag, and served the delicate china cups filled with what was proudly called Liberty Tea in honor of the young women who named it over a hundred years ago, and whom the Pioneers had portrayed last year in their “Liberty Banners” event.
After the teacups had been removed, and one or two announcements of coming events had been made, Mrs. Morrow, with sudden gravity, said:
After the teacups were cleared away and a couple of announcements about upcoming events were made, Mrs. Morrow, looking serious, said:
“We have gathered here to-day, girls, to commemorate the Spirit of Liberty, the one great principle that has budded like Aaron’s rod, and brought forth other qualities as splendid and compelling as itself, as, for example, the principles represented in our national emblem. The principle of humanity, which means living the Golden Rule by taking thought for your neighbor; democracy, the equal rights of mankind, which in turn gives rise to justice, loyalty, and unity,—the principles that have not only given us that wonderful, mystical something called Americanism, but the principles that mean the Christianity of Christ.”
“We have gathered here today, girls, to celebrate the Spirit of Liberty, the one great principle that has blossomed like Aaron’s rod, leading to other qualities as impressive and essential as itself, like the principles represented in our national emblem. The principle of humanity, which means living by the Golden Rule by considering your neighbor; democracy, the equal rights of all people, which in turn brings forth justice, loyalty, and unity—these principles have not only given us that wonderful, mystical thing called Americanism, but also represent the teachings of Christ.”
After the girls had discussed the meaning of liberty and summed it up as standing for man’s right to self-expression, 38 either by words or actions, and made it clear that it had to be governed by the law of self-control, as too much freedom would mean license or lawlessness, Mrs. Morrow continued her little talk.
After the girls talked about what liberty means and defined it as a person’s right to express themselves, 38 either through words or actions, and made it clear that it should be regulated by the principle of self-control, since too much freedom could lead to chaos or lawlessness, Mrs. Morrow went on with her brief discussion.
“Liberty is not something that sprang into being with the coming of the settlers to America, for it is as old as man himself; but under the rule of king-ridden states it has been fighting its way through many long centuries, because the peoples of the Old World failed to grasp its meaning.
“Liberty didn’t just appear when the settlers arrived in America; it’s as old as humanity itself. However, under the control of monarchies, it has been struggling for recognition for many long centuries because the people of the Old World couldn’t understand its significance.
“Under the stimulus of the Reformation and the Revival of Learning, induced by the printing of the Bible and other books, the early comers to America, as they endeavored to worship God as they thought right, not only left the intolerant forms and bigoted narrowness of the Old World, but threw the first light on liberty by teaching man his right to freedom of the soul. The Pilgrims and Puritans were the Pioneers of liberty, for they not only gave us religious freedom, but, by establishing a government for and by the people without the aid of king or bishop, laid the cornerstone of a great commonwealth, and gave us democratic liberty.
“Fueled by the Reformation and the Renaissance, driven by the printing of the Bible and other books, the early settlers in America, as they sought to worship God in their own way, not only escaped the intolerance and narrow-mindedness of the Old World but also shed light on liberty by affirming a person's right to freedom of the soul. The Pilgrims and Puritans were the pioneers of liberty because they not only secured religious freedom for us but also, by establishing a government for and by the people without the support of a king or bishop, laid the foundation for a great commonwealth and granted us democratic liberty.”
“If you girls would make a study of the history of the Thirteen Colonies,” went on their director, “you would learn that not only each Colony contributed to the principles embodied in every stripe, star, and color of our spangled banner, but that a universal love of 39 freedom seems to have animated the settlers. Each individual group, to be sure, had its own peculiar belief, but, in the working-out of their cherished ideals and aspirations, liberty was the bone and sinew of every colony.
“If you girls studied the history of the Thirteen Colonies,” their director continued, “you would find that each Colony played a part in the values represented in every stripe, star, and color of our flag. There was a shared love of freedom that inspired the settlers. Each group certainly had its own unique beliefs, but in pursuing their treasured ideals and hopes, liberty was the core of every colony.
“It was under the influence of these early settlers—the giving of their best to mankind in their struggles for freedom—that the ideals and beliefs of the New World were molded into higher and better institutions, purified and strengthened by a new significance. Their ideals and aspirations were essentially different from anything known before,—ideals peculiar to this soil, which were absolutely American, not only in religious freedom, but in the institutions of local government and the union of all states into one, which gave rise to the United States of America.
“It was through the influence of these early settlers—their dedication to humanity in their fight for freedom—that the ideals and beliefs of the New World evolved into stronger and better institutions, refined and deepened by a new significance. Their ideals and aspirations were fundamentally different from anything that had existed before—ideals unique to this land, which were distinctly American, not only in terms of religious freedom but also in local government institutions and the unification of all states into one, which led to the creation of the United States of America."
“Now we have come to the great subject of the hour, the war, and a question I have heard several of you girls ask, ‘Why are we in the war?’”
“Now we’ve reached the important topic of the moment, the war, and a question I’ve heard many of you ask, ‘Why are we in this war?’”
Nathalie felt her face redden, and shifted uneasily in her seat. O dear! she did wish she had not come. Of course the talk was very interesting, but still she didn’t want to think of this terrible war.
Nathalie felt her face flush and shifted uncomfortably in her seat. Oh dear! She really wished she hadn't come. Although the conversation was very interesting, she still didn't want to think about this awful war.
“I have heard it said,” pursued Mrs. Morrow, “that we are in the war to avenge the sinking of the Lusitania, and that we must not allow the Germans to break the international law by killing our sailors and seamen. I have heard it said, too, that if they conquered 40 the Allies they would come over here and fight us. These are all sufficient reasons in a sense.”
“I’ve heard people say,” continued Mrs. Morrow, “that we’re in the war to take revenge for the sinking of the Lusitania, and that we can’t let the Germans break international law by killing our sailors and seamen. I’ve also heard that if they defeat the Allies, they would come over here and fight us. In a way, these are all valid reasons.”
The lady paused, and then, with grave solemnity, said: “And I have heard it put forth that we are in the war to maintain our national honor and integrity. I think I hear some of you girls say, ‘But we haven’t done any wrong: we have kept neutral; our principles are not involved.’”
The lady paused and then, with serious intensity, said: “I’ve heard it said that we’re in this war to uphold our national honor and integrity. I can almost hear some of you girls saying, ‘But we haven't done anything wrong: we’ve stayed neutral; our principles aren't at stake.’”
Nathalie’s eyes were aglow as she bent forward, and with parted lips anxiously awaited Mrs. Morrow’s reply to this question.
Nathalie's eyes sparkled as she leaned in, and with her lips slightly parted, she eagerly awaited Mrs. Morrow's response to this question.
“Now that we realize the depth and grandeur of the principles given to us by the founders of this nation, and know that every time our flag is unfurled it tells the world that religious and democratic liberty were born on these shores of America, are we going back on these principles? Are we going to allow other nations to say that our principles are just in the flying of our colors, that they stand for nothing but self-praise and the nation’s glorification?
“Now that we understand the depth and greatness of the principles established by the founders of this nation, and know that every time our flag is raised it signals to the world that religious and democratic freedom originated here in America, are we going to abandon these principles? Are we going to let other countries claim that our principles are merely symbolic, representing nothing more than self-promotion and national pride?”
“No,” cried the lady with grave emphasis, “by our love for our flag, by our love for our birth-land, by our reverence for the men who taught us these principles we swear to defend every time we hoist our colors, we must get into this war. We must prove that our flag is in the right place, and that we carry it in our hearts. We must strive to show with our 41 soul’s might that we are living these principles by being true to ourselves and to our nation’s honor, and carry our feelings into action.
“No,” the lady exclaimed with serious conviction, “by our love for our flag, by our love for our homeland, by our respect for the men who taught us these principles, we vow to defend them every time we raise our colors. We must enter this war. We must demonstrate that our flag is in the right place and that we carry it in our hearts. We must strive to show with all our strength that we live these principles by being true to ourselves and to our nation’s honor, and turn our feelings into action.”
“We must forget self, our desire for selfish ease and pleasure. We must align ourselves with the suffering masses of people across the sea, and help them to rid themselves of the iron-shod heel of one-man power. We must stand side by side with the Allies for humanity, democracy, and liberty. We must show the world that the so-called divine right of kings is a worn-out belief of savagery, and prove by the principles back of our flag, prove by the living of these principles, the sacredness of God’s heritage to man, the right of the world’s people to know, as we know, the principles that have made us the freest people in the world.
“We need to let go of our selfish desires for comfort and pleasure. We should stand with the struggling masses around the world and help them break free from oppressive one-man rule. We must join forces with the Allies for the sake of humanity, democracy, and freedom. We have to demonstrate that the so-called divine right of kings is an outdated belief rooted in barbarism, and prove through the principles behind our flag, and by living those principles, the sanctity of humanity’s inheritance from God—the right of all people to know, just as we do, the ideals that have made us the freest people in the world.”
“Each one of you girls must not only do your bit, but must give of your best to your brothers and sisters over the sea. And if the best means the giving-up of those who are so dear to us, we must prove that we are true daughters of liberty, and send them forth cheerfully, to give freedom and liberty to the world.”
“Each one of you girls must not only do your part, but you have to give your best to your brothers and sisters overseas. And if giving your best means letting go of those we hold dear, we must show that we are true daughters of liberty and send them off willingly to bring freedom and liberty to the world.”
There was an impressive silence, and then Mrs. Morrow’s voice broke into song. In another moment the girls had joined their voices with hers, and were loudly sounding forth the old-time tune and the well-beloved words:
There was a striking silence, and then Mrs. Morrow’s voice burst into song. In a moment, the girls had joined in with her, and they were singing the familiar old tune and cherished lyrics loudly:
42
“In the beauty of the lilies Christ was born across the sea,
With a glory in his bosom that transfigures you and me;
As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free,
While God is marching on.
“He has sounded forth the trumpet that shall never call retreat;
He is sifting out the hearts of men before his judgment seat;
Oh, be swift, my soul, to answer Him! be jubilant, my feet;
Our God is marching on!”
42
“In the beauty of the lilies, Christ was born across the sea,
With a glory in his heart that transforms you and me;
As He died to make people holy, let us die to set people free,
While God is moving forward.
“He has sounded the trumpet that will never call for a retreat;
He is revealing the hearts of people before his judgment seat;
Oh, be quick, my soul, to respond to Him! be joyful, my feet;
Our God is moving forward!”
Later in the afternoon, as the girls hurried happily out from the white house on the corner, each one chatting merrily, intent on telling what she had done or intended to do for the war, Nathalie alone was silent, weighed down, as it were, by a strange sense of shame. Yes, she had been blindly selfish, and had failed to realize the momentousness of the great questions of the day. When she had been called upon, to give love and sympathy to her neighbors, the poor suffering masses of people over seas, she had selfishly turned her back to the call—she had failed to show herself a daughter of liberty. Why, she was not a patriot,—no, not even an American; and in the spirit, if not in the letter, she had dishonored Dick, yes, and her father, who had always been so steadfast and true to everything that was American.
Later in the afternoon, as the girls happily rushed out of the white house on the corner, each one chatting away, eager to share what she had done or planned to do for the war, Nathalie stood apart in silence, burdened by an unusual feeling of shame. Yes, she had been blindly selfish and hadn’t recognized the significance of the important issues of the day. When she was called to offer love and support to her neighbors, the suffering people overseas, she had selfishly ignored the call—she had failed to show herself as a true daughter of liberty. She realized she wasn't a patriot—not even an American; and in spirit, if not in action, she had dishonored Dick, and her father, who had always been steadfast and true to everything American.
That night Nathalie could not sleep, but tossed restlessly from side to side, as parts of Mrs. Morrow’s speech kept forcing themselves upon her memory. And just as she had succeeded in driving them away, 43 and also the remorseful thought that she had not given her best, that she had failed to show greatness, the song the girls had sung that afternoon, with the luring, old-time air and the soul-stirring words, flashed with vivid distinctness:
That night, Nathalie couldn’t sleep and kept tossing restlessly from side to side, as bits of Mrs. Morrow’s speech kept coming back to her mind. Just when she managed to push them away, 43 she was hit with the guilty thought that she hadn’t given her all, that she had not shown greatness. The song the girls had sung that afternoon, with its enticing, vintage vibe and heartfelt lyrics, flashed vividly in her mind:
“As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free,
While God is marching on.”
"As He died to make people holy, let us die to make people free,
While God is marching on."
The girl sat up in bed, and in a crooning whisper hummed the whole verse through, repeating again and again,
The girl sat up in bed and softly hummed the whole verse, repeating it over and over.
“As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free.”
“As He died to make people holy, let us die to make people free.”
The beauty as well as the significance of the words had made their appeal. Christ had died to make men holy; she must give of her best to make men free. She must show herself great, but what could she do?
The beauty and importance of the words had made their impact. Christ died to make people holy; she needed to give her best to set people free. She had to show her greatness, but what could she do?
But even as the question came, so flashed the answer, and Nathalie was again softly humming,
But just as the question arose, the answer came quickly, and Nathalie was humming softly again,
“Oh, be swift, my soul, to answer Him! be jubilant, my feet;
Our God is marching on.”
“Oh, be quick, my soul, to respond to Him! be joyful, my feet;
Our God is moving forward.”
And then suddenly a thought stamped itself upon her mind. The girl caught her breath. Yes, she had given Dick up because she had been forced to do so, but now she would make the sacrifice, give the best of herself; she would stop once and forever all useless repining. She would keep herself cheered by the 44 thought that she was glad—she gritted her teeth determinedly—that she had Dick to give to help make people free.
And then suddenly a thought hit her. The girl gasped. Yes, she had let go of Dick because she had to, but now she would make the sacrifice and give the best of herself; she would put an end to all pointless mourning once and for all. She would stay positive with the thought that she was glad—she gritted her teeth with determination—that she had Dick to give to help set people free.
Yes, but she must do something—she must give her best; no, it might not be anything very great or big, but she must show she was a true daughter of liberty. Ah, she knew what she could do, and then Nathalie fell back on her pillow, and although she lay very still, her brain was alert, thinking and planning. Yes, she could get the girls together; she would begin the very next morning. She would have every one in it, for liberty wouldn’t be liberty unless it was free to all. And then one thought and another kept popping into her mind, until finally the tired brain went on a strike and refused to register any more thoughts, and Nathalie, without a word of protest, tumbled into the land o’ dreams.
Yes, but she has to do something—she has to give her best; no, it might not be anything really huge or significant, but she has to prove she was a true daughter of liberty. Ah, she knew what she could do, and then Nathalie fell back on her pillow, and even though she lay very still, her mind was racing, thinking and planning. Yes, she could get the girls together; she would start the very next morning. She would include everyone, because liberty wouldn’t be liberty unless it was free for all. And then one thought after another kept popping into her mind, until finally her tired brain went on strike and refused to process any more thoughts, and Nathalie, without a word of protest, fell into the land of dreams.
The next morning she was up betimes, and was soon singing cheerily at her work, every now and then stopping in the midst of some favored melody, to repeat softly,
The next morning, she was up early and quickly started singing happily while she worked, occasionally pausing in the middle of a favorite song to softly repeat,
“As He died to make men holy, let us die to make men free.”
“As He died to make people holy, let us die to make people free.”
In such a state of cheerfulness time flew swiftly, and soon Nathalie was up in the attic writing a note. Yes, it sounded all right, she decided as she read it over slowly. And then her hand was again flying 45 over the paper, and another note was written, and then another, and still another, until, with a sigh of relief, Nathalie found that she had them all finished. No, she wasn’t going to leave any one out. Quickly gathering up the notes the girl was off, running lightly down the stairs, and then flying swiftly across the lawn to see what Helen would think of the thing she had planned in the stillness of the night.
In such a happy mood, time flew by quickly, and soon Nathalie was up in the attic writing a note. Yes, it sounded good, she decided as she read it over slowly. Then her hand was back in motion, 45 writing another note, then another, and yet another, until, with a sigh of relief, Nathalie realized she had finished them all. No, she wasn’t going to leave anyone out. Quickly gathering the notes, the girl took off, running lightly down the stairs and then dashing across the lawn to see what Helen would think of her plan from the quiet night.
CHAPTER III
THE LIBERTY GIRLS
“Yes, we must prove that we have the true spirit of liberty, the spirit of humanity,” Nathalie spoke very earnestly, “and that is why I have asked Marie Katzkamof to belong to the club. She is the little lame girl, you know who she is; she sits at the news-stand on the corner of Main and West streets, and sells the papers when her father is at business. She is always knitting—sweaters for the soldiers, she says. It makes me feel ashamed when I realize how hard she works to do her ‘little bit.’”
“Yes, we need to show that we have the true spirit of freedom and humanity,” Nathalie said earnestly. “That's why I've invited Marie Katzkamof to join the club. She's the little girl who limps, you know who she is; she sits at the newsstand on the corner of Main and West streets, selling papers when her dad's at work. She's always knitting—sweaters for the soldiers, she says. It makes me feel embarrassed when I see how hard she works to do her ‘little bit.’”
“You are right, Nathalie,” replied Helen thoughtfully, “for you have struck something big in your idea that we are all Americans, and that the club should be free to all. But hurry over, and see what Mrs. Morrow has to say. I believe she’ll think the whole scheme is fine.”
“You're right, Nathalie,” Helen replied thoughtfully, “because you've hit on something important with your idea that we’re all Americans and that the club should be open to everyone. But hurry over and see what Mrs. Morrow has to say. I think she'll love the whole idea.”
But Nathalie was already at the door, her brown eyes sparkling with suppressed excitement, and her cheeks flushed with the soft pink that all the girls admired, and some envied. And then she was making her way across the road to the white house on the corner, still softly humming,
But Nathalie was already at the door, her brown eyes shining with contained excitement, and her cheeks flushed with the soft pink that all the girls admired, and some envied. Then she headed across the street to the white house on the corner, still softly humming,
The Tuesday that Nathalie had designated in her notes to the invited girls had arrived, and the girl, somewhat pale from nervousness, was standing before a small table in the living-room of her home. Facing her were a dozen or more girls, all more or less in an attitude of expectant interest as they sat, some on chairs, others on the couch in the hall, while the Pioneers, as was their wont when chairs were limited, were seated in a circle on the floor.
The Tuesday that Nathalie had marked in her notes for the invited girls had arrived, and she stood, a bit pale from nerves, in front of a small table in her living room. In front of her were a dozen or more girls, all showing varying degrees of eager interest as they sat—some on chairs, others on the couch in the hall—while the Pioneers, as usual when there weren't enough chairs, sat in a circle on the floor.
“Now, girls,” cried Nathalie, determined to plunge ahead and get the thing started before her enthusiasm and nerves collapsed to a frazzle, as she told Helen afterward, “I have asked you all here to-day, to form a club in the interest of liberty. The Girl Pioneers know just how big a thing liberty is, for they had the pleasure of hearing Mrs. Morrow, our Pioneer director, in her little talk on liberty. Oh, Lillie Bell, would you mind repeating what you remember of Mrs. Morrow’s speech?” Nathalie broke off abruptly, turning towards that young lady, one of the most popular of the Pioneer girls. “I know you have a good memory, Lillie,” Nathalie pleaded, “and are such a good elocutionist that you can do it better than any one else I know.”
“Okay, girls,” Nathalie exclaimed, determined to dive in and kick things off before her motivation and nerves fell apart, as she later told Helen, “I invited you all here today to start a club focused on freedom. The Girl Pioneers really understand how important freedom is since they got to hear Mrs. Morrow, our Pioneer director, give her talk about it. Oh, Lillie Bell, would you mind sharing what you remember from Mrs. Morrow’s speech?” Nathalie suddenly stopped, turning to the young woman, one of the most popular Pioneer girls. “I know you have a great memory, Lillie,” Nathalie encouraged, “and you’re such a talented speaker that you can do it better than anyone else I know.”
This calling upon Lillie Bell was a stroke of finesse on the part of Nathalie. For Lillie, when she had 48 learned that the club was to be so democratic that the daughter of her newsdealer, a Russian Jew, had been invited, had loftily declared that although she was a good American, and wanted to do all she could for liberty, well, she didn’t know that she cared to chum with all the Jews in the town.
This visit to Lillie Bell was a clever move by Nathalie. When Lillie found out that the club was going to be so inclusive that even the daughter of her newsdealer, a Russian Jew, was invited, she arrogantly stated that while she considered herself a good American and wanted to support liberty, she didn't really think she wanted to associate with all the Jews in town.
Nathalie had been keenly alive to the desirability of having Lillie a member, because she was not only bright and efficient, but because she was such a good entertainer. This declaration of Lillie’s, however, had caused her spirits to fall below zero, and she began to fear that the whole thing would prove a fizzle. But when so many girls had responded to her invitation, all keyed to expectant curiosity—Lillie among them—her spirits had taken a leap into the nineties. Immediately her alert mind had begun to plan in what way, and how, she could interest Lillie in the club, so that she would take an active part in its doings. And here was her chance.
Nathalie was really excited about having Lillie join the group because not only was she smart and capable, but she was also a fantastic entertainer. However, Lillie’s recent statement had totally dampened her mood, and she started worrying that everything would end up being a disappointment. But when so many girls responded to her invite, all buzzing with anticipation—Lillie included—her excitement shot right back up. Instantly, her sharp mind began to brainstorm how she could engage Lillie in the club's activities, encouraging her to get involved. And now, here was her opportunity.
Lillie Bell, with her usual timely poise, gracefully and smilingly rose to the occasion. In her most luring manner she not only repeated Mrs. Morrow’s speech, but interpreted it with such a stirring American spirit, that not only was Nathalie electrified, but the whole audience were inspired to such a pitch of enthusiasm that they broke into hearty applause.
Lillie Bell, with her usual calm confidence, gracefully and with a smile rose to the occasion. In her most captivating way, she not only repeated Mrs. Morrow’s speech but interpreted it with such a passionate American spirit that Nathalie was not only electrified, but the whole audience was inspired to such a level of enthusiasm that they broke into hearty applause.
As soon as the clamor subsided, Nathalie cried earnestly, “Now that we all know what liberty means, 49 and the possibilities that lie before us, I propose that we form ourselves into a club to be known as ‘The Liberty Girls.’”
As soon as the noise quieted down, Nathalie said earnestly, “Now that we all understand what freedom means, 49 and the opportunities ahead of us, I suggest we create a group called ‘The Liberty Girls.’”
Another outburst of approval brought the speaker to a halt, but only for a moment, and then she went on smilingly, “Well, I am glad that you like the name, for it means something.” Then she briefly told of the seventeen young girls, who, over a hundred and fifty years ago, had formed a club called “The Daughters of Liberty.”
Another round of applause made the speaker pause, but only for a moment, and then she continued with a smile, “Well, I’m glad you like the name because it means something.” Then she briefly recounted the story of the seventeen young girls who, over a hundred and fifty years ago, created a club called “The Daughters of Liberty.”
“They did their bit,” smiled the girl, “by sewing all day on homespun garments to prove that the colonies could be independent of the mother-country, and swore that they would drink no tea until the tax had been removed. They also declared that they would have nothing to do with any of their young gentlemen friends who dared to drink the detested beverage.
“They did their part,” smiled the girl, “by sewing all day on homemade clothes to show that the colonies could be independent from the mother country, and they promised they wouldn’t drink any tea until the tax was lifted. They also said they wouldn’t associate with any of their young gentleman friends who dared to drink that hated beverage.
“But, girls,” said Nathalie rather hurriedly, as she stepped from behind the little table, “if we are to form ourselves into a club, we shall have to have a chairman, for although the idea originated with me, that does not mean that you have got to have me for a leader,” she ended modestly.
“But, girls,” Nathalie said quickly as she stepped out from behind the little table, “if we’re going to form a club, we need to have a chairperson. Just because the idea started with me doesn’t mean you have to pick me as your leader,” she concluded modestly.
“But we don’t want any one but you,” called out some one enthusiastically, which cry was so emphatically echoed by others, that Nathalie stood hopelessly bewildered, a wave of color dyeing her face a rose-pink.
"But we only want you," shouted someone excitedly, and the shout was echoed so emphatically by the others that Nathalie stood there, completely confused, her face turning a rosy pink.
50 But in this crucial moment Helen came to her rescue, and jumping on her feet cried,—even Lillie, Grace, and Edith bobbed up too,—“Girls, I make the motion that we form ourselves into a club to be known as ‘The Liberty Girls,’ and that we elect for president, Miss Nathalie Page. All in favor of this motion stand up!”
50 But at this important moment, Helen jumped in to help, and as she got to her feet, she exclaimed—Lillie, Grace, and Edith quickly joined her—“Girls, I propose we form a club called ‘The Liberty Girls’ and elect Miss Nathalie Page as our president. Everyone in favor, please stand up!”
There was a quick, simultaneous movement of many feet, and then, as Helen sensed that Nathalie had been duly elected leader by her mates, she called out, “Well, Nathalie, you will have to be president, for every one wants you.”
There was a quick, simultaneous movement of many feet, and then, as Helen realized that Nathalie had been chosen as the leader by her friends, she called out, “Well, Nathalie, you’ll have to be president, because everyone wants you.”
“Yes, and we won’t have any one else,” added Edith quickly, with a sudden clap of her hands. This was the signal for the girls to start up a loud clapping in approval of the newly elected president, whose rose-pink cheeks had deepened to scarlet as she stood bowing, somewhat confusedly, to them.
“Yeah, and we won’t have anyone else,” Edith quickly added, clapping her hands suddenly. This was the signal for the girls to start clapping loudly in approval of the newly elected president, whose rose-pink cheeks had turned scarlet as she stood bowing, a bit confused, to them.
Whereupon Lillie Bell gracefully came to the fore, and dramatically seizing the hand of the young girl while leading her back to her seat, in an impressive manner cried, “Allow me, Miss Nathalie Page, to lead you to the seat of honor, as the president of the club, ‘The Liberty Girls.’”
Whereupon Lillie Bell stepped forward gracefully, dramatically grabbing the hand of the young girl and leading her back to her seat. In a striking manner, she said, “Let me, Miss Nathalie Page, guide you to the seat of honor as the president of the club, ‘The Liberty Girls.’”
Nathalie bowed and laughed with embarrassment, but she determined to carry off the honors bestowed upon her with a good grace, and as soon as the somewhat 51 noisy demonstrations of pleasure from the girls had ended, she said modestly, “Girls, I thank you for wanting me to be your leader, and only hope I will make a good one.”
Nathalie bowed and laughed shyly, but she was determined to accept the honors given to her with grace. As soon as the somewhat noisy cheers from the girls quieted down, she said modestly, “Girls, thank you for choosing me to be your leader. I just hope I can do a good job.”
There was more plaudits, and then Nathalie, with grave seriousness, said: “Girls, now that we have pledged ourselves not only as a club, but as individuals, to further the cause of liberty, I would suggest that our watchword be, ‘Liberty and humanity—our best.’ Humanity means to be helpful and kind to our neighbors, our best means to work with a strenuous will to do everything we can to that end. Our neighbors at the present moment loom very large and big as the needy and suffering ones overseas, as the sick, the wounded, the dying, the prisoners, the refugees, and all those who are fighting on land and sea: yes, and those in the air, and all those who are helping to care for the ones I have mentioned, as the doctors and nurses, for they, too, all need help. If we can’t fight, we have got to help those who are fighting in our stead. Yes,” she added solemnly, “and we must be prepared even to have the desire to do what we can for our enemies, for as liberty makes no discrimination as to who shall enjoy it, so in the doing of humane acts we should remember all.”
There were more praises, and then Nathalie, with serious intent, said: “Girls, now that we’ve committed ourselves not just as a club but as individuals to promote the cause of freedom, I’d suggest that our motto be, ‘Freedom and humanity—our best.’ Humanity means being helpful and kind to our neighbors; our best means working with a strong will to do everything we can toward that goal. Right now, our neighbors include those in great need and suffering overseas, the sick, the wounded, the dying, the prisoners, the refugees, and all those who are fighting on land and sea; yes, and those in the air, along with everyone caring for these individuals, like doctors and nurses, because they also need support. If we can’t fight, we have to help those who are fighting in our place. Yes,” she added solemnly, “and we must be willing to help even our enemies, because just as freedom doesn’t discriminate who gets to enjoy it, we should remember to perform humane acts for everyone.”
As Nathalie, highly elated by the enthusiasm shown by her audience, stood waiting for quietness, suddenly 52 her eyes rested on little lame Marie Katzkamof, whose big black eyes shone like two stars from her pale, sallow face. Nathalie had another inspiration.
As Nathalie, feeling thrilled by the excitement of her audience, paused for silence, suddenly 52 her gaze fell on little lame Marie Katzkamof, whose large black eyes sparkled like two stars against her pale, sickly face. Nathalie was struck by another inspiration.
She bent forward and in a low, earnest voice cried, “Do you think, little Marie, that you would enjoy being a member of this club? Wouldn’t you like to do something—yes, your best—to help the poor refugees in France and Belgium, and the brave soldier boys who are fighting, so that the whole world can enjoy liberty?”
She leaned forward and, in a quiet, sincere voice, asked, “Do you think, little Marie, that you would like to be part of this club? Wouldn’t you want to do something—yes, your best—to help the poor refugees in France and Belgium, and the brave soldiers who are fighting for the whole world to enjoy freedom?”
“Yiss, ma’am; I have a glad on liberty,” the girl giggled nervously, “but it’s like this mit me, I likes I shure I don’t make you no trouble.”
“Yeah, ma’am; I’m happy to be free,” the girl giggled nervously, “but it’s like this with me, I like to make sure I’m not causing you any trouble.”
“But it won’t be any trouble to us, Marie,” answered Nathalie with a smile. “We will all help you; humanity means to help others.”
“But it won’t be any trouble for us, Marie,” Nathalie replied with a smile. “We’ll all help you; being human means helping others.”
“But, Missis Page,” the girl’s face was scarlet, her big eyes mournful. “It’s like this mit me, I ain’t stylish like these young ladies; I make nottings mit them, for I ain’t shmardt, hein? Und this leg it ain’t yet so healthy. Und, Missis Page, I’m lovin’ mit liberty, but I ain’t lovin’ much mit Krisht, for I’m a Jewess.”
“But, Mrs. Page,” the girl’s face was bright red, her big eyes sad. “It’s like this for me, I’m not stylish like these young ladies; I don’t fit in with them because I’m not smart, right? And this leg isn’t quite healthy yet. And, Mrs. Page, I love my freedom, but I don’t love much about Christmas, because I’m a Jewish girl.”
Nathalie faltered a moment, for she had seen a smile creep into the eyes of the girls, which she knew would become a laugh if she did not say the right thing. “Yes, you may not love Christ, as we Christians,” she answered quickly, “but if you love the liberty, perhaps 53 you may learn to know what it means to love Him. And then, Marie, that will make no difference, for as long as you want to help the suffering ones, and show humanity, that makes you an American, no matter who, or what you are.”
Nathalie hesitated for a moment because she noticed a smile spreading in the girls' eyes, and she knew it would turn into laughter if she didn’t say the right thing. “Yes, you might not love Christ like we Christians do,” she responded quickly, “but if you love freedom, then maybe you can learn what it means to love Him. And then, Marie, it won’t matter, because as long as you want to help those who are suffering and show compassion, that makes you an American, no matter who you are or what you believe.”
“Thank you, Missis Page,” the girl’s face had lighted with repressed joy, “sure I’m an American. I can’t do nottings mit the fight, like the soldiers, but you bet yer life I can knit for them, hein?” And the little daughter of Israel held up a strip of wool with its two shiny needles. “Shure und my hands are straight,” she continued pathetically, “even if my legs ain’t healthy.”
“Thank you, Mrs. Page,” the girl's face lit up with suppressed joy, “of course I’m an American. I can’t do anything in the fight, like the soldiers, but you bet your life I can knit for them, right?” And the little daughter of Israel held up a strip of wool with its two shiny needles. “And my hands are fine,” she continued sadly, “even if my legs aren’t healthy.”
Nathalie’s eyes blurred, but she answered smilingly, “Why, that will be lovely, Marie.” Then, turning towards the girls, she cried, “Every one in favor of appointing Marie Katzkamof captain of the Knitting Squad, please hold up her hand.” And every hand went up. “And we’ll call you Captain Molly,” went on Nathalie, “in memory of that brave young woman, Molly Pitcher, who, when her husband fell dead at the battle of Monmouth, during the Revolution, took his place,—she was carrying water to the soldiers,—seized the rammer of his gun, and fired it. And she kept on firing it,” cried Nathalie with glowing eyes, “with the shot and shell flying all about her, until the battle was over. And with that name and the bravery of that Molly—for I know you are brave, Marie—I 54 know you will do your best for liberty, and for the soldiers who are on the firing-line, doing their best, as the Sons of Liberty, for the right of every man in the world.”
Nathalie’s vision became blurry, but she smiled as she replied, “That sounds wonderful, Marie.” Then, turning to the girls, she exclaimed, “Everyone in favor of appointing Marie Katzkam as captain of the Knitting Squad, please raise your hand.” Every hand shot up. “And we’ll nickname you Captain Molly,” Nathalie continued, “in honor of that brave woman, Molly Pitcher, who, when her husband fell at the battle of Monmouth during the Revolution, stepped in for him—she was bringing water to the soldiers—grabbed the rammer of his gun, and fired it. And she kept firing,” Nathalie said with shining eyes, “with the shots and shells flying all around her, until the battle ended. And with that name and the courage of that Molly—for I know you’re brave, Marie—I 54 know you’ll do your best for liberty and for the soldiers on the front lines, doing their part, like the Sons of Liberty, for the rights of every person in the world.”
After Lillie Bell had been duly elected vice-president of the club, and several other club matters had been disposed of, Nathalie proposed, as an inspiration to the girls, that they form a circle in the center of the room, and stand with clasped hands, to show the interdependence of one upon the other. “Then in turn,” she explained, “let each girl tell of some woman, or girl, who, by her bravery in doing what she could for some one else, or for the world, has given of her best to mankind, and shown that she was a true lover of humanity, and a daughter of liberty.”
After Lillie Bell was officially elected vice-president of the club and a few other club matters were settled, Nathalie suggested, as a motivation for the girls, that they form a circle in the middle of the room and stand with their hands clasped to symbolize how they rely on each other. “Then, one by one,” she explained, “let each girl share a story about a woman or girl who, through her courage in doing what she could for someone else or for the world, has given her best to humanity and demonstrated that she truly loves humanity and embodies the spirit of freedom.”
The girls, quickly grasping Nathalie’s idea, were soon standing in a circle, hurriedly trying to concentrate their minds on some one woman who had given of her greatness to mankind.
The girls, quickly understanding Nathalie’s idea, were soon standing in a circle, trying to focus their minds on a single woman who had contributed her greatness to humanity.
“Can we tell about the Pioneer women?” asked a Girl Pioneer timidly.
“Can we talk about the Pioneer women?” asked a Girl Pioneer shyly.
“Yes, indeed,” answered the young president, “and we ought to hear about them first, too, for they were the ones who really taught us what it means to love liberty. Although they were not the first women who did great things for their fellow-beings, they were the ones who made clear to us that real liberty means humanity, justice, and democracy for all.”
“Yes, absolutely,” replied the young president, “and we should listen to them first, too, because they were the ones who truly showed us what it means to love freedom. While they weren't the first women to do great things for others, they were the ones who made it clear that true freedom means humanity, justice, and democracy for everyone.”
55 Helen now started the liberty chain by clasping the hand of her neighbor on each side of her and telling of the women of the Mayflower, who, by their acts of sacrifice, and stern determination to worship God as they thought right, gave us religious freedom.
55 Helen began the chain of freedom by holding the hands of her neighbors on either side and sharing the story of the women of the Mayflower, who, through their sacrifices and strong commitment to worship God in their own way, secured our religious freedom.
Nita told of the coming of the ship, the Arbella, to Gloucester with John Winthrop, the governor of Massachusetts Bay Colony, and the two noted Puritan brides, the Lady Arbella and Anne Bradstreet, the latter our first American poetess. And gave testimony of their devotion to Puritanism, and their desire to benefit mankind.
Nita talked about the arrival of the ship, the Arbella, in Gloucester with John Winthrop, the governor of Massachusetts Bay Colony, and the two famous Puritan brides, Lady Arbella and Anne Bradstreet, who is known as our first American poet. She shared their commitment to Puritanism and their wish to help humanity.
One Pioneer told of America’s first club-woman, Anne Hutchinson, portraying her trial and banishment from Boston, in her efforts to benefit mankind by teaching them freedom of thought. Another told of Mary Dyer, the noted Quakeress, and how she was hanged from an old elm on Boston Common because she believed in freedom of religion.
One pioneer talked about America's first clubwoman, Anne Hutchinson, describing her trial and exile from Boston for trying to help others by promoting freedom of thought. Another shared the story of Mary Dyer, the famous Quaker woman, and how she was hanged from an old elm tree on Boston Common because she believed in religious freedom.
Margaret, the wife of John Winthrop, the governor, and Susannah, the mother of John Wesley, both beloved for their sweet piety and charity, were cited as examples of having given of their best in being the ideal wife and mother. Lillie Bell told of Florence Nightingale, the young English woman who gave up a life of luxury to help the soldiers during the Crimean War in 1854. She became known as “The Lady of the Lamp,” from a statue of her as she stands with a 56 nurse’s lamp in her hand, erected in a church in London.
Margaret, the wife of John Winthrop, the governor, and Susannah, the mother of John Wesley, were both cherished for their kindness and generosity. They were highlighted as examples of what it means to be an ideal wife and mother. Lillie Bell shared the story of Florence Nightingale, the young English woman who abandoned a life of luxury to assist soldiers during the Crimean War in 1854. She became known as "The Lady of the Lamp," inspired by a statue of her holding a nurse's lamp, which was set up in a church in London.
A Girl Scout told of Dorothy Dix, that wonderful woman who made it her life-work to visit prisons and insane asylums, in order to institute reforms for the care and comfort of the inmates. She also did much for the relief of wounded soldiers during the American Civil War.
A Girl Scout talked about Dorothy Dix, that amazing woman who dedicated her life to visiting prisons and mental hospitals to advocate for reforms that improved the care and comfort of the inmates. She also helped a lot with the relief of injured soldiers during the American Civil War.
Jenny Lind, the great Swedish singer, was cited as having given to humanity when she gave her time and voice to raise thousands of dollars for the benefit of broken-down musicians and writers. Mrs. Harriet Beecher Stowe gave of her best, Edith declared, when she wrote her book, “Uncle Tom’s Cabin,” and showed the world the evils of slavery; as also Mrs. Julia Ward Howe when she wrote that wonderful patriotic song, “The Battle Hymn of the Republic.”
Jenny Lind, the amazing Swedish singer, was recognized for what she contributed to humanity by dedicating her time and voice to raise thousands of dollars for struggling musicians and writers. Mrs. Harriet Beecher Stowe gave her best, Edith said, when she wrote her book, “Uncle Tom’s Cabin,” which revealed the horrors of slavery; and so did Mrs. Julia Ward Howe when she created that inspiring patriotic song, “The Battle Hymn of the Republic.”
The two noted women astronomers, Caroline Herschel and Maria Mitchell, when they studied the heavens in the interest of science, gave of their best. Also Charlotte Cushman, the great actress, who raised large sums of money by her acting, and gave it to the Sanitary Fund, during the Civil War, was quoted as a lover of humanity.
The two accomplished women astronomers, Caroline Herschel and Maria Mitchell, dedicated their best efforts to studying the heavens for the sake of science. Meanwhile, Charlotte Cushman, the renowned actress, raised significant funds through her performances and donated it to the Sanitary Fund during the Civil War, earning her a reputation as a humanitarian.
The Baroness Burdett-Coutts and Miss Helen Gould, two of the world’s noted philanthropists, as well as Miss Louisa Alcott, in her writings for the youth of America, and other women writers were 57 added to the growing list of Liberty Daughters. Dolly Madison, the beautiful First Lady of the Land, showed herself a true American during the War of 1812. When the British burned Washington she refused to leave the White House until the portrait of Washington was carried to a place of safety, while she herself took the Declaration of Independence, with its autographs of the signers, away with her, so that it would not be lost to America.
The Baroness Burdett-Coutts and Miss Helen Gould, two of the world's prominent philanthropists, along with Miss Louisa Alcott in her writings for America's youth, and other women writers were 57 added to the growing list of Liberty Daughters. Dolly Madison, the charming First Lady, proved to be a true American during the War of 1812. When the British burned Washington, she refused to leave the White House until Washington's portrait was moved to safety, while she took the Declaration of Independence, with the signatures of the signers, with her to ensure it wouldn't be lost to America.
Even Marie, alias Captain Molly, caught the inspiration of the Liberty Chain, and told of a young Russian girl, who, rather than betray the secrets of a great man, from a paper that had fallen into her hands, allowed herself to be exiled to Siberia. Then came the war stories, as that of the noted Quakeress, Lydia Darrach, who, during the Revolution, on learning the secrets of the British officers who were quartered at her house, endured untold hardship in traveling many miles in the dead of winter to reveal them to the American patrol, so as to save the Continental Army from disaster.
Even Marie, known as Captain Molly, was inspired by the Liberty Chain and shared the story of a young Russian girl who, instead of betraying the secrets of a great man from a paper that fell into her hands, chose to be exiled to Siberia. Then came the war stories, like that of the famous Quakeress, Lydia Darrach, who during the Revolution, upon learning the secrets of the British officers staying at her house, faced incredible hardships traveling many miles in the dead of winter to share them with the American patrol, all to save the Continental Army from disaster.
Hannah Weston, who filled a pillow-case with pewter-ware when she heard that a certain town was in need of ammunition, and carried it many miles through the woods at night, was cited for her bravery and her sacrifice, in her effort to help others. The story of Betty Zane and how she ran from the palisade of a Western fort to her brother’s hut for a keg of powder 58 in the fire of a tribe of Indians, although a familiar one, was listened to with glowing interest.
Hannah Weston, who filled a pillowcase with pewter when she heard that a town needed ammunition, carried it many miles through the woods at night. She was recognized for her bravery and sacrifice in helping others. The story of Betty Zane, who ran from the fort to her brother’s hut for a keg of powder during an attack by a tribe of Indians, although well-known, was listened to with great interest. 58
Ruth Wyllis, who hid the charter of Connecticut in an oak tree, and Katy Brownell, the color-bearer at the battle of Bull Run, who stood by the flag in the face of the advancing foe, and who would have been shot to death if a soldier had not pulled her away, were but two recitals of brave deeds for the sake of humanity.
Ruth Wyllis, who concealed the charter of Connecticut in an oak tree, and Katy Brownell, the flag bearer at the battle of Bull Run, who stood by the flag in front of the approaching enemy and would have been killed if a soldier hadn't pulled her away, were just two examples of courageous acts for the sake of humanity.
But at last the liberty chain came to an end by Nathalie telling of Saint Margaret, a plain, uneducated Irish woman, who, after losing her husband and child, devoted her life and every penny she made to the cause of orphan children. A statue, she said, had been erected in New Orleans to this noble woman, who gave of her best to humanity when she devoted her life to these little waifs.
But finally, the conversation shifted when Nathalie spoke about Saint Margaret, a simple, uneducated Irish woman who, after losing her husband and child, dedicated her life and every penny she had to helping orphaned children. She mentioned that a statue had been put up in New Orleans to honor this noble woman, who selflessly gave her all to humanity by dedicating her life to these vulnerable kids.
After the girls had returned to their seats, Nathalie appointed seven squads. She had made it seven, she said, not only because it was a lucky number, but because there were just seven letters in the name, Liberty. Helen was made the captain of the Florence Nightingale Squad, since she had gained many honors, as a Girl Pioneer, as an expert maker of bandages.
After the girls had gone back to their seats, Nathalie formed seven teams. She chose seven, she explained, not just because it was a lucky number, but also because there were exactly seven letters in the word, Liberty. Helen was named the captain of the Florence Nightingale Squad, as she had achieved many honors as a Girl Pioneer and was skilled at making bandages.
Nita, with a Girl Scout as a running mate, was made captain of the Scrap-Book Squad, which meant the making of scrap-books for the convalescing soldiers in the hospitals. Lillie Bell and a Camp Fire Girl were placed at the head of the Garments Squad for the cutting 59 and sewing of garments for the refugee children of France and Belgium. Two Girl Scouts were made captains of the Flower Squad, with the purpose of raising and selling flowers for the Liberty Loan fund.
Nita, alongside a Girl Scout as her partner, was named captain of the Scrap-Book Squad, which involved creating scrapbooks for recovering soldiers in the hospitals. Lillie Bell and a Camp Fire Girl were in charge of the Garments Squad, responsible for cutting and sewing clothes for refugee children in France and Belgium. Two Girl Scouts were appointed captains of the Flower Squad, aimed at growing and selling flowers to support the Liberty Loan fund.
Jessie Ford had charge of the comfort-kits for the soldier-boys, while Barbara Worth, who was an expert knitter, was appointed to work with Captain Molly, the Russian Jewess. Nathalie was unanimously chosen as the captain of the Liberty Garden, with Edith Whiton and several other Girl Pioneers. They were not only to raise vegetables and fruits in their garden-to-be, but they were to do canning as well.
Jessie Ford was responsible for the comfort kits for the soldiers, while Barbara Worth, who was a skilled knitter, was assigned to work with Captain Molly, the Russian Jewess. Nathalie was unanimously selected as the captain of the Liberty Garden, along with Edith Whiton and several other Girl Pioneers. They were not only going to grow vegetables and fruits in their future garden, but they were also going to do canning.
After some discussion it was decided that the club members wear a uniform consisting of a white shirtwaist, with the letters L. G. in red on the arm, on the corners of their white sailor-collars, and on the hatbands of their white sailor-hats, and to wear white or khaki skirts.
After some discussion, it was decided that the club members would wear a uniform made up of a white shirtwaist, featuring the letters L. G. in red on the arm, on the corners of their white sailor collars, and on the hatbands of their white sailor hats, along with white or khaki skirts.
Nathalie had just appointed a committee to scour the town for a parcel of ground to use as a flower and Liberty garden, when a sudden noise was heard. The girl looked quickly up, to see Mrs. Morrow standing in the doorway leading from the dining-room, with her arms filled with flowers. In her hand was a large bell, which she was jingling softly, while her blue eyes smiled down upon the girls with radiant good-will.
Nathalie had just set up a committee to search the town for a piece of land to use as a flower and Liberty garden when a sudden noise caught her attention. The girl looked up quickly to see Mrs. Morrow standing in the doorway from the dining room, her arms full of flowers. She was holding a large bell, which she jingled softly, and her blue eyes sparkled with warm kindness as she smiled down at the girls.
CHAPTER IV
THE LIBERTY GARDEN
Nathalie stared in amazement, and then, recovering her usual poise, she cried, “Oh, Mrs. Morrow, please come right in, for I want you to meet my Liberty Girls.” As the girl spoke she advanced towards her unexpected guest, who was coming slowly forward, as if not assured of her welcome. But the cordiality expressed in the tones of Nathalie’s voice and the fact that the girls had all risen on their feet,—her own girls at attention in the Pioneer salute,—with their faces aglow with pleasure, quickly assured her that her welcome was a hearty one.
Nathalie stared in disbelief, and then, regaining her usual composure, she exclaimed, “Oh, Mrs. Morrow, please come in right away, because I want you to meet my Liberty Girls.” As she spoke, she moved towards her unexpected guest, who was approaching slowly, unsure of her reception. However, the warmth in Nathalie’s voice and the sight of the girls all standing at attention in the Pioneer salute, their faces shining with excitement, quickly reassured her that she was genuinely welcome.
With a sudden movement she turned to Nathalie and asked, “May I have the floor a moment, Miss President?” As the girl assented, although somewhat mystified, Mrs. Morrow took her place behind the small table, and with a quick nod of greeting to the faces upturned to hers, cried: “Girls, I am greatly pleased to see you here to-day, and to know that our Pioneer Blue Robin’s little plan to make you all work with a keener zest for liberty, has succeeded so well. I also want to assure you of my hearty cooperation, 61 and my wish that all of you, those who are Pioneers, and those who belong to other clubs, will be inspired to better work in your own organizations by the fact that you have banded together to stand unitedly as Daughters of Liberty, in order to show that you are all loyal Americans. In proof of my good wishes I am going to present the club with a bell. It is needless to say that it is not the Liberty Bell, but a facsimile in miniature.
With a quick motion, she turned to Nathalie and asked, “Can I speak for a moment, Miss President?” The girl agreed, though a bit confused, and Mrs. Morrow took her place behind the small table. After giving a quick nod to the faces looking up at her, she exclaimed: “Girls, I’m really happy to see you all here today and to know that our Pioneer Blue Robin’s little plan to motivate you all to work harder for liberty has been so successful. I also want to assure you of my full support, 61 and my hope that each of you, whether you’re Pioneers or part of other clubs, will feel inspired to do better in your own organizations because you’ve come together to stand united as Daughters of Liberty, showing that you are all loyal Americans. To show my good wishes, I'm going to present the club with a bell. I should mention that it’s not the Liberty Bell, but a miniature version of it.”
“Wait, I have not finished,” laughingly protested the lady as she held up her hand,—for some of the girls had started to clap. “I want you to know before your president rings it,—it is to be rung to call you together in the sacred cause of liberty,—that way up in the top has been inserted a very tiny chip from the real Liberty Bell,—the bell that was rung over a hundred years ago to announce that the thirteen colonies had become the United States of America. I hope, girls, that when you hear this bell ring you will feel the same inspiration to do your best as animated the patriots in the war of 1776.”
“Wait, I’m not done yet,” the lady said with a laugh as she raised her hand, since some of the girls had already started clapping. “I want you to know before your president rings it—that it’s meant to bring you together in the noble cause of freedom—that a tiny piece from the original Liberty Bell has been placed at the top. That bell was rung over a hundred years ago to declare that the thirteen colonies had become the United States of America. I hope, girls, that when you hear this bell ring, it inspires you to do your best just like the patriots did in the war of 1776.”
As Mrs. Morrow paused, the long-delayed clapping burst forth with such vigor that she and Nathalie—she had drawn the girl to her and was pressing the bell into her hand—had to smile and bow again and again. But the clapping only halted for a space, for when Nathalie saw that quietness reigned, she rang the liberty bell so loudly and determinedly, while a mischievous 62 twinkle glowed in her eyes, that it broke forth again.
As Mrs. Morrow paused, the long-awaited applause erupted with such enthusiasm that she and Nathalie—who she had pulled close and was placing the bell into her hand—had to smile and bow repeatedly. But the applause only paused briefly, because when Nathalie noticed that it was quiet again, she rang the liberty bell so loudly and confidently, with a playful sparkle in her eyes, that the clapping started up once more.
As soon as the demonstration was over and the bell-ringing had subsided, Mrs. Morrow’s voice was heard again: “Now, Liberty Girls, I am going to ask your president to take a vote to get your opinion as to who you think told the best story about great women in your liberty chain.
As soon as the demonstration ended and the bell ringing stopped, Mrs. Morrow’s voice was heard again: “Now, Liberty Girls, I’m going to ask your president to take a vote to get your opinion on who you think told the best story about great women in your liberty chain.
“Perhaps you do not know,” the gray-blue eyes deepened, “but I was in the dining-room, although not purposely an eavesdropper, and had the pleasure of hearing the stories told. I have formed an opinion as to the best story-teller, but would like to know if your opinion coincides with mine.”
“Maybe you don’t know,” the gray-blue eyes intensified, “but I was in the dining room, not intentionally eavesdropping, and I enjoyed hearing the stories being told. I have my own thoughts on who the best storyteller is, but I’d like to know if you agree with me.”
But alas, there were so many different opinions as to the best story, and as to who was the best narrator, that to even matters Mrs. Morrow had to take her big bouquet of flowers and divide it into three or four nosegays. But a smile of satisfaction gleamed in the eyes of many when Marie, the little Jewess, received a bouquet and a few words of commendation from the giver. The little captain’s delight was so genuine, and her eyes beamed so joyously, that every one rejoiced with her.
But unfortunately, there were so many different opinions about which story was the best and who the best narrator was, that Mrs. Morrow had to take her big bouquet of flowers and split it into three or four smaller arrangements. However, many smiled with satisfaction when Marie, the little Jewish girl, received a bouquet and some kind words from the giver. The little captain’s joy was so genuine, and her eyes sparkled so brightly, that everyone shared in her happiness.
After the flowers were distributed, and the girls had sung a few patriotic songs, they filed out into the sunshine, happily aglow with the joy of the meeting and the inspiration it had brought to them.
After the flowers were handed out and the girls had sung a few patriotic songs, they stepped out into the sunshine, happily glowing with the joy of the gathering and the inspiration it had given them.
63 Several weeks later we find Nathalie coming slowly down the garden-walk with its old-time hedge, from the big gray house. The tall pines—now good old friends—that bordered the path bowed their tops in a cheery good-morning, as she walked beneath their shade.
63 A few weeks later, we see Nathalie slowly strolling down the garden path lined with its old-fashioned hedge, leaving the big gray house behind. The tall pines—now familiar companions—along the path swayed their tops in a cheerful greeting as she walked beneath their shade.
She had just given her usual morning lesson of two hours to her young friend, for Nathalie, on her return from Camp Laff-a-Lot last summer, had found that her studies with Nita were to be continued. Yes, and she had banked every penny that she could spare from her weekly salary of ten dollars. It had seemed such a big sum at first, but alas, now that her mother’s income had slowly dwindled, and she had been compelled to use it for her own personal needs, and to lay part of it aside every week to repay Mrs. Van Vorst the loan for Dick’s operation, it seemed a mere pittance.
She had just finished her usual two-hour morning lesson with her young friend. Nathalie, after coming back from Camp Laff-a-Lot last summer, learned that her studies with Nita would continue. Yes, and she had saved every penny she could from her weekly salary of ten dollars. It had seemed like a lot at first, but unfortunately, now that her mother’s income had gradually decreased, she had to use it for her own needs and set aside part of it each week to pay back Mrs. Van Vorst for the loan for Dick’s operation. It felt like just a small amount now.
But to-day she felt unusually joyful, for the last penny of that haunting debt had been paid, and she was now free to call her money her own. If there had been many disappointments in life—the going to college was still a luring hope—and self-denials, added to the unpleasantness of doing housework since their coming to Westport, there had been several compensations that had cast their rosy shadows across the darkness.
But today she felt unusually happy, since she had finally paid off that lingering debt, and she was now free to consider her money her own. If there had been many disappointments in life—the hope of attending college still lingered—and sacrifices, combined with the challenges of housework since moving to Westport, there had also been a few positives that had brightened the darkness.
One was the joy and the profit she had gained from 64 being a Pioneer, and the other was the great pleasure that had come to her in the knowledge that she had a purpose in life. Yes, she had told Helen many times, “I think it is one of the delights of life to be legitimately busy, and to know that you are really doing something that is a help to yourself or some one else.” And now, added to these compensating joys had come the thrills and joys from the new organization, the Liberty Girls, for that little patriotic club now numbered almost a hundred. And it had thrived so well, and Nathalie had gained so many honors from being its founder, that sometimes she feared that she, too, would become a bird of the air, like Dick, only in a different way, from sheer conceit.
One was the joy and the benefit she had gained from 64 being a Pioneer, and the other was the great pleasure that came from knowing she had a purpose in life. Yes, she had told Helen many times, “I think it’s one of life’s delights to be genuinely busy and to know that you’re actually doing something that helps yourself or someone else.” And now, on top of these rewarding joys, she had experienced the excitement and happiness from the new organization, the Liberty Girls, which had grown to nearly a hundred members. It had thrived so well, and Nathalie had received so many accolades for being its founder, that sometimes she worried she, too, would become like a bird in the air, like Dick, but in a different way, out of sheer pride.
But if she had been overmuch praised, and had found it a pleasant diversion to plan and dream over the club’s future successes, she had also found hard work and great discouragement. Discouragement, too, over such small things, when the girl came to face them in the coolness of after-thought, that she had felt like throwing the whole thing up, or else just letting things drift, and taking what pleasure she could, without so much conscientious worry over doing her best.
But while she had received a lot of praise and enjoyed daydreaming about the club’s future successes, she also experienced tough work and significant discouragement. She felt discouraged even over minor things, and when she reflected on them later in a calm moment, she had considered giving up entirely or just letting things slide and enjoying whatever fun she could have, without stressing so much about doing her best.
But through all the storm and stress Helen had buoyed her with the frequent, sensible remark, that if it had taken the world thousands of years to comprehend the true meaning of democracy and liberty, she 65 must expect her girls would be slow in realizing many things. But it was tiresome to hold the reins of government, and yet sometimes be unable to stop their silly chatter, or useless argument over mere trifles, all the while holding back the legitimate work by their dallying.
But through all the ups and downs, Helen kept reminding herself that if it took the world thousands of years to truly understand democracy and freedom, she had to expect her girls would take a while to grasp many things. But it was exhausting to manage everything and yet sometimes be unable to quiet their pointless chatter or useless arguments over trivial matters, all while legitimate work was being delayed by their distractions.
Yes, and it had been an awful strain to manage that Liberty Garden. Of course the Pioneers were all good workers, and she had given each one some one thing to study over, but still she had had to know about these things herself, so as to be sure they would do the right thing.
Yes, it had been really tough to manage that Liberty Garden. The Pioneers were all hardworking, and she had assigned each of them a specific task to focus on, but she still needed to understand these things herself to make sure they did the right thing.
But it was something worth while, she reflected sagely, to know that there are three kinds of soil, how to test it with litmus paper to see if it was sour or not, and, if it was, how to neutralize it, or sweeten its acidity. Then she had had to know what kind of chemicals acted as food to the soil, so as to know what each plant or vegetable required to enrich it and to sustain life. She had also learned how to draw moisture from the land and how to fertilize it.
But she realized wisely that it was valuable to understand that there are three types of soil, how to test it with litmus paper to check if it was acidic or not, and if it was, how to neutralize it or reduce its acidity. She also needed to know which chemicals acted as nutrients for the soil, so she could determine what each plant or vegetable needed to nourish it and support life. She had also learned how to extract moisture from the land and how to fertilize it.
By placing seeds on wet blotting-paper in saucers she had demonstrated how long it would take them to germinate, so as to be able to to write her germinating-table for the girls. How old seeds should be before planting, how deep to plant each kind, the method of planting, and how many seeds to plant, and the distance apart, had all seemed tiresome and trivial things 66 to many, but it was necessary knowledge to a would-be farmer.
By putting seeds on damp blotting paper in saucers, she had shown how long it would take them to sprout, allowing her to create her germination table for the girls. The right age of seeds before planting, how deep to plant each variety, the planting method, how many seeds to plant, and how far apart they should be had all seemed boring and trivial to many, but it was essential knowledge for an aspiring farmer. 66
Ah, she had reached the bank. She was going to get that ten dollars deposited before it melted away. Suddenly her eyes became pools of brightness, and the dimples twinkled in the red glow of her cheeks, for there, right in front of her, stood Mrs. Morrow, with a kiddie boy, as the girl called the twins, on each side of her. There was such genuine pleasure in the lady’s smiling blue eyes, that Nathalie impulsively cried, “Oh, Mrs. Morrow, this is just lovely! I’m so glad to see you! When did you get back?” for her good friend had been away for several weeks.
Ah, she had arrived at the bank. She was determined to get that ten dollars deposited before it disappeared. Suddenly, her eyes lit up, and her dimples sparkled in the rosy glow of her cheeks because, right in front of her, stood Mrs. Morrow, with a kid on each side of her, as the girl referred to the twins. There was such genuine joy in the lady’s smiling blue eyes that Nathalie excitedly exclaimed, “Oh, Mrs. Morrow, this is wonderful! I’m so happy to see you! When did you get back?” since her good friend had been away for several weeks.
“Last night, Nathalie, and I am so pleased to meet you,” was the cordial greeting, “for I have heard so many reports about the Liberty Girls’ club that I am anxious to hear all about it from you.”
“Last night, Nathalie, I’m really glad to meet you,” was the warm greeting, “because I’ve heard so many things about the Liberty Girls’ club that I can’t wait to hear all about it from you.”
“Oh, it is just the dandiest thing, Mrs. Morrow,” cried the girl jubilantly. And then, lured by the kindly interest in her friend’s eyes, her tongue unloosened, and she was soon busy telling about the club’s many experiences, and the good that had come from the industry of its members.
“Oh, it's just the best thing ever, Mrs. Morrow,” the girl exclaimed joyfully. And then, drawn in by the warm interest in her friend’s eyes, she started to talk freely, soon sharing stories about the club’s many experiences and the positive outcomes from the hard work of its members.
“And Helen is a dear,” Nathalie rattled on, “for she has taught her girls the most wonderful things, and now they have all enrolled as Red Cross members. She had been reading to them from Florence Nightingale’s ‘Notes on Nursing,’ and now she has taken 67 up other works on the same subject. Lillie, too, reads to the girls at the club meetings about great women, while I inspect the work. The Garment and Comfort-Kit squads meet together, and Jessie Ford not only tells them about the French villages and the towns that have been destroyed by the Germans, but reads to them from the ‘Prince Albert Book.’
“And Helen is amazing,” Nathalie went on, “because she has taught her girls the most incredible things, and now they’ve all signed up as Red Cross members. She’s been reading to them from Florence Nightingale’s ‘Notes on Nursing,’ and now she’s moved on to other works on the same topic. Lillie also reads to the girls at the club meetings about inspiring women, while I oversee the work. The Garment and Comfort-Kit squads meet together, and Jessie Ford not only shares stories about the French villages and towns that have been destroyed by the Germans, but also reads to them from the ‘Prince Albert Book.’”
“We are to have our Liberty Pageant to-morrow, and all the people who live on the line of parade have been perfectly lovely, for they have sold tickets for the seats on their verandas, and are to give the money to us for the Liberty Fund, so we can buy Liberty bonds. And the day after,” continued Nathalie, “we are to have a liberty sale on Mrs. Van Vorst’s grounds, the Pioneers’ meeting-place, you know. Indeed, we are almost over the tops of our heads in work, and we have enough plans to last the rest of the summer. Mother declares I am the busiest girl she knows.”
“We have our Liberty Pageant tomorrow, and everyone along the parade route has been so wonderful. They've sold tickets for seats on their porches and are donating the money to us for the Liberty Fund so we can buy Liberty bonds. And the day after,” Nathalie continued, “we're having a liberty sale on Mrs. Van Vorst’s property, the Pioneers’ meeting spot, you know. Honestly, we're completely swamped with work, and we have enough plans to keep us busy all summer. Mom says I’m the busiest girl she knows.”
“And the Liberty Garden, has that turned out well? I understand it is the work of my girls, the Pioneers.”
“And how did the Liberty Garden turn out? I heard it’s the project of my girls, the Pioneers.”
“Indeed, yes,” returned her companion: “it has been said to be one of the beauty spots of Westport. We have bordered it with nasturtiums, poppies, marigold, sweet peas, and all sorts of old-time posies. But we had a time getting the ground, for this year every one was hysterically wild to cultivate every inch of ground for a war-garden, and nobody wanted to loan any. Finally, however, Edith and Lillie tried their 68 powers of persuasion on old Deacon Sawyer,—you know he’s one of the pillars of the old Presbyterian church, and he let us have an old lot of his on Summer Street, about a hundred feet or so square.
“Absolutely,” replied her friend. “It’s been called one of the beautiful spots in Westport. We’ve lined it with nasturtiums, poppies, marigolds, sweet peas, and all kinds of retro flowers. But we had a tough time securing the land, because this year everyone was incredibly eager to use every piece of land for a victory garden, and no one wanted to share any. Eventually, though, Edith and Lillie worked their charm on old Deacon Sawyer—you know, he’s one of the key members of the old Presbyterian church—and he let us use an old lot of his on Summer Street, roughly a hundred feet square.”
“And how we have worked over it, for of course it had to be plowed. Peter, Mrs. Van Vorst’s gardener,—he’s the kindest-hearted thing alive,—offered to plow it for us, but we declined with a vote of thanks, for we felt that wouldn’t be our work. So Edith scoured the town until finally she borrowed an old nag from the livery-stable man,—he was just ready to crumble to pieces,—and Nita got a plow from Peter, and we plowed it ourselves.
“And how we worked on it! Of course, it needed to be plowed. Peter, Mrs. Van Vorst’s gardener—he’s the kindest person ever—offered to plow it for us, but we politely declined because we felt that wouldn’t be our work. So, Edith searched the town until she finally borrowed an old horse from the livery-stable owner—he was about to fall apart—and Nita got a plow from Peter, and we plowed it ourselves.”
“But the time we had with that old steed,” Nathalie’s eyes gleamed humorously, “for just as he would be going nicely across the field, he would be inspired to take the ‘rest-cure’ and stand stock-still, and no amount of pulling—we all got behind him and pushed—or coaxing would induce him to budge a hair. O dear, we worked over him until we thought we should expire with the heat, our faces all red and perspiring.
“But the time we had with that old horse,” Nathalie’s eyes sparkled playfully, “because just when he was moving nicely across the field, he would suddenly decide to take a ‘rest-cure’ and stand completely still. No amount of pulling—we all got behind him and pushed—or coaxing could make him move an inch. Oh dear, we worked so hard on him that we thought we might collapse from the heat, our faces all flushed and sweating.”
“Then Edith took to pulling his tail; she said she had read that would make a balky horse go. Oh, it was funny to see her!” Nathalie laughed outright. “But, dear me, it only made him lift one leg, very slowly, and then the other, and then settle down in the same old rut, as still as the wooden horse of Troy.
“Then Edith started tugging at his tail; she said she had read that it would get a stubborn horse moving. It was hilarious to watch her!” Nathalie laughed out loud. “But, goodness, it only made him lift one leg, really slowly, then the other, and then he just went back to resting in the same old rut, as still as the wooden horse of Troy."
69 “You know Edith is a stick-at-the-job sort of person,” commented Nathalie confidentially, “and what do you think? She actually got a firecracker and set it off under that beast. But even that fiery commotion only caused him to wink one lash and then resume his restful pose. But finally the spirit moved him, and so suddenly,” laughed the girl, “that Edith went sprawling on the ground, and Jessie tumbled in a most humble attitude,—on her knees,—minus the reins, while our noble steed went careering at a loping gallop across the field, while we, like a lot of mutes, stared at him in stupid wonder.
69 "You know Edith is the type who sticks to her work," Nathalie said in a low voice, "and guess what? She actually got a firecracker and set it off under that thing. But even that wild ruckus just made him blink once and then go back to lounging. But finally, he got riled up, and so suddenly," the girl laughed, "that Edith went sprawling on the ground, and Jessie fell down in the most humble way—on her knees—without the reins, while our noble horse took off at a galloping pace across the field, and we, like a bunch of speechless people, just stared at him in dumb amazement.
“Well, after we got the land all plowed,” resumed Nathalie, “we had irrigated it, by making a little ditch to let the water run down from the hilly slope at one end, we planted our vegetables in rows. But alas,” the girl gave a sigh, “when the plants began to come up we found that the whole field was filled with coarse rye-grass which had roots, and which had simply been cultivated, one might say, by the plow.
“Well, after we plowed the land,” Nathalie continued, “we irrigated it by creating a little ditch to let the water flow from the hilly slope at one end, and then we planted our vegetables in rows. But unfortunately,” the girl sighed, “when the plants started to grow, we discovered that the entire field was filled with coarse rye-grass that had roots, which the plow had basically just turned over.”
“We did not know what to do at first, until we remembered our Pioneer motto, ‘I Can,’ and then we set to work with a will, and spaded every inch of that lot; and it meant hard labor, too, for the grass was like gristle. When the little plants began to come up and a girl would pull a blade to see how it was doing, part of the plant would come up with the roots. 70 When we planted the different kinds of beans, using the string and stakes, and pressing down the ground hard with our feet, on five different occasions a violent rain came up during the night, and the next morning we found all the seeds uncovered and washed down into little piles at the end of the garden, and everything had to be done over again.
“We didn’t know what to do at first, until we remembered our Pioneer motto, ‘I Can,’ and then we got to work enthusiastically, digging up every inch of that lot; it was tough work, too, because the grass was as tough as leather. When the little plants started to sprout and a girl would tug on a blade to check its progress, part of the plant would come up with the roots. 70 When we planted different types of beans, using string and stakes, and firmly pressing down the soil with our feet, on five different nights, a heavy rainstorm hit, and by morning we found all the seeds uncovered and washed into little piles at the end of the garden, which meant we had to redo everything.
“After we had planted rows and rows of hills of corn and rejoiced to see coming forth little green plumes three inches high, we went to the garden in our uniforms one day, laden with our garden-tools, ready for work. But alas! we found that the crows had pulled out the corn from almost every hill; the little black imps had bitten off the kernels and gulped them down, and the stalks lay withering on the ground.
“After we had planted row after row of corn hills and celebrated the sight of little green shoots sprouting three inches high, we went to the garden in our uniforms one day, carrying our garden tools, ready to work. But unfortunately, we discovered that the crows had pulled out the corn from nearly every hill; those little black creatures had bitten off the kernels and swallowed them, leaving the stalks lying wilted on the ground.”
“Oh, I shall never forget the expression on Edith’s face that day,” said Nathalie thoughtfully, “when she saw the havoc wrought by those crows; it was such utter despair. I thought she was going to cry, but she didn’t—just hurried to the little shed where we keep our tools and things. When she reappeared her face was a sunbeam all right, as she exclaimed, ‘Well, girls, let’s get the better of those crows, and plant all over again.’
“Oh, I’ll never forget the look on Edith’s face that day,” Nathalie said thoughtfully, “when she saw the mess those crows made; it was pure despair. I thought she would cry, but she didn’t—she just rushed to the little shed where we keep our tools and stuff. When she came back, her face was beaming as she said, ‘Well, girls, let’s outsmart those crows and plant everything again.’”
“Really, Mrs. Morrow, Edith inspired me to such respect for her indomitable courage and pluck,” went on the girl candidly, “that I shall always keep a very 71 warm place in my heart for her, notwithstanding that she sometimes gets on my nerves. Things went on swimmingly then until that awful drought came. We had no way of watering the garden except by watering-pots, and then we couldn’t do our weeding, or cultivating, until late in the afternoon on account of the hot sun. But we did our best, and we have been repaid,” smiled Nathalie, “although we did not produce as much as I had hoped. Still—well, you’ll see at the pageant to-morrow.” Nathalie, suddenly realizing that she had kept Mrs. Morrow standing for some time, while she rattled on about that garden, now bade her a hasty good-morning and hurried into the bank.
“Honestly, Mrs. Morrow, Edith inspired me with so much respect for her unwavering courage and determination,” the girl said openly, “that I will always hold a special place in my heart for her, even though she sometimes gets on my nerves. Everything was going smoothly until that terrible drought hit. We could only water the garden with watering cans, and we couldn’t do any weeding or cultivating until late in the afternoon because of the scorching sun. But we did our best, and we’ve been rewarded,” Nathalie smiled, “even if we didn’t produce as much as I had hoped. Still—well, you’ll see at the pageant tomorrow.” Nathalie suddenly realized that she had kept Mrs. Morrow standing for a while while she chatted about the garden, so she quickly said good morning and rushed into the bank.
The young president of the Liberty Girls’ club passed a somewhat troubled night, oppressed with the anxiety of her onerous responsibility, knowing that the following day would be a well-filled one. As the proposer and planner of the pageant there were numerous details to arrange at the very last moment, and she was so afraid that she would oversleep, that she awakened several times with a nervous start, only to find everything enveloped in darkness.
The young president of the Liberty Girls' club had a somewhat restless night, weighed down by the stress of her heavy responsibilities, knowing that the next day would be packed with activities. As the organizer and planner of the pageant, there were a lot of last-minute details to handle, and she was so worried about oversleeping that she awoke several times with a jolt, only to find everything shrouded in darkness.
Arousing finally, to see the East streaked with red, and the golden rim of the sun gleaming above a silver line of clouds, she sprang out of bed with a devout little prayer of thankfulness that the day at least was to be a sunshiny one. An early breakfast, a hurried doing of her customary duties, and then she and 72 Grace—in the latter’s car—were off to inspect the floats, eighteen of them, all ready in barns, or garages, awaiting her word that they were properly equipped for the liberty parade, which was to set forth on its journey through the town at two in the afternoon.
Finally waking up, she saw the East lit up with red, and the golden edge of the sun shining above a silver line of clouds. She jumped out of bed with a grateful little prayer that at least the day would be sunny. After a quick breakfast and rushing through her usual tasks, she and 72 Grace—in Grace's car—set off to check out the floats, eighteen of them, all ready in barns or garages, waiting for her confirmation that they were properly prepared for the liberty parade, which was scheduled to start at two in the afternoon.
And then, with many misgivings, fearing that the whole thing might prove a fizzle,—for of course, many things had been wrong,—she hurried home for luncheon. Then came a hurried dressing, a whirl in an automobile, and she was dazedly taking her seat, a post of honor, on the front row of the grand-stand, erected by the Boy Scouts and Peter, in front of Mrs. Van Vorst’s high garden-walls.
And then, with a lot of doubts, worried that everything might turn out to be a letdown—since, of course, many things had gone wrong—she rushed home for lunch. Next came a quick change of clothes, a fast ride in a car, and she was dazedly taking her seat, an honor position, in the front row of the grandstand built by the Boy Scouts and Peter, right in front of Mrs. Van Vorst’s tall garden walls.
She barely had time to realize that the notables of the village were seated to the right and left of her, and to exchange a few greetings with one or two old-time friends, when she heard the ringing of a bell, the bell in the tower of the old Presbyterian church. This was the signal that the Liberty Pageant, way up at the other end of the town, was to issue from its shelter of green trees in front of the brick schoolhouse, and set forth on its march down through Main Street, the most important thoroughfare of the sleepy little town, with its wide, asphalted road shaded by noble old elms.
She barely had time to notice that the village leaders were sitting to her right and left, and to exchange a few hellos with one or two old friends, when she heard a bell ringing—the one from the tower of the old Presbyterian church. This was the signal that the Liberty Pageant, taking place at the far end of town, was about to emerge from its shelter of green trees in front of the brick schoolhouse and start its march down Main Street, the most important road in the sleepy little town, with its wide, paved road shaded by grand old elm trees.
CHAPTER V
THE LIBERTY PAGEANT
Nathalie was sure that she would never forget those tense, anxious moments as she stared with strained eyes, trying to catch the first glimpse of the coming show, while listening with alert ears to the oncoming tread of many feet, the noise and bustle of moving equipages, and the buzz and hum from the excited voices of the paraders and the onlookers. High above the tumult floated snatches of patriotic song, as sung by the Liberty Girls, and the loud outbursts of applause from the villagers, who lined the street.
Nathalie was certain she would never forget those tense, anxious moments as she stared with strained eyes, trying to catch the first glimpse of the upcoming show, while listening closely to the approaching sounds of many footsteps, the noise and hustle of moving vehicles, and the buzz of excited voices from the parade participants and onlookers. High above the chaos floated snippets of patriotic songs sung by the Liberty Girls, along with loud applause from the villagers who lined the street.
Ah, there it was! The girl’s heart leaped in wild bounds, she bent forward eagerly, and then she was sitting with nervously clasped hands, gazing with wide-open eyes at the slowly passing floats of the Liberty Pageant. It was heralded by a procession of small maidens costumed as Greek goddesses, who, while moving and swaying rhythmically, and holding festoons of white flowers high above their heads, were singing Thomas Paine’s “Liberty Tree.” As they burst out with the old familiar words:
Ah, there it was! The girl's heart raced wildly; she leaned forward eagerly, and then she was sitting with her hands nervously clasped, staring with wide eyes at the slowly passing floats of the Liberty Pageant. It was announced by a procession of young girls dressed as Greek goddesses, who, while moving and swaying rhythmically and holding garlands of white flowers high above their heads, were singing Thomas Paine’s “Liberty Tree.” As they broke into the old familiar words:
Nathalie was forcibly reminded of the time when she had last heard that song. Yes, it was almost a year ago, on Mrs. Van Vorst’s lawn, when the Girl Pioneers had held their little playlet of “Liberty Banners.”
Nathalie was harshly reminded of the last time she heard that song. Yes, it was nearly a year ago, on Mrs. Van Vorst’s lawn, when the Girl Pioneers put on their small play called “Liberty Banners.”
But her thoughts were again on the series of living pictures, and she smiled with her neighbors at the two small boys, one gowned as a doctor of the law, and the other as a brass-buttoned, blue-coated guardian of the peace, mounted on small horses caparisoned in white, whose trappings were marked in gold with the words “Law” and “Order.” As the diminutive doctor removed a pen from behind his ear, and peered learnedly through his goggles at a ponderous volume of law resting on a rack in front of him, while his companion on the neighboring flower-bedecked steed flourished a somewhat formidable-looking club, in token of the duties of his office, roars of laughter broke from the spectators.
But her mind was back on the series of living pictures, and she smiled with her neighbors at the two little boys, one dressed as a lawyer and the other as a brass-buttoned, blue-coated police officer, both mounted on small horses dressed in white, with their gear emblazoned in gold with the words “Law” and “Order.” As the tiny lawyer pulled a pen from behind his ear and peered seriously through his goggles at a hefty law book resting on a rack in front of him, while his friend on the neighboring flower-adorned horse waved a rather intimidating club, representing his duties, bursts of laughter erupted from the onlookers.
But as their eyes wandered on to the snowy chariot, where the Spirit of Liberty stood with outstretched hands, one holding a branch of evergreen, and the other a lighted torch, their laughter ceased, and a strange hush stilled their noisy clamor. For this beautiful maiden in loosely flowing garments, with eyes as bright and shining as the starry chaplet that 75 wreathed her golden, unbound hair, was the little hunchback of the big gray house, Nita Van Vorst!
But as their eyes drifted to the snowy chariot, where the Spirit of Liberty stood with her arms wide open—one hand holding a branch of evergreen and the other a lit torch—their laughter stopped, and a strange silence fell over their noisy chatter. This stunning figure in loosely flowing clothes, with eyes as bright and shiny as the starry crown that 75 adorned her golden, free-flowing hair, was the little hunchback from the big gray house, Nita Van Vorst!
High above the “angel face,” as Nathalie heard some one designate the girl’s countenance, beautiful in its inspiration of happiness and patriotism—her deformity hidden by her white wings—was a large banner inscribed with the words:
High above the "angel face," as Nathalie heard someone call the girl's face, beautiful in its expression of happiness and patriotism—her deformity concealed by her white wings—was a large banner that read:
Guarding the Spirit of Liberty, while holding the streamers that floated from the banners above, were three more white-robed figures, representing the three great principles for which the world was striving. The unbound tresses of each were banded with white, and the first bore the word, “Democracy,” the girl holding a white dove on her hand. The second was Humanity,—who cuddled a little Belgian refugee in her arms; and the third was Justice, who held aloft a pair of scales.
Guarding the Spirit of Liberty, while holding the streamers that floated from the banners above, were three more figures in white robes, representing the three great principles for which the world was striving. The loose hair of each was decorated with white bands, and the first bore the word "Democracy," with the girl holding a white dove in her hand. The second was Humanity, who held a little Belgian refugee in her arms; and the third was Justice, who raised a pair of scales high.
Nathalie’s eyes radiated with gladness as she heard her neighbors voice their commendations in praises of the snowy chariot, the symbol of freedom, man’s divine heritage from God. She began to feel that the many 76 hours that she and Helen had spent in devising and planning the details of this float and its mates, after all, might be appreciated.
Nathalie's eyes sparkled with happiness as she listened to her neighbors praise the snowy float, a symbol of freedom and humanity's divine gift from God. She started to feel that the countless 76 hours she and Helen had spent designing and planning the details of this float and its companions might actually be recognized.
The second picture was a marriage scene, a float marked “Virginia, 1607,” and bore the famous words of its well-known orator, “Give me liberty, or give me death.” It was decorated with white flowers in honor of the bride, Pocahontas,—impersonated by a Camp Fire girl in an Indian deerskin robe wondrously embroidered, and gay with many-colored beads,—who stood by the flower-decked pulpit amid a bower of green, being united in the holy bands of matrimony to John Rolfe.
The second picture was a wedding scene, a float labeled “Virginia, 1607,” featuring the famous words of its renowned speaker, “Give me liberty, or give me death.” It was adorned with white flowers in honor of the bride, Pocahontas—played by a Camp Fire girl in an Indian deerskin robe beautifully embroidered and bright with colorful beads—who stood by the flower-covered pulpit in a greenery-filled setting, getting married to John Rolfe.
The pose of the Indian maiden, the sweet seriousness of her tawny-dyed face and melting black eyes, the dignified pose of the Virginia planter, so vividly portrayed the romantic episode of the first American colony, that the many onlookers broke forth into shouts of approval. The quaintly attired figures of the Jamestown settlers in the foreground, and the group of Indian warriors with their war-plumes and dabs of paint were backed by a miniature tower. Some one inquired if it was a monument, much to the young president’s disgust, as she considered it a noble work of art, which had been laboriously built of old bricks by the Girl Pioneers to represent the ruined tower of Jamestown.
The pose of the Indian woman, the sweet seriousness of her tan face and expressive dark eyes, and the dignified stance of the Virginia planter, all captured the romantic story of the first American colony so vividly that the many onlookers erupted in cheers. The uniquely dressed figures of the Jamestown settlers in the foreground and the group of Indian warriors with their feathered headdresses and splashes of paint were set against a small tower. Someone asked if it was a monument, much to the young president’s annoyance, as she viewed it as a beautiful piece of art that had been painstakingly built from old bricks by the Girl Pioneers to represent the ruined tower of Jamestown.
“My name is Liberty,
My throne is Law.”—Page 75.
“I'm Liberty,
My throne is Law.”—Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
77 Massachusetts was identified by the words, “The Founders of Liberty,” and a simulated boulder, which Blue Robin watched with great trepidation for fear the blithesome Mary Chilton, who stood victorious on this Forefathers’ Rock, in too zealous jubilation would shake it too much. But the sprightly Pilgrim maiden, in gray cape and bonnet—it was the Sport—remembered the perilous foundations, and her scorn was discreetly tempered with caution as she gazed at the somewhat crestfallen John, who stood with one foot on the rock, and the other in a miniature shallop, where the Pilgrim Fathers stood dismally regarding this forerunner of the progressive American girl.
77 Massachusetts was known for the phrase, “The Founders of Liberty,” and a made-up boulder that Blue Robin watched anxiously, worried that the cheerful Mary Chilton, who stood proudly on this Forefathers’ Rock, would shake it too much in her excitement. But the lively Pilgrim girl, in her gray cape and bonnet—it was all in good fun—remembered the shaky foundation and kept her enthusiasm in check as she looked at the somewhat disappointed John, who had one foot on the rock and the other in a small boat, where the Pilgrim Fathers looked gloomily at this early example of the modern American girl.
New York’s contribution to the cause of freedom was a float brilliantly rampant with the Stars and Stripes, and a little white flag with a black beaver on it, the State’s emblem. This float, which bore the words, “The Sons of Liberty,” was in commemoration of the brave lovers of freedom on the little isle of Manhattan, who, in February, 1770, raised the first Liberty Pole in America at what is now known as City Hall Park. To be sure, it was cut down twice, but Liberty was afire, and it was finally hooped with iron and set up the third time, this time to stay.
New York’s contribution to the cause of freedom was a float vibrantly decorated with the Stars and Stripes and a little white flag featuring a black beaver, the state’s emblem. This float, which displayed the words “The Sons of Liberty,” honored the brave advocates of freedom on the little island of Manhattan who, in February 1770, raised the first Liberty Pole in America at what is now City Hall Park. It was certainly cut down twice, but the spirit of Liberty persisted, and it was finally reinforced with iron and erected for a third time, this time to remain.
“Liberty Hall,” the name of the home of a one-time governor of New Jersey, was conspicuously seen on the next float. The girls had had some difficulty in getting an appropriate design for this little garden State that could be conveniently staged on a small-sized 78 platform. But they had evidently succeeded, for the quaintly gowned young maiden who acted her rôle in pantomime was loudly applauded as she flew to an improvised window, only to exhibit wild alarm, and then in frenzied haste scurried to an old-time escritoire. Here she rummaged a moment or so, and then extracted a bundle of letters, which she hurriedly secreted behind a loosened brick beside a simulated fireplace. In explanation of this silent drama Nathalie told that the young girl was Susannah, the daughter of William Livingston, the governor, who, when she saw the redcoats marching towards the house in her father’s absence, quickly remembered his valuable papers and hid them for safety.
“Liberty Hall,” the home of a former governor of New Jersey, was prominently displayed on the next float. The girls had some trouble coming up with a suitable design for this small garden State that could be easily set up on a compact 78 platform. However, they clearly succeeded, as the charmingly dressed young woman acting out her part in pantomime received loud applause when she rushed to an improvised window, only to show a look of panic, and then in a flurry hurried to an old-fashioned escritoire. She rummaged around for a moment and then pulled out a bundle of letters, which she quickly hid behind a loose brick next to a fake fireplace. To explain this silent scene, Nathalie mentioned that the young girl was Susannah, the daughter of William Livingston, the governor, who, upon seeing the redcoats marching toward the house while her father was away, quickly remembered his important papers and hid them for safekeeping.
Five girls in homespun gowns, sewing on a United States flag, composed the New Hampshire float, which flew the State emblem, with its motto of Liberty inscribed on its side. The flag-makers, out of their best silk gowns, were making, in accordance with the description in the resolution just passed by Congress, June 14, 1777, the first Stars and Stripes that floated from the Ranger, to which Captain Paul Jones had just been commissioned, and which became known as “the unconquered and unstricken flag.”
Five girls in homemade dresses were sewing a United States flag on the New Hampshire float, which displayed the State emblem along with its motto of Liberty on its side. The flag-makers, out of their finest silk dresses, were creating, in line with the description in the resolution just passed by Congress, June 14, 1777, the first Stars and Stripes that flew from the Ranger, to which Captain Paul Jones had just been appointed, and that became known as “the unconquered and unstricken flag.”
The Connecticut float bore the words, “The Liberty Charter,” while a Liberty Girl, in a good impersonation of Ruth Wyllis, stood by a ladder resting against a somewhat strange simulation of the Charter Oak, 79 handing the supposed charter to the redoubtable Captain Wadsworth, who quickly secreted it in the hollow of the tree.
The Connecticut float displayed the words, “The Liberty Charter,” while a Liberty Girl, doing a great impression of Ruth Wyllis, stood by a ladder leaning against a rather unusual replica of the Charter Oak, 79 handing the supposed charter to the formidable Captain Wadsworth, who promptly tucked it away in the hollow of the tree.
Terra Marie, the land of Mary, not only blazoned the words, “The Rights of Liberty,” but portrayed Margaret Brent, the first woman suffragist, as she stood before the Maryland Assembly and pleaded with those worthies, with masculine energy, for her right to a say in the affairs of the little State, the State noted for its Toleration Act of 1649. Surely the good woman, as the representative of the deceased Governor Calvert, who had given his all to her with the words, “Take all, and give all,” had a right to demand that she be heard.
Terra Marie, the land of Mary, not only displayed the words, “The Rights of Liberty,” but also depicted Margaret Brent, the first woman suffragist, as she stood before the Maryland Assembly, passionately asking those distinguished men for her right to have a voice in the matters of the small State, known for its Toleration Act of 1649. Surely this admirable woman, representing the late Governor Calvert, who had entrusted everything to her with the words, “Take all, and give all,” had every right to insist on being heard.
The “Daughters of Liberty” made a brilliant showing in big letters on the little Rhody float, to honor the seventeen young girls who, in 1766, met at the home of good old Deacon Bowen, in Providence, and not only voiced their disapproval of the Colonies’ tax on tea and on cloth manufactured in England, but formed the first patriotic organization known in America. It was the same inspiration of liberty that impelled their emulators to adopt their name, and to plan and push through the demonstration of which every one was so proud. As these Liberty maidens sat and spun at their looms, or whetted their distaffs on the float before the gaping crowd, they were guarded by two impersonations,—one the father of toleration, Roger Williams, who looked benignantly down upon these devotees of freedom, 80 and the other, America’s first club-woman, the learned and martyred Anne Hutchinson.
The “Daughters of Liberty” made a stunning appearance in bold letters on the little Rhody float, paying tribute to the seventeen young girls who, in 1766, gathered at the home of the respected Deacon Bowen in Providence. They not only expressed their disapproval of the Colonies’ tax on tea and cloth imported from England but also formed the first patriotic organization in America. It was the same spirit of liberty that inspired their followers to adopt their name and organize the demonstration that everyone was so proud of. As these Liberty maidens sat and spun at their looms or prepared their distaffs on the float in front of the amazed crowd, they were watched over by two figures—one being the father of toleration, Roger Williams, who looked kindly down on these champions of freedom, and the other, America’s first club-woman, the learned and martyred Anne Hutchinson. 80
Ah, but who is this riding astride a horse of sable blackness, curveting and prancing with chafing irritation at the tightened rein of its rider, who
Ah, but who is this riding on a jet-black horse, prancing and fidgeting in annoyance at the tight reins held by its rider, who
“Burly and big, and bold and bluff,
In his three-cornered hat and coat of snuff,
A foe to King George and the English state,
Was Cæsar Rodney, the delegate.”[2]
“Big and strong, confident and straightforward,
In his three-cornered hat and coat of brown,
An opponent of King George and the English government,
Was Cæsar Rodney, the delegate.”[2]
Of course there were a few who were not familiar with this little incident in the history of Delaware, and how the aforesaid Rodney, a member of the Continental Congress, spurred his horse from Dover to Philadelphia, a distance of eighty-one miles, to reach Independence Hall before night, in order to cast the vote of Delaware for freedom and independence. It was, indeed, a great ride, and the townspeople must have appreciated it, for the horse and rider were heartily cheered as they read the words on the banner: “It is Liberty’s stress; it is Freedom’s need.”
Of course, there were a few who didn’t know about this little incident in Delaware's history, and how the aforementioned Rodney, a member of the Continental Congress, raced his horse from Dover to Philadelphia—a distance of eighty-one miles—to get to Independence Hall before nightfall, so he could cast Delaware's vote for freedom and independence. It was truly an impressive ride, and the townspeople must have appreciated it, as the horse and rider were warmly cheered when they saw the words on the banner: “It is Liberty’s stress; it is Freedom’s need.”
North Carolina proved most interesting, with the inscription, “The First Liberty Bell of America,” on a big hand-bell resting in the center of the float. The inscription and the bell aroused so much curiosity as to why it should take precedence of the old Liberty Bell at Philadelphia, that Nathalie was called upon by a group of friends sitting near, to explain that it really 81 was the first Liberty Bell used in the Thirteen Colonies, having sounded its peal for liberty when rung by the patriots of that State in 1771.
North Carolina was really interesting, featuring the inscription, “The First Liberty Bell of America,” on a large hand-bell in the center of the float. The inscription and the bell sparked so much curiosity about why it was highlighted over the old Liberty Bell in Philadelphia that Nathalie was asked by a group of friends nearby to explain that it was actually the first Liberty Bell used in the Thirteen Colonies, having rung for liberty when it was sounded by the patriots of that State in 1771.
“These patriots,” went on the young Liberty Girl, “were the farmers and yeomanry of that State, who, in a vigorous protest against the tyrannous acts, misrule, and extortion during the administration of Governor Tryon, banded themselves into a company known as the Regulators. This bell was used to call them together in their struggle to maintain the rights of the people. These Regulators were not only hounded, persecuted, and sometimes executed as if they were rebels, but many of their number were killed at the battle of the Alamance,—so named because it took place on a field near that beautiful river,—when called upon to defend themselves, when fired upon by the governor and a company of the king’s troops. This battle has been called by some the first battle of the Revolution,” continued the young girl, “and really inspired the Mecklenburg Declaration of Independence, the forerunner of the noted Declaration signed at Philadelphia. Some historians claim that ‘God made the flower of freedom grow out of the turf that covered these men’s graves.’”
“These patriots,” continued the young Liberty Girl, “were the farmers and small landowners of that State who, in a strong protest against tyrannical acts, misrule, and exploitation during Governor Tryon’s administration, came together as a group known as the Regulators. This bell was used to summon them in their fight to protect the rights of the people. The Regulators were not only hunted down, persecuted, and sometimes executed as if they were rebels, but many of them were killed at the battle of Alamance—which got its name from the nearby beautiful river—when they were called upon to defend themselves against the governor and a company of the king’s troops. Some people have called this the first battle of the Revolution,” the young girl went on, “and it actually inspired the Mecklenburg Declaration of Independence, which was the precursor to the famous Declaration signed in Philadelphia. Some historians say that ‘God made the flower of freedom grow out of the soil that covered these men’s graves.’”
“And well these men maintained the right;
They kept the faith and fought the fight;
Till Might and Reason both
Fled fast before the oath
Which brought the God of Freedom’s battles down
To place on patriot’s brow the victor’s crown!”[3]
“And these men upheld the right;
They stayed true and fought hard;
Until Power and Reason both
Quickly left before the oath
That brought the God of Freedom’s battles down
To place on a patriot’s brow the winner’s crown!”[3]
on the float was eagerly read and doubly appreciated. By the bell stood a tiny maid in the long skirt of the days of colonial childhood, wearing a long white apron. With the crossed kerchief and two bright eyes peeping from beneath the golden curls that strayed from below the little one’s Puritan cap, she looked so sweet and demure that murmurs of admiration surged through the crowd, as they recognized that this diminutive lady represented the first white child born in America, little Virginia Dare.
on the float was eagerly read and doubly appreciated. By the bell stood a tiny maid in a long skirt from the days of colonial childhood, wearing a long white apron. With a crossed kerchief and two bright eyes peeking from beneath the golden curls that spilled out from below the little one’s Puritan cap, she looked so sweet and demure that murmurs of admiration flowed through the crowd, as they realized that this petite lady represented the first white child born in America, little Virginia Dare.
Perhaps only a few knew that the white fawn that she was holding by her side featured the legend of the white doe that was said to haunt the isle of Roanoke for many years after the return of John White, who found only the word Croatan to tell him that his dear little granddaughter had disappeared, never to be found. The legend was so suggestive of the romance of North Carolina that the girls could not forbear giving it prominence on the float. They had had some trouble to find a white doe, but they had succeeded, and as Nathalie gazed at it she was again reminded of how the legend told that it used to stand mournfully gazing out to sea, on a hill of the little isle. The Indians, tradition asserted, had failed to kill it, until one day it was shot and killed by a silver bullet from the hand of an Indian chieftain, who claimed that the bullet 83 had been given to him by Queen Elizabeth to kill witches, when a captive in England. As the beautiful doe sank upon the green sward and expired it was said to have murmured, “Virginia Dare! Virginia Dare!”
Perhaps only a few knew that the white fawn she was holding by her side represented the legend of the white doe that was said to haunt the isle of Roanoke for many years after John White's return, when he found only the word Croatan to inform him that his dear granddaughter had vanished, never to be found. The legend was so evocative of the romance of North Carolina that the girls couldn’t help but highlight it on the float. They had faced some challenges in finding a white doe, but they succeeded, and as Nathalie looked at it, she was reminded again of how the legend claimed it used to stand sorrowfully gazing out to sea, on a hill of the little isle. The Indians, tradition said, had failed to kill it until one day it was shot and killed by a silver bullet from the hand of an Indian chief, who claimed that the bullet 83 had been given to him by Queen Elizabeth to kill witches when he was a captive in England. As the beautiful doe collapsed onto the green grass and died, it was said to have murmured, “Virginia Dare! Virginia Dare!”
South Carolina, glaringly conspicuous with red and blue bunting, was marked “Liberty” in honor of one of the most famous flags used in the Revolutionary War. It was an ensign of blue with a white crescent in one corner, said to have been designed by Colonel Moultrie, of Carolina fame, and was declared to have been the first flag raised for liberty in the South.
South Carolina, brightly decorated with red and blue banners, was labeled “Liberty” in honor of one of the most well-known flags from the Revolutionary War. It featured a blue background with a white crescent in one corner and is believed to have been designed by Colonel Moultrie, a notable figure from Carolina's history. It was said to be the first flag raised for liberty in the South.
In the center of the float a miniature trench had been raised, on the parapet of which stood a young lad waving this little blue flag, in honor of that gallant hero, Sergeant Jasper, who, when the flag was shot down during the bombardment of Fort Moultrie, June 28, 1776, leaped fearlessly to the top of the ramparts, received the colors, and held them in his hand until another staff was found.
In the middle of the float was a tiny trench, and on the edge of it stood a young boy waving a small blue flag, in honor of the brave hero, Sergeant Jasper, who, when the flag was shot down during the bombardment of Fort Moultrie on June 28, 1776, jumped fearlessly to the top of the ramparts, grabbed the colors, and held them in his hand until another staff was found.
“Lo! the fullness of time has come,
And over all the exiles’ Western home
From sea to sea the flowers of Freedom bloom.”
“Look! The time has come,
And throughout the exiles’ Western home
From coast to coast, the flowers of Freedom are blooming.”
This little quotation was an apt one, from the Poet Whittier, but it was not necessary to make known to those gazing at it, that it stood for the strongest and proudest of the sisterhood of States, the home of freemen and heroes, of Robert Morris, Dr. Franklin and our good brother, William Penn.
This short quote was fitting, from the poet Whittier, but it wasn’t needed to let those looking at it know that it represented the strongest and proudest of the states, the home of free people and heroes, including Robert Morris, Dr. Franklin, and our good brother, William Penn.
84 This promoter of tolerance, independence, and the equal rights of men was fittingly portrayed by a Boy Scout. Benignant of face, mild of eye, with long hair falling from beneath his broad-brimmed hat, this friend of the friendless stood surrounded by a group of Indian warriors, resplendent in all the trappings of their tribes, making one of the numerous peace treaties.
84 This advocate for tolerance, independence, and equal rights was aptly represented by a Boy Scout. With a kind face, gentle eyes, and long hair flowing out from under his wide-brimmed hat, this supporter of the underserved stood amidst a group of Native American warriors, proudly adorned in the regalia of their tribes, participating in one of the many peace treaties.
But the Georgia float, buried in white to represent bolls of cotton, in memory of Eli Whitney, aroused such loud and long cries of admiration that Nathalie feared that after her hard labor the other floats had not received their due mead of appreciation. But no, it was the rousing melody of “Marching through Georgia,” with its telling lines of,
But the Georgia float, covered in white to symbolize bolls of cotton, in honor of Eli Whitney, sparked such loud and long cheers of admiration that Nathalie worried that after her hard work, the other floats hadn't gotten the recognition they deserved. But no, it was the lively tune of “Marching through Georgia,” with its significant lines of,
“So we made a thoroughfare for Freedom and her train,
Sixty miles in latitude—three hundred to the main;”
“So we created a path for Freedom and her followers,
Sixty miles in latitude—three hundred to the main;”
and the inspiration that always comes to every Northern heart when they think of that gallant Son of Liberty, Sherman, and his triumphant march to the sea, that had created the sudden tumult.
and the inspiration that always comes to every Northern heart when they think of that brave Son of Liberty, Sherman, and his victorious march to the sea, which had stirred up the sudden chaos.
The few men in regimentals of the Union army,—in real life, boys in brown from Camp Mills,—who were playing fifes and bugles on the float, and the straggling darkies in the rear, who were shouting with verve and gusto, as they followed in the wake of “Massa Sherman,” intensified the appeal.
The few men in uniforms of the Union army—actually boys in brown from Camp Mills—who were playing fifes and bugles on the float, along with the wandering Black men in the back who were cheering energetically as they followed "Massa Sherman," made the scene even more compelling.
Ah, but now comes another edition of Liberty; this 85 time no less a personage than Lillie Bell, who, in the old costume worn over a year ago on the lawn of the big gray house, was standing on a chariot, an old farm wagon ablaze with the colors of Freedom, driven by four soldiers, representing France, England, Belgium, and America. The young goddess with sad and tragic eyes shining from beneath her helmet, gazed straight before her as she held a drawn sword clasped closely to her breast, in a graceful pose beneath the colors of the Allies floating gayly above her head.
Ah, but now we have another edition of Liberty; this 85 time featuring none other than Lillie Bell, who, in the same outfit worn over a year ago on the lawn of the big gray house, was standing on a chariot, an old farm wagon decorated with the colors of Freedom, driven by four soldiers representing France, England, Belgium, and America. The young goddess with sad and tragic eyes shining from beneath her helmet looked straight ahead as she held a drawn sword close to her chest, striking a graceful pose beneath the vibrant colors of the Allies floating above her head.
Yes, there was no doubt, as Helen had often said, Lillie was born for stellar rôles, for somehow she had the happy faculty of always falling into the desired attitude and mood of the part she was to portray. A sudden silence gripped the line of people standing on the curb, as they saw this familiar figure of Liberty, in a new and strange rôle. On a beflagged chair of state good old Uncle Sam was seated, driving America’s symbol of Freedom with reins of roses. Yes, roses to typify that the good protector of the United States’ joys and interests was on the job,—as the Sport expressed it,—but doing it with the silken reins of love.
Yes, there was no doubt, as Helen often said, Lillie was meant for leading roles, because she had this amazing ability to always get into the right attitude and mood for the character she was playing. A sudden hush fell over the crowd standing on the curb when they saw this familiar figure of Liberty in a new and unusual role. Sitting on a decorated chair was good old Uncle Sam, guiding America’s symbol of Freedom with reins made of roses. Yes, roses to signify that the good guardian of the United States’ joys and interests was on duty—like the Sport put it—but doing it with the soft reins of love.
In the rear of this float a very small one appeared, but it was large enough to display a cannon and a pile of cannon-balls, and also a member of the United States Marines’ crack quartet of machine-gunners. As he was the genuine article, as one of the girls declared,—being one of the town’s boys home on a leave 86 of absence, and held a Lewis gun, he was received with wild cheers. A Jackie was perched on what was supposed to be a conning-tower, apparently on the watch for a submarine, while another soldier of the seas was ramming an old cannon, which created much laughter.
In the back of this float, there was a very small one that was still big enough to showcase a cannon and a stack of cannonballs, along with a member of the U.S. Marines' top machine-gunners. Since he was the real deal, as one of the girls put it—being one of the local boys back on leave and holding a Lewis gun—he was welcomed with loud cheers. A sailor was sitting on what was meant to be a conning tower, seemingly on the lookout for a submarine, while another soldier from the sea was pretending to load an old cannon, which got a lot of laughs. 86
It wasn’t much of a naval display, Nathalie thought regretfully, but it was the best they could do with their poor equipment, for these Daughters of Freedom were resolved to give due honor to these brave guardians of the sea.
It wasn’t much of a naval display, Nathalie thought sadly, but it was the best they could do with their outdated equipment, as these Daughters of Freedom were determined to properly honor these brave guardians of the sea.
A contingent of husky young chaps from Camp Mills were lionized as soon as their khaki-clad figures were sighted on the next float, which was marked, “Liberty Boys.” A somewhat crude representation of a trench, piled with sand-bags, with a few boys in tin hats, with guns in their hands, clambering over it, represented to the spectators an “Over the Top” scene. In the rear of the trench a few soldiers were grouped around a camp-fire, presumably in a rest billet, having “eats.” Every moment or so a soldier on this float would break forth into some war-song, which was quickly taken up by his comrades, and which helped to make the scene very realistic.
A group of strong young guys from Camp Mills got a lot of attention as soon as their khaki-clad figures were spotted on the next float, labeled "Liberty Boys." It featured a somewhat rough depiction of a trench, stacked with sandbags, with a few boys in tin helmets, holding guns and climbing over it, illustrating an "Over the Top" scene for the audience. In the back of the trench, a few soldiers gathered around a campfire, likely in a rest area, enjoying some food. Every so often, a soldier on this float would break into a war song, which his buddies quickly joined in on, adding to the realism of the scene.
A small float with the Red Cross insignia, bearing the words, “The Cross of Liberty,” with a few nurses seated around a table making bandages, now appeared. A white cot, with a soldier boy in it, suddenly silenced the cheers,—it was so suggestive of what every heart 87 held in silent dread and fear, ever since the United States had buckled to the fray.
A small float displaying the Red Cross symbol, with the words, “The Cross of Liberty,” and a few nurses sitting around a table making bandages, came into view. A white cot with a young soldier lying on it suddenly quieted the cheers—it was a powerful reminder of the anxiety and fear that everyone had felt since the United States had joined the fight. 87
But the sudden quiet was broken as the next, and last, float hove in sight. It was so artistically gotten up as a Liberty Garden, and represented so much freshness and beauty with its Liberty Girls, each one dressed to represent either a fruit or a vegetable, that it was wildly cheered. Masses of fruit piled up here and there peeped from bowers of green leaves, or hung in festoons across the float. Potatoes, green and red peppers, onions, cucumbers, and many other products of the garden were lavishly in evidence. Carol, the Tike, was arrayed as a pumpkin, a row of yellow leaves standing above a bunch of green ones. Carrots, cucumbers, turnips, even beans, beets, and strawberries were ingeniously represented by crêpe paper.
But the sudden silence was broken as the next and final float appeared. It was beautifully designed as a Liberty Garden, showcasing so much freshness and beauty with its Liberty Girls, each dressed to represent a fruit or a vegetable, that it received loud cheers. Piles of fruit were scattered throughout, peeking out from green leaf arches or hanging in garlands across the float. Potatoes, green and red peppers, onions, cucumbers, and many other garden products were prominently displayed. Carol, the Tike, was dressed as a pumpkin, with a row of yellow leaves on top of a bunch of green ones. Carrots, cucumbers, turnips, even beans, beets, and strawberries were cleverly crafted from crêpe paper.
But the love of every heart were the Morrow twins, standing in the front of the float in blue overalls, wide-brimmed hats, and blue shirts, with rakes and hoes in their hands, as farmerettes, each one vigorously waving a flag. This float completed the series of pictures that Nathalie now felt had been duly admired, and she smiled happily at the many plaudits that again burst forth. But when the farmerettes and these living representations of fruits and vegetables broke into[4]
But everyone loved the Morrow twins, standing at the front of the float in blue overalls, wide-brimmed hats, and blue shirts, holding rakes and hoes as farmerettes, each one energetically waving a flag. This float wrapped up the series of scenes that Nathalie now believed had been fully appreciated, and she smiled happily at the loud cheers that erupted once more. But when the farmerettes and these living representations of fruits and vegetables broke into[4]
88
“Yes, we’ll rally round the farm, boys,
We’ll rally once again,
Shouting the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em.’
We’ve got the ships and money
And the best of fighting men,
Shouting the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em.’
“The Onion forever, the beans and the corn,
Down with the tater—it’s up the next morn—
While we rally round the plow, boys,
And take the hoe again,
Shouting the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em!’”
88
“Yes, let’s gather at the farm, guys,
We’ll come together once more,
Yelling the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em.’
We have the ships and the funds
And the best fighters around,
Yelling the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em.’
“Long live the onion, the beans, and the corn,
Down with the potato—it’s time to rise again—
While we come together around the plow, guys,
And pick up the hoe again,
Yelling the battle cry of ‘Feed ’em!’”
it captured every heart present, and such prolonged applause rent the air that Nathalie was duly satisfied.
It captured everyone's heart in the room, and the extended applause filled the air so much that Nathalie was truly satisfied.
As she turned to leave the grand-stand it seemed to the tired girl as if every one in town stopped to shake hands, and to congratulate her on the huge success of the Liberty Pageant. When she finally arrived home, it was some hours before she reached her couch, for she found the family unduly excited, all eagerly talking; no, not about the pageant, but about a rather strange letter that had been received by Mrs. Page that afternoon.
As she turned to leave the grandstand, the exhausted girl felt like everyone in town paused to shake hands and congratulate her on the huge success of the Liberty Pageant. When she finally got home, it took her a while to reach her couch because her family was unusually excited, all eagerly talking; no, not about the pageant, but about a rather strange letter that Mrs. Page had received that afternoon.
“Liberty Enlightening the World,” E. C. Stedman. “Liberty Enlightening the World,” E. C. Stedman. |
“Rodney’s Ride.” Poems of American History. B. C. Stevenson. “Rodney’s Ride.” Poems of American History. B. C. Stevenson. |
“The Mecklenburg Declaration,” Wm. C. Elam. “The Mecklenburg Declaration,” Wm. C. Elam. |
“Patriotic Toasts,” Emerson Brooks. "Patriotic Toasts," Emerson Brooks. |
CHAPTER VI
THE STRANGE LETTER
“Oh, Helen, mother received the strangest letter last night,” cried Nathalie suddenly the following day, as she stood with her friend and Nita in the Red Cross booth at the Liberty Sale. “And I am afraid it means,” the girl’s eyes shadowed, “that I shall have to resign as president of the club.”
“Oh, Helen, Mom got the weirdest letter last night,” Nathalie exclaimed suddenly the next day while she stood with her friend and Nita at the Red Cross booth at the Liberty Sale. “And I’m worried it means,” the girl’s expression became serious, “that I’ll have to step down as president of the club.”
“Resign?” exclaimed Helen and Nita simultaneously. “Oh, Nathalie, you must not do that.”
“Resign?” Helen and Nita exclaimed at the same time. “Oh, Nathalie, you absolutely can’t do that.”
“Well, I fear it will be necessary,” sighed the girl dolefully, “for the home duties come first, especially the duties to mother, and she wants to go—she really needs the change—and—”
“Well, I think it will be necessary,” sighed the girl sadly, “because home responsibilities come first, especially responsibilities to mom, and she wants to go—she really needs the change—and—”
“Go where?” questioned Helen sharply. “Oh, Nathalie, you are talking Dutch to us, and—”
“Go where?” Helen asked sharply. “Oh, Nathalie, you're speaking in riddles, and—”
“Sure she is,” voiced Nita quickly, “jumbling letters and resignations all together in a very queer way. Now suppose, young lady,” she commanded imperiously, seizing her friend by the arm impulsively, “that you unravel our tangled brains and tell us what you are aiming at.”
“Absolutely,” Nita replied quickly, “mixing up letters and resignations in a really strange way. Now, let’s say, young lady,” she said with authority, grabbing her friend’s arm impulsively, “that you untangle our confused thoughts and explain what you’re trying to achieve.”
“Well, I guess I shall have to, from the stew you two girls have sizzled into,” replied Blue Robin laughingly. 90 “Well, as I said,” she continued more soberly, “mother received a letter last night. But I shall have to tell you a bit of family history, if you want to understand,” she added hesitatingly.
"Well, I guess I’ll have to deal with the mess you two girls have cooked up," Blue Robin replied with a laugh. 90 "Anyway," she continued more seriously, "Mom got a letter last night. But I need to share some family background with you if you want to understand," she added hesitantly.
As the two girls laughingly assured her that that would only make her explanation more interesting, Nathalie gathered up her threads and went on with her story. “Father had an older half-sister, whose mother—who came of very wealthy people in Boston—left her all of her money, so that she was quite wealthy, and in due time became very eccentric. Father said she was spoiled with her pot of gold.
As the two girls laughed and told her that it would only make her explanation more interesting, Nathalie picked up her threads and continued her story. “Dad had an older half-sister whose mom—who came from a very rich family in Boston—left her all her money, so she was pretty wealthy and eventually became really eccentric. Dad said she was spoiled with her pot of gold.
“She married when quite young and had one son, who, shortly after the death of his father,—as soon as he was graduated from college,—went to Europe, fell in love with a pretty girl, and married her. I have never heard the details of this marriage, but I believe the girl was French. No, she may have been English; anyway it was quite a romance, and the young couple were quite happy.
“She married at a young age and had one son, who, shortly after his father's death—right after he graduated from college—went to Europe, fell in love with a beautiful girl, and married her. I’ve never heard the specifics of their marriage, but I think the girl was French. No, she might have been English; either way, it was quite a romance, and the young couple was very happy."
“My aunt, however, was deeply wounded to think that her only son, her idol, had spoiled all her plans and married some one whom she considered beneath him. So when Philip came to America with his young wife, my aunt refused to see her. This angered him so deeply that they quarreled, and Philip rushed from his mother’s presence, declaring that she should never see his face again.
“My aunt, however, was very hurt to think that her only son, her pride and joy, had ruined all her plans by marrying someone she thought was beneath him. So when Philip came to America with his young wife, my aunt refused to meet her. This upset him so much that they fought, and Philip stormed away from his mother, saying that she would never see him again.”
91 “And she never did,” asserted Nathalie with grave emphasis. “Presumably he immediately returned to Europe with his young wife, for although Mrs. Renwick soon repented of her folly, as father called it, and wrote her son again and again, she heard nothing from him. After employing detectives by the score with no result, she finally went abroad and endeavored herself to find some trace of him, but was not successful. She finally returned to America and started to seek him here, but found no clew to his whereabouts.
91 “And she never did,” Nathalie said seriously. “He probably went straight back to Europe with his young wife. Even though Mrs. Renwick quickly regretted her mistake, as my father put it, and wrote to her son over and over, she never heard back from him. After hiring countless detectives with no results, she eventually went abroad and tried to find any sign of him herself, but had no luck. She returned to America and began searching for him here, but couldn’t find any clues to where he was.”
“As time passed—I think the matter preyed on her mind—she began to have queer spells. No, she wasn’t crazy, or anything like that, but just worried and unhappy, going off alone by herself for months at a time, presumably still trying to find her boy. After a time she would return from one of these erratic journeys, but she never told where she had been, and never mentioned her son’s name.
“As time went on—I think this was weighing on her mind—she started having strange episodes. No, she wasn’t crazy or anything like that, just anxious and unhappy, isolating herself for months at a time, presumably still searching for her boy. Eventually, she would come back from one of these unpredictable trips, but she never revealed where she had gone, and never mentioned her son’s name.
“Now we have come to the letter mother received yesterday. It was from my aunt’s lawyer, who summers in Littleton, New Hampshire. You see, Mrs. Renwick had considerable property in Boston and other places, but she was very fond of the White Mountains and always summered on Sugar Hill, where she had a lovely place called Seven Pillars, only a few miles from Littleton, and just a short distance from the mountain village of Franconia.
“Now we have the letter mom got yesterday. It was from my aunt’s lawyer, who spends the summer in Littleton, New Hampshire. You see, Mrs. Renwick owned a lot of property in Boston and other places, but she really loved the White Mountains and always spent her summers on Sugar Hill, where she had a beautiful place called Seven Pillars, just a few miles from Littleton and a short distance from the mountain village of Franconia."
“The lawyer,” continued Nathalie, who by this time 92 had quite an interested audience, “writes mother that Aunt Mary went off on one of her queer jaunts over a year ago and has not returned. In accordance with her wishes,—she always leaves a letter of instruction when she goes off this way,—mother and two cousins of mine from the West have been invited to spend the summer at this place on Sugar Hill. Mother wants to go, and I feel that she needs the change, so I shall have to go with her, and give up being a Liberty Girl.”
“The lawyer,” continued Nathalie, who by this point 92 had quite an interested audience, “writes to Mom that Aunt Mary left on one of her strange trips over a year ago and hasn’t come back. Following her wishes—she always leaves a letter with instructions when she goes away like this—Mom and my two cousins from the West have been invited to spend the summer at this place on Sugar Hill. Mom wants to go, and I feel like she needs the change, so I’ll have to go with her and give up being a Liberty Girl.”
“But why should you have to go?” questioned Nita insistently. “Couldn’t your cousin, Lucille, or your sister, Dorothy, go with her? And then, oh, Nathalie, you could stay with us! Oh, that would be the dandiest thing! Oh, say yes, Nathalie; say yes.”
“But why do you have to go?” Nita asked urgently. “Couldn’t your cousin, Lucille, or your sister, Dorothy, go with her? And then, oh, Nathalie, you could stay with us! Oh, that would be the greatest thing! Please say yes, Nathalie; please say yes.”
“Yes, Nita,” smiled Nathalie teasingly, as she placed her arm affectionately about the young girl, “it would be just dandy, as you say, for indeed I would like a rest myself this summer, because when the warm weather comes, housework does drag on one so. But Lucille is going to California to visit some cousins of hers, and has planned to take Dorothy with her. Dorothy is wild to go, and mother would not disappoint the child for the world. And then, too, the lawyer wrote mother that I was to come with her, as my aunt had given instructions. Oh, I just hate to give up my Liberty work!”
“Yes, Nita,” Nathalie smiled playfully, wrapping her arm around the young girl affectionately, “it would be just great, like you say, because I really could use a break this summer. When the warm weather hits, housework really drags on you. But Lucille is going to California to visit some cousins, and she plans to take Dorothy with her. Dorothy is eager to go, and mom wouldn’t let her down for anything. Plus, the lawyer told mom that I was supposed to go with her since my aunt had requested it. Oh, I really hate to give up my Liberty work!”
“But you will be back in the fall, Nathalie,” suggested Helen, “so why not let Lillie Bell take 93 charge—she is vice-president—for the summer? It will give her something to think about, too, for she is possessed with the idea of going on the stage, and her mother is worrying herself ill over it.”
“But you’ll be back in the fall, Nathalie,” Helen suggested, “so why not let Lillie Bell take 93 charge for the summer? She’s the vice-president, after all. It’ll give her something to focus on, too, since she’s really into the idea of going on stage, and her mom is stressing herself out about it.”
“Lillie wants to go on the stage?” repeated Nathalie in surprise. “Why, I didn’t know she had aspirations in that line. But do you think she would care to take charge of the club? O dear!” she broke off abruptly, “we had planned to do so many things this summer.” The girl’s voice was almost a wail.
“Lillie wants to go on stage?” Nathalie repeated in surprise. “I had no idea she was interested in that. But do you think she would want to take over the club? Oh dear!” she suddenly stopped, “we had so many plans for this summer.” The girl’s voice was almost a cry.
“Why not carry your plans to the mountains with you,” inquired her friend, “and form a club of Liberty Girls up there? I am sure there will be some one who will be glad to belong, and you have such a fine way of getting people interested in things, Nathalie.”
“Why not take your plans to the mountains with you,” her friend asked, “and start a club of Liberty Girls up there? I’m sure there will be someone who would love to join, and you have such a great talent for getting people interested in things, Nathalie.”
“Possibly mother may change her mind and decide not to go,” returned Nathalie, brightening a little, “for she wants to be near Dick; you know he is now stationed at the Aviation Camp, Hazlehurst, at Mineola, near Camp Mills. And then, too, she says she hates to leave the house alone for so long a period.”
“Maybe mom will change her mind and decide not to go,” Nathalie said, brightening a little. “She wants to be close to Dick; you know he’s stationed at the Aviation Camp, Hazlehurst, in Mineola, near Camp Mills. Plus, she says she hates leaving the house alone for such a long time.”
“Why don’t you rent the house for the summer?” suggested Helen practically. “You know that Westport is getting to be quite a summer-resort since the new hotel was built on the bluff.”
“Why don’t you rent the house for the summer?” suggested Helen practically. “You know that Westport is becoming quite a summer resort since they built the new hotel on the bluff.”
“No such good luck for us, I’m afraid,” answered Nathalie dejectedly, “but I’ll look up Lillie and see what—” But Helen had hurried away in answer to a 94 call for the captain of the Red Cross Squad. Nathalie stood a moment watching her friend, as she helped one of the “white-veiled” girls into her white head-covering, starred with its cross, and then went slowly out of the booth.
“No good luck for us, I’m afraid,” Nathalie replied sadly, “but I’ll find Lillie and see what—” But Helen had rushed off in response to a call for the captain of the Red Cross Squad. Nathalie paused for a moment, watching her friend as she assisted one of the “white-veiled” girls with her white head covering, marked with its cross, and then slowly exited the booth.
As her eyes swept over the lawn in search of Lillie her glance fell upon the little flag with its Red Cross insignia floating cheerily from the top of the booth she had just left, as if in a salute to its companion cross placed below on the front, so that its arms stretched outward, dividing the booth into two sections.
As she scanned the lawn looking for Lillie, her gaze landed on the small flag with its Red Cross emblem waving cheerfully from the top of the booth she had just exited, almost as if it were saluting the matching cross positioned below on the front, with its arms extending outward to split the booth into two sections.
Ah, here was the poster drawn by Barbara Worth representing a Red Cross nurse standing by an invalid chair, in which sat a soldier boy with bandaged eyes. The girl’s face saddened at its implication, and then she had bent forward and was reading the placard persuasively held forth by the nurse, on which was written:
Ah, here was the poster created by Barbara Worth showing a Red Cross nurse standing next to a wheelchair, where a soldier boy sat with bandaged eyes. The girl’s expression turned somber at its meaning, and then she leaned in to read the placard held out by the nurse, which said:
“Please buy a Liberty bond of me,
It’s for the soldiers across the sea,
Bravely fighting to make the world free,
Wounded, and dying, for you and me.”
“Please buy a Liberty bond from me,
It’s for the soldiers overseas,
Courageously fighting to make the world free,
Hurt and dying, for you and me.”
But now her eyes were held by the poster of a white-robed figure,—representing the Spirit of Liberty which had heralded the pageant of the day before,—waving a flag victoriously above her head, while holding a shield with the Biblical quotation:
But now her eyes were drawn to the poster of a figure in a white robe—symbolizing the Spirit of Liberty that had introduced the parade the day before—waving a flag triumphantly over her head, while holding a shield with the Biblical quote:
“I have fought a good fight ... I have kept the faith.”
“I have fought a good fight ... I have kept the faith.”
95 The face of this water-color sketch of Freedom, although bearing no resemblance to Nita’s, was so bright with hope that it thrilled the girl’s heart with the suggestion that the Allies, by their faith in God and their desire to do right, would finally win a victory over sin and wrong.
95 The face in this watercolor sketch of Freedom, while not looking like Nita’s at all, radiated so much hope that it filled the girl’s heart with the thought that the Allies, through their faith in God and their aim to do what’s right, would ultimately achieve victory over sin and injustice.
At this moment she heard the voice of Nita as she called her to come and see the display of small dolls, miniature Red Cross nurses, to be used as weights, door-holders, or pincushions, which were on sale. But some real dolls, as Nita called them, proved more interesting to Nathalie, because they were the work of a shut-in, as her bit towards winning the war, and because they were impersonations of some of the crowned heads of the allied nations. They were queer little things, stiff and stilted-looking, although several were excellent imitations, especially those of their majesties, King George and Queen Mary, and the little Princess Marie of Belgium.
At that moment, she heard Nita's voice calling her to come and check out the display of small dolls—miniature Red Cross nurses that could be used as weights, doorstops, or pincushions, which were for sale. But some real dolls, as Nita called them, turned out to be more interesting to Nathalie. These dolls were made by a shut-in contributing her bit to the war effort, and they represented some of the crowned heads of the allied nations. They were odd little things, stiff and awkward-looking, although several were excellent likenesses, especially those of King George, Queen Mary, and little Princess Marie of Belgium.
The girl could not forbear giving Shep—a big, tawny-colored collie belonging to the Morrow twins—a love-pat, as he stood in front of the booth with red-hanging tongue and patient resignation in his brown eyes, while several young nurses fussed over him. They were trying to fasten a strip of white cloth around the center of his body, with a red cross on each side, in imitation of a war-dog who had served with a Red Cross hospital in France, and who had become 96 famous by his acts of bravery, running into shell-holes and dug-outs in search of wounded soldiers.
The girl couldn't help but give Shep—a big, golden-brown collie owned by the Morrow twins—a gentle pat as he stood in front of the booth, his tongue hanging out and patient resignation in his brown eyes, while several young nurses attended to him. They were trying to wrap a strip of white cloth around his middle, with a red cross on each side, imitating a war dog who had served with a Red Cross hospital in France and had become 96 famous for his acts of bravery, running into shell holes and dugouts to search for wounded soldiers.
But Shep was no patriot, and evidently did not realize the honor of that big red cross, for suddenly he gave his huge body a shake, slipped from beneath the fussing fingers, and bounded away after his young masters, leaving a gentle friend to humanity lying sprawling on the grass.
But Shep wasn't a patriot and clearly didn't appreciate the significance of that big red cross. Suddenly, he shook his massive body, slipped out from under the fussing hands, and dashed off after his young masters, leaving a kind friend to humanity sprawled out on the grass.
As Nathalie turned, her eyes traveled slowly from one booth to another. There were seven of them, three on the left and three on the right of the Red Cross booth, which was in the center of the lawn, at one end, fronting its sister booths. The war booth, on the left, ablaze with the flags of the Allies, was curiously decorated on its front and posts with the paper coverings from magazines and books. On its counter were displayed the latest war books,—all donated after a sharp drive by the hostesses, the Camp Fire Girls, who wore embroidered deerskin robes aglisten with many-colored beads, and trench-caps stuck jauntily on one side of their heads, which gave them a very coquettish and natty appearance.
As Nathalie turned, her eyes slowly scanned each booth. There were seven of them, three on the left and three on the right of the Red Cross booth, which was at the center of the lawn, facing its sister booths. The war booth on the left, bright with the flags of the Allies, was interestingly decorated on its front and posts with paper from magazines and books. On its counter were the latest war books— all donated after a strong push by the hostesses, the Camp Fire Girls, who wore embroidered deerskin robes sparkling with colorful beads and trench caps tilted playfully to one side, giving them a very stylish and charming look.
Scrap-books, in which were pasted funny verses, tidbits of news from all over the world, with many-colored pictures, and songs and rhymes to amuse the convalescents in the hospitals, were also on sale. Little candles of paper added to the attractiveness of this booth’s display, while one or two Camp Fire Girls were 97 in attendance, who, on the payment of a nickel, taught the uninitiated the knack of making these trench-candles.
Scrapbooks filled with funny verses, bits of news from around the world, colorful pictures, and songs and rhymes to entertain the patients in hospitals were also for sale. Small paper candles made the display at this booth even more appealing, while a couple of Camp Fire Girls were 97 present, who, for the cost of a nickel, showed beginners how to make these trench candles.
But the booth that held the first place in Nathalie’s heart was the Liberty-Garden booth, a leaf-embowered tent. Here were brilliant splashes of color from the vegetables piled on wicker mats, as carrots, turnips, beans, onions, beets, and other products, artistically softened by the light green of lettuce, the red of beet-leaves, and the delicate, lacy leaves of the carrot.
But the booth that held the top spot in Nathalie’s heart was the Liberty-Garden booth, a tent surrounded by greenery. Here were vibrant bursts of color from the vegetables stacked on wicker mats, including carrots, turnips, beans, onions, beets, and other produce, artistically softened by the light green of lettuce, the red of beet leaves, and the delicate, lacy leaves of the carrot.
Here and there herbs tied in bunches, as thyme, caraway seeds, catnip, sweet lavender, and other herbs, suggested the days of long ago, when these little garden accessories held a higher place with the housewife as necessities of the day. Unwieldy tomatoes and potatoes, lazily resting on plates, added to the picturesque effect of the display, as well as the festoons of peppers, radishes, parsnips, and vegetables of similar character that were hung from side to side of the tent.
Here and there, herbs like thyme, caraway seeds, catnip, and sweet lavender were tied in bunches, reminding us of days gone by when these little garden essentials were more important to housewives. Bulky tomatoes and potatoes lounged on plates, enhancing the charming look of the display, along with strings of peppers, radishes, parsnips, and other similar vegetables hanging from one side of the tent to the other.
This booth was certainly a brilliant showing of the work done by the Pioneers. Oh, how they had scrubbed and polished those vegetables to bring out their colors, so they would not be messy or huddled-looking! And the time it had taken to print the little labels so neatly fastened to each exhibit!
This booth was definitely an impressive display of the work done by the Pioneers. Oh, how they had cleaned and polished those vegetables to highlight their colors, ensuring they didn’t look messy or cramped! And the time it took to neatly attach the little labels to each exhibit!
Yes, through the sweat of her brow Nathalie had come to realize that gardening was not merely a matter of digging, plowing, or even planting or weeding, 98 but that it meant straying into many paths of knowledge that hitherto had been closed to her. Then, too, there was the trench warfare, as she called the unceasing onslaught against the bugs, insects, and garden slugs, by a constant fire of hand-grenades and bombs, as the girls had come to call the spraying and powdering of the plants.
Yes, through her hard work, Nathalie realized that gardening wasn't just about digging, plowing, planting, or weeding, 98 but involved exploring many areas of knowledge that had previously been inaccessible to her. Then there was the constant battle, which she referred to as trench warfare, against the bugs, insects, and garden slugs, fought with what the girls called hand-grenades and bombs—the spraying and dusting of the plants.
Ah, there was Lillie, with a number of Girl Pioneers, who, in bright-colored overalls and shirt-waists, and coquettish little sunbonnets tied under their chins, were rather gay editions of farmerettes, as they stood in picturesque attitudes, with their rakes and hoes. But a moment later Lillie was forgotten, for as Nathalie reached the booth she burst into a sudden squeal of delight on suddenly perceiving, on the top of a wall of canned vegetables, a little green imp, ingeniously made from a string-bean. He not only had a most rakish air, with his tiny soldier-hat cocked on one side, as he stood at attention with a flag for a gun, but he held forth a little placard on which was written:
Ah, there was Lillie, along with a group of Girl Pioneers, who, in brightly colored overalls and shirts, and cute little sunbonnets tied under their chins, looked like cheerful versions of farm girls as they posed with their rakes and hoes. But a moment later, Lillie was forgotten because as Nathalie reached the booth, she let out a sudden squeal of excitement when she spotted, on top of a wall of canned vegetables, a little green imp cleverly made from a string bean. He not only had a very dapper look, with his tiny soldier hat tilted to one side, standing at attention with a flag for a gun, but he also held out a small sign that said:
“Little Beans, little Beans, whence did you come?”
“We came from the ground at the sound of the drum.”
“Little Beans, little Beans, why are you here?”
“We were scalded and canned by a Girl Pioneer.”
“Little Beans, little Beans, where did you come from?”
“We came from the earth at the beat of the drum.”
“Little Beans, little Beans, why are you here?”
“We were boiled and canned by a Girl Pioneer.”
“Oh, who wrote that?” merrily inquired the girl of one of the Pioneers, for it was something she had not seen before.
“Oh, who wrote that?” the girl asked cheerfully, addressing one of the Pioneers, since it was something she hadn't seen before.
“Why, one of the Pioneer directors,” answered the 99 farmerette smilingly, pleased at the young president’s surprise.
“Why, one of the Pioneer directors,” replied the 99 farmerette with a smile, happy to see the young president’s surprise.
A moment’s inspection of the fine display of canned goods, and Nathalie turned to seek Lillie, but that young lady had mysteriously disappeared. One of the girls, suggesting that Lillie had gone to the Liberty Tea booth to regale herself with a cup of tea, Nathalie hurried on to that booth, where the Daughters of Liberty, attired in quaint, old-time costumes, dispensed that beverage.
A quick look at the impressive display of canned goods, and Nathalie turned to find Lillie, but that young woman had mysteriously vanished. One of the girls suggested that Lillie had gone to the Liberty Tea booth to enjoy a cup of tea, so Nathalie hurried over to that booth, where the Daughters of Liberty, dressed in charming, old-fashioned outfits, were serving the drink.
But Lillie was not drinking tea, and again Nathalie hurried across the lawn, on her way to the opposite booth, a mass of vines and flowers, the result of the labors of the Girl Scouts in their garden, which they had named the Garden of Freedom.
But Lillie wasn’t drinking tea, and once more Nathalie rushed across the lawn, heading to the booth on the other side—a tangle of vines and flowers, the outcome of the Girl Scouts’ efforts in their garden, which they had called the Garden of Freedom.
Ah, here was Lillie talking to a brown-clad soldier-boy by the big Liberty pole that had been erected in the center of the lawn, facing the Red Cross booth. It flew the Stars and Stripes and the club’s ensign, a little red banner blazoned with the white stars of hope, while a big liberty bell was hung from a cross-beam. On its flag-bedecked platform Carol Tyke was stationed as the bell-ringer, for later in the afternoon she was to strike the big bell to announce some patriotic speech, or fiery oration, to be made in a sharp drive to sell the Liberty bonds.
Ah, there was Lillie talking to a soldier in brown by the big Liberty pole that had been set up in the middle of the lawn, facing the Red Cross booth. It displayed the Stars and Stripes along with the club’s flag, a small red banner adorned with white stars of hope, while a large liberty bell hung from a cross-beam. On its flag-decorated platform, Carol Tyke stood as the bell-ringer, because later in the afternoon she was going to ring the big bell to signal some patriotic speech or passionate talk aimed at promoting the sale of Liberty bonds.
Lillie, seeing Nathalie coming in her direction, advanced towards her, and immediately presented her 100 soldier-friend, and in a few moments the three young people were having a sprightly chat. But Nathalie, soon recalled to the business on hand, turned and told the young vice-president why she was so anxious to see her.
Lillie, noticing Nathalie approaching, walked towards her and quickly introduced her 100 soldier-friend. In no time, the three young people were having a lively conversation. However, Nathalie, reminded of the task at hand, turned and explained to the young vice-president why she was so eager to see her.
“Yes; yes, indeed, Nathalie,” cried the girl quickly. “I am Hooverizing this summer, and as I do not expect to leave town until late in the fall, I shall be most delighted to accept the office of acting president for the summer.”
“Yes; yes, absolutely, Nathalie,” the girl exclaimed quickly. “I'm doing my part this summer, and since I don't plan on leaving town until late in the fall, I would be thrilled to take on the role of acting president for the summer.”
A few moments later, relieved of her anxiety as to what would become of the Liberty Girls in case she went to the mountains, Nathalie thanked her friend, and hastened over to the Garden of Freedom, where nasturtiums, pink poppies, sweet peas, phlox, and other old-fashioned blooms peered at her in a riotous flaunt of color.
A few moments later, feeling relieved about what would happen to the Liberty Girls if she went to the mountains, Nathalie thanked her friend and hurried over to the Garden of Freedom, where nasturtiums, pink poppies, sweet peas, phlox, and other classic flowers looked at her in a vibrant display of color.
The Girl Scouts, who were charmingly gotten up to represent flowers, beamed with pleasure as their president complimented them on the splendid display they made, and the honor they had won by their hard labor. They not only sold cut flowers, but potted plants, as well as toothsome sweets, made without sugar, they declared, as they coaxingly tempted Nathalie to sample a few.
The Girl Scouts, dressed up to represent flowers, smiled with delight as their president praised them for the amazing display they created and the honor they earned through their hard work. They sold not only cut flowers but also potted plants, along with delicious sweets that they said were made without sugar, as they playfully encouraged Nathalie to try some.
But she had time only for a nibble or two, and then she was off to the knitting booth, where a bewildering assortment of sweaters, helmets, mufflers, socks, and 101 other knitted articles stared at her in a “homespuney” sort of way that reminded her of her grandmother. She remembered how, as a child, she used to watch her as she sat by the fire knitting, and the fun it was when the ball went rolling under the table and she scrambled after it.
But she only had time for a bite or two, and then she was off to the knitting booth, where a confusing mix of sweaters, hats, scarves, socks, and 101 other knitted items looked at her in a cozy way that reminded her of her grandmother. She remembered how, as a kid, she used to watch her sitting by the fire knitting, and how much fun it was when the yarn ball rolled under the table and she chased after it.
No, she could not hurry by this booth, for Marie’s eyes, big but shy, and bright with a beautiful soft blackness, shone so pleadingly from the clear pallor of her ivory-tinted skin, that they could not be resisted. “Oh, Mees President,” cried the girl in her soft musical voice, “I shall tell somethings on you. I likes that you look at mine table—iss it not shmardt, hein? My mamma she says it iss stylish. Shure, und the peoples—oh, they buys und buys lots and lots of sweaters, und mufflers, und the helmets—yiss, ma’am, they have a glad on them, for they go fast mit the wind.”
No, she couldn’t just walk past this booth, because Marie’s eyes, large yet shy, and sparkling with a lovely soft darkness, looked so pleadingly from the clear pale glow of her ivory-colored skin that they were impossible to resist. “Oh, Miss President,” the girl exclaimed in her soft musical voice, “I have some things to tell you. I like that you’re looking at my table—isn’t it nice, huh? My mom says it’s stylish. Sure, and the people—oh, they’re buying and buying lots and lots of sweaters, and scarves, and helmets—yes, ma’am, they’re happy with them, because they go fast with the wind.”
“Yes, isn’t it lovely, Marie,” returned Nathalie, smiling into the limpid eyes, “to think that every one is so patriotic, and so anxious to make the soldier-boys who are to fight for us, happy and comfortable?”
“Yeah, isn’t it great, Marie,” Nathalie said with a smile, looking into the clear eyes, “to think that everyone is so patriotic and so eager to make the soldier boys who are fighting for us happy and comfortable?”
“Shure, Mees, that iss because they are lovin’ much mit the liberty. Oh, here comes mine papa. He buys sweater of me. I likes that you speak mit mine papa, Mees,” exclaimed the little Jewess shyly, as her eyes again pleaded with Nathalie.
“Sure, Miss, that's because they love freedom so much. Oh, here comes my dad. He’s getting me a sweater. I like that you talk to my dad, Miss,” the little Jewish girl exclaimed shyly, her eyes once again pleading with Nathalie.
The young president turned, to see a rather crumpled, mussy-looking little man by her side, who 102 stared at her with sudden embarrassment as she quickly extended her hand in a cordial greeting to him.
The young president turned to see a somewhat disheveled little man next to her, who 102 looked at her with sudden embarrassment as she quickly reached out her hand in a friendly greeting.
Mr. Katzkamof seized the outstretched hand and shook it nervously, while his bright black eyes beamed with good-natured surprise. “I be glad to meet young Mees,” he cried hurriedly, “who makes mine little girl be so happy. She sing, she smile all the day mit the liberty that you gives to her.”
Mr. Katzkamof grabbed the outstretched hand and shook it nervously, while his bright black eyes sparkled with cheerful surprise. “I’m glad to meet young Mees,” he exclaimed quickly, “who makes my little girl so happy. She sings, she smiles all day with the freedom that you give her.”
“But I didn’t give it to her,” answered Nathalie quickly. “God gave it to her. I am only trying to show her how to give it to those who haven’t learned what liberty means. But you,” she added quickly, “you are an American,—you love the liberty, too?” The girl raised her eyebrows inquiringly, somewhat frightened at her temerity, for she suddenly remembered that she had heard Edith say that the newsdealer was a fiery socialist.
“But I didn’t give it to her,” Nathalie replied quickly. “God gave it to her. I’m just trying to show her how to share it with those who don’t understand what freedom means. But you,” she added quickly, “you’re American—you love freedom too?” The girl raised her eyebrows in question, feeling a bit uneasy about her boldness, as she suddenly remembered hearing Edith say that the newsdealer was a passionate socialist.
“Yes, Mees, I be an American. I vote for the President. But I no like the war,” the black eyes hardened. “It makes me cold in mine heart. I think it no right for the people to fight mit one und the other, likes the cat und the dog. They spill much of the blood. I am lovin’ mit the peace. I no fight.”
“Yes, Mees, I’m American. I vote for the President. But I don’t like the war,” the dark eyes hardened. “It makes my heart cold. I think it’s wrong for people to fight with each other, like cats and dogs. They spill so much blood. I believe in peace. I don’t want to fight.”
“Yes, it is a terrible thing to have to fight and kill one another,” replied the girl sadly. “And the mothers,—oh, I feel so sorry for them, when they have to give up their boys to go and fight. But it must be done,” she added valiantly, although there was a catch 103 in her breath as the thought of Dick came to her.
“Yes, it’s awful that we have to fight and kill each other,” the girl replied sadly. “And the mothers—oh, I really feel for them when they have to let their boys go off to war. But it has to be done,” she added bravely, although there was a hitch in her breath as she thought of Dick. 103
“Oh, no, Mees, if all the people say no fight, they be no soldiers, they be no war, we have the peace.”
“Oh, no, Mees, if everyone says no fight, there are no soldiers, there is no war, we have peace.”
“Yes, but what kind of a peace,” exclaimed the girl. And then a sudden thought looming big. “Ah, Mr. Katzkamof, you love the Christ. Did He not die to make men free? Shall we not die to give liberty to the world?”
“Yes, but what kind of peace?” the girl exclaimed. Then a sudden thought struck her. “Ah, Mr. Katzkamof, you love Christ. Didn’t He die to set people free? Shouldn’t we die to give liberty to the world?”
“No, Mees, I ain’t lovin’ mit Krisht. I make nothings mit Him.” The man’s tone was surly, although he shrugged his shoulders carelessly.
“No, Mees, I don’t love him. I don’t do anything with him.” The man’s tone was grumpy, even though he shrugged his shoulders nonchalantly.
“I beg your pardon,” cried Nathalie with reddening cheeks. And then, as if to recover lost ground. “But you believe in God, your God, the God who brought the Israelites dry-shod over the Red Sea? And did He not command you to fight and drive out the enemies of God, the heathen, who did not serve him, and who were in the Promised Land? And is not the Kaiser a Hun, a heathen, when he tortures and kills little children and women? Yes,” continued Blue Robin, impelled by some indefinable feeling to rush blindly on, “this is God’s war. He has commanded us to fight, to do away with tyranny and oppression. They must be overcome, so that all the world shall have liberty, and then,—why then we shall have peace, a peace that the Germans can’t destroy.” And then Nathalie smiled, although her heart was leaping in great bounds at her sudden boldness. But another thought had come, and, 104 turning towards her companion, for she had turned to leave him, she added smilingly, “And I am sure that you are big-hearted enough to be willing to fight, so that you can give to others the liberty that gives so much happiness to you.”
“I’m sorry,” Nathalie exclaimed, her cheeks flushed. Then, as if to regain her confidence, she continued, “But you believe in God, your God, the God who led the Israelites safely across the Red Sea? And didn’t He command you to fight and drive out the enemies of God, the heathens, who didn’t serve Him, and who occupied the Promised Land? And isn’t the Kaiser a Hun, a heathen, when he tortures and kills little children and women? Yes,” Blue Robin continued, driven by some vague feeling to continue without restraint, “this is God’s war. He has commanded us to fight, to eliminate tyranny and oppression. They must be defeated, so that everyone in the world can have liberty, and then—well, then we will have peace, a peace that the Germans can’t destroy.” And then Nathalie smiled, even though her heart was racing at her sudden boldness. But another thought occurred to her, and, turning towards her companion—she had turned to leave him—she added with a smile, “And I’m sure you’re big-hearted enough to want to fight, so you can give others the freedom that brings you so much happiness.”
The man’s eyes had brightened with a sudden strange light, and he opened his mouth to reply, but Nathalie had passed on, angry at herself for being so outspoken. But O dear! she felt so sorry for those poor ignorant people, who thought and did violent things just because they couldn’t reason, and didn’t understand.
The man's eyes lit up with a sudden, unusual brightness, and he opened his mouth to respond, but Nathalie had moved on, frustrated with herself for being so blunt. But oh no! she felt so sorry for those poor, clueless people, who thought and acted violently just because they couldn't think clearly and didn't understand.
But she had reached the Love booth, the name given by the girls to the tent where the comfort-kits were sold. By a pile on a seat in the rear she knew that business had been brisk, and that people had not only donated kits and then bought them back again, but had patriotically returned them to the sellers, so that they could be given to the soldier-boys.
But she had arrived at the Love booth, the name the girls had given to the tent where the comfort kits were sold. By a stack on a seat in the back, she realized that business had been good, and that people had not only donated kits and then bought them back, but had also generously returned them to the sellers so that they could be given to the soldiers.
Blue Robin stood a moment and watched the girls, who, busy as bees, were selling their wares, as they chatted merrily over their sales, and then she turned to cross the lawn to the Red Cross booth. She had not gone more than a step or so, however, when a sudden clang of the liberty bell brought her to a halt. Oh, some one had bought a Liberty bond; yes, three bonds, for the three clangs of the bell announced the number sold. Oh, it was still ringing! What did it mean?
Blue Robin paused for a moment to watch the girls, who were buzzing around like bees, happily selling their goods and chatting about their sales. Then she turned to cross the lawn to the Red Cross booth. She hadn't taken more than a step when a loud clang of the liberty bell stopped her in her tracks. Oh, someone had bought a Liberty bond; yes, three bonds, because the three clangs of the bell signaled the number sold. Oh, it was still ringing! What did that mean?
105 She started to rush towards the booth where the bonds were being sold, and then glanced back at the booth she had just left, to see that the girls, in their eagerness to know who was buying so many bonds,—for the bell was still clanging,—had dropped their work and were rushing in frantic haste towards the booth.
105 She hurried toward the booth where the bonds were being sold and glanced back at the booth she had just left. She noticed that the girls, eager to find out who was buying so many bonds—since the bell was still ringing—had abandoned their work and were rushing in a frenzy towards the booth.
Nathalie smiled, and turned to follow after the group of girls who were speeding past her, when a sudden thought leaped into her mind. She halted and again glanced back at the Comfort-Kit booth. Not a girl was to be seen. Ah, now was her chance to get rid of that letter. The next moment she had turned and was flying back to the now deserted booth.
Nathalie smiled and turned to catch up with the group of girls rushing past her when a sudden thought hit her. She stopped and looked back at the Comfort-Kit booth. Not a single girl was in sight. Ah, this was her chance to get rid of that letter. In the next moment, she turned around and raced back to the now empty booth.
CHAPTER VII
THE VISIT TO CAMP MILLS
As Nathalie reached the booth she glanced quickly about; no one was in sight. With a hurried movement she drew a letter from the bag that hung from her wrist, and after glancing at the written words, “To whomsoever this Comfort Kit may come, greetings and good wishes,” she slipped out the enclosure and slowly read:
As Nathalie reached the booth, she quickly looked around; no one was in sight. With a swift motion, she pulled a letter from the bag hanging from her wrist, and after glancing at the writing, “To whoever receives this Comfort Kit, greetings and good wishes,” she took out the enclosure and slowly read:
“Dear Mr. Soldier Boy:
“Dear Soldier Boy:
“Please remember that you are going to fight under the banner of the Cross, which means that you belong to a Christian nation whose motto is, ‘In God we Trust.’ Hold to the feeling that you are a gentleman by the culture—not ‘Kultur’—that comes from kindliness, courtesy, and consideration for all people, so please don’t kill anybody unless you have to.
“Please remember that you are going to fight under the banner of the Cross, which means that you belong to a Christian nation whose motto is, ‘In God we Trust.’ Hold on to the feeling that you are a gentleman by the culture—not ‘Kultur’—that comes from kindness, courtesy, and consideration for all people, so please don’t kill anyone unless you have to."
“Don’t forget that you are an American patriot, and that your heart is seared with the Stars and Stripes, which means the red of courage, the white of purity, and the blue of royal devotion to the right, and starred with the divine fire of liberty.
“Don’t forget that you are an American patriot, and that your heart is marked by the Stars and Stripes, which represents the red of courage, the white of purity, and the blue of deep commitment to what’s right, and is adorned with the divine flame of liberty.”
“Remember you are fighting for the mothers and children: yes, fighting so the mothers and children of all nations may have liberty and peace. Be strong and 107 brave in the thought that this war is to maintain the principles back of our flag, the ideals given to us by the founders of this nation. As Christ died to make men holy, so these men suffered and shed their blood that you might have the joy and independence that comes from the liberty which God has given to us. Be happy with the thought that no matter what comes to you you will not have lived in vain, but will have fought for the grandest and greatest things in life,—liberty and humanity. The best of luck to you,
“Remember, you are fighting for mothers and children: yes, fighting so that mothers and children from all nations can have liberty and peace. Be strong and brave in the knowledge that this war is to uphold the principles behind our flag, the ideals handed down to us by the founders of this nation. Just as Christ died to make humanity holy, these men suffered and shed their blood so you could experience the joy and independence that comes from the liberty God has granted us. Take comfort in the thought that no matter what happens, you will not have lived in vain, but will have fought for the greatest and most noble things in life—liberty and humanity. Wishing you the best of luck,
Nathalie returned the letter to the envelope, and then rummaged under a pile of kits that had been filled and fastened, ready for the boys at camp, until she found one way down beneath the pile. She quickly opened it. Then something stayed her hand.
Nathalie put the letter back in the envelope and started searching through a stack of kits that were packed and ready for the boys at camp until she found one deep down at the bottom. She opened it quickly. Then something stopped her hand.
“No, it will not be a wicked thing to do, for it can’t do any harm,” she reasoned doubtfully; “and yet I just hate to do it, but I feel that I must do something to try to help some boy, who, perhaps, has a lagging spirit, whose heart may fail him when he thinks of what is before him, or who, perhaps, fails to realize the greatness of what we are fighting for, the way I did. This letter may spur him on, give him courage to do his best, perhaps, when he realizes the truth. And no one will know who Blue Robin is, and yet it will do for a name, as mother always says it is not considered fair to send an anonymous letter to any one, and I surely would not sign my own.”
“No, it’s not going to be a bad thing to do, because it won’t cause any harm,” she thought uncertainly; “and yet I just hate the idea of doing it, but I feel like I have to do something to help some boy who maybe feels down, whose heart might sink when he thinks about what’s ahead, or who might not understand the significance of what we’re fighting for, like I didn’t. This letter might motivate him, give him the courage to do his best, maybe, when he realizes the truth. And no one will know who Blue Robin is, and it works as a name, since mom always says it’s not right to send an anonymous letter to anyone, and I definitely wouldn’t sign my own.”
Nathalie heaved a deep sigh, and then, as if she 108 would not let herself have any more misgivings, she seized the letter and dropped it into the bag. A moment later she was on her way to the Red Cross booth, to learn who had won the prize for buying the first Liberty bond.
Nathalie took a deep breath, and then, as if she wouldn’t allow herself any more doubts, she grabbed the letter and tossed it into the bag. A moment later, she was headed to the Red Cross booth to find out who had won the prize for purchasing the first Liberty bond.
“Oh, Nathalie, Dr. Morrow bought fifteen bonds!” came in an excited chorus from a group of girls, who were standing in front of the booth, chatting excitedly over this unlooked-for event.
“Oh, Nathalie, Dr. Morrow bought fifteen bonds!” came an excited chorus from a group of girls who were standing in front of the booth, chatting eagerly about this surprising news.
“Fifteen? Oh, isn’t that just too lovely,” answered the girl. And then she hastily made her way towards the Morrow group, where the doctor, with the twins clinging excitedly to his coat-tails,—trying to climb up his back, he declared,—was signing the bond-certificate that made each one of them the possessor of five bonds, and his wife the owner of five more.
“Fifteen? Oh, that’s just wonderful,” the girl replied. She quickly headed over to the Morrow group, where the doctor—who said that the twins were excitedly trying to climb up his back while clinging to his coat-tails—was signing the bond certificate that made each of them the owner of five bonds, and his wife the owner of five more.
A Liberty button was now fastened to the doctor’s coat as a guarantee that he was a good patriot, and then he was presented with the prize, a box of Liberty candy from the Girl Scouts’ booth, something he never indulged in, he laughingly asserted, as he stood with the box in his hand, lookingly helplessly at it. But the twins did, and they quickly relieved him of it and were soon blissfully happy as they munched on the sweets.
A Liberty button was now pinned to the doctor’s coat to show he was a good patriot, and then he was given his prize, a box of Liberty candy from the Girl Scouts’ booth, something he claimed he never indulged in as he stood there holding the box, looking a bit helpless. But the twins did indulge, and they quickly took it from him and were soon happily munching on the sweets.
A good beginning must have brought the girls good luck, for as soon as Mrs. Van Vorst heard of this sale she followed the doctor’s example and invested in ten bonds, five for herself and five for Nita. A few more 109 followed suit, some buying two or three, while others only took one, but every little helped, the girl delightedly cried, jubilantly happy at the many sales they were having. And then a surprise came, as her cousin Lucille pushed her way through those surrounding the booth, and bought three bonds,—one for herself, one for Dorothy, and one for Nathalie.
A good start must have brought the girls good luck because as soon as Mrs. Van Vorst heard about this sale, she followed the doctor’s lead and bought ten bonds, five for herself and five for Nita. A few more 109 jumped in, some buying two or three, while others just got one, but every little bit helped, the girl joyfully exclaimed, thrilled by the many sales they were having. Then a surprise came when her cousin Lucille pushed her way through the crowd around the booth and purchased three bonds—one for herself, one for Dorothy, and one for Nathalie.
“Oh, Lucille, don’t do that!” cried distressed Nathalie with flushed cheeks. “It is too much to give me.”
“Oh, Lucille, don’t do that!” cried a distressed Nathalie with flushed cheeks. “It’s too much to give me.”
“Indeed, it is not,” insisted Lucille smilingly, who could be very generous at times, as her cousin knew by the gift of her Pioneer uniform. “I think you have worked hard enough for these Liberty Girls to have that much at any rate.” And several must have agreed with her,—judging by the nods and claps that came from those who were standing near and heard this remark.
“Of course it isn’t,” Lucille said with a smile, showing her generous side, as her cousin knew from the gift of her Pioneer uniform. “I believe you’ve worked hard enough for these Liberty Girls to deserve that much, at least.” Several others seemed to agree—judging by the nods and applause from those standing nearby who heard her comment.
As Nathalie, sometime later, sat gathering up her certificates,—she had been kept busy all the afternoon making out the little blue and pink receipts that certified as to her many sales,—Lillie came flying up.
As Nathalie sat down later to organize her certificates—she had spent the whole afternoon filling out the little blue and pink receipts that confirmed her many sales—Lillie came rushing over.
“Oh, Nathalie, hasn’t it been a big success!” she cried with gleaming eyes. “And the patriotic speeches and recitations have been just fine. But, O dear!” she added with a sudden note of disappointment in her voice, “there are a lot of things that have not been sold. Of course they will all go to the boys at camp, 110 but I was in hopes that everything would be sold, so as to add to our fund for the bonds.” For those who had purchased that afternoon had patriotically returned the things they had bought, as their donation for the boys at camp, thus giving the girls an opportunity to use the purchase money for Liberty bonds.
“Oh, Nathalie, hasn’t this been such a huge success!” she exclaimed with bright eyes. “And the patriotic speeches and readings have been amazing. But, oh dear!” she added with a sudden hint of disappointment in her voice, “there are so many things that haven’t sold. Of course, they will all go to the boys at camp, 110 but I was hoping we could sell everything to boost our fund for the bonds.” Those who had bought items that afternoon had patriotically returned their purchases as donations for the boys at camp, giving the girls a chance to use the money from the sales for Liberty bonds.
“Yes, we have several sweaters and mufflers left,” announced Barbara, who had been talking to Nathalie, “and poor Captain Molly is quite disappointed, as she was so sure that we should sell everything we had.”
“Yes, we have a few sweaters and scarves left,” announced Barbara, who had been speaking with Nathalie, “and poor Captain Molly is really disappointed, as she was so sure we would sell out of everything we had.”
“And we have a number of flowers and potted plants that have not been disposed of,” added a Girl Scout in a disappointed voice.
“And we have a bunch of flowers and potted plants that we still haven't gotten rid of,” added a Girl Scout in a disappointed tone.
“But we can give those to the hospital,” answered Nathalie quickly, “and give some sorrowful heart a bit of cheer.”
“But we can donate those to the hospital,” Nathalie replied quickly, “and bring a little joy to someone who’s feeling down.”
“Well, we have some boxes of candy, too,” added the Girl Scout dolefully, “and they won’t do for the sick ones for—”
“Well, we have some boxes of candy, too,” added the Girl Scout sadly, “and they aren’t suitable for the sick ones because—”
“And we have some books left over,” interrupted another bystander.
“And we have some books left over,” interrupted another person nearby.
“Oh, I have an idea, a big one, too,” broke in Helen, her eyes all of a glow. “Why could we not have an auction sale? Of course a good many will return what they buy,—and I think it will be lots of fun.”
“Oh, I have an idea, a really great one,” Helen interrupted, her eyes shining with excitement. “What if we had an auction sale? Sure, many people will probably return what they buy, but I think it’ll be a lot of fun.”
This idea was voted a good one, and a few minutes later Dr. Morrow announced from the Liberty platform that he was to act as auctioneer. A few brief 111 words of explanation and the auction was on. First a box of candy was bid for, which, after much laughter, was finally knocked down for one dollar, a much larger sum than it would have brought earlier in the afternoon. A few books were now disposed of, a pile of canned vegetables, a number of comfort-kits, and so on, until everything, even to the posters and decorations, had been auctioned off.
This idea received positive feedback, and a few minutes later, Dr. Morrow announced from the Liberty platform that he would be the auctioneer. After a few brief explanations, the auction began. The first item up for bid was a box of candy, which, after a lot of laughter, was finally sold for one dollar, a much higher price than it would have fetched earlier that afternoon. A few books were sold next, followed by a pile of canned vegetables, several comfort kits, and so on, until everything, even the posters and decorations, was auctioned off.
As the girls were counting up the proceeds of this expected sale, old Deacon Perkins came up, and, after a few hems and haws, told the girls that if they wanted to make a raid on his cherry-trees the next morning, they could do so, and carry the fruit to the boys. They were to visit Camp Mills the following afternoon, and present their many donations to the young soldiers.
As the girls were tallying the money from the anticipated sale, old Deacon Perkins approached them and, after some uncertainty, told the girls that if they wanted to raid his cherry trees the next morning, they could go ahead and take the fruit to the boys. They were set to visit Camp Mills the next afternoon to present their generous donations to the young soldiers.
“Oh, isn’t that jolly good luck!” “Oh, that’s just glorious!” and many similar outbursts of joy caused the old deacon to beam with complacent benignity. The Sport, with a little giggle, whispered to Lillie that she knew old Perkins had never felt so goody-goody in his life before,—he was called the meanest man in town.
“Oh, isn’t that really great luck!” “Oh, that’s just fantastic!” and many similar expressions of joy made the old deacon smile with self-satisfied kindness. The Sport, with a little giggle, whispered to Lillie that she knew old Perkins had never felt so good in his life before—he was known as the stingiest man in town.
“Yes, girls,” admonished Nathalie, after the old deacon had been overwhelmed with thanks, and had gone smilingly on his way, “you will all have to get up very early to-morrow morning if you want those cherries, for you know we are to start for Mineola at 112 an early hour, for it is some drive. Mrs. Morrow kindly offered me her car, so I asked her to be one of the chaperons. Mrs. Van Vorst is the other, and then Grace, you know, will take some of the party in her car.
“Yes, girls,” Nathalie said after the old deacon had been filled with thanks and had walked away smiling, “you all need to get up really early tomorrow morning if you want those cherries, because we’re set to leave for Mineola at 112 an early hour since it’s quite a drive. Mrs. Morrow generously offered me her car, so I asked her to be one of the chaperones. Mrs. Van Vorst is the other one, and then, Grace, you know, will take some of the group in her car.
“I am sorry,” her face sobered a little, “but there will only be room in the three cars for the officers of the Club, and,—yes, I think we ought to ask Marie, Captain Molly,” she explained, “to ride with us, for you know, of course, that she can’t walk far. The rest of you girls will have to go by train, that is, those who want to go.”
“I’m sorry,” her expression became serious, “but there’s only enough space in the three cars for the Club officers, and—yes, I think we should invite Marie, Captain Molly,” she clarified, “to ride with us, because you know she can’t walk very far. The rest of you girls will need to take the train, that is, if you want to go.”
“But we all want to go,” called out several voices eagerly, “and we expected to go by train, for Lillie and Helen have given us a time-table, so we shall know just what to do, and we’ll meet you at the camp.”
“But we all want to go,” several voices called out eagerly, “and we thought we’d take the train, because Lillie and Helen gave us a schedule, so we’ll know exactly what to do, and we’ll meet you at the campsite.”
The raid on the cherry-trees proved “a lark,” Edith declared, as, an hour or so before the girls started in the cars, she and Grace whizzed up in the car, filled with several baskets of cherries. A little later the three cars started for the camp, passing two or three groups of the girls on the road, en route for the depot. But they were soon left far behind as the cars whirled along the Merrick road, every one in the best of spirits, the little newsdealer so buoyantly happy to think that she was riding in the same car with the young president, that it did one good to look at her face, keenly aglow with delight.
The raid on the cherry trees turned out to be “a blast,” Edith declared, as she and Grace zipped up in the car, loaded with several baskets of cherries, about an hour before the girls set off in their cars. A little later, the three cars headed to the camp, passing a few groups of girls along the way to the depot. But they quickly left them behind as the cars sped down the Merrick road, everyone in great spirits, especially the little newsdealer who was beaming with happiness at the thought of riding in the same car as the young president. It was a joy to see her face, glowing with excitement.
113 Nathalie’s eyes were sparkling, too, for the little Jewess had just cried, “Bend down your head, Mees President, for I likes I shall whisper mit you in your ear.” And then, as the girl had smilingly complied, she heard the happy announcement, “My papa, he says like that you iss my friend, und so my papa he buy me a Liberty bond, for he says you are loving now mit me.” The owner of the pink ear into which these words had been loudly whispered, dimpled with pleasure, and then came the thought, “O dear, I wonder if my little liberty lecture had anything to do with papa’s buying the bond?”
113 Nathalie’s eyes were sparkling too, because the little Jewish girl had just exclaimed, “Bend down your head, Ms. President, because I want to whisper in your ear.” And then, as the girl smiled and leaned down, she heard the cheerful announcement, “My dad says that you are my friend, and so my dad bought me a Liberty bond, because he says you love me now.” The girl with the pink ear, into which these words had been loudly whispered, beamed with happiness, and then thought, “Oh dear, I wonder if my little liberty lecture had anything to do with my dad buying the bond?”
There was a short stop at the Military Police guardhouse, to learn the way around the encampment, where several soldier-boys, with the big letters M. P. on their arms, were viewed with much curiosity by the girls. A call at the hostess house now followed, where the gifts for the soldiers—the knitted articles, the books, candy, and fruits—were left, the girls reserving the baskets of cherries to distribute to the boys themselves.
There was a quick stop at the Military Police guardhouse to get familiar with the camp layout, where several young soldiers, sporting the big letters M.P. on their sleeves, attracted a lot of curious glances from the girls. Next, they visited the hostess's house, where they dropped off gifts for the soldiers—the knitted items, books, candy, and fruits—while the girls kept the baskets of cherries to hand out to the boys themselves.
The slow ride through the encampment, with its streets flanked by brown and white tents, reminded Nathalie somewhat of an Indian encampment, and she gazed about with eager interest, as this was her first visit to an army post. The girls were specially interested in the prisoners,—two or three men here and there guarded by a soldier-boy,—who were acting as 114 White Wings by gathering up flying papers, or débris of any kind lying about, while other groups were digging ditches or performing similar duties.
The slow ride through the camp, with its streets lined by brown and white tents, reminded Nathalie a bit of an Indian camp, and she looked around with excited curiosity since this was her first time visiting a military base. The girls were particularly interested in the prisoners—two or three men here and there watched over by a young soldier—who were acting as 114 White Wings by picking up scattered papers or any debris lying around, while other groups were digging ditches or doing similar tasks.
“But see,” cried one of the girls, “the prisoners carry clubs, while the guard in the rear hasn’t any.”
“But look,” shouted one of the girls, “the prisoners have clubs, while the guard in the back doesn’t have any.”
“No, but he carries an automatic pistol in his trousers’ pocket,” answered Mrs. Morrow quickly, who had visited the camp many times; “and if he should fire it, a crowd of soldiers would immediately surround the prisoners and disarm them. And then, too,” she added, “you must remember that these prisoners, as a rule, are not real jailbirds, but just young, thoughtless lads who have probably been punished for what we would consider a very slight misdemeanor.”
“No, but he has a handgun in his pants pocket,” Mrs. Morrow quickly replied, having visited the camp many times. “If he fired it, a group of soldiers would immediately surround the prisoners and disarm them. And remember,” she added, “these prisoners are generally not hardened criminals, but just young, careless guys who have probably been punished for what we would see as a minor offense.”
But they were now in what Mrs. Morrow called the “chow” quarters, that is, where the mess-tents were. It was quite an interesting sight to see a long line of soldiers, with their plates, cups, and pans in their hands, standing waiting for the “eats” at one of these tents.
But they were now in what Mrs. Morrow called the "chow" quarters, which are where the mess tents are. It was quite an interesting sight to see a long line of soldiers, with their plates, cups, and pans in their hands, standing and waiting for the food at one of these tents.
The girls, alert-eyed, watched them with more than the usual curiosity, for when they were supplied with food they came straggling out of the line with their “chow” and sat down here and there in groups, while others sat down on the street-curb and began their meal, using their laps for a table. This elicited many exclamations of surprise, especially when their director told them that Uncle Sam’s soldiers were not 115 allowed to sit at tables, but had to dine standing. Their denunciation of this system and their expressions of pity were loud, but when they were told that it was these very hardships to which a boy had to be inured that made him a well-trained soldier, they became somewhat reconciled to what they had seen.
The girls, with wide eyes, watched them with more than just usual curiosity. When they got their food, they drifted out of line with their meals and settled in groups here and there, while others plopped down on the curb and dug in, using their laps as tables. This caused plenty of surprised exclamations, especially when their director explained that Uncle Sam's soldiers weren't allowed to sit at tables and had to eat standing up. Their complaints about this system and their sympathetic reactions were loud, but when they learned that these exact hardships were what a boy needed to endure to become a well-trained soldier, they became a bit more accepting of what they had witnessed.
Just at this moment a sudden inspiration came to Nathalie, and, leaning forward, she whispered softly to Mrs. Morrow. That lady smiled and nodded approval evidently, and immediately brought the car to a standstill so that Nathalie and Helen could alight. Going swiftly towards a couple of boys who were sitting on the curb, their eyes bright and keen, and their faces tanned to a rich brown, Nathalie said, somewhat timidly, “I beg your pardon, but wouldn’t you young gentlemen—er—soldiers—” she hastily corrected herself laughingly, “like to have some cherries to eat with your dinner?”
Just then, an idea popped into Nathalie's head, and leaning forward, she whispered softly to Mrs. Morrow. That lady smiled and nodded in approval, and immediately stopped the car so Nathalie and Helen could get out. Quickly walking over to a couple of boys sitting on the curb, their eyes bright and sharp and their faces tanned to a deep brown, Nathalie said, somewhat shyly, “Excuse me, but wouldn’t you young gentlemen—uh—soldiers—” she quickly corrected herself with a laugh, “like some cherries to eat with your dinner?”
“Most assuredly we would,” responded one of the lads, a tall broad-shouldered chap with dark hair, from whose sun-tanned face two dark-lashed eyes looked down at her, with a half-smile in their blue. The boys had courteously risen and were standing at attention when the girl spoke.
“Definitely, we would,” replied one of the guys, a tall, broad-shouldered dude with dark hair, from whose sun-tanned face two dark-lashed eyes gazed down at her, accompanied by a half-smile in their blue. The boys had politely stood up and were standing at attention when the girl spoke.
Nathalie’s cheeks took on a deeper pink, and then she turned, and the two girls walked back to the car with the boys in their wake. But unfortunately, as she attempted to lift one of the heavy baskets over the edge 116 of the car, something jarred her elbow, and the next moment the basket had fallen to the ground with the cherries rolling all over the road.
Nathalie’s cheeks flushed a deeper pink, and then she turned, and the two girls walked back to the car with the boys following them. But unfortunately, as she tried to lift one of the heavy baskets over the edge 116 of the car, something bumped her elbow, and the next moment the basket fell to the ground, sending cherries rolling all over the road.
There was a loud shout from the boys, and then a dozen or more khaki-clad figures had rushed to the girl’s assistance, and presently soldier-boys and girls were all scrambling about in the dust of the road, gathering up the fruit. Indeed, by the time it was replaced in the basket,—for, of course, the girls had to polish off the dust from the luscious red fruit—they had all become very merry with one another.
There was a loud shout from the boys, and then a dozen or more figures in khaki rushed to help the girl. Soon, the boys and girls were all scrambling in the dust on the road, picking up the fruit. In fact, by the time it was back in the basket—since the girls had to wipe off the dust from the delicious red fruit—they were all in high spirits together.
Several minutes later, as the car whirled around the corner of the long street, they saw the soldier lads gathered about the basket, while laughing and joking with one another in good-natured banter. Suddenly one of the boys looked up, and as he spied the now disappearing car he took off his cap and waved it in a parting salute. Nathalie smiled back, for she recognized this good-by as coming from the boy with the dark-lashed, blue eyes.
Several minutes later, as the car turned the corner on the long street, they saw the soldier boys gathered around the basket, laughing and joking with each other in friendly banter. Suddenly, one of the boys looked up, and when he spotted the car that was now fading away, he took off his cap and waved it in a farewell salute. Nathalie smiled back, recognizing the goodbye from the boy with the dark-lashed, blue eyes.
“Wasn’t that young solider a handsome boy?” queried one of the girls admiringly, as the car flew along the level road. “And what lovely blue eyes he had.”
“Wasn’t that young soldier a good-looking guy?” one of the girls asked admiringly, as the car sped along the flat road. “And he had such beautiful blue eyes.”
“Yes, and that boy with the light hair was nice-looking, too,” chimed in Helen. “He had such a frank way of looking you right in the eye. I’ll warrant you he’s no coward.”
“Yes, and that guy with the light hair was good-looking, too,” added Helen. “He had such an honest way of looking you right in the eye. I bet he’s no coward.”
117 But the cherries and the boys in the “chow” quarters were forgotten as the girls drove by a group of buglers, who were sitting on the grass near a large tent, practicing on their bugles. Every eye was curiously watchful as the three cars went slowly past, for Mrs. Morrow, who was driving, had slowed up as she saw “the camp alarm-clocks,” as she called them. Every head was bent forward and eyes grew big with alertness, for had the girls not set out that morning with the avowed intention of not missing anything worth seeing, and surely a group of soldier buglers was an interesting feature of the camp.
117 But the cherries and the boys in the “chow” quarters were forgotten as the girls drove past a group of buglers, who were sitting on the grass near a large tent, practicing on their instruments. Every eye was curiously watching as the three cars moved slowly by, because Mrs. Morrow, who was driving, had slowed down when she spotted “the camp alarm-clocks,” as she called them. Every head leaned forward and eyes widened with alertness, for hadn’t the girls set out that morning with the clear intention of not missing anything worth seeing? Surely, a group of soldier buglers was an interesting part of the camp.
They were a merry-eyed crowd, those boys with their happy, care-free faces under the brown hats with their gay-colored cords. All on undress parade, Helen declared, as she noted their brown flannel blouses and belts, as they knelt or stood upon the grass, blowing on their golden horns as Captain Molly called their brass instruments.
They were a cheerful group, those boys with their happy, carefree faces under the brown hats with their brightly colored cords. All in casual uniform, Helen remarked, as she noticed their brown flannel shirts and belts, while they knelt or stood on the grass, playing their golden horns as Captain Molly called their brass instruments.
Evidently they were not worrying about going overseas, or losing their lives in No Man’s Land, but were good examples of live-wire American lads, with the grit inherited from their ancestors, the Yanks, inspiring them to make good when called by Uncle Sam to the job of making war.
Clearly, they weren't concerned about going abroad or risking their lives in No Man's Land. Instead, they were prime examples of energetic American guys, embodying the toughness passed down from their ancestors, the Yanks, driving them to step up when Uncle Sam called them to serve in the war.
The girls were alert and watchful, as they spied into open tents, or behind flying flaps, at the rows of tiny white cots, or at a few stray articles of clothing seen 118 here and there, yes, even a pair of shoes set out in the sun to dry were objects of their silent adoration as they swung along the road.
The girls were attentive and vigilant as they peeked into open tents or behind flapping fabric at the rows of small white cots or at some random pieces of clothing scattered 118 around. Even a pair of shoes left out in the sun to dry captured their quiet admiration as they walked down the road.
But now the scene had changed as they whirled along, for, instead of tents, the streets were lined with little wooden houses, or cabins, the barracks of the United States Aviation School at Mineola, which adjoined Camp Mills. A stop at the hostess house was next in order, where a call was sent in for Dick.
But now the scene had changed as they sped along, because instead of tents, the streets were lined with small wooden houses, or cabins, the barracks of the United States Aviation School at Mineola, which was next to Camp Mills. A stop at the hostess house was next on the agenda, where a call was placed for Dick.
Twenty minutes later Nathalie was blithesomely happy, as she and her brother, over in a corner of the little wooden building, chatted about home news,—how mother was getting along, yes, and about the wonderful events that had occurred in the last few days. Then Nathalie turned inquisitor, and Dick was subjected to a series of questions in regard to his life as a war-eagle. In fact Nathalie’s questions were so many and so swiftly put that her brother declared that one would have thought that he was being interviewed by some expert reporter.
Twenty minutes later, Nathalie was incredibly happy as she and her brother chatted in a corner of the small wooden building about news from home—how their mom was doing and all the amazing things that had happened in the last few days. Then Nathalie started asking questions, and Dick found himself on the receiving end of a rapid-fire Q&A about his life as a soldier. In fact, Nathalie's questions came so quickly and in such volume that her brother joked it felt like he was being interviewed by a professional reporter.
Yes, reveille was at five in the morning, followed in half an hour by breakfast. His sister immediately asked, somewhat anxiously, if he got enough to eat.
Yes, reveille was at five in the morning, followed by breakfast half an hour later. His sister immediately asked, a bit anxiously, if he got enough to eat.
“You bet your life I do,” was Dick’s laughing rejoinder. “The ‘eats’ are O. K.—nothing to be added. At six,” he continued, “I report at headquarters for flying, and then, with an instructor, learn a few flying stunts. I return to barracks at ten, and 119 from eleven until two-thirty have a ‘do-as-you-please time,’ which includes luncheon, and, generally, a nap, for, by Jove!” exclaimed the young aviator, “this flying business makes a fellow feel drowsy.
“You bet I do,” Dick laughed back. “The food is great—nothing to complain about. At six,” he went on, “I check in at headquarters for flying, and then, with an instructor, I’ll learn some flying tricks. I get back to the barracks at ten, and from eleven until two-thirty, I have some free time, which includes lunch and usually a nap, because, wow!” the young aviator exclaimed, “this flying stuff really makes a guy feel sleepy."
“Then we drill for a while, listen to a lecture,” he went on, “and then again for a space I am a bird of the air. We dine about half-after eight, and at ten comes taps, or ‘lights out.’ Anything more you would like to know, young lady?” he inquired teasingly. But Nathalie was satisfied, for surely her brother’s ruddy cheeks, tanned skin, and glowing eyes attested to what he called the “joy-time of his life,” and a few moments later the little party started for the aviation field.
“Then we practice for a while, listen to a lecture,” he continued, “and then for a bit I’m a bird in the sky. We eat dinner around 8:30, and at 10 comes taps, or ‘lights out.’ Is there anything else you’d like to know, young lady?” he asked playfully. But Nathalie was satisfied, because her brother’s rosy cheeks, sun-kissed skin, and bright eyes showed what he called the “best time of his life,” and a few moments later the small group headed for the aviation field.
Here Dick conducted them around the field and showed them many kinds of aircraft, as aëroplanes, dirigibles, kite-balloons, serviceable in war; in fact, they were so well instructed as to the uses and mechanism of so many different machines that Mrs. Morrow declared that they would be well-versed in aëronautics. But the little personal stories that Dick told about the heroism of well-known war-eagles over in France made a stronger appeal to the girls, especially when he explained the several varieties of aviators and their special work.
Here, Dick showed them around the field and pointed out many types of aircraft, like airplanes, airships, and kite-balloons, useful in war. In fact, they learned so much about the functions and mechanics of these different machines that Mrs. Morrow said they would be knowledgeable in aeronautics. However, the personal stories Dick shared about the bravery of famous war heroes in France resonated more with the girls, especially when he described the various types of pilots and their specific roles.
To the girls’ disappointment there was no flying going on while they were on the field, but they were partly appeased when Dick showed them a group of students, 120 aviation observers, he called them, who were learning to sketch from a miniature battlefield, and in this way learn how it would look from the air. As they were about to leave the field they saw some students bringing out a machine, to get it ready for flying, as testing the motor and so on.
To the girls’ disappointment, there was no flying happening while they were on the field, but they felt a bit better when Dick showed them a group of students, 120 who he called aviation observers, learning to sketch from a miniature battlefield to understand how it would look from the sky. Just as they were about to leave the field, they noticed some students bringing out a plane to prepare it for flying, checking the motor and so on.
At this particular moment one of the girls uttered a sudden cry, and as all eyes glanced upward with newly awakened eagerness, they were rewarded by seeing an aëroplane returning from a training flight. As Nathalie gazed eagerly at the machine that flew like some strange monster above their heads, the perils of flying in space came to her with a sudden, keen realization, and, with a sickening pang as to what might happen to Dick some day, her eyes darkened with apprehensive terror and she turned hastily away. But Dick, catching sight of the girl’s pale face and fear-haunted eyes, as if to divert her mind from dismal forebodings, called attention to the camp mascot, a little yellow police-dog, who was standing by his master, equipped, like him, with goggles. The girls were soon laughing heartily as Dick told of the dog’s alertness in doing “stunts,” and the eagerness he showed when waiting to take a flight in one of the machines.
At that moment, one of the girls let out a sudden shout, and as everyone looked up with renewed excitement, they were thrilled to see an airplane coming back from a training flight. As Nathalie watched the plane soar above them like some unusual creature, the dangers of flying hit her with a sharp realization. A wave of anxiety about what might happen to Dick one day washed over her, and her expression turned to one of fearful distress as she quickly looked away. But Dick noticed the girl's pale face and scared eyes, and to distract her from her gloomy thoughts, he pointed out the camp mascot, a little yellow police dog, who was standing beside him, also wearing goggles. The girls soon erupted with laughter as Dick recounted the dog’s readiness for doing "tricks" and his enthusiasm for taking a ride in one of the planes.
CHAPTER VIII
SEVEN PILLARS
Nathalie, seated in a low chair at one end of the broad white veranda, gazed with rapt intentness at the sun-hazed landscape, rising in green, undulating waves against the purple blur of the towering mountain-heights, that stretched in wide expanse before her, with a strange, mystical beauty.
Nathalie, sitting in a low chair at one end of the wide white porch, stared intently at the sunlit landscape, rolling in green, soft waves against the purple blur of the towering mountains that stretched out before her in a strangely beautiful way.
Into her eyes, city-tired, came rest, as they swept over the velvet green of the meadow, splashed with the bloom of wild flowers, its scrubby bushes aglow with pink spires, and its spruces and maples standing upright with the slimness of youth, as it sloped gently down to the glen below. The trees of the glen, closely massed in a rich, feathery green, sombered by the darker line of the pines and firs, to the girl seemed weird and mysterious.
Into her eyes, weary from city life, came a sense of peace as they took in the lush green of the meadow, dotted with colorful wildflowers, its scraggly bushes glowing with pink spikes, and its spruces and maples standing tall and slender like youth, sloping gently down to the valley below. The trees in the valley, densely packed in a rich, feathery green, were darkened by the deeper line of pines and firs, appearing strange and mysterious to the girl.
Her eyes quickly gathered in the stillness of the sunny slopes that rose from the darker hollow in squares of yellow cornfields, or the light green of unripe wheat or grain, and the brown of mountain meadow-land, dotted with browsing cows. Here and there a lone farmhouse 122 stood forth on some higher knoll, or, from a background of forest land, came the bright red of a solitary barn; while still higher, a hotel, its gables and chimneys spying upward, glimmered picturesquely from the green. And beyond all, high and dark, with majestic brooding silences, rose the jagged ridge of mountain blue, its peaks looming with a strange distinctness against the clear, soft blue of the sky, while sweeps of white cloudlets trailed like films of spun silk across their tops.
Her eyes quickly took in the tranquility of the sunny hills rising from the darker valley, with patches of yellow cornfields, light green unripe wheat, and the brown of mountain meadows dotted with grazing cows. Here and there, a lone farmhouse stood out on a higher hill, and from behind wooded areas came the bright red of a solitary barn. Higher still, a hotel, with its gables and chimneys reaching upward, shimmered charmingly among the greenery. Beyond it all, high and dark, with a majestic, contemplative silence, rose the jagged blue mountain ridge, its peaks standing out distinctly against the clear, soft blue sky, while wisps of white clouds drifted like strands of spun silk across their tops.
The girl closed her eyes as if to imprint upon her subconsciousness the rare loveliness of the scene, and then, as if fearful that in some passing, whimsical mood the picture would flash out of view, she opened them quickly. At that moment a passing breeze fluttered the pages of a letter lying on a table by her side. With sudden recollection she caught them up, and then as if to impress upon her mind what she had written, in a soft, low tone read:
The girl closed her eyes, trying to embed the rare beauty of the scene in her memory, and then, worried that the moment might slip away in a fleeting mood, she quickly opened them again. Just then, a gentle breeze rustled the pages of a letter lying on a table next to her. With a sudden realization, she grabbed the letter and, as if to remember what she had written, read it aloud in a soft, low voice:
“Dear Helen:
“Hi Helen:
“I presume you are now in glorious La France, wondering why you have not heard from me. But my excuse is this magnificent mountain scenery, and my new duties, which have taken every minute of my time until to-day. We came up on the fifteenth from New York. Mother knitted and read during the ten-hour ride, while I wished inexpressibly good things for Mrs. Van Vorst for renting our little dovecote, and planned liberty work. I have decided to adopt the 123 club’s motto, ‘Liberty and Humanity—our best,’ for the summer’s watchword. As it means to try and be helpful and kind to people, whether I like them or not, wish me success, for I have undertaken something big.
“I guess you’re now in beautiful La France, wondering why you haven’t heard from me. But my excuse is this stunning mountain scenery and my new responsibilities, which have taken up all of my time until today. We arrived on the fifteenth from New York. Mom knitted and read during the ten-hour trip, while I sent all my best wishes to Mrs. Van Vorst for renting our little cottage and made plans for my community service. I’ve decided to adopt the 123 club’s motto, ‘Liberty and Humanity—our best,’ as my guiding principle for the summer. This means I’ll try to be helpful and kind to everyone, regardless of how I feel about them, so wish me luck, because I’ve taken on a big challenge.”
“Mr. Banker, my aunt’s lawyer, met us at the Littleton station with his car. He is a tall, lean man, but his brown eyes have a quizzical gleam in them that makes you feel that you are affording him some amusement. The seven-mile ride up one mountain slope and down another, in the shade of the woods that gloomed dark and weird on each side of the road, with the hush of the gloaming in their moist depths, was most enjoyable.
“Mr. Banker, my aunt’s lawyer, picked us up at Littleton station in his car. He’s a tall, thin guy, but his brown eyes have a playful spark that makes you feel like you’re entertaining him. The seven-mile ride up one mountain slope and down another, surrounded by the dark and strange woods on either side of the road, with the quiet of twilight in their damp depths, was really enjoyable.”
“From out of their rustling shadows the white birches and poplars peered at us like ghosts, while the resinous aroma from the pines made us sniff with delight. Mountain villages with a straggle of white cottages, and grizzly gray churches in a setting of purple mountain-peaks, strangely somber and still, as they stood forth from feathery masses of clouds tinted with sunset’s glow, with gossamer wreaths of mist floating above them, stilled us to a mute ecstasy of sheer joy.
“From their rustling shadows, the white birches and poplars looked at us like ghosts, while the resinous scent from the pines made us breathe in delight. Mountain villages with a line of white cottages and grizzly gray churches were set against purple mountain peaks, strangely somber and still, as they emerged from feathery clouds colored by the sunset’s glow, with delicate wisps of mist floating above them, leaving us in a silent ecstasy of pure joy.”
“Stone gate-posts, beds of old-time posies, backed by cobble-stone walls with hedges of green, and a little white house, like a keeper’s lodge, peered curiously out of the silver shadows of the rising moon as we whizzed up the roadway to Seven Pillars, and came to a stop under the porte-cochère of a large, white mansion, set on a green knoll, facing the rocky heights of far-distant mountains. Here square glass lanterns threw yellowish gleams on the wide, low veranda, with its seven magic pillars,—round, fluted columns reaching high above the second-story windows, as with lofty stateliness they held the pointed dome above the portico.
“Stone gateposts, beds of old flowers, backed by cobblestone walls with green hedges, and a little white house, like a keeper’s lodge, peeked curiously out from the silver shadows of the rising moon as we sped up the road to Seven Pillars and came to a stop under the porte-cochère of a large, white mansion, set on a green hill, facing the rocky heights of distant mountains. Here square glass lanterns cast yellowish glows on the wide, low veranda, with its seven magic pillars—round, fluted columns that reached high above the second-story windows, holding up the pointed dome above the portico with grand elegance.”
124 “Passing through the quaint, white-columned doorway, with its tiny panes of glass and shiny brass knocker, we stood, dazed and tired, in a broad, gloomy hall, where, in the flare from a snapping log-fire, numerous trophies of the hunt eyed us glassily, as we were welcomed by my cousin, Janet Page, and her sister, Cynthia.
124 “Walking through the charming, white-columned doorway, with its small glass panes and shiny brass knocker, we stood there, exhausted and a bit dazed, in a wide, dim hall. The flicker from a crackling log fire illuminated several hunting trophies that stared at us blankly, while we were greeted by my cousin, Janet Page, and her sister, Cynthia.
“Janet is a winsome thing. We have already become great chums, although she is a few years older than your lonesome. She is short and plump, with a white, satiny skin, and apple-blossom cheeks that make you feel that you want to kiss the pink of them. Her eyes fairly beam with kindliness as she looks at you from under her short, wavy brown hair. She’s a pacifist and a suffragist, and aims to be a farmerette. Although she has decided ideas on the war and voting questions, they are rather vague on farming, but she goes about saying, ‘God speed the plow and the woman who drives it.’
“Janet is a charming person. We've already become good friends, even though she's a few years older than me. She's short and curvy, with smooth, fair skin and rosy cheeks that make you just want to kiss them. Her eyes shine with warmth as she looks at you from beneath her short, wavy brown hair. She’s a pacifist and a suffragist, and she hopes to be a farmerette. While she has strong opinions about the war and voting issues, her thoughts on farming are a bit unclear, but she often says, ‘God speed the plow and the woman who drives it.’”
“Cynthia Loretto Stillwell—she always insists on the Loretto, as it is the sole heritage from some Italian ancestor, famed for his noble birth and deeds of valor—is not my own cousin, as she is the daughter of my uncle’s wife, who was a widow when they married. She is distinctively tall, somewhat angular, with sharp features, a drooping, discontented mouth, and a sallow skin which she endeavors to hide by dabs of white and pink powder. Her eyes are large and dark, and would be handsome, if they did not repel you at times by their hard, metallic glitter. Her coiffure is a wonderful combination of braids, curls, and puffs, and made me wonder how she did it. She greeted us effusively, but somehow its warmth seemed cold and artificial, and—well, I don’t believe I’m going to like her.
“Cynthia Loretto Stillwell—she always insists on the Loretto because it's the only connection she has to some Italian ancestor known for his noble birth and heroic deeds—is not my actual cousin, since she is the daughter of my uncle’s wife, who was a widow when they got married. She is notably tall, somewhat angular, with sharp features, a drooping, dissatisfied mouth, and a pale skin tone that she tries to cover up with dabs of white and pink powder. Her eyes are large and dark, and they could be attractive if they didn't sometimes have a harsh, metallic shine that puts you off. Her hairstyle is an impressive mix of braids, curls, and puffs, which made me wonder how she manages to do it. She greeted us enthusiastically, but somehow her warmth felt cold and fake, and—well, I doubt I’m going to like her.”
“After our hunger was appeased,—Janet said she 125 got the supper, as we shall have to be our own maids up here,—Mr. Banker ‘personally conducted’ us through many high-ceiled rooms with recessed window-seats, big doors, and dark closets, up winding stairways and through rambling corridors. The antique furniture, carved and black-looking, musty-smelling and stuffy, made one feel as if long-ago-dead people were peering at you from the eerie shadows of the hide-and-seeky nooks.
“After we were done eating, Janet mentioned she 125 would take care of dinner since we would have to handle things ourselves up here. Mr. Banker led us through many spacious rooms with built-in window seats, large doors, and dim closets, up twisting staircases and through winding hallways. The antique furniture, dark and intricately carved, had a dusty, musty smell that made it feel like long-dead people were watching us from the creepy shadows of the hidden corners.”
“Mr. Banker then read my aunt’s letter of instruction,—an odd document, as it stated that each one of ‘we girls,’—as Cynthia calls us,—she’s almost as old as mumsie,—during our stay is to search the house for the most valuable thing in it. And the lucky finder of the ‘mysterious it,’ as Jan and I call the valuable thing, is to inherit something. Whether this something is property, or money, or just some personal effects of my aunt’s, I don’t know, for that letter was so queer it made me feel creepy. And once when I glanced up, it really seemed as if her eyes were glaring menacingly at me from a large portrait of her which hangs over the library mantel.
“Mr. Banker then read my aunt's letter of instruction—an unusual document, as it stated that each one of ‘us girls’—as Cynthia calls us—she’s almost as old as mom—during our stay is to search the house for the most valuable thing in it. And the lucky finder of the ‘mysterious it,’ as Jan and I call the valuable thing, is to inherit something. Whether this something is property, or money, or just some personal belongings of my aunt’s, I don’t know, because that letter was so strange it made me feel uneasy. And once when I glanced up, it really seemed as if her eyes were glaring menacingly at me from a large portrait of her that hangs over the library mantel.”
“Each one of us is to keep a diary, and if we have not looked for ‘It’ each day, we are to state what particular thing prevented us. We can search every nook and corner in the house but one room, the mystery room, as we call it, which is on the second floor, and barred and locked so that no one can enter. Mother only laughs when Janet and I talk about ‘It,’ and declares that the whole thing is just my aunt’s eccentric way of doing things. You know mother spent a summer up here with her when I was a wee tot, and my aunt grew very fond of me.
“Each of us is supposed to keep a diary, and if we haven't looked for 'It' each day, we need to say what specific thing stopped us. We can search every nook and cranny in the house except one room, the mystery room, as we call it, which is on the second floor and is locked up tight so no one can go in. Mom just laughs when Janet and I talk about 'It' and says that it’s just my aunt’s quirky way of doing things. You know, Mom spent a summer up here with her when I was really little, and my aunt got very attached to me.
“Although I have had no time as yet to search for the mystery of mysteries, my first entry in my diary 126 reads: ‘Arose at 7 A. M. and prepared breakfast. Cooked three meals and did housework all day, and am too tired to do anything but go to bed. Jan meant to help me, but she had to hurry with her plowing, and Cynthia Loretto says she never does housework, as it makes her hands rough.’
“Even though I haven't had the chance yet to explore the mystery of mysteries, my first diary entry 126 says: ‘I got up at 7 A.M. and made breakfast. I cooked three meals and did housework all day, and I'm too exhausted to do anything but go to bed. Jan intended to help me, but she had to rush with her plowing, and Cynthia Loretto says she never does housework because it makes her hands rough.’”
“You would laugh if you could see Jan scratching the earth with a baby rake. She was going to plant before she plowed, and hadn’t the slightest idea as to the proper time and way of planting her seeds. But she looks a dear in a smock and a big pink sunbonnet that matches the pink in her cheeks and on her nose, for her dear little snub has burned to the same color.
“You would laugh if you could see Jan scratching the ground with a tiny rake. She was planning to plant before she plowed and had no clue about the right time or method for planting her seeds. But she looks adorable in a smock and a big pink sunbonnet that matches the blush on her cheeks and her nose, as her cute little snub has gotten the same sun-kissed color.”
“It is great sport to see her take the stump, as I call it, and hold forth on woman suffrage. She talks beautifully, is so earnest and looks so sweet, and, as mumsie says, knows so little about it from a commonsense point of view. But when Cynthia Loretto suddenly appears and squelches her eloquence by witheringly ordering her to do something for her,—she bosses her dreadfully,—poor Jan drops from her pedestal and crawls about with the meekness of a mouse for the rest of the day.
“It’s great fun to watch her get up and speak, as I call it, about women’s suffrage. She talks wonderfully, is very passionate, and looks really sweet, and, as my mom says, knows very little about it from a practical standpoint. But when Cynthia Loretto suddenly shows up and shuts her down by harshly telling her to do something for her — she really bosses her around — poor Jan falls off her high horse and scurries around with the meekness of a mouse for the rest of the day.”
“I was afraid my dreams of teaching liberty were doomed to oblivion, for there don’t seem to be any girls about to form a club, when one day, while reading the paper, an inspiration came. Fi-fo-fum, I have written to Mrs. Van Vorst, and she is going to send me three little slum boys, and I am not only going to give them the joy-time of their lives, but teach them ‘Liberty and Humanity—your best.’ When I asked Mr. Banker if there would be any objection to having these little waifs, he not only consented, but said he would pay their way up here. Isn’t that the dandiest thing going?
“I was worried that my dreams of teaching freedom were going to fade away because there didn’t seem to be any girls interested in starting a club. Then one day, while reading the newspaper, I had an idea. Fi-fo-fum, I wrote to Mrs. Van Vorst, and she’s going to send me three little boys from the slums. I'm not just going to give them an amazing time; I'm going to teach them about ‘Freedom and Humanity—your best.’ When I asked Mr. Banker if there would be any problem with having these little kids, not only did he agree, but he said he would cover their travel here. Isn’t that the coolest thing ever?
“Mother objected at first, but when I said I would 127 teach them to wash the dishes—how I hate that job!—and to do chores about the house, she only said, ‘Well, you will have to make the bread then, for three hulking boys will eat a cartful,’—you know mother is the bread-maker. Then her eyes twinkled, and I had to hug her good and tight, for I knew she was just testing my ‘I can’ motto.
“Mom didn’t want to at first, but when I told her I would teach them how to wash the dishes—how I hate that job!—and do chores around the house, she just said, ‘Well, you’ll have to make the bread then, because three big boys will eat a lot,’—you know Mom is the one who makes the bread. Then her eyes sparkled, and I had to give her a big hug because I knew she was just testing my ‘I can’ motto.”
“Janet thought the idea fine, but when Cynthia Loretto heard of it she declared that she hated boys, they were such horrid, smelly things,—one would have thought they were weeds,—and that she would not have them in the house. Well, I was not going to be bossed by her, so promptly told her in my bestest manner—I am always very cool and sweet when awfully mad—what Mr. Banker had said. Well, that silenced her, but I can foresee that she will make trouble for my little liberty kids, for that’s what they’re going to be.
“Janet thought the idea was great, but when Cynthia Loretto heard about it, she said she hated boys, calling them horrid, smelly creatures—one would think they were weeds—and that she wouldn’t have them in the house. Well, I wasn’t going to let her dictate to me, so I promptly told her in my sweetest tone—I’m always very composed and kind when I’m super angry—what Mr. Banker had said. That shut her up, but I can see that she’ll cause trouble for my little liberty kids, because that’s what they’re going to be.”
“Did I tell you that Cynthia is an artist? Her studio is up in the little square cupola, or tower that crowns the house. Here she paints, and sleeps until all hours of the morning, for she slumbers in a beauty-mask—Janet let that out—and it has to be kept on until noon. Janet has to bring up her coffee every morning. At dinner my lady with ‘the manner’ and artistic temperament appears in a freakish get-up. Yesterday she was a Neapolitan maiden in a red skirt and blue bodice, with a rug for an apron, and a white cloth on her head. She dresses this way to create atmosphere, she declares, as she is her own model, and paints herself in a big mirror, that she got Sam to lug up from one of the lower rooms.
“Did I mention that Cynthia is an artist? Her studio is up in the little square tower that crowns the house. This is where she paints and sleeps until all hours of the morning, since she has to wear a beauty mask while she sleeps—Janet let that slip—and it has to stay on until noon. Janet brings her coffee every morning. At dinner, my lady with ‘the manner’ and artistic temperament shows up in a quirky outfit. Yesterday, she was a Neapolitan maiden in a red skirt and blue bodice, with a rug for an apron, and a white cloth on her head. She dresses like this to create an atmosphere, she says, since she is her own model and paints herself in a big mirror that she got Sam to carry up from one of the lower rooms.”
“She can be extremely disagreeable, for yesterday, while I was on one of my mountain prowls—mother was taking a nap—she was sitting on the veranda in one of her outlandish costumes, when an odd, little old 128 lady came along in a black poke-bonnet, carrying a basket on her arm. As soon as Cyn saw that basket she jumped up and ordered the old lady off the premises, saying that we could not be bothered with peddlers.
“She can be really unpleasant, because yesterday, while I was out exploring the mountains—my mom was taking a nap—she was sitting on the porch in one of her crazy outfits when a strange little old lady walked by in a black poke-bonnet, carrying a basket on her arm. As soon as Cyn saw that basket, she jumped up and told the old lady to leave, saying that we couldn't deal with peddlers.”
“The poor old soul immediately turned about and hobbled away, muttering and mumbling to herself, for Jan heard her as she came up the path from her miniature hillside farm. Mother was quite annoyed when she heard about it, for she said that she was undoubtedly one of the neighbors, and had brought us something in a basket to be friendly, as country people do. I think Cynthia should have allowed her to rest on the veranda, even if she was a peddler.
“The poor old woman immediately turned around and hobbled away, muttering and mumbling to herself, as Jan heard her coming up the path from her small hillside farm. Mom was pretty annoyed when she heard about it, saying that she was definitely one of the neighbors and had brought us something in a basket to be friendly, like country people do. I think Cynthia should have let her rest on the porch, even if she was a peddler.”
“I must close my letter if I want to get it in this mail, as I have to walk almost a mile to post it. So, with a bushel of kisses and good wishes, I am as ever your friend
“I need to end my letter if I want to send it in this mail since I have to walk almost a mile to post it. So, with a bunch of kisses and good wishes, I am always your friend.”
“P. S. Be sure you tell me all about your work, and if you are anywhere near the front-line trenches. I am wild to know. Again, with love,
“P.S. Make sure to tell me everything about your job and if you're close to the front-line trenches. I'm really eager to know. Again, with love,
As Nathalie stood by the window putting on her hat in front of the old-fashioned dresser, her eyes suddenly widened. “Why, isn’t that the strangest?” she queried, as she stepped nearer the casement and stared down at the farther end of the lawn, where, from between the fringe of woodland on the side dividing their garden from their neighbor’s, came the glimmer of a little red house, fronting the road.
As Nathalie stood by the window putting on her hat in front of the old-fashioned dresser, her eyes suddenly widened. “Wow, isn’t that strange?” she asked as she stepped closer to the window and looked down at the far end of the lawn, where, through the trees that separated their garden from their neighbor’s, she could see the sparkle of a small red house facing the road.
“Why,” said the girl, almost wonderingly, “that red house glimmers through the trees in the form of a 129 cross.” Then her eyes brightened with the sudden thought, “I do believe it has come that way on purpose, and, yes, I am going to let it be my Red Cross insignia, warning me that I have work to do this summer by not losing my temper, and by being kind to people, even if it is that irritating Cynthia Loretto.
“Why,” the girl said, almost in awe, “that red house is shining through the trees in the shape of a 129 cross.” Then her eyes lit up with a sudden idea, “I really think it came that way on purpose, and, yes, I’m going to use it as my Red Cross symbol, reminding me that I have work to do this summer by keeping my cool and being nice to people, even if it’s that annoying Cynthia Loretto.
“I wonder who lives in that little red house,” soliloquized the girl. “I must ask Sam. Ah, I remember now. I saw an old lady with silver-gray hair, the other day, poking about in that little flower-garden; she seemed to be weeding. Well, those flowers certainly repay her for her care, for they are a mass of bloom and color.” And then Nathalie, humming a snatch of melody, turned away and hurried down the stairway.
“I wonder who lives in that little red house,” the girl said to herself. “I need to ask Sam. Oh, I remember now. I saw an old lady with silver-gray hair the other day, working in that little flower garden; she looked like she was weeding. Well, those flowers definitely reward her for her effort because they’re bursting with bloom and color.” Then Nathalie, humming a tune, turned away and hurried down the stairs.
Some time later, on her way to the post-office at the near-by village of Sugar Hill, as she passed the red house she again saw the old lady with the silver hair, in a flopping sunbonnet, digging in the garden. She raised her head as she heard Nathalie’s footsteps, and the girl, with smiling eyes, pleasantly bowed a good-afternoon. But, to her surprise, the old lady stared at her rudely for a moment, and then, without returning her greeting, went on with her weeding.
Some time later, on her way to the post office in the nearby village of Sugar Hill, as she passed the red house, she saw the old lady with silver hair, wearing a floppy sunbonnet, digging in the garden again. The woman lifted her head when she heard Nathalie’s footsteps, and the girl, with bright eyes, kindly nodded a good afternoon. But to her surprise, the old lady stared at her rudely for a moment and then, without replying to her greeting, went back to weeding.
“What a disagreeable old lady!” was the girl’s sudden thought, the blood rushing to her cheeks in a crimson flood. “Why, I always thought country people were pleasant and chatty with their neighbors. Well,” 130 she murmured ruefully, in an attempt to ignore the slight “perhaps the poor old thing is near-sighted. No, I won’t worry, for, as mumsie says, it is just as well not to be in a hurry to think that people mean to be rude to you.”
“What a rude old lady!” was the girl's sudden thought, the blood rushing to her cheeks like a tidal wave. “I always thought country folks were friendly and chatty with their neighbors. Well,” 130 she muttered sadly, trying to brush it off, “maybe the poor old thing is just near-sighted. No, I won’t stress about it, because, as mom says, it’s better not to jump to conclusions about people being rude.”
So the little incident was forgotten, as she wended her way along the road, cool and dark with the moisture and shade from the woodland that fringed it on each side. On one side the trees screened green hills and sloping meadows, while on the other they guarded Lovers’ Lane, a narrow footpath, skirting the base of Garnet Mountain, that rose upward in scrubby, brownish pasture-land to its summit, crowned with dense masses of green foliage.
So the small incident was forgotten as she made her way down the road, cool and dark from the moisture and shade of the trees lining it on both sides. On one side, the trees sheltered green hills and sloping meadows, while on the other, they bordered Lovers’ Lane, a narrow footpath that ran along the base of Garnet Mountain, which rose up in scruffy, brownish fields to its peak, topped with thick clusters of green leaves.
Nathalie hummed softly, in tune to the ripple of a tiny brooklet from a spring near by, that trickled and splashed in a low murmur over its pebbly bed in the ditch fringed with straggling wild flowers in flaunting July bloom. They were too luring to be resisted, and presently the beautiful dull pink of the Joe-Pye weed, saucy black-eyed Susans, yellow buttercups, wild carrot, and blue violets, nodded gayly from the nosegay pinned to her blouse.
Nathalie hummed softly, matching the gentle sound of a small brook nearby that trickled and splashed quietly over its rocky bed in the ditch lined with wildflowers proudly blooming in July. They were too tempting to resist, and soon the lovely dull pink of the Joe-Pye weed, cheeky black-eyed Susans, yellow buttercups, wild carrot, and blue violets, swayed joyfully from the bouquet pinned to her blouse.
A short walk and the woods had been left behind, as the girl stood on a wide-spreading knoll with the rock-lit eyes of Garnet Mountain peering down at her on her right, while on the left grassy meadows stretched away into velvety slopes. Their green was crossed 131 by low stone walls, patched with the gray of apple orchard, and ribboned with avenues of stately trees, or fringes of woodland, but always ending in the rugged grandeur of craggy summit.
A short walk had taken her out of the woods, and now the girl stood on a wide knoll with the rocky peaks of Garnet Mountain looking down at her on her right, while on her left, grassy meadows rolled away into soft slopes. The green was dotted 131 with low stone walls, marked by the gray of apple orchards, and lined with impressive avenues of tall trees, or edges of woodland, but always culminating in the rugged beauty of craggy summits.
Nathalie drew a deep breath of the sweet-scented mountain breezes, as her eyes dwelt on the scene before her, for to her every blade of grass, or feathery fern, as well as each peeping floweret, wide-spreading tree, or gray bowlder, were but details that added to the charm of each day’s mountain-picture. The rare splendor of the scene inspired her, as it were, to new thoughts and feelings, vague and undefined, but the shadow of things to come, in the birth of ideals and words that were to find expression later on.
Nathalie took a deep breath of the sweet mountain breeze as she looked at the scenery around her. To her, every blade of grass, feathery fern, peeking flower, sprawling tree, and gray boulder contributed to the beauty of each day's mountain view. The rare splendor of the landscape inspired her with new, vague thoughts and feelings, hinting at things to come, along with the emergence of ideals and words that she would express later.
But now she was strolling along under an avenue of stately maples, bordered by a stone wall almost hidden with clambering vines, until presently she had passed by another silent greenwood, to arrive at a little white church, set on rising ground. A swift turn and she was walking down the flagged street of the mountain village, sheltered with friendly old trees, and lined with the usual straggle of white cottages, blurred with the red of an old barn, while just beyond, against the pearl gray of the horizon, rose the jagged line of the Green Mountains.
But now she was walking leisurely under an avenue of towering maple trees, bordered by a stone wall almost concealed by climbing vines, until she soon passed another quiet forest and arrived at a small white church situated on a hill. With a quick turn, she found herself walking down the paved street of the mountain village, shaded by friendly old trees and lined with the typical scattered white cottages, softened by the red of an old barn, while just beyond, against the soft gray of the horizon, the jagged peaks of the Green Mountains rose.
She glanced admiringly at the tiny Memorial Library perched conspicuously on a terrace opposite, and then she was at the post-office, once a small white cottage, 132 but now used by Uncle Sam as a mail distributor, the lounging-resort of aged mountaineers and sons of the soil. Here, too, the village gentry, as well as the citified summer folk from the boarding-houses and hotels on the upper slopes of Sugar Hill, lingered for a chat or a word of greeting when they came for the mail.
She looked admiringly at the little Memorial Library sitting prominently on a terrace across the way, and then she was at the post office, which used to be a small white cottage, 132 but is now used by Uncle Sam as a mail distribution center, a hangout for old mountain people and local farmers. Here too, the village elites, along with the city summer visitors from the boarding houses and hotels on the upper slopes of Sugar Hill, hung out for a chat or a friendly greeting when they came for the mail.
After slipping her letter into the box, Nathalie found that although the mail had come in it had not been distributed, so she decided to wait for it. With ill-concealed impatience, for she hated to linger in the stuffy little store, she leaned idly against a glass case, in which one saw the yellow-brown of maple-sugar cakes, the red and white of peppermint sticks, as well as post-cards of mountain views, and pine pillows. As it was the only store within a radius of some miles its wares were numerous and varied, as almost anything, from a loaf of bread, a lollypop, or a case of needles, to a bottle of patent medicine, was on sale.
After dropping her letter into the box, Nathalie realized that even though the mail had arrived, it hadn't been sorted yet, so she decided to wait for it. With barely concealed impatience, since she disliked hanging around the cramped little store, she leaned casually against a display case, which showcased the yellow-brown of maple-sugar cakes, the red and white of peppermint sticks, as well as postcards of scenic mountain views and pine pillows. Being the only store within several miles, it offered a wide range of goods, with everything from a loaf of bread and a lollipop to a pack of needles and a bottle of patent medicine available for sale.
Suddenly, as if impelled by some unknown power, the girl raised her eyes to encounter the bold stare of a tall young man in a gray Norfolk jacket, knickerbockers, and high leather boots, who was nonchalantly leaning against the opposite counter, with his cap pushed on the back of his head, smoking a cigar.
Suddenly, as if driven by some unknown force, the girl looked up to meet the confident gaze of a tall young man in a gray Norfolk jacket, knickerbockers, and high leather boots, casually leaning against the opposite counter, with his cap pushed back on his head, smoking a cigar.
CHAPTER IX
THE LITTLE OLD LADY IN THE RED HOUSE
The girl turned her head quickly aside, for there was something in the ill-concealed admiration in the man’s black eyes that caused the color to rush in a wave to her cheeks. Several minutes later a careless glance in the man’s direction, as she casually surveyed the other occupants of the store, impelled her to stare curiously, as she perceived a rather peculiar motion,—a sudden twitching shake of his head, repeated every moment or so. Realizing that the man was the victim of some nervous affliction, her eyes involuntarily softened with pity, and then noting that there were several letters in her box, she hurried forward to get them.
The girl quickly turned her head away because there was something in the man’s dark eyes that revealed his admiration, causing her cheeks to flush. A few minutes later, when she casually glanced in his direction while looking at the other people in the store, she found herself staring curiously as she noticed a strange movement—a sudden twitch of his head, happening every minute or so. Realizing that the man seemed to be suffering from some nervous issue, her eyes automatically softened with pity, and then seeing that there were several letters in her mailbox, she hurried over to collect them.
Slipping them into her bag, she hastened from the store, drawing quickly back, however, as the man who had been staring at her brushed rudely against her. Nathalie glanced up with annoyance, but as he begged her pardon, with a sweep of his cap in an exaggerated bow, and another bold, somewhat mocking glance from his eyes, the pink in her cheeks deepened angrily.
Slipping them into her bag, she hurried out of the store, quickly pulling back when the man who had been staring at her bumped into her rudely. Nathalie looked up with annoyance, but as he apologized, lifting his cap in an exaggerated bow and giving her another bold, slightly mocking look, the pink in her cheeks deepened with anger.
134 Nathalie, irritated at the incident, walked slowly down the narrow path leading to the flagging, but suddenly remembering her determination to explore the little village set in the hollow of a hill, the unpleasant occurrence passed from her mind. Attracted by the many flower-beds that bloomed so luxuriantly with such vivid coloring in the door yards of the little New England cottages beyond the post-office, she turned about and slowly strolled in that direction.
134 Nathalie, annoyed by the incident, walked slowly down the narrow path leading to the flagging, but suddenly recalling her resolve to explore the tiny village nestled in the hollow of a hill, the unpleasant event drifted from her thoughts. Drawn in by the numerous flower beds that bloomed vibrantly in the yards of the small New England cottages beyond the post office, she turned around and slowly made her way in that direction.
Presently she came to a sudden pause to gaze admiringly across the road at a white, gable-roofed house, with bright green blinds, on a grassy terrace, peeping from beneath a mass of vines and leaves. It was surrounded by a garden from which came the gleam of many colors, in the tall, flowering rows of sweet peas that flanked its sides. But it was not so much their beauty that held her eyes as the small east wing of the building, where a wide, roomy porch was surmounted by the sign,
Presently, she came to a sudden stop to admire a white, gable-roofed house across the road, featuring bright green shutters, sitting on a grassy terrace, partially hidden by a tangle of vines and leaves. The house was surrounded by a garden that sparkled with various colors, thanks to the tall, blooming rows of sweet peas lining its sides. However, it wasn't just their beauty that caught her attention; it was the small east wing of the building, where a spacious, inviting porch was topped with a sign,
Come in and have a cup of tea
Nathalie would have enjoyed going over and having a sip of that social beverage, lured by the daintiness of the house and its sweet-pea garden, but, on discovering that she had left her purse at home, she continued her walk. A few steps down the road, and she 135 was staring up at a timeless clock—looking as if its hands had been swept away in the mad rush of the hours—in the steeple of a church some distance back from the road. Then she was watching a horseshoer pounding with a noisy “Clank, clank” on the hoof of a horse, patiently standing in front of the blacksmith shop.
Nathalie would have loved to stop by and have a drink, tempted by the charm of the house and its sweet-pea garden, but after realizing she had left her purse at home, she kept walking. A few steps down the road, and she was looking up at a timeless clock—its hands seemingly lost in the crazy rush of time—in the steeple of a church a little way off the road. Then she noticed a horseshoer thumping with a loud “Clank, clank” on a horse's hoof, which was patiently standing in front of the blacksmith shop.
A half-hour later, as she stood in front of a little neglected cemetery at one end of the village, staring in melancholy mood at its time-scarred stones, gleaming with a dulled whiteness from the rank and overgrown shrubbery, she heard the purr of an automobile.
A half-hour later, as she stood in front of a small, neglected cemetery at one end of the village, looking sadly at its weathered stones, shining with a muted whiteness from the thick, overgrown bushes, she heard the purr of a car.
Turning carelessly, she noticed a bright red car, with the glossy, shiny look of newness, coming slowly in her direction, and quickly perceived that its only occupant was the bold-eyed man who had annoyed her in the post-office. She quickly glanced in another direction, but, to her surprise, the car came to a sudden stop, and as the man threw away his cigar, while doffing his cap, he said, pleasantly, “You have chosen rather a dreary place to linger, have you not, on this beautiful afternoon? Would you not like a little ride,—just a help up the hill, you know?”
Turning around carelessly, she spotted a bright red car, gleaming with the shiny look of newness, slowly approaching her. She quickly realized that the only person inside was the bold-eyed man who had annoyed her at the post office. She glanced away but, to her surprise, the car came to an abrupt stop. As the man tossed away his cigar and removed his cap, he said pleasantly, “You’ve picked quite a dreary spot to hang out in, haven’t you, on this beautiful afternoon? Would you like a little ride—a lift up the hill, you know?”
For a moment Nathalie was tongue-tied with astonishment, and was about to walk quickly away, when sudden resentment at the man’s impertinence overwhelmed her. Swinging about, with marked emphasis she answered in stiff formality, “Possibly I 136 might—with friends.” The next second she was hurrying down the road, without waiting to see the man’s eyes darken with annoyance, as he emitted a low whistle. With the peculiar motion of the head already referred to, he started up the car, and a moment later whirled around the bend out of sight.
For a moment, Nathalie was speechless with shock and was about to walk away quickly when a wave of anger at the man's rudeness hit her. Turning around with clear emphasis, she replied in a formal tone, “Maybe I might—with friends.” The next second, she hurried down the road without waiting to see the man's face darken with irritation as he let out a low whistle. With that distinctive head motion mentioned earlier, he started the car and a moment later sped around the bend out of sight.
Nathalie in her haste, caused by her anger and annoyance at the man’s impertinence, was oblivious to the fact that the clouds had been gathering for a thunderstorm, until she heard a loud clap of thunder and a drop of rain swirled into her face. She was tempted to start and run, for she was an arrant coward in a thunderstorm, but remembering that a swiftly moving object is apt to attract the lightning, she curtailed her speed, trying to make as much headway as she could by extra long strides.
Nathalie, caught up in her anger and irritation at the man’s rudeness, didn’t notice that storm clouds had been building until she heard a loud clap of thunder and a raindrop hit her face. She felt the urge to take off running because she was terrified of thunderstorms, but remembering that fast-moving things are more likely to get struck by lightning, she slowed down, trying to cover as much ground as she could with longer strides.
Oh, it was coming down in great big drops! What should she do? But with her heart thumping nervously, she kept resolutely on her way, covering her face with her hands in a spasm of terror every time a streak of lightning zigzagged before her eyes. Oh, she had reached the tea-house! She would take refuge on the wide veranda.
Oh, it was pouring down in huge drops! What should she do? But with her heart racing nervously, she kept pushing ahead, covering her face with her hands in a fit of fear every time a flash of lightning zigzagged in front of her. Oh, she had made it to the tea house! She would seek shelter on the spacious porch.
The next instant she was racing across the road; but before she gained the desired haven, a deafening clap of thunder, followed by a blinding glare of red flame, came bolting through the trees, causing her to utter a loud, frightened scream, as she stumbled blindly up 137 the steps. Another instant and the door of the house was flung wide, as a sweet-faced lady, with pleasant, smiling eyes, hurriedly beckoned for her to hasten in.
The next moment, she was sprinting across the road, but before she reached the safety she wanted, a thunderous clap shook the air, followed by a blinding flash of red light bursting through the trees. This made her scream in fear as she stumbled her way up 137 the steps. In another moment, the door of the house swung open, and a kind-faced woman with warm, inviting eyes quickly signaled her to come inside.
Nathalie, with a little cry of relief, made a wild rush for the door. As the lady closed it, with shaking limbs and white lips, but with an attempt at a smile the girl cried, “Oh, you are very kind to let me come in, for I am just about drenched”; quickly pulling off her hat as she spoke, and then shaking her wet, clinging skirts.
Nathalie let out a little cry of relief and hurried to the door. As the lady closed it, her limbs trembling and her lips pale, she tried to smile while the girl exclaimed, “Oh, you’re so kind to let me in; I’m practically soaked!” She quickly took off her hat as she spoke and then shook her wet, clinging skirts.
“Oh, my dear child! you must come in and take off your wet things,” at this moment came in sudden call from an adjoining room, whose door was standing ajar. Nathalie started in surprise, for the voice was singularly low and sweet, in strange contrast to the somewhat high-sounding, rather unpleasant voices of the few villagers whom she had heard conversing, when waiting for her mail in the post-office.
“Oh, my dear child! You must come in and take off your wet clothes,” a sudden call came from an adjoining room with the door slightly open. Nathalie jumped in surprise, as the voice was unusually soft and sweet, creating a stark contrast to the somewhat loud and rather unpleasant voices of the few villagers she had heard talking while waiting for her mail at the post office.
Fearing she would be intruding,—she had noticed that the lady who had opened the door for her, although she smiled pleasantly, had not seconded the invitation,—she shook her head. “Oh, no,” she protested with evident embarrassment, “I shall not take cold. I can stand here until the storm is over. I am sure I shall be all dry in a moment or so.”
Fearing she would be intruding—she had noticed that the woman who opened the door for her, although she smiled nicely, hadn't backed up the invitation—she shook her head. “Oh, no,” she said, clearly embarrassed, “I won’t catch a cold. I can stand here until the storm passes. I’m sure I’ll be dry in just a moment or so.”
But as the voice insisted that she come in, and the woman with the smiling eyes laid her hand on her arm as if to lead her into the room, she reluctantly entered. As she attempted to stammer forth her 138 thanks, and her fear of trespassing upon their kindness, she saw that the owner of the voice was an elderly lady, evidently an invalid, for she sat in a Morris chair by the window, propped up with pillows. As she motioned for the girl to come nearer, and slowly and awkwardly put forth her hand to feel her wet skirts, Nathalie noticed that her hands were swathed with white cloths.
But as the voice urged her to come in, and the woman with the kind eyes touched her arm to guide her into the room, she hesitantly stepped inside. As she tried to stammer out her 138 thanks and her concern about overstepping their hospitality, she realized that the owner of the voice was an elderly lady, clearly unwell, as she was seated in a Morris chair by the window, supported by pillows. As she waved for the girl to come closer and slowly and awkwardly extended her hand to feel the girl's damp skirts, Nathalie noticed that her hands were wrapped in white cloths.
“Dear me,” she murmured worriedly, “you are wet. I am afraid you will take cold. But just take off your blouse and skirt, and Mona will dry them for you in a few moments by the kitchen fire.”
“Goodness,” she said softly, “you’re soaked. I’m worried you’ll catch a cold. Just take off your blouse and skirt, and Mona will dry them for you by the kitchen fire in no time.”
Then, with a few strange motions of the bandaged hands to the sweet-faced woman,—which immediately revealed to Nathalie that she was deaf and dumb,—the wet garments were quickly removed and taken out to the kitchen to dry. Presently the girl, with humorous amazement, found herself snugly wrapped in a silk Japanese kimono, seated in a big chair by the invalid lady, gazing at her in silent admiration.
Then, with a few odd gestures of her bandaged hands to the kind-faced woman—which quickly made Nathalie realize that she was deaf and mute—the soaked clothes were swiftly taken off and brought to the kitchen to dry. Soon, with a mix of amused disbelief, the girl found herself comfortably wrapped in a silk Japanese kimono, sitting in a large chair next to the invalid lady, watching her in silent admiration.
It was a face that could lay no real claim to beauty, and yet to Nathalie there was a singular charm in the clear-cut outlines of the delicate features, and the soft, warm tints of a complexion that, although many years past youth’s fresh coloring, resembled a blush-rose. But it was the eyes that held Nathalie, black-lashed, deep-set, with a calm, peaceful expression in their deep blue; and the brown hair, slightly threaded with 139 gray, parted in the middle, and curling in a natural wave on each side of her face, gave it the quaint sweetness of some old-time miniature.
It was a face that couldn’t truly be called beautiful, yet for Nathalie, there was a unique charm in the sharp lines of the delicate features and the soft, warm hues of a complexion that, although well past the fresh glow of youth, resembled a blush rose. But it was the eyes that captivated Nathalie—deep-set and framed with long black lashes, they had a calm, peaceful expression in their deep blue; and the brown hair, lightly threaded with 139 gray, parted in the middle and naturally curled on either side of her face, gave it the quaint sweetness of an old-fashioned miniature.
Fascinated, as it were, by the charm of the lady’s personality, the girl was soon chatting volubly, as she told how she came to get caught in the storm. “I am sure I should have reached home before the rain came,” she cried in an aggrieved voice, “if it had not been for that horrid man. For I intended going home by the road he took, which is much shorter, but he had made me so nervous by his rudeness that I took the longest way back, for I was afraid I should meet him again.”
Fascinated by the charm of the lady's personality, the girl quickly started chatting away, explaining how she got caught in the storm. "I'm sure I would have made it home before the rain started," she exclaimed in an upset tone, "if it hadn't been for that horrible man. I meant to take the road he took, which is much shorter, but his rudeness made me so nervous that I went the longer way home because I was afraid I'd run into him again."
“Oh, you must not feel annoyed at receiving an invitation to ride in an automobile when trudging up these mountain roads,” laughed the lady, “for it is quite the customary thing to give a pedestrian a lift up the hills. But I think, in your case,” she added more soberly, “that you did right in refusing the man’s offer, for he was rude, as you say, and all young girls should be careful.”
“Oh, you shouldn’t feel upset about getting an invitation to ride in a car while walking up these mountain roads,” laughed the lady, “because it's pretty common to give someone a lift up the hills. But I think, in your situation,” she added more seriously, “you were right to decline the man's offer, since he was rude, as you said, and all young girls should be cautious.”
Won by her companion’s sympathetic interest, Nathalie told that they were spending the summer at Seven Pillars, up near “Peckett’s on Sugar Hill,” but she was cautious not to tell of the peculiar conditions of their stay, or of her aunt’s strange letter. Miss Whipple, as that proved to be the lady’s name, said that she had known her aunt, Mrs. Renwick, and considered 140 her a very interesting woman, although, to be sure, she was somewhat eccentric. Nathalie also told about her Liberty Girls, a subject that was always close to her heart, and how she was going to try to teach liberty to the little settlement-boys, who were coming up to stay with her for a few weeks.
Won over by her companion’s genuine interest, Nathalie shared that they were spending the summer at Seven Pillars, near “Peckett’s on Sugar Hill,” but she was careful not to mention the unusual conditions of their stay or her aunt’s strange letter. Miss Whipple, as it turned out, was the lady’s name, and she said that she had known Nathalie's aunt, Mrs. Renwick, and considered her a very interesting woman, although, to be fair, she was a bit eccentric. Nathalie also talked about her Liberty Girls, a topic that always meant a lot to her, and how she planned to teach liberty to the little settlement boys who were coming to stay with her for a few weeks.
The invalid, and also her sister, were both greatly interested in Nathalie’s merry chatter; for Mona had come from the kitchen and seated herself on a low stool by the feet of her sister, who would interpret to her as the girl rattled on. In return for Nathalie’s confidences she told how she and her sister, although having been born in the White Mountains, had lived since childhood in Boston. On the death of their parents, after meeting with some reverses, she explained, they had determined to come up to the old homestead and start a sweet-pea farm, as her sister was passionately fond of flowers.
The invalid and her sister were both really engaged in Nathalie’s cheerful conversation; Mona had come in from the kitchen and sat on a low stool by her sister's feet, ready to translate as Nathalie chatted away. In exchange for Nathalie’s stories, she shared how she and her sister, despite being born in the White Mountains, had grown up in Boston. After their parents passed away and they faced some challenges, she explained, they decided to return to the old family home and start a sweet-pea farm since her sister was really passionate about flowers.
It was delightful work, she said, and it meant so much that was beautiful and joyous to her sister, who, of course, on account of her infirmity, was deprived of many pleasures that other people enjoyed. They had an old farm-hand who had lived with them when they were small children, who did the rough gardening, and who made the farm pay by selling the flowers to the mountain hotels.
It was wonderful work, she said, and it meant a lot of beautiful and joyful things to her sister, who, of course, because of her disability, was missing out on many pleasures that others enjoyed. They had an old farmhand who had been with them since they were little kids, who did the tough gardening, and who helped the farm make money by selling flowers to the mountain hotels.
“The tea-house was my sister’s inspiration,” continued 141 Miss Whipple, “and has always been a source of great enjoyment to us both, as so many of the young people from the hotels and boarding-houses would drop in of an afternoon for a cup of tea, or a little dance, as I always used to make it a point to be on hand to play for them. My sister,” she added a little sadly, “although deprived herself of the joys of girlhood, has always been passionately devoted to the young, and has spent any amount of labor in trying to make our little tea-room attractive.
“The tea-house was my sister’s inspiration,” continued 141 Miss Whipple, “and it has always brought us a lot of joy, as many of the young people from the hotels and boarding houses would stop by in the afternoon for a cup of tea or a little dance, since I always made sure to be around to play for them. My sister,” she added a bit sadly, “even though she missed out on the joys of growing up, has always been deeply devoted to young people and has put in a lot of effort to make our little tea-room charming.”
“But now, as I cannot play any more,—you see I am the victim of inflammatory rheumatism,”—she held up her bandaged hands pathetically,—“the young people do not come in as much as they did. It is a great disappointment to us both,” concluded the invalid dolefully, “although perhaps my sister is partly compensated by her work among her flowers.
“But now that I can’t play anymore—you see, I’m dealing with inflammatory rheumatism,”—she held up her bandaged hands sadly,—“the young people don’t come visit as much as they used to. It’s a big disappointment for both of us,” the invalid finished sadly, “although maybe my sister finds some comfort in her work with her flowers.
“But I am wrong to complain in this way,” she hastened to add, a sudden expression of contrition darkening the sweetness of her glance, “for every one has to endure disappointment and sorrow, sooner or later, as my mother used to tell me when I was a girl; and, after all, ours might have been much worse. I try to comfort myself with the thought that all these little jars of life are just ‘helps’ to fit one for the greater life beyond. Indeed,” she added softly, “I grow ashamed of myself for thinking I am even disappointed, 142 when I think of the renunciation, the sufferings, and the agony of the Man of Sorrows, that we might have joy.”
“But I’m wrong to complain like this,” she quickly added, a sudden look of regret dimming the warmth in her eyes, “because everyone has to deal with disappointment and sadness, sooner or later, just like my mother used to say when I was a girl; and, after all, our situation could have been much worse. I try to comfort myself by thinking that all these little struggles in life are just ‘preparations’ to help us for the greater life ahead. Actually,” she said softly, “I feel ashamed of myself for even feeling disappointed, when I consider the sacrifices, the suffering, and the pain of the Man of Sorrows, so that we might have joy.”
Nathalie made no reply, not only because she was at a loss for words to express her sympathy, but stilled, possibly, by the beautiful look of calm peace that had crept into the sweet eyes.
Nathalie didn't respond, not only because she couldn't find the right words to show her sympathy, but also, perhaps, because of the serene, peaceful look that had settled into those sweet eyes.
“But I am wearying you,” smiled the invalid, her eyes lighting with a warm glow, “making you think I am a great martyr because I am deprived of a few things that I think needful to my happiness. Perhaps I am in a particularly rebellious mood to-day, for I am so anxious to read a book a friend sent me, but with my poor hands I cannot hold it, and it makes my neck ache to read from the bookstand. But here comes Mona with your dried clothing; yes, and to bring me off my cross of martyrdom by her sweet patience, for she is always cheery and smiling under her great deprivations.”
“But I’m tiring you out,” the invalid smiled, her eyes brightening with warmth. “I’m making you think I’m some kind of martyr because I’m missing a few things I believe I need to be happy. Maybe I’m just feeling particularly rebellious today because I’m eager to read a book a friend sent me, but with my weak hands, I can’t hold it, and reading from the bookstand makes my neck hurt. But here comes Mona with your dried clothes; yes, and she’s here to rescue me from my martyrdom with her sweet patience, as she’s always cheerful and smiling despite her own significant struggles.”
“Oh, and she can’t even read to you!” lamented Nathalie impulsively, suddenly reminded of what it must mean to live with a person who could not talk to you.
“Oh, and she can’t even read to you!” Nathalie exclaimed, suddenly realizing what it must be like to live with someone who couldn’t talk to you.
“Yes, and that is one of the nails in the cross,” said the shut-in, with whimsical sweetness, “for I not only want some one to talk, to read to me, but sometimes I just yearn for the sound of a human voice. 143 Oh, but I am getting selfish again—for,—Yes, as soon as you get your gown on, you must go with Mona to see her sweet peas; she would love to show them to you.”
“Yes, and that’s one of the nails in the cross,” said the shut-in, with a playful sweetness. “I not only want someone to talk to, to read to me, but sometimes I just crave the sound of a human voice. 143 Oh, but I’m being selfish again—because, as soon as you get your gown on, you really should go with Mona to see her sweet peas; she’d love to show them to you.”
“And I would love to see them,” replied the girl as she dropped the kimono and slipped into her skirt, “for I, too, adore flowers.” And then, as Nathalie fastened up her blouse, and put on her belt, Miss Whipple made her sister understand that their guest wanted to see her bunches of sweet peas.
“And I would love to see them,” replied the girl as she dropped the kimono and slipped into her skirt, “because I also love flowers.” And then, as Nathalie fastened her blouse and put on her belt, Miss Whipple made her sister aware that their guest wanted to see her bunches of sweet peas.
Mona’s face lighted happily as she comprehended, and in a few moments she and Nathalie were standing in an outer shed, where masses of the dainty flowers were piled in heaps, waiting to be tied into bunches, their delicate odor filling the place with quite perceptible fragrance. Nathalie watched the deaf-and-dumb woman tie a few bunches, dimpling in gratified embarrassment as she softly touched the blossoms. She held a beautifully pink-tinted one against the girl’s cheek, to indicate that they were of the same hue, and then smilingly fastened a big bunch to her waist.
Mona's face lit up with happiness as she understood, and in a few moments, she and Nathalie were standing in an outer shed filled with piles of delicate flowers, waiting to be tied into bunches, their subtle fragrance filling the air. Nathalie watched the mute woman tie a few bunches, blushing with happiness as she gently touched the blossoms. She held a beautiful pink flower against the girl's cheek to show that they matched in color, and then smiled as she pinned a large bunch to her waist.
By this time the worst of the storm was over, and Nathalie, seeing that it had settled down to a slow drizzle, decided that she must hurry on, for fear her mother would worry. So, after thanking her kind hostesses, and declaring that she would return their umbrella very soon,—she had promised to make them 144 a real visit, as Miss Whipple called it, in answer to their repeated urgings,—she hurried out into the rain and was soon on her homeward way.
By this point, the worst of the storm had passed, and Nathalie, noticing that it had turned into a light drizzle, decided she needed to hurry home to avoid worrying her mother. So, after thanking her generous hosts and promising to return their umbrella soon—she had committed to making them a proper visit, as Miss Whipple put it, in response to their ongoing invitations—she rushed out into the rain and was quickly on her way home.
It was not a pleasant walk, this plodding over a road deep with mud, and in some places running in tiny rivulets, for the girl had no rubbers on, but she kept up her cheer by whistling softly, for not a person was in sight until she reached the road through the woods, leading to Seven Pillars. Here she spied a queer-looking little figure in black, hobbling on ahead of her with a cane, but no umbrella.
It wasn’t a pleasant walk, trudge through a muddy road, with some areas turning into tiny streams, since the girl wasn’t wearing any rain boots. But she stayed upbeat by softly whistling, as there wasn’t a person in sight until she got to the road through the woods leading to Seven Pillars. Here, she noticed a strange little figure in black, limping ahead of her with a cane but no umbrella.
Something, perhaps it was the basket the woman carried, suggested that she might be the old lady who had called the afternoon before, so the girl hurried her steps, hoping, by the proffer of her umbrella, to atone for the seeming rudeness of her reception of the previous day.
Something, maybe it was the basket the woman was carrying, suggested that she might be the elderly lady who had called the day before, so the girl quickened her pace, hoping that by offering her umbrella, she could make up for how rude she had seemed during their last encounter.
As she reached the black figure, she pantingly cried, “Oh, won’t you come under my umbrella, for I am sure you must be wet.” As she spoke she peered at the woman’s face, almost hidden by the wide brim of an old, rusty-looking black bonnet. But the bright blue eyes in the withered face, under its halo of black, only stared coldly, stonily, while the drooping mouth, seamed with a network of fine wrinkles, and deep lines of worry and disappointment, narrowed into a tightly compressed slit of red.
As she got to the dark figure, she breathlessly said, “Oh, won’t you come under my umbrella? I’m sure you’re wet.” As she spoke, she looked at the woman’s face, mostly covered by the wide brim of an old, rusty black bonnet. But the bright blue eyes in the wrinkled face, surrounded by black, only stared back coldly and stiffly, while the drooping mouth, marked by a network of fine wrinkles and deep lines of worry and disappointment, tightened into a thin red line.
But Nathalie, notwithstanding the disdainful glare, 145 and the woman’s oppressive silence, pushed her umbrella over her head, and, somewhat to her own amusement, after a shuffle or two, was soon walking in step to the old woman’s hobble.
But Nathalie, despite the scornful look, 145 and the woman’s heavy silence, lifted her umbrella over her head, and, slightly amused, after a few shuffles, was quickly walking in sync with the old woman’s slow pace.
“It has been quite a storm, hasn’t it?” ventured the girl, although her cheeks were flushed with embarrassment under the ill-timed silence of the woman, who acted not only as if she could dispense with the shelter of her umbrella, but with her company as well.
“It’s been quite a storm, hasn’t it?” the girl said, though her cheeks were flushed with embarrassment from the awkward silence of the woman, who seemed to disregard not only the shelter of her umbrella but also her company.
The only reply to the girl was a sniff,—sounding almost like a sneer,—but, determined not to be daunted by the old woman’s surliness, Nathalie kept up her chatter, telling how charmed they were with the mountains, especially with Seven Pillars, with its magnificent view, and expressed her regret that they had not been at home the afternoon before, explaining that her mother had been lying down and did not know of her call.
The only response to the girl was a sniff, which sounded almost like a sneer. However, determined not to be discouraged by the old woman’s grumpiness, Nathalie continued her chatter, sharing how enchanted they were with the mountains, especially with Seven Pillars and its amazing view. She also expressed her regret that they hadn’t been at home the afternoon before, explaining that her mother had been resting and didn’t know about her visit.
Presently, with a sudden movement, the old lady came to a halt. Before Nathalie could understand what she was stopping for,—her umbrella was held so closely over her companion’s head that she didn’t perceive the splash of red peeping from between the trees,—she had turned in at a little gate and the girl suddenly realized that the queer old lady was her neighbor of the little red house!
Presently, with a sudden movement, the old lady stopped. Before Nathalie could understand why she was stopping—her umbrella was held so closely over her companion’s head that she didn’t notice the splash of red peeking from between the trees—she had turned into a little gate, and the girl suddenly realized that the strange old lady was her neighbor from the little red house!
For a moment she was speechless; then a smile dawned in her eyes, as she suddenly understood why her greeting had not been returned when passing by 146 earlier in the afternoon. Quickly recovering her wits, however, she stepped forward, and as she held the gate open for her new-found neighbor to pass through, she cried, “Oh, I am so glad I met you, and know that we are near neighbors. Mother will be very pleased to meet you, I am sure, and will soon run over to see you.”
For a moment, she was taken aback; then a smile lit up her eyes as she suddenly realized why her greeting hadn’t been returned when they passed by 146 earlier that afternoon. Quickly getting her composure back, she stepped forward, and as she held the gate open for her new neighbor to walk through, she exclaimed, “Oh, I’m so glad to meet you and to know we’re neighbors! I’m sure my mom will be really happy to meet you, and she’ll come over to say hi soon.”
But no reply was forthcoming, and Nathalie, her patience at a boiling point, hurried on, inwardly vowing that she was never going to speak to that cantankerous old woman again, for had she not done her best to apologize for an unintentional slight? As she reached the veranda with its magic seven pillars her eyes gleamed humorously, as she suddenly realized how funny she must have appeared, hobbling along with that old woman. What a funny way she had of sniffing, and that old black poke-bonnet. Then she wondered if the rest of their neighbors were as peculiar and queer as the old lady in the little red house.
But no response came, and Nathalie, her patience at its limit, rushed ahead, silently promising herself that she would never talk to that cranky old woman again, after all, hadn’t she tried her best to apologize for an unintentional insult? As she reached the veranda with its enchanting seven pillars, her eyes sparkled with humor as she suddenly realized how ridiculous she must have looked, limping along with that old woman. What a silly way she had of sniffing, and that old black poke-bonnet. Then she wondered if the rest of their neighbors were as strange and odd as the old lady in the little red house.
CHAPTER X
THE SWEET-PEA LADIES
Nathalie, with girlish eagerness, hurried into the house, and was soon telling her mother about her “adventure day,” as she called it, dwelling at length upon her experiences at the Sweet Pea Tea-House, and, with some show of resentment, on her encounter with their neighbor in the little red house.
Nathalie, with youthful excitement, rushed into the house and quickly started sharing with her mom all about her "adventure day," as she called it. She went on and on about her experiences at the Sweet Pea Tea-House and, with a hint of annoyance, about her run-in with their neighbor in the little red house.
Mrs. Page became intensely interested in the Sweet-Pea ladies, as her daughter designated them, but cautioned her against cherishing any resentment at the rudeness of the little old lady in black, as, naturally, she was offended that her overtures of friendliness had been slighted by the city folks. She and Nathalie would go very shortly and call upon her; she did not doubt but that her apologies would be accepted, and that the unpleasant incident would be forgotten.
Mrs. Page became really interested in the Sweet-Pea ladies, as her daughter called them, but warned her not to hold any grudges against the rude little old lady in black, since she was understandably hurt that her friendly gestures had been ignored by the city people. She and Nathalie would soon visit her; she was sure that her apologies would be accepted and that the awkward situation would be forgotten.
The next morning, while Nathalie was gathering some lettuce in the garden near the barn, she met Sam, the tow-headed young farm-hand, who looked after the place, and who, with his buxom young wife, lived in a small white house a short distance down the road. 148 He was a thick-set, sturdy, young fellow, with a broad, good-natured face, from which white-lashed, piglike blue eyes peered bashfully out above his shiny red cheeks. When he met any of the city folks, as he called the inhabitants of Seven Pillars, he would grin bashfully, and slowly drag off his old straw hat in a greeting, growing very red from embarrassed shyness if called upon to engage in conversation with any of them.
The next morning, while Nathalie was picking some lettuce in the garden by the barn, she ran into Sam, the blonde young farmhand who took care of the place. He lived with his curvy young wife in a small white house a short distance down the road. 148 He was a solid, sturdy young guy with a broad, friendly face, and his blue eyes, which had white lashes and looked a bit pig-like, peered out shyly over his shiny red cheeks. When he met any of the city folks, as he called the residents of Seven Pillars, he would grin shyly and slowly tip his old straw hat in greeting, turning very red from embarrassment if he had to start a conversation with any of them.
But Nathalie, who had had to depend upon Sam for a certain amount of necessary knowledge in relation to the house and garden, had not only grown to depend upon him in many ways, but had become quite friendly with him. She had learned that he was a level-headed, well-meaning young man and that his eyes could twinkle responsively, even if he was somewhat slow of tongue.
But Nathalie, who had to rely on Sam for some important knowledge about the house and garden, not only came to depend on him in various ways, but also became quite friendly with him. She discovered that he was a practical, good-hearted young man and that his eyes could sparkle with response, even if he was a bit slow to speak.
As he began to show Nathalie how to select the heads with the soundest hearts, she told him how she had been caught in the thunderstorm the afternoon before and the kindness of the inmates of the Sweet Pea Tea-House.
As he started to teach Nathalie how to pick the heads with the healthiest hearts, she shared with him how she had gotten caught in the thunderstorm the day before and the kindness of the people at the Sweet Pea Tea-House.
“Sure, Miss, they be nice ladies,” assented Sam. “I’ve knowed them this long time. They were born in that old house, but when the old man Whipple growed rich—some relative or t’other left him a pile o’ money—they went skylarking down to Boston—thought we country folks weren’t smart enough fur 149 them, I reckon. But when the old man’s luck went agin him and he died, them gals come home to roost. I feel right sorry for them, for the Lord knows they don’t have no stuffin’s to their turkey these days. Too bad about the tea-house er goin’ to shucks, for sure it use ter bring in er penny er two in the sellin’ o’ them posies.
“Sure, Miss, they’re nice ladies,” agreed Sam. “I’ve known them for a long time. They were born in that old house, but when old man Whipple got rich—some relative or another left him a ton of money—they went running off to Boston. They thought we country folks weren’t smart enough for them, I guess. But when old man’s luck ran out and he died, those girls came back home. I feel really sorry for them because God knows they don’t have any stuffing for their turkey these days. It’s too bad about the tea house going under, for sure, because it used to bring in a penny or two from selling those flowers.”
“I see ole Jakes, with his old flivver a wheezin’ and blowin’ up these ere hills, er takin’ them to the hotels er pile er times. By Gosh, that Jakes sure is ole, fer he’s been er luggin’ round these parts with one foot half-buried fer the last ten years. When he goes off the handle what’ll become of the poor ole ladies—the folks hereabouts are er guessin’. That deaf-and-dumb one—she makes me feel sort er lonesome.” Sam suddenly confided, “with no gift of gab to er, and t’other one with the rheumatics, sure they do be afflicted.”
“I see old Jakes, with his old car wheezing and blowing up these hills, taking them to the hotels or a bunch of fun spots. Wow, that Jakes is really old, since he’s been dragging around these parts with one foot half-buried for the last ten years. When he loses his temper, what will happen to the poor old ladies—the folks around here are guessing. That deaf and mute one—she makes me feel kind of lonely.” Sam suddenly confessed, “with no ability to talk, and the other one with rheumatism, they sure are struggling.”
Nathalie also told Sam about meeting their neighbor in the little red house. But when she questioned him as to who she was, and if she lived there all alone, his face became impassive and he grew evasive in his answers. Surmising that he might possibly be a relative of hers—as she had seen him working about the place, she said no more, but hurried into the house, her mind intent on the Sweet-Pea ladies and their pathetic little story, as told by Sam.
Nathalie also mentioned to Sam that she met their neighbor in the little red house. But when she asked him who she was and if she lived there all by herself, his expression turned blank and he became vague in his responses. Suspecting that he might be a relative of hers—since she had seen him working around the place—she didn’t say anything more but quickly went into the house, her thoughts focused on the Sweet-Pea ladies and their sad little story as told by Sam.
“What a misfortune,” she mused, “to be poor, an 150 invalid, and with only a deaf-and-dumb sister to depend upon. O dear! what terrible things people have to suffer when they grow old. Well, I shall have to go this afternoon and return that umbrella, and—yes, I just wish I could do something to help them in some way, for Miss Whipple is a dear!”
“What a misfortune,” she thought, “to be poor, disabled, and have only a mute sister to rely on. Oh dear! What terrible things people have to endure as they get older. Well, I’ll have to go this afternoon and return that umbrella, and—yes, I really wish I could do something to help them in some way, because Miss Whipple is a sweetheart!”
But, as she hastened to her room to make her customary entry in her diary, the two ladies were forgotten. This daily duty the girl found quite irksome, especially when she had forgotten, and had to make her entry at night when she was tired and wanted to tumble right into bed; and then, too, she did not see how the everyday doings of her life could interest any one. And as for searching for the most valuable thing in the house, this she had never found time to do. Possibly she had not tried very hard to find time, as deep within her heart she considered the whole thing sheer nonsense. And how was she going to judge the value of the things in the house, anyway, she questioned rebelliously, for was it not just an old curio shop filled with strange, odd junk, that her aunt had brought from the other side?
But as she rushed to her room to make her usual diary entry, she forgot about the two ladies. This daily task was pretty annoying for her, especially when she had forgotten to do it earlier and had to write at night when she was tired and just wanted to jump into bed. Plus, she didn’t understand how the everyday happenings of her life could interest anyone. As for finding the most valuable thing in the house, she never found the time to do that. Maybe she hadn’t really tried that hard to find the time, since deep down she thought the whole idea was ridiculous. And how was she supposed to judge the value of the things in the house anyway, she wondered defiantly, because wasn’t it just an old curiosity shop filled with weird, odd junk that her aunt had brought back from the other side?
But when she hinted this to her mother, she had been duly rebuked, although Mrs. Page agreed with her daughter that it would be a difficult task to determine the value of anything she might select. She said, however, that she considered that Nathalie, as a courtesy to her aunt, who was giving them such a delightful 151 summer up in those beautiful mountains, should do all that she could to comply with her request, even if she thought it absurd.
But when she mentioned this to her mother, she was firmly scolded, although Mrs. Page agreed with her daughter that it would be tough to figure out the worth of anything she might choose. She said, however, that she believed Nathalie, out of respect for her aunt, who was treating them to such a wonderful summer in those beautiful mountains, should do everything she could to fulfill her request, even if she thought it was silly.
“I doubt if the finding of this very mysterious valuable thing would bring either money or property to any one,” continued the lady, “as I understand that Aunt Mary left the bulk of her estate to some charitable institution as long as no near relative or heir appeared. But she was, as I have told you before, very queer in some ways, and probably took this method of giving away some of her personal effects. It is not at all likely, Nathalie, that you will be the lucky finder,”—there was a smile in Mrs. Page’s eyes,—“but still you should make it a point to search for it, no matter how you feel.”
“I doubt that finding this very mysterious valuable item would bring anyone money or possessions,” the lady continued. “From what I understand, Aunt Mary left most of her estate to some charity as long as no close relative or heir showed up. But as I’ve told you before, she was pretty eccentric in some ways and probably used this method to give away some of her personal belongings. It’s not likely, Nathalie, that you’ll be the lucky one to find it,”—there was a smile in Mrs. Page’s eyes,—“but still, you should make it a point to look for it, no matter how you feel.”
“Oh I intended to hunt for the old thing, anyway,” returned Nathalie excusingly, “but I have been a little slow, perhaps, because Cynthia has been so obsessed with the idea, that I hate to be as silly. Jan says she spends most of the day hunting in the attic and through the house when we are down-stairs. She is wild to get into that mystery room, for she thinks it is hidden there.
“Oh, I meant to look for the old thing anyway,” Nathalie said apologetically, “but I've been a bit slow, maybe, because Cynthia has been so fixated on it that I don't want to seem ridiculous. Jan says she spends most of the day searching in the attic and around the house while we’re downstairs. She's eager to get into that mystery room because she believes it’s hidden there.”
“But you should have seen her last night, mother,” giggled Nathalie. “I was coming through the hall and suddenly saw a flash of light on the stairs. And there was Cynthia, down on her knees, peering under the stair-carpet and poking about with her flash-light. 152 She seemed quite annoyed when she saw that she was discovered, and, jumping up quickly, scurried down the hall. Dear me! she is the queerest thing.”
“But you should have seen her last night, Mom,” giggled Nathalie. “I was walking through the hall and suddenly saw a flash of light on the stairs. And there was Cynthia, down on her knees, looking under the stair carpet and poking around with her flashlight. 152 She looked really frustrated when she realized she was caught, and, jumping up quickly, hurried down the hall. Wow! She’s such a strange one.”
“Well, let her look,” replied Mrs. Page kindly. “Perhaps her efforts will be rewarded, for, as I understand, she is engaged to a Mr. Buddie, and he is very poor, Janet says. I presume it would make them both very happy if Cynthia came into a little money, or found something of value, for perhaps they could be married.”
“Well, let her look,” replied Mrs. Page kindly. “Maybe her efforts will pay off, because, as I understand it, she’s engaged to a Mr. Buddie, and he’s really poor, Janet says. I guess it would make them both very happy if Cynthia came into a bit of money or found something valuable, because then they might be able to get married.”
“But, mother, Janet hasn’t looked once. She hates this mystery prowl, as she calls it, as much as I do,” emphasized Nathalie, “and I have hard work making her write in her diary. She is busy writing a speech on suffrage, which she expects to deliver this fall. Just imagine, mother, Janet making a speech,” and Nathalie smiled at the thought.
“But, Mom, Janet hasn't looked once. She hates this mystery hunt, as she calls it, just as much as I do,” Nathalie emphasized. “I have a tough time getting her to write in her diary. She's busy working on a speech about suffrage, which she plans to deliver this fall. Just imagine, Mom, Janet giving a speech,” and Nathalie smiled at the thought.
Later in the day, dust-begrimed and with her hair all of a frowse, Nathalie came trudging wearily up the staircase. She had been searching for two hours in the library, a great dark room, lined with bookcases, and whose wainscoted walls were hung with family portraits,—Nathalie called them the Renwicks’ Honor Roll,—interspersed with medallions of great authors and musicians, and valuable etchings.
Later in the day, dusty and with her hair all a mess, Nathalie came trudging wearily up the staircase. She had been searching for two hours in the library, a big dark room filled with bookcases, and whose paneled walls were decorated with family portraits—Nathalie called them the Renwicks’ Honor Roll—mixed with medallions of great authors and musicians, and valuable etchings.
The girl had laughed at Cynthia for prowling about, but as she threw herself on her bed, tired and aching from stretching her arms and climbing step-ladders, 153 in order to peer behind the pictures and cornices, she felt that she would never laugh at her again. For the more she had searched, the more her interest had increased, and with it the conclusion that her aunt, for contrariness, had really hidden something of great value, in order to try the patience of the searchers, in some eerie corner or nook.
The girl had teased Cynthia for sneaking around, but as she collapsed onto her bed, exhausted and sore from stretching her arms and climbing ladders, 153 in order to look behind the pictures and moldings, she realized she would never make fun of her again. The more she searched, the more her curiosity grew, leading her to believe that her aunt, just to be difficult, had actually hidden something really valuable to test the patience of those searching, in some creepy corner or nook.
But was Mrs. Renwick really dead? This was a question that assailed the girl whenever she passed the mystery room, whose door loomed big and dark, with its heavy crimson curtain, in the long hall. Somehow, she had confessed to Janet, whenever she hurried by that door she had a strange feeling, a feeling of nearness to some one,—the way one would feel, she imagined, if they looked up suddenly and found some one watching them with a strange, fixed stare.
But was Mrs. Renwick really dead? This was a question that troubled the girl whenever she walked past the mystery room, whose door stood large and dark, with its heavy crimson curtain, in the long hall. Somehow, she had admitted to Janet that every time she rushed by that door, she felt a strange sensation, a feeling of being close to someone—the way one might feel, she imagined, if they suddenly looked up and found someone staring at them with a strange, fixed gaze.
Could it be that some one was hidden in that room? But she always dismissed the thought with a half-laugh, as being very silly. Nevertheless she always raced by that door, especially at night, when the hall was wrapped in an uncanny gloominess from the dark shadows that came from the big grandfather’s clock, the heavy, black-looking wardrobe at one end, and other ponderous and carved pieces of mahogany resting against the wall.
Could it be that someone was hiding in that room? But she always brushed off the thought with a half-laugh, considering it really silly. Still, she always hurried past that door, especially at night, when the hallway was covered in a weird darkness from the shadows cast by the big grandfather clock, the heavy, dark-looking wardrobe at one end, and other heavy and ornate pieces of mahogany leaning against the wall.
The following afternoon Nathalie set forth to return the umbrella to its owners, laden with a basket of fruit, in appreciation of their kindness to her. As she 154 walked cheerily along, a sudden thought loomed big in her mind; she had been thinking how she was going to live up to her watchword, “Liberty and humanity—our best,” when it had occurred to her that one way would be to offer to read to Miss Whipple every day. The girl’s eyes glowed, and then she wavered. “Oh, no, I don’t see how I can do that, for I have so much to do at home, and I do not want to miss my walks.” Her face clouded as she silently struggled with herself, divided with the desire to cheer her new friend, and yet not to have to forego her walks.
The next afternoon, Nathalie set out to return the umbrella to its owners, carrying a basket of fruit to thank them for their kindness. As she walked happily along, a sudden thought struck her; she had been contemplating how to live up to her motto, “Liberty and humanity—our best,” when it occurred to her that one way to do this would be to offer to read to Miss Whipple every day. The girl’s eyes lit up, but then she hesitated. “Oh, no, I don’t see how I can do that, because I have so much to do at home, and I don’t want to miss my walks.” Her face fell as she silently struggled with herself, torn between the desire to support her new friend and the wish to keep her walks.
She found the invalid lying back in her chair, looking pale and wan, but when Nathalie inquired if she was suffering, she hastily answered, “Oh, no, I am just pure tired, for I have been trying to read my new war-book, and it has made me ache all over.”
She found the invalid resting in her chair, looking pale and weak, but when Nathalie asked if she was in pain, she quickly replied, “Oh, no, I’m just really tired because I’ve been trying to read my new war book, and it has made me sore all over.”
“Oh, Miss Whipple,” broke from the girl impulsively,—somehow she could not be selfish,—“wouldn’t you like to have me come and read to you for a little while each day?”
“Oh, Miss Whipple,” the girl said impulsively—somehow she couldn’t be selfish—“wouldn’t you like me to come and read to you for a little while each day?”
“Oh, you dear child, that is most kind of you,” the lady’s eyes brightened. “Indeed, I should be delighted, but it would be selfish to keep you indoors on these beautiful mountain days.” A little sigh ended the sentence.
“Oh, you sweet child, that’s really kind of you,” the lady’s eyes lit up. “I’d be thrilled, but it would be selfish to keep you inside on these gorgeous mountain days.” A small sigh concluded her sentence.
“But you would not be keeping me in,” insisted her companion, “for I should just love to read to you, and I know I shall find plenty of time to walk somewhere 155 every day.” And then, as an added plea to her request, she told of her mornings with Nita Van Vorst, and how their taking turns at reading to one another had been a source of great instruction to them both.
“But you wouldn't be holding me back,” her companion insisted, “because I would really love to read to you, and I’m sure I'll have plenty of time to walk somewhere 155 every day.” Then, to support her request, she shared her mornings with Nita Van Vorst, explaining how they took turns reading to each other, which had been very educational for both of them.
In a short time Nathalie was happily reading to her friend, who listened with keen enjoyment. After a time, fearing the girl would tire, they stopped for a little chat, and it was during one of these chats that Nathalie told of meeting their queer neighbor who lived in the red house, and how rudely she had been repulsed by the old lady, when she had tried to atone for her reception of the day before.
In no time, Nathalie was happily reading to her friend, who listened with great enjoyment. After a while, worried that the girl might get tired, they paused for a little chat, and it was during one of these conversations that Nathalie shared her experience of meeting their strange neighbor who lived in the red house, and how rudely the old lady had dismissed her when she tried to make up for the way she had been received the day before.
“A little old woman in a black bonnet, with a basket?” repeated Miss Whipple in a puzzled tone. “Why, that is strange, for I didn’t know that any one lived in that little red house. Some years past Mrs. Renwick allowed a poor old woman to live there rent free, but she died a few years ago. I shall have to ask Jakes about it, for he knows every man, woman, or child who lives on these mountains.”
“A little old woman in a black bonnet, carrying a basket?” Miss Whipple said, sounding confused. “That's odd because I didn't know anyone lived in that little red house. A few years ago, Mrs. Renwick let a poor old woman live there for free, but she passed away a few years back. I guess I’ll have to ask Jakes about it; he knows everyone who lives in these mountains.”
During one of these pauses Mona came in, and her sister, noting the wistful look in the patient brown eyes, surmised that she, too, would like to enjoy Nathalie’s youth and charm. And so, in a few moments, the girl was out in the sweet-pea garden, delighting Mona with her enthusiastic interest in the delicately tinted flowers that grew in tall, long lines on each side of the house.
During one of these breaks, Mona came in, and her sister, noticing the longing look in her warm brown eyes, guessed that she, too, wanted to experience Nathalie’s youth and charm. So, in just a few moments, the girl was outside in the sweet-pea garden, exciting Mona with her enthusiastic interest in the delicately colored flowers that grew in tall, long rows on either side of the house.
156 Here, too, she met Jakes, an old white-haired man, bent almost double with age. He made up for her companion’s enforced silence, by showing the many different varieties of these exquisite flowers, which, on their rough stems, with their tendril-bearing leaves, peeped coyly at her, in almost every tint of their varying colors.
156 Here, she also met Jakes, an elderly man with white hair, hunched over with age. He filled the silence left by her companion by showcasing the many different kinds of these beautiful flowers, which, on their rough stems, with their tendril-like leaves, shyly peeked at her in almost every shade of their vibrant colors.
But the girl glanced up with quick surprise, when she heard the old man, in his quavering, broken voice, softly repeat:
But the girl looked up in quick surprise when she heard the old man, in his shaky, faltering voice, softly repeat:
“Here are sweet peas, on tiptoe for a flight;
With wings of gentle flush o’er delicate white,
And taper fingers catching at all things,
To bind them all about with tiny rings.”
“Here are sweet peas, standing ready for a flight;
With soft, colorful wings over delicate white,
And slender fingers reaching for everything,
To wrap it all up with little rings.”
As the old man saw Nathalie glance up at him in ill-concealed astonishment at his aptness in repeating the poetic quotation, he smiled and said, “Ah, Miss, I have planted, transplanted, trained, tended, and watched these sweet posies for many a long year as carefully as a mother-hen tends her tiny chicks. But it was my dear lady, herself, who taught me that verse, and sure I have never forgotten it, although I do not know the name of the poet-man who wrote it.”
As the old man noticed Nathalie looking up at him in barely hidden surprise at his ability to quote the poem, he smiled and said, “Ah, Miss, I have planted, transplanted, nurtured, cared for, and observed these lovely flowers for many years, just like a mother hen looks after her little chicks. But it was my dear lady who taught me that line, and I’ve never forgotten it, even though I don't know the name of the poet who wrote it.”
Nathalie, with her hand in Mona’s, who seemed to love to hold it, was now led by her into the little shed, where she was soon busily employed in helping her tie the sweet peas into bunches, to be delivered the next morning to the hotels by Jakes.
Nathalie, holding Mona's hand, which she seemed to enjoy, was led by her into the small shed, where she quickly got busy helping her tie the sweet peas into bunches, ready to be delivered to the hotels by Jakes the next morning.
157 From the making of bouquets she wandered into the tea-room, where Mona had hurried, on seeing a couple of young ladies come in, who wanted to buy some post-cards. While they were selecting them the deaf-and-dumb woman hastened into the kitchen for her tea-tray. Nathalie, meanwhile, waited by the little glass case in one corner of the room, carelessly studying the mountain-views that lined it, and where boxes of maple sugar, pine pillows, and various knick-knacks that Miss Whipple said she had made before her hands had become so helpless, lay scattered about for sale.
157 After making some bouquets, she wandered into the tea room, where Mona had rushed off to greet a couple of young ladies who had come in looking to buy some postcards. While they were picking out their choices, the deaf-and-mute woman quickly went to the kitchen for her tea tray. Meanwhile, Nathalie waited by the small glass case in one corner of the room, casually looking over the mountain views displayed there, along with boxes of maple sugar, pine pillows, and various knick-knacks that Miss Whipple claimed she had made before her hands had become so unsteady, all up for sale.
As she turned restlessly away from the case, her glance fell on the two girls, who stood examining the cards on the wall near, and she half smiled at their grotesqueness, as she called their modish style of apparel. For the girls, fair samples of the average fashionable summer girls, wore their hair plastered down on the sides of their faces in deep scallops, while their cheeks were carmine-tinted, and their noses whitewashed with powder. With their long, thin necks rising in kangaroo fashion from their turn-over, low-necked collars, and with their short-waisted belts and narrow skirts, high above their high-heeled, white boots, they reminded Nathalie of some funny French dolls that she had seen once in a museum in New York.
As she turned away from the display, her eyes caught the two girls who were checking out the cards on the nearby wall, and she half-smiled at their ridiculousness, as she called their trendy style of clothing. The girls, typical examples of fashionable summer girls, had their hair slicked down on the sides of their faces in deep waves, while their cheeks were bright red and their noses were covered in powder. With their long, thin necks poking out like kangaroos from their low-cut collars, and their short-waisted belts and narrow skirts sitting high above their high-heeled white boots, they reminded Nathalie of some quirky French dolls she had once seen in a museum in New York.
She was wondering why so many girls of the present day thought it improved them to make themselves so 158 ungainly and painted-looking, when one of the girls suddenly turned her face to her. A sudden exclamation, and she had stepped towards Nathalie, who was now staring at her in puzzled recognition.
She was curious why so many girls today believed it made them look better to appear so awkward and heavily made-up, when one of the girls suddenly turned to her. With a quick exclamation, she moved closer to Nathalie, who was now looking at her in confused recognition.
“I declare, if it isn’t Nathalie Page. Why, don’t you remember me?” she shrilled excitedly. “I’m Nelda Sackett. You remember we used to be deskmates at Madame Chemidlin’s?”
“I declare, if it isn’t Nathalie Page. Why, don’t you remember me?” she exclaimed excitedly. “I’m Nelda Sackett. You remember we used to be desk buddies at Madame Chemidlin’s?”
“Why, Nelda, how do you do? Yes, I remember you now,” smiled Nathalie cordially. “How stupid of me not to have recognized you before. But dear me, you have changed!” And then, fearing that the girl might detect her lack of admiration for her modish appearance, she hastily added, “Oh, you have grown to be quite a young lady.”
“Why, Nelda, how are you? Yes, I remember you now,” Nathalie smiled warmly. “How silly of me not to have recognized you earlier. But wow, you’ve changed!” Then, worried that Nelda might sense her lack of enthusiasm for her stylish look, she quickly added, “Oh, you’ve really grown into quite a young lady.”
“Young lady! Well, I should say that I was,” flashed the girl in a slightly aggrieved tone. “Why, I’m eighteen, and Justine,—you remember Justine Guertin,—she is nineteen.”
“Young lady! Well, I should say that I was,” the girl replied in a slightly annoyed tone. “I’m eighteen, and Justine—you remember Justine Guertin—she’s nineteen.”
By this time Justine had joined them, and after greeting Nathalie with condescending graciousness, the three girls were soon chatting about their school-days and former friends. The girls were both very curious as to their old schoolmate’s life in her new home. Nathalie determined to hold her own and not be cowed by their ultra-fashionableness, and, despite the jarring realization of the fact that they knew of her changed circumstances since her father’s death, bravely told 159 about her new life in their little home on Main Street, in the old-fashioned Long Island town. She not only dwelt with persistent minuteness on the many details of her more humble life, but told of her connection with the Girl Pioneers, the pleasure it had brought her, the fineness of its aims and purposes, and the wholesomeness of a life lived in the open, with its knowledge of bird and tree lore, and the many new avenues of knowledge it opened to a girl.
By now, Justine had joined them, and after greeting Nathalie with a patronizing smile, the three girls quickly started chatting about their school days and old friends. They were both very curious about their former classmate’s life in her new home. Nathalie was determined to stand her ground and not feel intimidated by their extreme fashion sense. Despite the unsettling realization that they were aware of her changed circumstances since her father's death, she confidently shared with them about her new life in their little house on Main Street in the quaint Long Island town. She not only went into detail about the many aspects of her simpler life but also talked about her involvement with the Girl Pioneers, the joy it had brought her, the nobility of its goals, and the benefits of living outdoors, including the insights it provided into bird and tree knowledge and the many new learning opportunities it offered a girl.
This sort of thing, however, did not seem to appeal to these New York girls, and they stared somewhat coldly, although a bit curiously, at Nathalie during her recital, and then abruptly changed the subject by telling of their own gay life in the city. Oh, and what a time they were having at the Sunset Hill House, playing golf and tennis, and dancing in the evening with gay college boys and other young men.
This kind of thing, however, didn't seem to interest these New York girls. They watched Nathalie during her recital with a mix of indifference and curiosity, then quickly shifted the conversation to their own lively lives in the city. Oh, and what a time they were having at the Sunset Hill House, playing golf and tennis, and dancing in the evenings with cheerful college guys and other young men.
By this time Mona had returned, and, as Nathalie saw her trying to wheel a small tea-table into the room with both hands full, she hastily flew to her aid. And later, when she returned for some needed articles in the kitchen, the young girl arranged the teacups and saucers on the tray before the girls, as they had asked that they might be served with a cup of tea à la Russe.
By this time, Mona had come back, and when Nathalie saw her struggling to bring a small tea table into the room while her hands were full, she quickly rushed to help her. Later, when she went back to get some items from the kitchen, the young girl set up the teacups and saucers on the tray for the girls, as they had requested to be served with a cup of tea à la Russe.
The girls continued to chatter in a desultory fashion for awhile, although Nathalie, whose intuitions were keen, sensed that they had grown a little less cordial in their manner towards her. Presently, finishing 160 their tea and paying for it, they nodded Nathalie a careless good-by and hurried out, somewhat to the girl’s surprise, who had naturally supposed that they would invite her to come and see them at the hotel, or express a desire to visit her at her home.
The girls kept chatting aimlessly for a while, although Nathalie, who had a strong intuition, felt that they had become a bit less friendly toward her. Soon, after finishing their tea and paying for it, they gave Nathalie a casual goodbye and quickly left, which surprised her since she had assumed they would invite her to come see them at the hotel or show interest in visiting her at home.
With reddened cheeks and a disappointed expression in her eyes Nathalie watched them as they crossed the road to the flagged walk opposite. It was true, she was lonely up there in her new surroundings, with no special friend to run in and chat with, as she had been accustomed to do with her friend Helen. She wanted young company, and the meeting with her former schoolmates had revived old memories and worn-out longings.
With flushed cheeks and a look of disappointment in her eyes, Nathalie watched them cross the street to the paved path across the way. It was true; she felt lonely in her new environment, with no special friend to drop in and chat with, like she used to do with her friend Helen. She craved youthful companionship, and seeing her former classmates had stirred up old memories and faded desires.
Although she did not approve of their style of dress, or their airy manners, still they were something that belonged to her former life in New York, and she would have enjoyed having a chat with them once in a while for the sake of “Auld Lang Syne.”
Although she didn't like their style of dress or their carefree attitudes, they still reminded her of her past life in New York, and she would have enjoyed chatting with them once in a while for the sake of "Auld Lang Syne."
With the quick thought that they were not worth a pang of regret, for they had shown that they had become very snobbish, she turned away, and aimlessly wandered over to an old piano that stood on one side of the room. As if to ease the hurt feeling that still jarred her sensitiveness, she sat down and carelessly ran her fingers over the old yellow keys. A sudden call from the invalid in the adjoining room,—the door 161 stood open,—for Nathalie to play something, brought the girl to herself with a sudden start.
With a quick thought that they weren't worth feeling regret over because they had become quite snobbish, she turned away and aimlessly wandered over to an old piano in one corner of the room. Trying to ease the hurt that still bothered her, she sat down and casually ran her fingers over the old yellow keys. A sudden call from the invalid in the next room—the door 161 stood open—asking Nathalie to play something, jolted the girl back to reality.
“Oh, I do not know anything to play,” she weakly pleaded, “for I am no musician.” Nathalie spoke the truth, for she not only had no special talent for music, but the little accomplishment that she had acquired in that line had been sadly neglected since she had taken up housework.
“Oh, I really don’t know any songs to play,” she weakly pleaded, “because I’m not a musician.” Nathalie was speaking the truth, as she not only lacked any special talent for music, but the little skill she had picked up in that area had been sadly overlooked since she started doing housework.
But as the invalid’s plea was insistent, and the girl did not want to be disagreeable, she again swept her hands over the keyboard, this time unconsciously falling into one of Chopin’s waltzes, something that she supposed she had forgotten. From this she wandered into a few rag-time airs, and then came snatches of old-time melodies, until finally she was playing a well-known reverie by a noted composer.
But since the sick person's request was persistent, and the girl didn’t want to be unhelpful, she went back to the keyboard, this time unwittingly slipping into one of Chopin’s waltzes, something she thought she had forgotten. From there, she drifted into a few ragtime tunes, and then snippets of classic melodies, until she was eventually playing a famous reverie by a renowned composer.
But suddenly realizing that she had heard nothing from the next room, and fearing that she had wearied Miss Whipple, she hastily arose and hurried to her side, to find her lying back in her chair with a strange restful expression on her face, but with closed eye lids, through which tears were slowly trickling.
But suddenly realizing that she hadn't heard anything from the next room and worried that she might have tired out Miss Whipple, she quickly got up and rushed to her side, only to find her leaning back in her chair with a strange, peaceful look on her face, but with her eyes closed, through which tears were slowly streaming down.
“Oh, Miss Whipple, I should not have played so long,” exclaimed the girl remorsefully. “Perhaps I have made you feel sad.”
“Oh, Miss Whipple, I shouldn’t have played for so long,” the girl said regretfully. “Maybe I made you feel sad.”
“No, no, my child! Your playing has brightened me up.” The invalid sat up quickly, as she shamefacedly 162 wiped away the stray tears. “Indeed, my dear, I pay you a compliment when I cry, for if the music did not go right to my heart the tears would not have come. No, I would never regret being an old shut-in if I could hear music once in a while. But that was a lovely little thing you played last; it is one of my favorites.”
“No, no, my child! Your playing has made me feel so much better.” The invalid sat up quickly, as she bashfully wiped away the stray tears. “Honestly, my dear, I’m complimenting you when I cry, because if the music didn’t touch my heart, the tears wouldn’t have come. No, I would never regret being an old shut-in if I could hear music once in a while. But that last piece you played was lovely; it’s one of my favorites.”
“Oh, I must try to get Janet to come down and play for you,” cried Nathalie with a relieved sigh, “for she is a real musician, and plays for us every evening as we sit on the veranda in the moonlight. But it is getting late and I must go, for I have supper to get. When my boys come, perhaps I shall have more time, for, you know, I am going to put them through their paces and teach them to be helpful.”
“Oh, I have to get Janet to come down and play for you,” Nathalie exclaimed with a relieved sigh, “because she’s a real musician, and plays for us every evening while we sit on the porch in the moonlight. But it’s getting late, and I need to head out to make supper. When my boys get here, maybe I’ll have more time, because, you know, I plan to train them to be more helpful.”
After a hasty good-by, Nathalie was hurrying across the road, while waving her hand to the sweet, patient face smiling at her from the window. Some twenty minutes later she arrived at Seven Pillars, her eyes happily aglow, as she told her mother of the readings to be, to help lighten the burdens of her new friend, the shut-in.
After a quick goodbye, Nathalie hurried across the road, waving to the sweet, patient face smiling at her from the window. About twenty minutes later, she arrived at Seven Pillars, her eyes shining with happiness as she told her mother about the upcoming readings to help lighten the burdens of her new friend, the shut-in.
Several days later Nathalie, with her mother, walked slowly down the garden-path, with its border of oldtime hollyhocks and peonies and white stones, to the gate-posts. A step or two, and they stood before the door of the little red house, as the girl, with pleased eyes, cried, “Well, mother, she’s in, for I saw her 163 sitting at the window as we came up the path, so we can get this ordeal over.”
Several days later, Nathalie walked slowly down the garden path with her mother. The path was lined with old hollyhocks, peonies, and white stones, leading them to the gate posts. Just a few steps later, they stood in front of the little red house. The girl, her eyes bright with excitement, exclaimed, “Well, Mom, she’s in because I saw her sitting at the window as we walked up the path, so we can get this over with.”
But unfortunately she reckoned without her host, for although they knocked and knocked, Nathalie even pounding on the door with her parasol-handle, for she had planned to take a walk after the call, no one came to the door. After a time she peered at the window, but some one had drawn the shades down so that nothing was to be seen.
But unfortunately, she didn't consider her host, because even though they knocked and knocked, with Nathalie even pounding on the door with her parasol handle since she had planned to go for a walk after the visit, no one came to the door. After a while, she looked through the window, but someone had pulled the shades down so that nothing was visible.
“Mother, she is so angry she just won’t let us in,” cried the young caller with flushed cheeks. “Oh, I think she must be a very disagreeable old lady, and I do not think there is any use in trying to be nice to her.”
“Mom, she's really mad and won't let us in,” cried the young caller with flushed cheeks. “Oh, I think she must be a really unpleasant old lady, and I don't see any point in trying to be nice to her.”
Mrs. Page had evidently come to the same conclusion, so they slowly turned and retraced their steps back to the house, and in a short space she was seated on the veranda with her darning, as Nathalie started for a walk. As she passed the red house, and caught sight of the silver-haired old lady knitting at the window she quickly turned her head away, determined to ignore her in the future. “And so this is the end of our acquaintance with our next-door neighbor,” she mused ruefully, as she passed on down the road. “Well, it certainly did not prove very progressive. Of course I don’t really care,—she’s just an old lady,—but still I do wish Cynthia Loretto had stayed up in her old studio, and not made trouble for us by her unkind ways.”
Mrs. Page clearly reached the same conclusion, so they slowly turned and walked back to the house. Before long, she was sitting on the porch with her darning while Nathalie set out for a walk. As she passed the red house and saw the silver-haired old lady knitting at the window, she quickly looked away, resolute in her decision to ignore her from now on. “So this is how our friendship with our next-door neighbor ends,” she thought sadly as she continued down the road. “Well, it really wasn't very promising. I mean, I don’t actually care—she's just an old lady—but I do wish Cynthia Loretto had just stayed up in her old studio and not caused us trouble with her unkind ways.”
CHAPTER XI
THE RIDE THROUGH THE NOTCH
Notwithstanding that the inmates of Seven Pillars were neighbored by a disagreeable old lady, as Nathalie had mentally dubbed the occupant of the red house, the time passed pleasantly to the girl, although she had days when she longed to see Helen, to open her heart to her in confidential mood. But the lonesomeness gradually lessened, occupied as she was with her manifold household cares, her exploring trips, her visits to the Sweet-Pea ladies, and the sometime prowl for the mysterious It. To her satisfaction she soon found that by hurrying a little over her morning tasks, she not only had time to read to her friend, and to help Mona at her work, but that she did not have to miss her walks.
Despite the fact that the residents of Seven Pillars were next to a grumpy old lady, as Nathalie had mentally labeled the person living in the red house, time passed pleasantly for the girl. Still, there were days when she missed Helen and wished to share her thoughts with her in a more personal way. However, the feeling of loneliness gradually faded as she kept herself busy with various household chores, her exploratory outings, her visits to the Sweet-Pea ladies, and the occasional hunt for the mysterious It. She was pleased to discover that by speeding through her morning tasks, she could not only find time to read to her friend and help Mona with her work but also maintain her walking routines.
She finally succeeded in getting Janet to go with her to the tea-house, and that volatile young woman was so won by the charming personality of the invalid, and the sweet patience of Mona, that she not only played during her call, but made arrangements to come down twice a week and give them a musical afternoon, to the great joy of the invalid.
She finally managed to get Janet to go with her to the tea house, and that unpredictable young woman was so captivated by the charming personality of the invalid and the sweet patience of Mona that she not only played during her visit but also made plans to come down twice a week to give them a musical afternoon, much to the great delight of the invalid.
165 On one of these days a party of ladies from the Hotel Look-off, out for an afternoon constitutional, dropped in for a rest and a cup of tea. They were so pleased that they told others about these musical afternoons, so it soon became quite the fashionable thing to drop in at the Sweet-Pea Tea-House, especially on Wednesdays and Saturdays. On these days a score of ladies, old and young, could frequently be seen having a social chat over the teacups, while listening to some popular ragtime air, or a classic from one of the old composers, while knitting for the soldiers.
165 One day, a group of ladies from the Hotel Look-off, out for a stroll, stopped by for a break and a cup of tea. They enjoyed it so much that they spread the word about these musical afternoons, which quickly became the trendy thing to do at the Sweet-Pea Tea-House, especially on Wednesdays and Saturdays. On those days, a group of ladies, both young and old, could often be seen chatting over their teacups while listening to some popular ragtime tunes or a classic piece from one of the old composers, all while knitting for the soldiers.
There had been one unpleasant occurrence that had jarred Nathalie extremely, and that was that Cynthia Loretto, when she learned of the Sweet-Pea ladies and the musical afternoons, was quite insistent that Blue Robin take some of her paintings and etchings down, and hang them up so that they could be seen, in the hope of making a sale.
There was one unpleasant incident that really shook Nathalie, and that was when Cynthia Loretto found out about the Sweet-Pea ladies and the musical afternoons. She strongly insisted that Blue Robin take down some of her paintings and etchings, and put them up for display in hopes of selling them.
Nathalie, at first, had refused to accede to this request, and then she began to argue with her conscience, giving for her refusal many reasons that only existed in her imagination. Finally, Mrs. Page, with her motherly intuition, perceiving that her daughter was at war with her better self, one day led the conversation to the subject, by saying that she thought it was almost pathetic the way Cynthia yearned to make money so she could marry Mr. Buddie.
Nathalie initially refused this request and then started to debate with herself, coming up with numerous reasons for her refusal that were purely in her mind. Eventually, Mrs. Page, with her motherly instinct, noticed that her daughter was struggling with her better self and one day steered the conversation to the topic by mentioning how she found it almost sad that Cynthia was so eager to earn money just to marry Mr. Buddie.
“You must remember, daughter,” she persuaded, 166 after listening to the girl’s objections in regard to the paintings, “that even if you are not attracted to Cynthia, she has feelings, hopes, and disappointments as well as you. Some day, perhaps, you may be old and alone in the world with your living to earn, and will be almost willing to make a bore of yourself if you can only earn a little money so as to give yourself some pleasure.” Nathalie made no reply, but somehow she began to question if she were really trying to live up to her motto to be helpful and kind, or was it just a make-believe thing with her, as she called it. The next day she reluctantly broached the subject to Miss Whipple, and, to her surprise, found that she would be very pleased to have the paintings and etchings on the wall. “The room really needs papering,” the lady explained, “and they will help to hide such disfigurements as stains and tack-holes on the faded paper.” This conclusion settled the matter very satisfactorily to Cynthia, and made Nathalie rejoice that she had, after all, come out conqueror in her fight with self.
“You have to remember, daughter,” she said, after hearing the girl’s objections about the paintings, “that even if you’re not interested in Cynthia, she has feelings, hopes, and disappointments just like you. Someday, you might find yourself old and alone in the world, working hard to make a living, and you may find yourself willing to bore yourself just to earn a little money for some pleasure.” Nathalie didn’t respond, but she started to wonder if she was genuinely trying to live up to her motto of being helpful and kind, or if it was just a make-believe thing, as she called it. The next day, she hesitantly brought up the topic with Miss Whipple, and to her surprise, she discovered that Miss Whipple would be very happy to hang the paintings and etchings on the wall. “The room really needs new wallpaper,” the lady explained, “and they will help cover up the stains and tack holes in the old paper.” This conclusion made Cynthia very happy and filled Nathalie with joy that she had ultimately triumphed over her inner struggle.
The girl had begun to wonder why she did not hear from Mrs. Van Vorst as to when her boys were coming, when a letter arrived. To her great joy it announced that they would be due at the Sugar Hill station the following Saturday, as they would leave New York in the White Mountain express, probably reaching their destination about seven in the evening.
The girl had started to wonder why she hadn't heard from Mrs. Van Vorst about when her boys were coming, when a letter arrived. To her great happiness, it said they would be arriving at the Sugar Hill station the following Saturday, leaving New York on the White Mountain express, and likely reaching their destination around seven in the evening.
167 Nathalie was somewhat disappointed that the boys were not to go on to the Littleton station, where Mr. Banker had planned to meet them. But alas, she could not ask him to come all the way over to the Sugar Hill station, and then, too, she knew that he and his wife generally took little outings through the mountains every week-end.
167 Nathalie felt a bit let down that the boys weren't going to the Littleton station, where Mr. Banker had arranged to meet them. But unfortunately, she couldn't ask him to come all the way to the Sugar Hill station. Plus, she knew that he and his wife usually enjoyed little trips through the mountains every weekend.
Deeply perplexed, she pondered over the matter with no little anxiety, and then suddenly it came to her that she would see if Miss Whipple would not let her hire her machine, and then go for the boys herself. She had learned to know the mountain roads in riding with Jakes when he went to the different hotels to deliver the sweet peas. He had often let her drive, as she had previously learned to handle a car from her many rides with Grace, and had even secured a license through the insistence of her friend.
Deeply confused, she thought about the situation with considerable worry, and then it suddenly occurred to her that she could ask Miss Whipple if she would let her rent her car and go get the boys herself. She had gotten to know the mountain roads while riding with Jakes when he went to different hotels to deliver the sweet peas. He had often let her drive, since she had learned to handle a car from her numerous rides with Grace, and had even gotten a license thanks to her friend's encouragement.
Hurrying through her work, she hastened down to the tea-house, where she found the two ladies in a state of unusual excitement, for Jakes, Miss Whipple explained, was quite ill, and they were at a loss as to how they were to get their flowers to the various hotels the following day. And the Profile House had sent in a special order, for there was to be some kind of a festivity there that evening, and they wanted the bunches of sweet peas for prizes.
Hurrying through her work, she rushed down to the tea house, where she found the two ladies unusually excited, because Jakes, Miss Whipple explained, was quite sick, and they didn't know how they were going to get their flowers to the different hotels the next day. The Profile House had also put in a special order, as there was some kind of event happening there that evening, and they wanted the bunches of sweet peas for prizes.
“Oh, don’t worry over that,” cried the girl quickly, as she perceived their distress, “for I can deliver the 168 flowers for you. I can drive and I know the roads, for I have been about so much with Jakes and Mr. Banker.”
“Oh, don’t stress about that,” the girl exclaimed quickly when she saw their worry, “because I can take the 168 flowers for you. I can drive and I know the roads since I’ve been around a lot with Jakes and Mr. Banker.”
After some little hesitation the two ladies consented that Nathalie should deliver the flowers, insisting, however, in return for her kindness to them, that she should have the car for her own use in the afternoon, to drive to the station for the boys.
After a bit of hesitation, the two ladies agreed that Nathalie should deliver the flowers, insisting, however, that as a thank-you for her kindness, she should have the car for her own use in the afternoon to drive to the station for the boys.
To Nathalie it was quite a new experience, to get up in the cool gray of early dawn, dress hurriedly, swallow a hasty breakfast,—her mother was to act as housekeeper for the day,—and then hurry down to the tea-house. It did not take her long to load the car with its flowery burden, and then she was speeding through Sugar Hill village, and on to the Long Green Path, as she called the road through the woods that led to Seven Pillars and Franconia. The air was so cool from the moisture of the night dew that still lay in glistening gems and silvery cobwebs on the hilly greens, the leaves, ferns, and wild flowers, and bracing from the ozone of the mountain breezes that heralded the new-born day, that the girl’s pulses throbbed with buoyant exhilaration.
To Nathalie, it was a completely new experience to get up in the cool gray of early dawn, dress quickly, grab a fast breakfast—her mom was going to be the housekeeper for the day—and then rush down to the tea house. It didn’t take her long to load the car with its floral cargo, and then she was speeding through Sugar Hill village and onto the Long Green Path, as she called the road through the woods that led to Seven Pillars and Franconia. The air was so cool from the moisture of the night dew that still sparkled in glistening gems and silvery cobwebs on the hilly greens, the leaves, ferns, and wildflowers, and refreshingly charged with the ozone from the mountain breezes that welcomed the new day, that the girl’s heart raced with lively excitement.
There was a moment’s stop at Seven Pillars for Janet, who had consented to accompany her, and then they were off, Nathalie happily waving her hand to Sam as he came through the pasture with the cows. A few moments later they were whirling past Roslinwood 169 Farm, with its big white barn, and then past a long, low, white-gabled, red-chimneyed building, with the old-time hostelry sign, “Peckett’s on Sugar Hill,” swinging from its porte-cochère, with its flower-garden, riotous with many-colored blooms, across the road, almost under the shadow of Garnet’s sloping meadow.
There was a brief pause at Seven Pillars for Janet, who had agreed to go with her, and then they were off, Nathalie happily waving to Sam as he walked through the pasture with the cows. A few moments later, they zipped past Roslinwood Farm, with its large white barn, and then went by a long, low building with white gables and a red chimney, featuring the old-fashioned inn sign, “Peckett’s on Sugar Hill,” swinging from its porte-cochère. Across the road, almost in the shadow of Garnet’s sloping meadow, was a flower garden bursting with colorful blooms.
Now they were flying down the long sloping hill, around the tiny white schoolhouse at the cross-roads, and then they were passing Garnet’s grassy hillside, as it nodded a greeting to its taller fellows, the Franconia Range, that towered on the girls’ right. Its verdant meadows were squared with cobble-stone ledges, and awave with the glossy plumage of stately trees, as it rose upward from the road, until its slope was lost in a tangle of feathery treetops which crowned its summit like a cap of green.
Now they were speeding down the long, sloping hill, around the small white schoolhouse at the crossroads, and then they were passing Garnet’s grassy hillside, which waved hello to its taller neighbors, the Franconia Range, that loomed on the girls’ right. Its green meadows were sectioned with cobblestone ledges and alive with the shiny foliage of tall trees, rising up from the road until its slope disappeared into a tangle of feathery treetops that crowned its peak like a green cap.
“The Echoes,” a homey little hotel nestling at the base of the green hill, with its square white tower, peeped picturesquely from the protecting sweep of graceful willows and silvery poplars. Here they had a magnificent view of the mountains as they rose from their mists of gray, their rugged crests, spires, and domes sharply outlined against a glorious riot of sunrise color.
“The Echoes,” a cozy little hotel situated at the foot of the green hill, with its square white tower, peeked charmingly from the protective curve of graceful willows and silvery poplars. Here, they enjoyed a stunning view of the mountains as they emerged from their gray mists, their rugged peaks, spires, and domes sharply defined against a beautiful explosion of sunrise colors.
Lafayette, the king of the range, towered his grizzly head in blue-hazed grandeur far upward, standing like some giant up from the mists that covered the 170 valleys below like a silver lake, while Lincoln’s rounded summit, with its twin slides, was almost hidden by trailing wreaths of pearly gray. The gaps between the Sleeping Infant, sharp-peaked Garfield, the North and South Twins, and the Sleeping Giant, were so thickly silvered with mist that the peaks of these mountains looked like islets of green on a shimmering gray sea, with their tops scarfed with pink and violet streaks, that floated mistily against the golden splendor, reflected from the crimson-hued ball in the east.
Lafayette, the king of the range, rose majestically with his grizzly head in blue-hazed grandeur, standing like a giant above the mists that cloaked the valleys below like a silver lake. Meanwhile, Lincoln’s rounded summit, with its twin slides, was nearly hidden by trailing wreaths of pearly gray. The gaps between the Sleeping Infant, sharp-peaked Garfield, the North and South Twins, and the Sleeping Giant were so thick with mist that the peaks looked like green islands on a shimmering gray sea, their tops adorned with pink and violet streaks that floated softly against the golden glow, reflected from the crimson ball rising in the east.
Directly before them rose the undulating slope of Breakneck Hill, bowing in gentle humility to the more rugged beauty of the lofty range opposite, while between the widening gap, far in the distance, loomed the Presidential Range, their tops white-wreathed with cloud. Mount Washington, with majestic stateliness, soared far above his comrades, while the smaller mountains below and on the left, scattered here and there through the cleft between the two ranges, gleamed gray, purple, and pink, as they peered at them from their hoods of gray.
Directly in front of them was the undulating slope of Breakneck Hill, bowing in gentle humility to the more rugged beauty of the towering range opposite. Between the widening gap, far in the distance, loomed the Presidential Range, their peaks wrapped in white clouds. Mount Washington, with its majestic presence, soared high above the others, while the smaller mountains below and to the left, scattered here and there through the space between the two ranges, shone in shades of gray, purple, and pink as they peeked out from their gray cover.
It was a swift whirl down the half-mile hill, and then they were passing through the little mountain village of Franconia, with its white cottages, its stone sidewalks, its beautiful Gale River, with its bush-fringed banks and little stone tower, surrounded by level stretches of green pasture-land, merging into the low foothills that skirted the higher range. It was a 171 wonderful ride through that five-mile Notch, in the glint of the rose-tipped sunlight, with the ever-changing flash from one mountain-picture to another, each one gripping you with the witchery of the illusive charm of Nature in her varying moods, now frolicsome, gay, or blithe, or strangely stilled in the grandeur of a sunrise calm.
It was a quick ride down the half-mile hill, and then they were passing through the small mountain village of Franconia, with its white cottages, stone sidewalks, and beautiful Gale River, with its bushy banks and little stone tower, surrounded by flat stretches of green pasture that blended into the low foothills at the base of the higher range. It was a 171 amazing journey through that five-mile Notch, in the glow of the rose-tipped sunlight, with the constantly changing views of one mountain scene after another, each one captivating you with the enchanting charm of Nature in her different moods, now playful, cheerful, or oddly still in the majesty of a calm sunrise.
As the girl came down the steps of the Profile House, her first stopping-place, she paused a moment and peered up at Eagle Cliff, a precipitous wall of rock opposite, rising to the height of fifteen hundred feet above the road. It was thickly set with evergreens, climbing birches, maples, and spruces, and intermingled with patches of a softer green, from where purple-tinted bits of rock, like giant’s eyes, looked down upon the wayfarers that traversed the road beneath.
As the girl came down the steps of the Profile House, her first stop, she paused for a moment and looked up at Eagle Cliff, a steep rock face across from her, rising fifteen hundred feet above the road. It was densely covered with evergreens, climbing birches, maples, and spruces, mixed with patches of lighter green, where purple-tinted rock formations, like giant eyes, gazed down at the travelers passing below.
Nathalie had heard that the cliff had received its name from the “Arabs of the air,” which at one time had lodged in its airy heights. But evidently they had long since departed, and after a disappointed glance, as her eyes swept the tall steeps, she rejoined Janet in the car, and was soon guiding it through the green-wooded road to her next halting-place, some few miles beyond.
Nathalie had heard that the cliff got its name from the “Arabs of the air,” who once lived in its lofty heights. But it was clear they had long gone, and after a disappointed look at the tall cliffs, she got back in the car with Janet and soon navigated the green-wooded road to her next stop, just a few miles ahead.
This was the Flume House, a long, low, yellow building, grouped about with mountain crags,—the gateway to the Flume, a remarkable fissure in Liberty Mountain, over fifty feet deep, and several hundred 172 long, where an ice-cold cascade dashed with snowy spray, to flow in more quiet mood over ledges of granite rocks between perpendicular walls.
This was the Flume House, a long, low yellow building surrounded by mountain cliffs—the entrance to the Flume, an impressive crack in Liberty Mountain, over fifty feet deep and several hundred 172 long, where a freezing cascade splashed with white spray, flowing more gently over granite ledges between steep walls.
After leaving their flowers at the office the girls started on their homeward way. The distance was soon traversed as they chattered of the scene before them, sometimes hushed into stillness by the sudden surprise of some wonderful trick of Nature as they flew swiftly past.
After dropping off their flowers at the office, the girls started heading home. They quickly covered the distance while chatting about what they saw, occasionally falling silent in awe at the sudden beauty of some amazing natural sight as they whizzed by.
As they reached the little schoolhouse at the crossroads Janet descended from the car to walk up the hill to the house, while Nathalie continued on her way. She had soon passed the artist’s bungalow, with its studio, on her left, and Hildreth’s maple-sugar farm, with its big barn, coming out shortly at the little red Episcopal church, with the deserted, falling-to-pieces hotel, the Marimonte, just beyond on a knoll.
As they arrived at the small schoolhouse at the intersection, Janet got out of the car to walk up the hill to the house, while Nathalie kept going. She quickly passed the artist’s bungalow, with its studio on the left, and Hildreth’s maple-sugar farm, with its large barn, soon reaching the little red Episcopal church, just beyond which was the empty, crumbling hotel, the Marimonte, situated on a hill.
It did not take her long to ascend the long hilly slope to the Hotel Look-off, where a basket of sweet peas were left, and then she had swung her car around and was speeding down the declivity to the Sunset Hill House, where she again brought her car to a halt.
It didn't take her long to drive up the steep hill to the Hotel Look-off, where a basket of sweet peas was left, and then she turned her car around and sped down the slope to the Sunset Hill House, where she stopped her car again.
As she neared the big entrance-door, heavily burdened with her flowers, she came face to face with her two New York friends, who were sauntering carelessly from the office, evidently having lingered over a late breakfast. As the girl sighted the familiar faces she forgot their apparent slight of a few days before 173 and nodded pleasantly, her cheeks dimpling with pleasure. But, to her surprise, a rigid stare was their only response to her greeting, and, with a sudden start of shocked dismay, the girl hastened past them into the office, where she was relieved of her flowers by one of the bell-boys.
As she approached the large front door, weighed down by her flowers, she ran into her two friends from New York, who were leisurely coming from the office, clearly having taken their time over a late breakfast. When the girl spotted the familiar faces, she forgot their previous indifference from a few days ago and greeted them with a smile, her cheeks lighting up with joy. However, to her surprise, they only responded with a cold stare, and feeling a sudden jolt of disappointment, she quickly moved past them into the office, where one of the bellhops helped take her flowers.
Smarting from the rankle of the insult, but still dazed at the suddenness of it, she walked slowly down to the car and mechanically stepped into it. As she glided down the road she sat stiff and erect, her mind apparently on the steering-wheel, although in reality her senses were in a maze of dumb bewilderment.
Smarting from the sting of the insult, but still dazed by how sudden it was, she walked slowly to the car and got in mechanically. As she drove down the road, she sat stiff and straight, her attention seemingly on the steering wheel, even though her mind was actually a jumble of confusion.
A half-hour later, after running the car into the stable, for she was to use it again later, she made her way into the house, up to her room, and to her closet. Here, with her face buried in the blackness of hanging skirts and coats, she stood silently for a few moments, trying to argue herself out of the hurt feeling that would not be downed.
A half-hour later, after putting the car in the stable since she would need it again later, she walked into the house, up to her room, and to her closet. There, with her face lost among the dark skirts and coats, she stood quietly for a few moments, trying to convince herself to shake off the hurt feelings that wouldn’t go away.
“Oh, what a little ninny I am,” she exclaimed at last. “What do I care if they did give me the ‘go by,’ as Dick says.” She gave a half laugh, that quickly merged into a long sigh as the thought came, that, after all, the girls had not really hurt her as much as they had hurt themselves. “No, I will not allow myself,” she closed her mouth determinedly, “to be so small as to let it hurt me any more.”
“Oh, what a little fool I am,” she said at last. “What do I care if they did ignore me, like Dick says.” She gave a half laugh that quickly turned into a long sigh as the thought hit her that, in the end, the girls hadn’t really hurt her as much as they had hurt themselves. “No, I won’t let myself,” she said firmly, “be so petty as to let it bother me any longer.”
She had a very restful afternoon, with a good long 174 nap, and a nice time reading out in the hammock, and then, a little before six, she set out on her ride to the station in a tense state of expectancy, for she was anxious to see her Liberty boys, as she had elected to call them.
She had a really relaxing afternoon, with a long nap, some nice time reading in the hammock, and then, a little before six, she headed out on her ride to the station feeling tense with anticipation, because she was eager to see her Liberty boys, as she had decided to call them.
The drive was a delightful one after the burden and heat of the day, and she bowled swiftly along, slackening her speed every now and then to admire an unusually fine landscape view, or the golden, violet-tinted clouds that drifted up from the west. She had just turned into her last lap, as she called it, for she knew that she must be very near the station, when, with a sudden skidding motion, her car came to a standstill. She got out and cranked it, but although there was plenty of gasoline still on hand, it refused to go. She poked about, here and there, to see what had caused the stoppage, but although she cleaned out her carburetor and saw that her spark-plugs were all right, she failed to discover what was wrong. Her heart began to beat feverishly, for she was well aware that, although she could drive a car, in reality she knew little about its mechanism, and therefore could not remedy any very serious trouble. She got down and crawled under the car, to examine first one part and then another, but alas! it was exasperatingly useless, for she could see nothing wrong, and she finally crawled out again, covered with dust and grime. At this moment she heard the far-distant whistle of an 175 oncoming locomotive, realizing with a pang of despair, that it was the White Mountain express, and that she would not be at the station to meet the boys.
The drive was a pleasant one after the heat and stress of the day, and she sped along, slowing down every now and then to admire an especially beautiful landscape or the golden, violet-tinted clouds drifting up from the west. She had just entered what she called her last stretch, knowing she must be very close to the station, when her car suddenly skidded to a stop. She got out and cranked it, but even though there was plenty of gasoline, it wouldn't start. She poked around to see what caused the breakdown, cleaning out her carburetor and checking her spark plugs, but she couldn't find what was wrong. Her heart began to race because, while she could drive a car, she knew very little about how it worked and couldn't fix any serious issues. She got down and crawled under the car, inspecting one part after another, but unfortunately, it was frustratingly pointless as she saw nothing wrong. Finally, she crawled back out, covered in dirt and grime. At that moment, she heard the distant whistle of an 175 approaching train, realizing with a wave of despair that it was the White Mountain express and that she wouldn't make it to the station in time to meet the boys.
Suddenly her face gleamed hopefully, for at that moment she heard the near hum of an automobile, and the next second saw it whirl around the curve in the road. “Oh, perhaps it will be a man who can help me,” quickly flashed through her mind, as she peered intently at the nearing car. And then she almost laughed aloud from sheer joy, for, yes, the car was driven by a man, who, with one quick glance at the girl’s flushed face, and the stranded vehicle, brought his car to a standstill and jumped quickly out.
Suddenly, her face lit up with hope as she heard the nearby hum of a car, and in the next moment, she saw it zoom around the curve in the road. “Oh, maybe it will be a man who can help me,” quickly crossed her mind as she focused intently on the approaching car. Then she almost laughed out loud from pure joy because, yes, a man was behind the wheel. With one quick glance at her flushed face and the broken-down vehicle, he stopped his car and jumped out fast.
As the man came towards the girl, who had begun to pleadingly explain her mishap, and the hurry she was in, Nathalie caught her breath with a startled gasp, as she suddenly was made aware that he was the bold-eyed man who had accosted her in the post-office a week or so before, and who had spoken to her near the cemetery. But she was so distressed and fearful that she would miss the boys—poor little things, what would they do if there was no one there to meet them!—that this fact was submerged in the greatness of her need.
As the man approached the girl, who had started to desperately explain her situation and the rush she was in, Nathalie caught her breath with a startled gasp when she suddenly realized he was the bold-eyed man who had approached her at the post office about a week ago and who had talked to her near the cemetery. But she was so upset and scared about missing the boys—poor little things, what would they do if no one was there to meet them!—that this realization was overshadowed by the intensity of her need.
In a moment or so she had regained her customary poise, as the young man, after a cursory glance over the machine, discovered what was wrong. Ah, it was a short-circuit. With a wrench he took from his 176 pocket, he soon adjusted the difficulty, and then turned smilingly towards the girl, and with another of his bold stares assured her that her car was all right.
In a moment, she regained her usual composure as the young man, after glancing over the machine, found out what the issue was. Ah, it was a short circuit. Using a wrench he pulled from his 176 pocket, he quickly fixed the problem, then turned to the girl with a smile, confidently assuring her that her car was fine.
Nathalie involuntarily stepped back, and then, half ashamed of her timidity when the man had been so kind, cried hastily: “Oh, I am so much obliged to you! I do not know what I should have done, if you had not come along. Thank you, very much,” she ended abruptly, then, pleading that she must hurry, she cranked her car, and, with a little stiff bow, stepped into it, and a moment later was whirling down the road.
Nathalie involuntarily took a step back, and then, feeling a bit embarrassed about her shyness given how kind the man had been, quickly said, “Oh, thank you so much! I don’t know what I would have done if you hadn’t come by. I really appreciate it,” she concluded suddenly, then, saying she had to rush, she cranked her car, gave a small stiff nod, got in, and moments later was speeding down the road.
But she had not gotten rid of her helper as quickly as she thought, for it was only a second, as it seemed to her, when, on turning her head as she heard the throb of a machine in her rear, she saw, with a sudden qualm of fear, that the man was following her. “Oh why does he do that?” she thought in nervous apprehension. “Yes, he must be following me,” she mentally decided, “for he was going in the opposite direction when I hailed him.”
But she hadn't lost her helper as quickly as she thought. It was only a second, it seemed to her, when she turned her head at the sound of a machine behind her and, with a sudden chill of fear, saw that the man was following her. "Oh, why is he doing that?" she thought nervously. "Yes, he must be following me," she concluded, "because he was going in the opposite direction when I called to him."
But sensibly determining to pay no attention to him, she kept on her way, although an aggravating dread assailed her that she could not account for, that the man might waylay, and try to rob her, the bold glance of his eyes having filled her with a feeling of distrust.
But wisely deciding to ignore him, she continued on her way, even though an annoying fear gripped her that she couldn’t explain, that the man might ambush her and attempt to rob her, his bold gaze filling her with a sense of distrust.
Ah, she was at the station. As she glided up to the 177 little wooden platform she peered anxiously around, but no one was in sight. Bringing her car to a halt, she jumped hastily out and scurried around to the other side of the platform, only to see the ticket-agent locking up the waiting-room, as he prepared to depart on his nightly journey home, as the station was only open for certain trains.
Ah, she was at the station. As she walked up to the 177 small wooden platform, she looked around anxiously, but no one was in sight. After stopping her car, she quickly got out and hurried around to the other side of the platform, only to see the ticket agent locking up the waiting room as he got ready to leave for his nightly trip home, since the station was only open for certain trains.
“Did you see any little boys get off the White Mountain express?” inquired the girl breathlessly.
“Did you see any little boys get off the White Mountain express?” the girl asked breathlessly.
“Why, yes,” replied the man, as he slipped the door-key into his pocket, “I saw three,—no, four boys. They waited around here for some time, and then they went away. They looked like foreigners; one little chap must have been an Italian, for he carried a violin under his arm, and wore a queer embroidered vest.”
“Yeah,” the man said, slipping the door key into his pocket, “I saw three—no, four boys. They hung around here for a while, and then they left. They looked like foreigners; one little guy had to be Italian, because he had a violin under his arm and wore a really strange embroidered vest.”
“Did you notice in what direction they went?” cried the girl, while a chilled feeling swept over her as to the fate of the boys. Oh, suppose they should get lost in those mountain woods!
“Did you see which way they went?” the girl shouted, a cold feeling washing over her at the thought of what might happen to the boys. Oh, what if they get lost in those mountain woods!
No, the man had not noticed, and Nathalie with a dejected attitude, turned away, nervously wondering what to do, and where to look. Well, she must do something, for those boys must have been the ones Mrs. Van Vorst had sent to her. Once more she was in her car, and then, in sudden desperation, she determined to try every road in succession,—for there were several leading from the station,—until she found 178 them, for surely they could not have gone very far, as they were walking. Buoyed with this thought, she plunged into the graying shadows of the road nearest to her, dimly conscious that the bold-eyed man in the automobile, who had been circling around the little square of green in front of the station, was close behind her.
No, the man hadn't noticed, and Nathalie, feeling down, turned away, anxiously wondering what to do and where to look. She definitely needed to do something because those boys had to be the ones Mrs. Van Vorst had sent to her. Once again, she was in her car, and then, in a moment of desperation, she decided to try every road in order—since there were several leading from the station—until she found 178 them, because they surely couldn't have gone far since they were walking. Encouraged by this thought, she dove into the darkening shadows of the nearest road, vaguely aware that the bold-eyed man in the car, who had been circling around the small patch of green in front of the station, was close behind her.
CHAPTER XII
NATHALIE’S LIBERTY BOYS
On and on she rode, peering through the gloaming until her eyes ached, ever conscious of the “throb, throb,” of the car directly behind her. What a mistake, she thought dismally, to have ventured on these lonely roads alone. And, O dear! how her mother would worry when she failed to arrive home on time.
On and on she rode, straining to see in the fading light until her eyes hurt, always aware of the "throb, throb," of the car right behind her. What a mistake, she thought sadly, to have traveled these lonely roads alone. And, oh no! how her mother would worry when she didn't get home on time.
Suddenly she stopped and stared fixedly through the gray light, and then her heart leaped, for down the road a little distance, trudging slowly and uncertainly beside the mountain-ditch, were four little figures. Oh, they must be those boys, but she had sent for only three.
Suddenly she halted and stared intently through the gray light, and then her heart raced, because down the road a bit, trudging slowly and unsteadily next to the mountain ditch, were four small figures. Oh, they had to be those boys, but she had only asked for three.
With a glad thrill of hope urging her forward, the machine responded to her touch, and in a moment she had reached the boys, one of whom, at the sound of the oncoming car, had swung around, and was staring at her with large, liquid brown eyes. The girl suddenly decided that he must be the Italian lad, who the ticket-agent had said wore an embroidered vest, and carried a violin under his arm. Yes, there was the violin!
With a joyful surge of hope pushing her on, the machine reacted to her touch, and in no time she had reached the boys, one of whom, hearing the approaching car, turned around and stared at her with big, expressive brown eyes. The girl suddenly figured he had to be the Italian boy that the ticket agent mentioned, who wore an embroidered vest and carried a violin under his arm. Yes, there was the violin!
180 Nathalie brought her car to a sudden stop, and called out, “Hello there, boys; hello!”
180 Nathalie suddenly slammed on the brakes and shouted, “Hey there, guys; hey!”
At the sound of the girl’s call all four swung about and faced her, while a boyish, gruff voice answered: “Hello yourself. What do you want?”
At the sound of the girl's call, all four turned around and faced her, while a boyish, rough voice replied, "Hey there. What do you need?"
Nathalie laughed happily, for a sudden intuition told her that her search was over. And then she said: “Why, I am looking for some little boys, who were to have come from New York on the White Mountain express. Are you the ones?”
Nathalie laughed joyfully, as a sudden feeling told her that her search was done. Then she said: “Oh, I’m looking for some little boys who were supposed to come from New York on the White Mountain express. Are you them?”
A chorus of trebles piped excitedly, “Yes, mum; we comed off the train,” while the tallest lad, to whom a smaller child of six or seven was nervously clinging, stepped forward. As he lifted his ragged cap he cried politely, “Be you Miss Nathalie Page?” The girl, as she stared down at the questioner, saw a close-cropped head of reddish hair, and a freckled face of an unhealthy pallor, from which two sharp blue eyes were anxiously peering.
A group of high-pitched voices chimed excitedly, “Yes, Mom; we got off the train,” while the tallest boy, to whom a smaller child of six or seven was nervously hanging onto, stepped forward. As he lifted his tattered cap, he asked politely, “Are you Miss Nathalie Page?” The girl, as she looked down at the boy, noticed a closely cropped head of reddish hair and a freckled face with an unhealthy pallor, from which two sharp blue eyes were anxiously peering.
“Yes, I’m Miss Nathalie Page,” responded the girl, with a note of relief in her voice, not only glad that she had found the boys, but at the sudden thought that her tormentor would now let her alone, for, with four boys to keep her company, he would not dare to molest her.
“Yes, I’m Miss Nathalie Page,” the girl replied, her voice filled with relief, feeling not only happy to have found the boys but also relieved at the sudden realization that her tormentor would leave her alone now; with four boys around her, he wouldn’t dare to bother her.
“I’m awfully sorry not to have met you at the station,” she went on regretfully, “but something happened to my machine and I was detained on the 181 road. But I did not know that there would be four of you,” she added a little doubtfully. But before she could finish her sentence, the lad who had constituted himself the spokesman for the group, silently handed her a letter.
“I’m really sorry I didn’t meet you at the station,” she said regretfully, “but something happened with my car, and I got held up on the 181 road. But I didn’t realize there would be four of you,” she added a little uncertainly. But before she could finish her sentence, the kid who had taken it upon himself to be the spokesperson for the group silently handed her a letter.
Nathalie tore it open, and then hastily read it. She was so excited, however, by the many events that had crowded one upon the other that she did not sense its full meaning. Recognizing the signature, “Elizabeth Van Vorst,” she cried hastily, “Well, it’s all right, boys; jump into the car,” as she stuffed the letter into the pocket of her coat. Nathalie immediately saw that a second invitation would not be needed, as the boys made a wild lunge forward, scrambling and pushing each other, as if to see which one would get there first, all but the little chap, who stood whimpering by the side of the car.
Nathalie ripped it open and quickly read it. She was so caught up in the many events that had piled up one after another that she didn’t fully grasp its meaning. Recognizing the signature, “Elizabeth Van Vorst,” she exclaimed, “Okay, it’s all good, guys; hop into the car,” as she tucked the letter into her coat pocket. Nathalie realized right away that a second invitation wasn’t necessary, as the boys lunged forward wildly, pushing and shoving each other to see who would reach the car first, except for the little guy, who stood by the side of the car, sniffling.
“Now, boys, no pushing or pulling,” cried Nathalie with a laugh in her voice, “for there’s plenty of room, and you’re all going home with me. But here, you big one, get out and put that little kid up by me, for the poor tot must be hungry and tired.”
“Alright, guys, no shoving or yanking,” Nathalie called out with a laugh in her voice, “because there’s plenty of space, and you’re all coming home with me. But you, the big one, step aside and put that little kid next to me, because the poor little one must be hungry and tired.”
“Sure, he is, Miss,” replied the older lad, who evidently was his brother, jumping down and lifting him up into the seat by Nathalie, despite his kicks and protests that he wanted to sit with Danny.
“Sure, he is, Miss,” replied the older boy, who clearly was his brother, jumping down and lifting him up into the seat next to Nathalie, despite his kicking and protesting that he wanted to sit with Danny.
“Ah, there, kid,” coaxed the bigger boy softly, “don’t be a girl. Show you’re a boy. Sit up there 182 nice-like. Sure the leddy won’t eat yer.” This suggestion of being a girl had a magical effect upon the child, for he immediately ceased to whimper, and settled back in the seat with a repressed sniffle.
“Hey there, kid,” the bigger boy said gently, “don’t be a wuss. Act like a boy. Sit up there all nice. I’m sure the lady won’t bite you.” This suggestion of being a wuss had a magical effect on the child, as he instantly stopped crying and settled back in his seat with a suppressed sniffle.
Nathalie turned the car around,—the man who had been following her had long since disappeared in the darkness,—and was soon speeding towards home. She glanced every now and then at the three figures on the back seat, who sat as still as three blind mice, snuggling up to each other for warmth, while the little chap at her side clutched her frantically as he lurched forward every time the car swung around a corner, or bumped over a “thank-you-ma’am.”
Nathalie turned the car around—the man who had been following her had long vanished into the darkness—and soon she was racing toward home. She occasionally glanced at the three figures in the back seat, who sat as still as three blind mice, huddling together for warmth, while the little guy next to her clung to her tightly as he lurched forward every time the car swung around a corner or hit a bump.
“Here, kiddie,” cried the girl presently, suddenly looking down at the child, whose big, reddish-brown eyes were staring up at her half fearfully from out of a wan, white face. “Put your head on my lap! There, that’s it,” as the child, to her surprise snuggled up to her, and then silently obeyed. “Now look up,” she added laughingly, “and count the stars.”
“Hey, kiddo,” the girl called out, suddenly glancing down at the child, whose big, reddish-brown eyes were looking up at her almost fearfully from a pale, white face. “Rest your head on my lap! There you go,” she said as the child, to her surprise, snuggled up to her and then quietly complied. “Now look up,” she said with a laugh, “and count the stars.”
Although this injunction brought forth a chuckle from the back seat, it sufficed to keep the little one quiet, and the girl, as she drove rapidly on, could hear him droning, “One, two, three,—” until, with a drowsy little sigh, the counting ceased, and the girl saw that he was asleep.
Although this command got a laugh from the back seat, it was enough to keep the little one quiet, and the girl, as she drove quickly on, could hear him droning, “One, two, three,—” until, with a sleepy little sigh, the counting stopped, and the girl noticed that he was asleep.
It was almost nine o’clock when Nathalie whirled under the dimly burning lantern of the porte-cochère at 183 Seven Pillars, where, on the veranda, Janet and her mother were anxiously watching for her.
It was nearly nine o'clock when Nathalie spun around under the faint light of the porte-cochère at 183 Seven Pillars, where Janet and her mom were nervously waiting for her on the porch.
“Oh, Nathalie, I have been so worried about you,” began her mother plaintively. “I will never let you go off this way again.” But her lamentations were cut short as her daughter cried, “Oh, it’s all right, mumsie; something happened to the car and detained me. But do help me get these hungry boys into the house, for the poor things are just dead with the long ride and for something to eat.”
“Oh, Nathalie, I’ve been so worried about you,” her mother said sadly. “I will never let you go off like this again.” But her mother’s complaints were interrupted as Nathalie exclaimed, “Oh, it’s fine, Mom; something happened to the car that held me up. But please help me get these hungry boys into the house, because they are exhausted from the long ride and need something to eat.”
Several minutes later, as the girl came hurrying from the kitchen, where she had been to see if the boys’ supper was ready, she found them lined up in the hall, four pathetically weary little figures. Their pale faces were smeared with railroad dust, and their foreheads oozed perspiration, but their eyes were bright and expectantly keen, on the alert for the something good that they knew was coming.
Several minutes later, as the girl rushed in from the kitchen, where she had gone to check if the boys' dinner was ready, she found them lined up in the hall, four sadly exhausted little figures. Their pale faces were covered in railroad dust, and their foreheads dripped with sweat, but their eyes were bright and eagerly watchful, anticipating the good thing they knew was coming.
As her eyes swept smilingly down the line, the smile suddenly wavered, as her glance was arrested by the thin, emaciated face of a strange grayish whiteness,—of a peasant lad, who, bewildered with dumb amazement, was staring at her with a dogged look, his dark eyes haunted, as it were, by an expression of fear.
As her eyes smiled down the line, the smile suddenly faltered when her gaze landed on the thin, pale face of a peasant boy. He looked bewildered and stared at her with a stubborn expression, his dark eyes seemingly haunted by fear.
He was huddling something in his right arm, a yellowish-brown thing that squirmed and twisted uneasily, while the left sleeve of his soiled shirt-waist, strapped with one suspender, was pinned to his shoulder 184 in an empty, flat way that was infinitely pathetic, for the little lad had only one arm!
He was cradling something in his right arm, a yellowish-brown object that wriggled and twisted uncomfortably, while the left sleeve of his dirty shirt, held up by one suspender, hung limply off his shoulder in a way that was incredibly sad, since the little boy only had one arm! 184
The girl stared back at the boy with a suppressed cry, as into memory flashed the many stories she had heard of the Belgian and French children who had been so mercilessly ill-treated and maimed by the German soldiers. Oh, this must be one of those refugees. Yes, she dimly remembered now, seeing the word “Belgian” in Mrs. Van Vorst’s letter, which she had read so quickly. With sudden effort, her natural kindliness coming to her aid, she smiled into the fear-haunted eyes, crying gently, as she softly touched him on the one arm, “Is that your dog? Oh, I love dogs. What is his name?”
The girl looked back at the boy, holding back a cry as memories flashed in her mind of the many stories she had heard about Belgian and French children who were brutally mistreated and harmed by German soldiers. Oh, he must be one of those refugees. Yes, she vaguely remembered the word “Belgian” in Mrs. Van Vorst’s letter, which she had read so quickly. With a sudden effort, her natural kindness kicking in, she smiled into his fear-filled eyes and gently said, as she softly touched his arm, “Is that your dog? Oh, I love dogs. What’s his name?”
A sudden flash of joyful relief radiated from the boy’s face, momentarily driving away that dulled, cowlike bewilderment from his eyes. It was a look that caused Nathalie’s heart to quiver with pain, for it was the look of some dumb animal that had been wantonly punished or brutally hurt by the hand it loved; a look that haunted her for many days, constantly urging her to try and say something, or do something, so as to drive it away.
A sudden flash of joyful relief lit up the boy's face, momentarily chasing away the confused, blank look from his eyes. It was an expression that made Nathalie's heart ache, as it resembled that of some innocent creature that had been cruelly punished or hurt by the one it trusted; a look that haunted her for many days, constantly pushing her to try to say or do something to make it go away.
The next moment a little yellow-brown terrier was crouching on the floor at his master’s feet, while thumping the floor with his tail, and licking his hand, then trying to crawl up his trousers’ leg, as if to get back to the shelter of that one lonely arm.
The next moment, a small yellow-brown terrier was crouching on the floor at his master’s feet, thumping the floor with his tail, licking his hand, and then trying to climb up his pant leg, as if seeking the safety of that one lonely arm.
185 “Oh, the poor animal must be hungry,” exclaimed Mrs. Page, just as the boy had given his name as Tige. “But come, children,” she added, “and get your suppers; and the dog, too,” patting the brown head of the refugee, while a look of infinite pity shone from her kindly eyes.
185 “Oh, the poor thing must be hungry,” Mrs. Page exclaimed, right as the boy introduced himself as Tige. “But come on, kids,” she added, “let's have dinner; and the dog too,” she said, gently stroking the brown head of the stray, as a deep look of compassion filled her kind eyes.
The boys needed no further urging, as Danny, with a wild hoot of delight, yelled, “Come on, fellers; it’s eats.” And then, notwithstanding Nathalie’s well-laid plans that each one should have a good wash-up before eating, they made a straight run for the kitchen.
The boys needed no more encouragement, as Danny, with a wild shout of excitement, yelled, “Come on, guys; it’s food.” And then, despite Nathalie’s careful plans for everyone to wash up before eating, they dashed straight for the kitchen.
Here they were soon putting down everything in sight in a way that almost frightened the girl, as she suddenly realized the care and responsibility she had taken upon herself. And that one-armed boy! O dear! she had never thought of such a thing as that.
Here, they quickly started putting down everything in sight in a way that almost scared the girl, as she suddenly understood the care and responsibility she had taken on. And that one-armed boy! Oh no! She had never imagined something like that.
But if they didn’t have their wash before supper, they had it very soon after, as the girl marched each one separately to the washbowl in the bathroom, and, after making him duck his head in the water, proceeded to give it a vigorous shampoo, notwithstanding sundry squirms and twists, for Nathalie believed in taking things by the forelock, and they just must be clean.
But if they didn't get washed before dinner, they had to do it soon after, as the girl took each one of them to the washbasin in the bathroom, and after making them dip their heads in the water, she gave them a thorough shampoo, despite some squirming and twisting, because Nathalie believed in getting things done right, and they just had to be clean.
Then the scrubbed one, after being supplied with towels and soap, was informed that he must give himself a good scrubbing in the tub, and if he failed to do it properly, he would have to do it all over again. Nathalie’s somewhat severe admonition was met with 186 stony silence on the part of her victims, unless it was a rather loud, “Gee whiz, fellers; here’s me for a swim!” that involuntarily escaped Danny, the older boy, when he found himself before the well-filled bath-tub.
Then the one who was scrubbed, after being given towels and soap, was told that he needed to give himself a good wash in the tub, and if he didn’t do it right, he would have to start all over again. Nathalie’s somewhat stern warning was met with 186 complete silence from her audience, except for a rather loud, “Gee whiz, guys; here’s me for a swim!” that slipped out of Danny, the older boy, when he stood in front of the fully filled bathtub.
When it came to the little chap’s turn, Nathalie’s young heart revolted at letting him go through the washing process all by himself, as he was so little, tired, and sleepy, so she said that she would give him his bath. To her surprise he began to whimper, while his older brother protested most vehemently that he could bathe him.
When it was the little guy's turn, Nathalie's young heart rebelled at the thought of him going through the bathing process all by himself, since he was so small, tired, and sleepy. So, she offered to give him his bath. To her surprise, he started to whimper, while his older brother strongly insisted that he could bathe him.
“Oh, no,” returned the young lady decidedly; and a few moments later her charge was standing in the bath-tub, ready for his scrubbing, Nathalie meanwhile talking to him gently, as if to quiet his fears.
“Oh, no,” the young lady replied firmly; and a few moments later, her charge was standing in the bathtub, ready for his scrubbing, while Nathalie talked to him gently, as if to soothe his fears.
Some time later, with a red, heated face, the young girl emerged from the room, dragging a little white-robed figure by the hand, whose face was, strange to say, wreathed in dimples. “Here, dear, you get into Miss Natty’s bed,” said the girl, leading the child into her room, “and brother will stay with you until I return,” motioning to Danny, who had been waiting outside the bathroom, with a strange, worried look on his face.
Some time later, with a flushed face, the young girl came out of the room, pulling along a little figure in a white robe, whose face was oddly covered in dimples. "Here, sweetie, you can get into Miss Natty's bed," said the girl, guiding the child into her room, "and brother will stay with you until I get back," she gestured to Danny, who had been waiting outside the bathroom, looking strangely worried.
“Oh, mother,” exclaimed Nathalie a moment later, as she came rushing out to the porch. “What do you think? Oh, I never was so surprised in my life!”
“Oh, mom,” exclaimed Nathalie a moment later, as she rushed out to the porch. “Can you believe it? I’ve never been so surprised in my life!”
187 “Why, Nathalie, what is the matter with you?” ejaculated Janet, as she placed her arm caressingly around the girl. “You are as white as a ghost, and you’re all of a tremble.”
187 “Why, Nathalie, what’s wrong with you?” Janet exclaimed, wrapping her arm supportively around the girl. “You’re as pale as a ghost, and you’re shaking all over.”
“Oh, I’ve had such a scare,—such a terrible surprise,” stammered the girl. And then she broke into a little laugh as she cried: “Oh, mother, you know the littlest chap? Well, he isn’t a boy at all; he’s a girl!”
“Oh, I’ve had such a scare,—such a terrible surprise,” stammered the girl. And then she broke into a little laugh as she cried: “Oh, mom, you know the tiniest kid? Well, he isn’t a boy at all; she’s a girl!”
“A girl!” echoed three voices simultaneously, and then Mrs. Page gave a laugh, a laugh in which every one joined.
“A girl!” echoed three voices at once, and then Mrs. Page laughed, a laugh that everyone joined in on.
It did not take Nathalie long to relate her experiences in the bathroom, and then she remarked: “I wonder if Mrs. Van Vorst knew he was a girl. It’s awfully funny. Oh, I’ll read her letter again.”
It didn't take Nathalie long to share her experiences in the bathroom, and then she said, “I wonder if Mrs. Van Vorst knew he was a girl. That’s really funny. Oh, I’ll read her letter again.”
The next moment, with the letter opened before her, she was slowly reading aloud:
The next moment, with the letter opened in front of her, she was slowly reading it out loud:
“Dear Nathalie:
“Hey Nathalie:
“I am sending you four boys instead of three. The fourth lad is a one-armed Belgian refugee, and his story is so pitiful I am sure, when you come to learn it, you will be glad I sent him to you. A Buffalo lady sent word to the Belgian Relief Committee that she would take one of a number of refugees recently arrived from France. But when she found that the poor lad had been mutilated by the Germans, her heart weakened. She claimed that she could not stand unpleasant things—what about the sufferings of the boy?—and returned him to the committee.
“I’m sending you four boys instead of three. The fourth kid is a one-armed Belgian refugee, and his story is so heartbreaking that I’m sure once you hear it, you’ll be glad I sent him to you. A lady from Buffalo contacted the Belgian Relief Committee saying she would take one of the many refugees who recently arrived from France. But when she found out that the poor kid had been injured by the Germans, she got scared. She said she couldn’t handle unpleasant things—what about the suffering of the boy?—and she returned him to the committee.”
188 “A member of the committee, hearing that I was looking for some boys, and being greatly distressed over the cruelty of the case, begged me to send him to you, if only for a little while, so as to give them a chance to place him later. I, of course, will be responsible for any expense he will be to you. I am sorry, but I had no opportunity to clothe him. He seems a strange, docile child. I think he is still living in the horrors of hell, from those terrible eyes of his. Oh, it is heart-breaking, but I know that you love children, dear, and I am sure that you are just the one to bring something of the child in him back to his face again.
188 “A committee member, hearing that I was looking for some boys and deeply upset about the situation, asked me to send him to you, even if just for a little while, so they could find a place for him later. I, of course, will cover any expenses he may incur while with you. I apologize, but I didn’t have the chance to get him some clothes. He seems like a strange, passive child. I think he’s still haunted by his experiences, which reflect in those terrible eyes of his. Oh, it’s heartbreaking, but I know you care about children, dear, and I’m sure you’re just the right person to help bring some joy back to his face.”
“His story is one of many. His village was overrun by the German soldiery, and the brave little lad, while trying to defend his mother from the atrocity of a German officer, was bayoneted, and finally lost his arm. His mother was carried away into Germany, but the boy believes her dead. I will not tell you the rest of the story, for some day he may want to unburden his child mind and tell you his pitiful take himself. His little yellow dog has been his comrade through all of his weary wanderings, the only thing that remains to him of his once happy home, and no one had the heart to take it from him.
“His story is just one of many. His village was taken over by the German soldiers, and the brave little boy, while trying to protect his mother from the horrors of a German officer, was stabbed with a bayonet and ultimately lost his arm. His mother was taken away to Germany, but the boy believes she's dead. I won’t share the rest of the story, as one day he might want to share his painful experiences himself. His little yellow dog has been his companion through all his tiring journeys, the only thing left to him from his once happy home, and no one had the heart to take it away from him.
“The Italian lad was found wandering in the streets on the East Side, making an effort to support himself by playing on his violin, as his aged grandfather,—he seems to have been an orphan,—who was a hurdy-gurdy man, had just died. The two brothers were found living in a cellar, where Danny, the older one, had been trying to support his brother, after the death of the aged woman who had had charge of them. He sold papers, but, when sick and unable to do so, was found half-starved in the cellar. It is hoped that the 189 bracing breezes of the mountain air, with good healthy food, will make new children of these boys.
“The Italian boy was found wandering the streets on the East Side, trying to support himself by playing his violin, after his elderly grandfather—who seemed to have been an orphan—who was a street performer, had just passed away. The two brothers were discovered living in a cellar, where Danny, the older one, had been trying to take care of his brother after the death of the elderly woman who looked after them. He sold newspapers, but when he got sick and couldn't do so, he was found half-starved in the cellar. There’s hope that the 189 refreshing mountain air, along with some healthy food, will transform these boys into new children.”
“Dear Nathalie, if you could only realize the bigness of the work you have undertaken in taking these slum children into a wonder-land of healthy living, the beauties and wonders of which will mean to them a new and glorified world. God bless you, dear, is all I can say and pray.
“Dear Nathalie, if you could only understand the magnitude of the work you’ve taken on by bringing these slum children into a wonderful world of healthy living, the beauty and wonders of which will create a new and amazing reality for them. God bless you, dear, is all I can say and pray.
“Elizabeth Van Vorst.”
“No, this letter proves that Mrs. Van Vorst did not know that the child was a girl,” said Nathalie, as she tucked the letter in her shirt-waist. “But, mother, what shall I do about it?” she continued, in such a dejected voice that her mother burst out laughing.
“No, this letter shows that Mrs. Van Vorst didn’t know the child was a girl,” Nathalie said, tucking the letter into her blouse. “But, mom, what should I do about it?” she continued, in such a downcast voice that her mother started laughing.
“Don’t do anything about it, daughter,” Mrs. Page replied, still laughing. “A girl is as good as a boy any day, and we will just set to work, this very minute, and rig up some clothes from some of your old things, for the child to wear.”
“Don’t worry about it, sweetheart,” Mrs. Page said, still chuckling. “A girl is just as good as a boy any day, so let’s get to work right now and put together some clothes from your old things for the kid to wear.”
“Oh, I think she will make a lovely girl, with those great brown eyes of hers,” cried Janet, enthusiastically. “And she has dimples, too. I know we can make the sweetest thing of her, and—”
“Oh, I think she'll be a lovely girl, with those beautiful brown eyes of hers,” cried Janet, excitedly. “And she has dimples, too. I know we can make her the sweetest thing, and—”
But Nathalie didn’t wait to hear the rest. She was so overjoyed to think it had turned out all right, that she was in a hurry to reassure Danny, whom she realized had been greatly worried over the circumstance. But how did they come to dress the child as a boy? 190 she queried as she hurried into the room, where the now little girl had fallen fast asleep in Nathalie’s bed, while her brother watched beside her with a white, frightened face.
But Nathalie didn’t wait to hear the rest. She was so thrilled to think everything had turned out okay that she rushed to comfort Danny, who she realized had been really worried about the situation. But how did they end up dressing the child as a boy? 190 she asked as she hurried into the room, where the now little girl was fast asleep in Nathalie’s bed, while her brother sat beside her with a pale, frightened expression.
“Tell me, Danny,” inquired Nathalie gently, as she laid her hand on the boy’s head, “how did you come to make a boy of your sister?”
“Tell me, Danny,” Nathalie asked softly, placing her hand on the boy’s head, “how did you end up making a boy out of your sister?”
A quick sob broke from the lad. And then, with a stiffening of his chin, as if with the resolution that he would not give way, while furtively wiping his eyes with the back of his hand, he told how, when Granny Maguire died, and his little sister’s clothes, after a time, wore out, he had been compelled to clothe her in his cast-off rags, because he had no others, and he didn’t know where to get them.
A quick sob escaped the boy. Then, with his chin lifted defiantly, as if making a vow not to break down, he discreetly wiped his eyes with the back of his hand and shared how, when Granny Maguire passed away, and after a while, his little sister's clothes wore out, he had to dress her in his old rags because he had no other clothes and didn’t know how to get any.
“She didn’t like it no way at first,” the lad’s blue eyes twinkled, “but she got kind o’ used to it, an’ then I promised that when she growed big I’d let her be a girl. And whin the leddy that does the settlement work comed round and wanted me to go ter the country I couldn’t leave the kid, and when she said he could come too, I didn’t squeal on meself, but jest kept mumlike, for they wouldn’t have let her come wid me if they knowed she was a girl. Sure, marm, we’ll have ter wait till morning to go back,” the lad tried to steady his voice, “fur the boss wid the brass buttons on the train told me there ain’t no train till then. 191 Can we walk to the station, do yer think?” he inquired pleadingly.
“She didn’t like it at first,” the boy’s blue eyes sparkled, “but she got kind of used to it, and then I promised that when she got older, I’d let her be a girl. And when the lady who does the settlement work came around and wanted me to go to the country, I couldn’t leave the kid behind. When she said he could come too, I didn’t give myself away; I just kept quiet because they wouldn’t have let her come with me if they knew she was a girl. Sure, ma’am, we’ll have to wait until morning to go back,” the boy tried to steady his voice, “because the boss with the brass buttons on the train told me there isn’t a train until then. 191 Can we walk to the station, do you think?” he asked hopefully.
“But you’re not going back, Danny,” replied Nathalie. “You’re going to stay right here with me, as long as you’re good and mind me. It doesn’t make a bit of difference if your sister is not a boy. I wrote for three boys, for I thought boys could take care of themselves in a way. Then, as we have no servants here, and I get tired sometimes with so much to do, I thought that boys would be more of a help. But we’ll dress your sister as a girl, and—Oh, don’t cry, Danny,” for the boy had turned his head aside, and was silently struggling with his sobs.
“But you're not going back, Danny,” Nathalie said. “You're going to stay right here with me, as long as you behave and listen to me. It doesn’t matter at all that your sister isn’t a boy. I wanted three boys because I thought they could take care of themselves better. Then, since we don’t have any servants here, and I sometimes get tired with so much to do, I figured boys would be more helpful. But we’ll dress your sister as a girl, and—Oh, don’t cry, Danny,” she said, noticing that the boy had turned his head away and was quietly fighting back his tears.
But they were sobs of joy, as Nathalie soon discovered, as, with a final shake of his thin shoulders, he faced about and cried: “Oh, thank you, ma’am. No, I ain’t no blubberin’ calf, but sure I just couldn’t let the kid go back alone—and—But Gee, leddy, it sure is heaven up here with these big hills—and the green trees—and the flowers—And, leddy,” he pulled at Nathalie’s sleeve as she turned to go away, “I kin be a sight o’ help ter yer, for I knows how to wash dishes, and I kin cook too, a good bit.”
But those were tears of joy, as Nathalie quickly realized, as, with one last shake of his thin shoulders, he turned around and exclaimed, “Oh, thank you, ma’am. No, I’m not some whiny kid, but I just couldn’t let the kid go back alone—and—But wow, ma’am, it’s so amazing up here with these big hills—and the green trees—and the flowers—And, ma’am,” he tugged at Nathalie’s sleeve as she started to walk away, “I can be a big help to you, because I know how to wash dishes, and I can cook too, quite a bit.”
“Oh, that will be just fine, Danny,” enthused Nathalie, “for I am wild to have a man chef, and I’ll let you wash all the dishes you want to, for that’s a job I hate. And, Danny,” said the girl, patting the boy’s 192 shoulder gently, “we are going to make it as near like Heaven up here as we can. But come, son, you must be tired.” And then she led the boy up-stairs to the upper floor, where, in a large corner-room, she had taken the other boys, who were undressed and ready to tumble into the three beds.
“Oh, that will be great, Danny,” Nathalie said excitedly, “because I’m really looking forward to having a male chef, and I’ll let you wash as many dishes as you want, since that’s a chore I really dislike. And, Danny,” she added, gently patting the boy’s 192 shoulder, “we’re going to make this place as close to Heaven as we can. But come on, you must be tired.” Then she took the boy upstairs to the upper floor, where, in a large corner room, she had the other boys, who were undressed and ready to climb into the three beds.
After directing Danny to sleep in the double bed, as he was the largest, so that each one of the smaller boys could have a bed to himself, she showed them the closet and how to hang up their clothes,—what little they had, they had brought tied up in handkerchiefs, or on their backs,—she turned to go. “Yes, and you must be sure to get up, every one of you, when you hear the big bell ring in the morning.”
After telling Danny to sleep in the double bed since he was the biggest, so that each of the smaller boys could have their own bed, she showed them the closet and how to hang up their clothes—what little they had, which they brought tied up in handkerchiefs or on their backs. She turned to leave. “And make sure to get up, every one of you, when you hear the big bell ring in the morning.”
She had reached the door, after bidding them goodnight, when a sudden thought turned her back. And then Nathalie had her first solemn moments with her boys, as she told each one that, before getting in bed, he must say his prayers, so as to thank God for the good things that had been given them that day. The little Italian lad immediately drew out his rosary and began to say his beads, but Danny scratched his head in a dubious sort of way, and mumbled that it was so long since he had said his prayers that he couldn’t remember what he was to say.
She had reached the door, after saying goodnight to them, when a sudden thought made her turn back. And then Nathalie had her first serious moments with her boys, as she told each one that, before getting into bed, he needed to say his prayers, to thank God for the good things they had received that day. The little Italian boy immediately pulled out his rosary and started counting his beads, but Danny scratched his head, looking uncertain, and mumbled that it had been so long since he had said his prayers that he couldn’t remember what to say.
But this forgetfulness on Danny’s part was soon remedied, as the girl made him kneel by her in the moonlight that streamed through the window, and solemnly 193 repeat, “Now I lay me down to sleep,” adding a few words as a suggestion to the boy as to what he should add to the prayer. Danny, with a brighter face, now began to prepare for bed, and Nathalie, as she again turned to leave the room, stopped to speak with the refugee. And then the girl’s eyes grew moist, for he had stolen into the darkest corner of the room, and, with his one hand solemnly upraised, was repeating a prayer softly to himself, while the little yellow cur stood at attention by his side.
But Danny quickly fixed his forgetfulness when the girl made him kneel beside her in the moonlight pouring through the window and seriously 193 repeat, “Now I lay me down to sleep,” adding a few words as suggestions for what he should include in the prayer. With a brighter expression, Danny started preparing for bed, and as Nathalie turned to leave the room, she paused to speak with the refugee. Then her eyes filled with tears as she saw him sneak into the darkest corner of the room, his one hand raised solemnly, softly repeating a prayer to himself while the little yellow dog stood at attention beside him.
CHAPTER XIII
“THE MOUNTAINS WITH SNOWY FOREHEADS”
It was something of a surprise the next morning to Danny’s companions, to see a little maid, clothed and in her right mind, as Janet expressed it, come shyly into the dining-room,—a little maid who bore a very strong resemblance to the brown-eyed, curly-haired, whimpering little lad of the day before. The black eyes of the Italian boy, Tony, widened, and then, with a shy gleam of humor in their liquid depths, he nodded at the little girl, crying under his breath, “Oh, Boy!” But the little maid proved herself competent to manage the situation to her satisfaction, as she quickly made a face at him, for which she was properly rebuked by Nathalie, who, however, was on the verge of a laugh, while a ripple of amusement gleamed in her mother’s eyes.
It was quite a surprise for Danny’s friends the next morning to see a little girl, dressed and completely awake, as Janet put it, come shyly into the dining room—a little girl who looked a lot like the brown-eyed, curly-haired, whimpering boy from the day before. The Italian boy, Tony, stared with wide eyes, and then, with a shy spark of humor in his gaze, he nodded at the little girl, whispering to himself, “Oh, Boy!” But the little girl proved to be capable of handling the situation as she quickly made a face at him, for which Nathalie properly scolded her, though she was on the verge of laughing, while a glimmer of amusement shone in her mother’s eyes.
Jean, the Belgian refugee, stared with some perplexity at the small girl, and did not comprehend the curious situation until the children had left the breakfast-table, when Nathalie made it plain to him.
Jean, the Belgian refugee, stared in confusion at the little girl and didn't understand the strange situation until the kids got up from the breakfast table, when Nathalie made it clear to him.
The girl found that the morning hours were well-occupied, as she started right in to put her boys through 195 their paces, as she called her drilling, so as to prepare them not only for a very happy, but a useful, summer’s stay. She had noticed, during the morning meal, that the children, with ready sympathy for the maimed boy, had been rather officious in trying to help him, and that his thin, sickly face had flushed with embarrassment and over-sensitiveness at the fact that to them he was an object of pity.
The girl realized that the morning hours were quite busy as she got right to work putting her boys through their paces, as she called her training, to prepare them for not only a happy but also productive summer. She had noticed during breakfast that the kids, feeling sympathy for the injured boy, were quite eager to help him, and that his thin, sickly face turned red with embarrassment and sensitivity at the fact that he was seen as someone to be pitied.
Instantly divining how she would have felt under like circumstances, Nathalie managed to get Danny and Tony together, when Mrs. Page, whose mother-heart had gone out to the boy, had taken him down to the barn to show him where he could keep his dog, and Janet had taken possession of the little maid.
Instantly understanding how she would have felt in a similar situation, Nathalie brought Danny and Tony together while Mrs. Page, whose motherly instincts had reached out to the boy, took him down to the barn to show him where he could keep his dog, and Janet had taken charge of the little girl.
In a few words she told them the tragic story of the Belgian, and, after gaining their interest, made it clear to them how they themselves would have felt if they had been different from their mates, and warned them about being too open in their method of helping him. She suggested that little acts of subtle kindness would be more appreciated, as they would not offend his sensitiveness.
In just a few words, she shared the sad story of the Belgian and, after capturing their interest, explained how they would have felt if they had been in his shoes. She advised them to be careful about how openly they tried to help him. She suggested that small, subtle acts of kindness would be better received, as they wouldn’t hurt his feelings.
Danny was now installed, with a big apron tied around his waist, in front of the kitchen sink, taking his first lesson in Nathalie’s method of washing dishes, with Tony, the second helper, as the dish-dryer. Divining that it would not only be better for Jean, the refugee, to have employment so as to fill his mind with 196 something besides his sad experiences, and realizing that he would naturally want to do as the other children, Nathalie made him her right-hand man, as she called it, and showed him how he could assist her in a number of ways. In a few moments he was laboriously carrying out, with one hand, the food to Nathalie, who quickly placed it in the ice-box, or closet, while little Sheila removed the soiled dishes to the kitchen, happy at being on the job, as Danny said.
Danny was now set up, with a big apron tied around his waist, in front of the kitchen sink, starting his first lesson in Nathalie’s way of washing dishes, with Tony, the second helper, drying the dishes. Realizing that it would be better for Jean, the refugee, to have a job to distract him from his sad experiences, and knowing he would want to join the other kids, Nathalie made him her right-hand man, as she called it, and showed him how he could help her in various ways. In just a few moments, he was laboriously carrying the food to Nathalie with one hand, while she quickly put it in the ice-box, or closet, and little Sheila happily took the dirty dishes to the kitchen, excited to be working, as Danny put it.
From dish-washing, preparing the vegetables for dinner, sweeping the kitchen and shed, and dusting the dining-room, it was bed-making. Jean was made captain of the Working Squad, eager to help by doing what he could with his one hand, while seeing that the boys did their work as Nathalie had instructed them.
From washing dishes, prepping vegetables for dinner, sweeping the kitchen and shed, and dusting the dining room, it was time to make the beds. Jean was appointed leader of the Work Squad, excited to contribute however he could with his one hand, while ensuring that the boys completed their tasks as Nathalie had taught them.
Fortunately for Nathalie, she was a fair French scholar, and as the Belgian lad had lived in one of the Walloon provinces, where French is generally spoken, she had no difficulty in conversing with him. He could speak a little English, but in a queer, hesitating way that made him shy over it.
Fortunately for Nathalie, she was a good French student, and since the Belgian guy had lived in one of the Walloon provinces, where French is commonly spoken, she had no trouble talking with him. He could speak a little English, but in a strange, hesitant way that made him shy about it.
When the morning duties were finished, and they were not done with a magician’s wand by any means, but with the exercise of great patience on the part of their young instructor, and a good deal of drilling on the children’s part, they all hurried out into the sunshine. Here they raced about, enjoying the fresh air, the green trees and the flowers, and the beautiful 197 mountain views, and then they made the acquaintance of Sam, who not only introduced them to the fascinations of the barn,—as the cows, pigs, and chickens, the soft cooing doves who flittered over the barn-roof,—but to the one dray-horse. This animal proved a source of unfeigned joy to the boys, as Sam taught them how to harness it, and then allowed each one to ride it bareback, even Jean, whose pale face glowed with a strange joy, as he held the reins with his one hand, and rode up and down on the road in front of the house.
When the morning chores were done, and they weren't completed with a magician's wand by any means, but through a lot of patience from their young teacher and plenty of practice from the kids, they all rushed outside into the sunshine. They ran around, enjoying the fresh air, the green trees and flowers, and the stunning mountain views, and then they met Sam. He not only showed them the wonders of the barn—like the cows, pigs, and chickens, and the soft cooing doves that fluttered over the barn roof—but also introduced them to the one dray horse. This horse brought genuine joy to the boys as Sam taught them how to harness it and then let each of them ride it bareback, even Jean, whose pale face lit up with unusual happiness as he held the reins with one hand and rode back and forth on the road in front of the house.
From the barn there was an inspection of the farm, going down a green slope to watch the sheep as they quietly browsed, and then on to the orchard, where they had their fill of fruit, while in the vegetable garden many hands proffered willing assistance to Nathalie, as she gathered what was needed to replenish the vegetable larder. From here they all trooped down to pay a visit to the farmerette, whereupon Janet set them all to weeding. Strange to say, Jean pulled up the greatest number, to Nathalie’s surprise, who, by this time, began to understand that real industry, even if one-handed, can accomplish a good deal.
From the barn, they took a tour of the farm, heading down a green slope to watch the sheep as they calmly grazed, and then on to the orchard, where they enjoyed plenty of fruit. In the vegetable garden, many hands eagerly helped Nathalie as she collected what was needed to restock the vegetable supply. After that, they all headed over to the farmerette, where Janet put everyone to work weeding. Strangely enough, Jean ended up pulling the most weeds, surprising Nathalie, who was starting to realize that genuine hard work, even if done with one hand, can achieve a lot.
Finally Nathalie lined her charges up under the trees on the lawn at attention, and undertook to teach them the military salute, but before she was through she was somewhat puzzled as to whether she or the boys was the instructor. After they had saluted the 198 flag, which Sam had run up on the top of the barn for that very purpose, and which was to be the boys’ duty in the future, they had a little soldier’s drill.
Finally, Nathalie had the boys stand in line under the trees on the lawn, and she set out to teach them the military salute. However, by the time she was done, she was a bit confused about whether she was the one teaching or if the boys were teaching her. After they saluted the 198 flag, which Sam had hoisted to the top of the barn for this purpose, they concluded with a little soldiers' drill.
A few words were then read, very softly, by Nathalie from the Bible. She had concluded that this would be a good way to give them a bit of religious instruction, especially for a beginning. She had begun the reading by getting them interested in the book, on whose fly-leaf was written the name, Philip Renwick, by telling them how she had found it in a little room on the upper floor of the house. She then told them about this boy who had left his mother to travel abroad, how he had married, and had then come home, only to leave his mother and return to Europe, never to be seen by her again. They were much interested in the story, especially when she showed them the picture of the young man in the library, and from that time onward the little Bible seemed to possess a peculiar interest to them, and thus led them to become more interested in the every-day Scripture lesson.
A few words were then read softly by Nathalie from the Bible. She decided this would be a good way to give them some religious education, especially as a start. She began by piquing their interest in the book, on the flyleaf of which was written the name, Philip Renwick, by telling them how she found it in a small room on the upper floor of the house. She then shared the story of a boy who left his mother to travel abroad, how he got married, and then came home, only to leave his mother again to return to Europe, never to be seen by her again. They were very interested in the story, especially when she showed them the picture of the young man in the library. From that point on, the little Bible seemed to hold a special interest for them, which made them more engaged in the everyday Scripture lesson.
After the “Star-Spangled Banner” and several patriotic songs had been sung, and the “Marseillaise” had been given with much spirit by the boys, Janet, who had just come up from her farm, appeared, and patriotically kept time with her rake. She became so interested in the little singers that she volunteered, to Nathalie’s delight, to drill them in the national anthems of the Allies.
After the “Star-Spangled Banner” and a few patriotic songs had been sung, and the boys had enthusiastically performed the “Marseillaise,” Janet, who had just arrived from her farm, showed up and patriotically kept rhythm with her rake. She got so interested in the little singers that she happily offered, to Nathalie’s delight, to teach them the national anthems of the Allies.
199 Whereupon Jean, with a new eagerness in his bewildered eyes, up with his hand, and made Nathalie understand that he could sing, too. Nathalie smilingly encouraged him, and in a few moments the lad’s thin, quavering voice, that grew deeper as he caught the spirit of the words, gave them Belgium’s song of cheer. This inspired Tony, and he became the soloist, and sang Italy’s national anthem.
199 Then Jean, with a fresh excitement in his confused eyes, raised his hand and signaled to Nathalie that he could sing as well. Nathalie smiled and encouraged him, and soon the boy’s thin, shaky voice, which deepened as he connected with the emotion of the lyrics, sang Belgium's uplifting song. This inspired Tony, who then took the lead and sang Italy’s national anthem.
There was a “do-as-you-please time” after dinner down on the lawn for an hour or so, and then the boys were mustered in the bathroom and initiated as to how to manipulate a tooth-brush, in a tooth-cleaning drill, Nathalie having supplied herself with three new brushes in anticipation of this procedure. Sheila, who was not one of the drillers,—only three brushes having been provided,—looked with envious eyes upon this performance, and, when Danny had finished, in a plaintively aggrieved voice complained to their young teacher that he would not let her have his brush so that she could clean her teeth, too.
There was a "do-whatever-you-want time" after dinner on the lawn for about an hour, and then the boys gathered in the bathroom to learn how to use a toothbrush in a teeth-cleaning drill, with Nathalie having gotten herself three new brushes in preparation for this. Sheila, who wasn't part of the drillers—since only three brushes were available—watched with envy as they went through the routine. When Danny was done, she complained to their young teacher in a sadly hurt tone that he wouldn't lend her his brush so she could clean her teeth too.
Explanations were now in order. Nathalie smiling amusedly at the idea of loaning a tooth-brush, and then they were all made as presentable as possible, considering their ragged clothes, which had begun to prey upon Mrs. Page’s mind, as well as Nathalie’s. But the clothes part was something that had not presented itself to the girl when she had planned the boys’ coming, and she was at a loss to remedy the trouble.
Explanations were needed now. Nathalie smiled at the thought of lending a toothbrush, and then they all got as presentable as possible, given their worn-out clothes, which had started to bother both Mrs. Page and Nathalie. However, the issue of clothing hadn’t crossed the girl’s mind when she planned for the boys to come, and she didn’t know how to fix it.
200 Certainly something must be done to do away with Tony’s old velveteen embroidered vest, his greatest treasure, and Jean’s soiled white shirt, which seemed to be the only one he possessed. Danny’s clothes, although they had been queerly darned and glaringly patched, and were miles too small for him, were clean, and he did have a change of underclothing, to Nathalie’s relief.
200 Certainly, something needs to be done about Tony’s old embroidered velveteen vest, which was his most prized possession, and Jean’s dirty white shirt, which appeared to be the only one he owned. Danny’s clothes, although they were oddly sewn and brightly patched, and way too small for him, were clean, and he did have a change of underwear, much to Nathalie’s relief.
However, the general shabbiness of the boys’ apparel had not affected their merry spirits, the girl decided, as she sat knitting on the veranda, and heard the happy, joyous voices that floated up from the lawn, as they played leap-frog, ran races, and turned handsprings. Even Jean, caught by the contagion of the moment, turned a somersault, to her breathless amazement.
However, the overall scruffiness of the boys' clothes hadn’t dampened their cheerful spirits, the girl thought, as she sat knitting on the porch and listened to the happy, joyful voices that drifted up from the yard while they played leapfrog, raced, and did cartwheels. Even Jean, caught up in the excitement of the moment, did a somersault, leaving her breathless with surprise.
She was beginning to realize what Mrs. Van Vorst meant when she spoke of what the glorious wonders of these mountains would mean to the half-fed, sickly little waifs of humanity from the East Side of New York. Yes, it meant a new world, with no more squalid, stifling two-by-two rooms, or damp, moldy cellars. No more nauseating smells, odors from the backyard garbage-can, the rattlety-bang of heavy trucks and milk-wagons, or the jarring creak of the Elevated. For, as Sheila expressed it, they were in a “big green world, with high blue walls, with flower stars a-peepin’ at ’em from the grass, and little teeny birds a-singin’ 201 and rockin’ their babies to sleep in tall trees, that nodded to ’em with a swishy whisper.”
She was starting to understand what Mrs. Van Vorst meant when she talked about how the amazing wonders of these mountains would impact the underfed, frail kids from the East Side of New York. Yes, it meant a new world, free from cramped, suffocating two-by-two rooms or damp, musty basements. No more disgusting smells from the backyard trash can, the noisy clatter of heavy trucks and milk delivery vehicles, or the annoying creak of the Elevated train. As Sheila put it, they were in a “big green world, with high blue walls, with flower stars peeking at them from the grass, and tiny birds singing and rocking their babies to sleep in tall trees that nodded to them with a soft whisper.” 201
Suddenly the serenity of Nathalie’s cogitations received a shock, as a horrible swear-word came, no, not floating, but yelling, its way across the green. The girl jumped up and rushed down under the trees, to see Tony, with his soft, appealing ways, and Danny, with the blue eyes that she had already begun to trust for the frankness of their gaze, rolling on the lawn, locked in a vice-like grip, as they pommeled and pounded each other in a way that made Nathalie gasp.
Suddenly, the peace of Nathalie’s thoughts was interrupted by a horrible curse that didn’t just drift by but screamed across the lawn. She jumped up and dashed under the trees to see Tony, who had his charming ways, and Danny, with the blue eyes she was starting to trust for their honesty, wrestling on the grass, locked in a tight grip as they hit and pounded each other in a way that made Nathalie gasp.
Sheila, with squeals of delighted glee, was circling about the combatants, piping shrilly. “Give ’im a plug in the snoot, Danny! Pound ’im in the mug!” to the accompaniment of big, forceful oaths that rolled from the mouths of the fighting boys. As the little maid sighted Nathalie, she ejaculated, with a broad grin, “Ain’t them kids fierce!” which caused poor Nathalie to gasp again.
Sheila, squealing with joy, was running around the fighters, shouting loudly. “Hit him in the face, Danny! Knock him out!” along with some strong curses coming from the boys who were fighting. When the little girl spotted Nathalie, she exclaimed with a big grin, “Aren’t those kids fierce!” which made poor Nathalie gasp again.
“Oh, boys, you mustn’t fight!” the agonized girl cried, as she reached down and tried to separate the young pugilists, with her limbs all of a tremble. But her efforts were useless, and, regardless of her screams and expostulations, the punching and scratching continued, punctuated by defiant yells, and such horrifying language that the girl shivered.
“Oh, boys, you can’t fight!” the distressed girl cried, as she bent down and tried to pull the young fighters apart, her body shaking. But her attempts were in vain, and despite her screams and protests, the punching and scratching carried on, interrupted by defiant shouts and such awful language that the girl trembled.
As she stared as if fascinated by this new and revolting experience, she saw a little trickle of blood oozing 202 down Danny’s face, for Tony, who was the underdog, was an expert at nail-digging. It was a fearsome sight, and Nathalie, appalled by the thought that he might dig out an eye or so in his blinded wrath, in frenzied horror screamed, “Oh, Tony, you’re killing Danny!” But the only result of her cry was, “Yer bet yer life he ain’t!” and the hair continued to fly, as Danny yelled triumphantly, “Gee! I knew I could lick yer wid one hand!” and the gory battle continued.
As she stared, seemingly entranced by this shocking experience, she noticed a small stream of blood trickling down Danny’s face. Tony, the underdog, was a pro at digging in with his nails. It was a terrifying sight, and Nathalie, horrified at the thought that he might claw out an eye in his blind rage, screamed in a frenzy, “Oh, Tony, you’re killing Danny!” But the only response to her plea was, “You can bet he isn’t!” and the fight went on, with Danny shouting victoriously, “Wow! I knew I could beat you with one hand!” as the chaotic battle continued.
Then, in sheer desperation, hopelessly wringing her hands, she started in the direction of the house to call her mother. Suddenly she stopped. Oh, no; her mother would send them away, and then—O dear! Ah, she knew what she would do. Terror speeded her feet, and two minutes later she reappeared on the lawn, and with one swing of her arm there came a terrific “Clang! Clang!” as the girl, with big excited eyes, thrust the still clanging bell between the faces of the boys.
Then, in total desperation, anxiously wringing her hands, she headed toward the house to call her mom. Suddenly, she stopped. Oh no; her mom would send them away, and then—oh dear! Ah, she knew what she was going to do. Panic quickened her steps, and two minutes later she returned to the lawn, and with one swing of her arm there came a loud “Clang! Clang!” as the girl, with wide excited eyes, thrust the still ringing bell between the faces of the boys.
The effect was magical, for the lads, with screams of terror, unlocked their arms, hands, and legs, and rolled apart, while gazing with dilated eyes, as if they had heard the crack of doom, at the bell that Nathalie had thrust into their faces.
The effect was enchanting, as the guys, screaming in fear, unlocked their arms, hands, and legs, and rolled away from each other, their eyes wide with shock, as if they had heard the ultimate judgment, staring at the bell that Nathalie had shoved in front of them.
A few moments later, almost unclothed, dust-begrimed, blood-besmeared, and both sniffling from nerve-shock, but still breathing out dire vengeance one upon the other, Nathalie led her two charges up-stairs 203 and thrust one into the bathroom and the other into a dark closet. Jan, at this moment, appeared in the hall, and the girl excitedly dragged her into her bedroom, and, in a hushed, nervous whisper, made known the proceedings of the last few moments.
A few moments later, nearly naked, dirty from dust, covered in blood, and both sniffling from shock, but still seething with anger at each other, Nathalie took her two charges upstairs 203 and pushed one into the bathroom and the other into a dark closet. Just then, Jan appeared in the hallway, and Nathalie eagerly pulled her into her bedroom and, in a quiet, anxious whisper, shared what had just happened.
But Jan, who at home was a district nurse, and had witnessed many slum fights, burst into a peal of laughter. And then, with her face still red with mirth and laughter, demanded, “Well, young lady, what else did you expect if you will take ragamuffins and street Arabs to your bosom?” Nevertheless Janet’s sympathies were aroused, for Nathalie, if not for the boys, and in a few moments the two girls were industriously making the boys presentable once more.
But Jan, who was a district nurse at home and had seen plenty of street fights, burst into a fit of laughter. Then, still flushed with amusement, she asked, “Well, young lady, what else did you expect if you take scruffy kids and street urchins under your wing?” Still, Janet felt sympathy, not just for the boys, but for Nathalie as well, and soon the two girls were busy getting the boys presentable again.
And then Nathalie led the culprits into a chamber apart, and began to upbraid them, trying to impress their young minds with the enormity of the wrong-doing of which they had been guilty.
And then Nathalie took the culprits into a separate room and started to scold them, trying to make them understand just how serious their wrongdoing was.
But the spirit of the cave-dweller was not yet subdued, and, notwithstanding the girl’s persuasiveness, and her pleading attitude in her endeavor to make them see the error of their way, they kept up a wrangling duet of recriminations, each one accusing the other of punching him first, while stubbornly crying, “Now, ye didn’t lick me.”
But the cave-dweller's spirit wasn't broken yet, and despite the girl's attempts to persuade them and her pleading demeanor trying to make them realize their mistakes, they continued to argue back and forth, each accusing the other of starting it, stubbornly insisting, "No, you didn't beat me."
Presently Nathalie, under the strain of overwrought nerves, and the sudden realization of the unforeseen responsibility of her position, burst into tears. Lo, to 204 her amazement, her tears acted like oil on troubled waters, for the next instant a grimy hand tugged at her sleeve, as Danny, with troubled eyes, in a sudden wave of contrition, cried: “Oh, Miss Natty, don’t take on like that. Sure and I’m never goin’ to fight no more.”
Right now, Nathalie, overwhelmed and realizing the unexpected weight of her responsibilities, broke down in tears. To her surprise, her tears seemed to calm the situation, as a dirty hand pulled at her sleeve. Danny, with worried eyes and a sudden burst of remorse, said, “Oh, Miss Natty, don’t be like that. I promise I’m never going to fight again.”
Meanwhile Tony’s black eyes, in dumb entreaty, grew bigger and bigger, until he, too, in sudden repentance, began to stroke her hand caressingly as his soft, musical voice pleaded, “Please Mees Natta, Tonee, he lova you—he fighta no more.”
Meanwhile, Tony’s dark eyes, in silent appeal, grew wider and wider, until he, too, in a moment of regret, began to gently stroke her hand as his soft, melodious voice pleaded, “Please Miss Natta, Tony loves you—he won’t fight anymore.”
Peace was making its way into each heart, when the purr of an automobile was heard, and as Nathalie hurried to the window, she saw Mr. Banker whirling under the porte-cochère. As the boys, paroled on their honor, a little later hung around the car, discussing its many merits, they were duly presented to the newcomer. That gentleman evidently liked small boys, for he immediately made arrangements to call for them some day, and take them to Littleton for an all-day good time.
Peace was settling into every heart when the sound of a car engine was heard, and as Nathalie rushed to the window, she saw Mr. Banker driving under the porte-cochère. Later, as the boys, released on their honor, gathered around the car discussing its many features, they were formally introduced to the newcomer. That gentleman clearly liked young boys, as he quickly made plans to pick them up one day and take them to Littleton for a fun-filled day.
The following afternoon Nathalie, holding Sheila by the hand, with Jean by her side, and the two boys in front of her, started to show them the mountains. At the post-office at Sugar Hill village Jean, who had been delegated to act as postman the coming week, was duly initiated into the business of opening the mail-box, an office he accepted with a sudden lighting of his dazed 205 eyes, which Nathalie began to fancy were already losing some of their fear-haunted expression.
The next afternoon, Nathalie, holding Sheila's hand, with Jean next to her and the two boys in front, started to show them the mountains. At the post office in Sugar Hill village, Jean, who had been chosen to be the postman for the upcoming week, was officially shown how to open the mailbox. He accepted this role with a sudden brightness in his dazed eyes, which Nathalie was starting to think were losing some of their fear-filled look. 205
A short visit was paid to the Sweet-Pea ladies, where they were treated to some maple sugar, Mona very earnest in her endeavors to show sympathy for the little refugee, and her admiration for Sheila. As they hurried away, a bunch of sweet peas was seen on each little breast, pinned there by that gentle lady.
A quick visit was made to the Sweet-Pea ladies, where they enjoyed some maple sugar, and Mona was really eager to show her support for the little refugee and her admiration for Sheila. As they rushed away, a bunch of sweet peas was spotted on each little chest, pinned there by that kind lady.
A walk on the long, curving board-walk up the hill, with a rest on one of the benches under the maples, to Hotel Look-off, now followed. The three boys were anxious to start that very minute to climb Iron Mountain, but were soon persuaded that it was too warm a day for a mountain hike. From the long veranda of the hotel they were lured to admiration of the hilly, wide-spreading green sward, and the magnificent views of the mountains, as they rose and fell, receded and advanced, with their jutting pinnacles of rock, gloomed with the green of mountain forest.
A stroll along the long, winding boardwalk up the hill, with a pause on one of the benches beneath the maple trees, led them to Hotel Look-off. The three boys were eager to start climbing Iron Mountain right away, but they were quickly convinced that it was too hot for a mountain hike. From the hotel's spacious veranda, they were drawn to admire the hilly, expansive green lawn and the stunning views of the mountains, which rose and fell, receded and came closer, with their rugged rock peaks shaded by the green of the mountain forest.
After slacking their thirst at the little spring-house in the grove, they sauntered down the board-walk to the Sunset Hill House, and as they interestedly watched the golfers in their bright-colored coats on the velvety green links, Danny proudly informed them that he knew how to caddy. But their enthusiasm grew tense when they stood on the little observation tower in front of the hotel, and Nathalie pointed out the Presidential 206 Range, with Mount Washington towering six thousand feet up among the clouds.
After quenching their thirst at the small spring-house in the grove, they strolled down the boardwalk to the Sunset Hill House. As they watched the golfers in their bright-colored outfits on the lush green links, Danny proudly told them that he knew how to caddy. However, their excitement became tense when they stood on the little observation tower in front of the hotel, and Nathalie pointed out the Presidential206 Range, with Mount Washington rising six thousand feet high among the clouds.
She then showed them the Franconia Range, explaining that the great mountains were divided into clefts, or notches, from which flowed four long rivers and many smaller ones, several of them being named after the Indians, who, in the early times, lived on the mountain passes.
She then pointed out the Franconia Range, explaining that the massive mountains were split into gaps or notches, from which four long rivers and many smaller ones flowed, several of them named after the Native Americans who lived in the mountain passes in earlier times.
With the help of the chart they soon learned that Lafayette was the highest peak of this smaller range, and that Pemigewasset, seemingly the nearest peak to the hotel, had been named after a great Indian chieftain. The adjoining peaks, as the Kinsman and the Three Graces, proved of interest; also Cannon, or Profile Mountain, when the young girl explained that it not only had a stone, shaped like a cannon, on its top, but that from one of its sides a great stone face was to be seen.
With the help of the chart, they quickly discovered that Lafayette was the tallest peak in this smaller range, and that Pemigewasset, which seemed to be the closest peak to the hotel, was named after a famous Indian chief. The nearby peaks, like Kinsman and the Three Graces, caught their interest; also Cannon, or Profile Mountain, when the young girl pointed out that it not only had a stone shaped like a cannon on top, but also featured a large stone face visible from one side.
Nathalie now told her young listeners how the mountains were first seen, over four hundred and fifty years ago, a cluster of snowy peaks, by John Cabot, from the deck of his ship when sailing along the New England coast. They were called Waumbekket-meyna, the White Hills, and sometimes “The mountains with the snowy foreheads,” by the Indians.
Nathalie now shared with her young audience how the mountains were first spotted over four hundred and fifty years ago. It was John Cabot who saw a cluster of snowy peaks from the deck of his ship while sailing along the New England coast. The Indians referred to them as Waumbekket-meyna, meaning the White Hills, and sometimes called them "The mountains with the snowy foreheads."
The first white man to ascend these heights, she related, was an Irishman named Field, who, two hundred 207 years after they had been seen by Cabot, with a few white companions, climbed to the topmost crag of the highest peak. “Field found a number of shiny crystals which he thought were costly gems,” laughed the girl merrily, “but, alas, they proved to be only beautiful white stones, but, on account of this occurrence, the mountains came to be called Crystal Hills.
The first white man to reach these heights, she said, was an Irishman named Field, who, two hundred 207 years after they were spotted by Cabot, along with a few white companions, climbed to the top of the highest peak. “Field found a bunch of shiny crystals that he thought were precious gems,” the girl laughed cheerfully, “but, unfortunately, they turned out to be just beautiful white stones. Because of this, the mountains became known as Crystal Hills.”
“The Indian guides who had accompanied Field part way up the mountains,” continued Nathalie, “refused to go any farther, for fear that the Great Spirit, who they believed lived in a magnificent palace on the highest peak, would destroy them if they ventured too near him. They were so surprised to see Field return in safety a few hours later that they decided he was a god, for during his absence a great storm had arisen, which they believed had been sent by the Indian Manitou to kill him. The redmen not only believed that the Great Spirit sent forth the frost and snow, as well as the rain and fire,—the lightning—but declared that the thunder was his voice.”
“The Indian guides who had accompanied Field partway up the mountains,” continued Nathalie, “refused to go any further, fearing that the Great Spirit, whom they thought lived in a magnificent palace at the highest peak, would destroy them if they got too close. They were so amazed to see Field return safely a few hours later that they decided he was a god, since a great storm had arisen during his absence, which they believed was sent by the Indian Manitou to kill him. The natives not only thought that the Great Spirit caused the frost and snow, as well as the rain and fire—the lightning—but also claimed that the thunder was his voice.”
The Indian legend of Pawan was eagerly listened to, as Nathalie told how the Indians asserted that when the earth was covered with water and every one was drowned, he and his wife, carrying a hare, had ascended to the highest peak. When the waters began to abate, Pawan sent forth the hare, and when it did not return he and his wife descended to the earth and dwelt 208 there in safety, for the waters had dried up from off the land. From this man, the Indians declared, every one on the earth had descended.
The Indian legend of Pawan was eagerly listened to, as Nathalie explained how the Indians believed that when the earth was flooded and everyone had drowned, he and his wife, carrying a hare, climbed to the highest peak. When the waters started to recede, Pawan sent out the hare, and when it didn’t return, he and his wife came down to the earth and lived there safely, for the waters had dried up from the land. From this man, the Indians claimed, everyone on earth had descended.
During the recital of these stories, Sheila’s red-brown eyes darkened to black, and every mountain peak assumed a weird and wonderful personality to her imaginative mind, fed, as it had been, by stories of fairies, pixies, and gnomes, as told to her by Danny, when playing the little mother.
During the telling of these stories, Sheila’s red-brown eyes turned completely black, and every mountain peak took on a strange and magical character in her creative imagination, which had been nourished by tales of fairies, pixies, and gnomes that Danny told her while she played the little mother.
But the tourists now found that their appetites had been whetted by the keen mountain air, and gladly started on their homeward way to enjoy the supper that awaited them. After tea they gathered on the veranda, and Tony entertained them by playing on his violin. Nathalie soon discovered that he not only played with considerable skill, but that Danny could whistle like a bird, while Jean and Sheila could pipe forth snatches of song in clear, childish trebles.
But the tourists now realized that the fresh mountain air had sharpened their appetites, and they happily started their journey home to enjoy the dinner waiting for them. After tea, they gathered on the porch, and Tony entertained them by playing his violin. Nathalie quickly found out that he not only played with great skill, but that Danny could whistle beautifully, while Jean and Sheila could sing snippets of songs in clear, childlike voices.
The boys were rendered exuberantly happy a few days later at the unexpected arrival of Mr. Banker, who had come to give them a day’s outing at Littleton. Morning chores, military tactics, and other occupations were quickly forgotten, as Nathalie and her mother made them tidy for the trip, Danny, by the way, having kindly washed Jean’s one shirt the day before,—a housewifely occupation that he had become proficient in, from sheer necessity,—and Nathalie had ironed it.
The boys were extremely happy a few days later with the surprise visit from Mr. Banker, who had come to take them on a day trip to Littleton. Morning chores, military drills, and other tasks were quickly forgotten as Nathalie and her mother got them ready for the outing. Danny, by the way, had kindly washed Jean’s only shirt the day before—a household task he had become skilled at out of necessity—and Nathalie had ironed it.
It was long past tea-time when the boys returned 209 from their pleasure jaunt, and told in high good spirits of the “bully” time they had had, what they had seen at the movies, and many other sights. Nathalie’s joy almost equaled the boys’ when they descended from the car, and she saw three smartly equipped lads, each one in a khaki suit, with brown shoes, a brimmed hat, a knapsack, and, the most prized possession of all, a gun! The girl’s eyes filled with tears, and she had rather a tremulous time of it as she thanked Mr. Banker for his kindness, and especially for those much-needed clothes.
It was well past tea time when the boys came back 209 from their fun outing, excitedly sharing stories about the awesome time they had, what they saw at the movies, and lots of other sights. Nathalie's happiness matched the boys' when they got out of the car, and she saw three sharply dressed kids, each in a khaki outfit, with brown shoes, a hat, a backpack, and, the most coveted item of all, a gun! The girl’s eyes filled with tears, and she had a bit of a shaky moment as she thanked Mr. Banker for his kindness, especially for those much-needed clothes.
Nathalie, with her brown-suited boys,—Tony with his violin and his embroidered vest, as he had soon discarded his khaki suit, Jean with his empty sleeve, and yellow-brown terrier,—and Sheila, in a pink sunbonnet, soon became familiar objects on the mountain roads. They were always greeted with pleasant smiles and nods from the passing tourists, Jean being regarded with more than the usual curiosity, as his story had been rumored about.
Nathalie, with her boys in brown suits—Tony with his violin and his embroidered vest, since he had quickly gotten rid of his khaki suit, Jean with his empty sleeve, and yellow-brown terrier—and Sheila, in a pink sunbonnet, soon became a common sight on the mountain roads. They were always met with friendly smiles and nods from passing tourists, with Jean attracting extra curiosity, as his story had been going around.
Many of them would stop and give him money, until he had so many silver coins that Nathalie had to make him a bag to keep them in, as he had declared that he was going to save them to take him back to France, so he could find his father. It was not long before they had not only become hardy mountaineers, but familiar with all the near-by walks in and around Franconia and Sugar Hill. Jean, too, had begun to show a decided improvement, not only having gained flesh 210 and color, but having a brighter and more cheerful expression in his eyes.
Many of them would stop and give him money, until he had so many silver coins that Nathalie had to make him a bag to keep them in, since he had said he was going to save them to take him back to France, so he could find his father. It wasn’t long before they had not only become tough mountain hikers but were also familiar with all the nearby trails in and around Franconia and Sugar Hill. Jean, too, had begun to show a significant improvement, not only having gained weight and color but also sporting a brighter and cheerier expression in his eyes. 210
And so the sunny days passed, cementing the bond between Nathalie and her charges, and each one learning something that would be of help in the days to come. And then, one day, Nathalie had an inspiration!
And so the sunny days went by, strengthening the connection between Nathalie and her kids, with each one picking up something valuable for the future. Then, one day, Nathalie had a bright idea!
CHAPTER XIV
“SONS OF LIBERTY”
One day Nathalie led the boys to a terrace, a few feet back of a brown-shingled cottage across the road from Peckett’s, and which stood on a lower spur of Garnet Mountain, facing the Franconia Range. Here, on this grassy ridge, gently sloping down to a green meadow below, skirted by a tree-fringed road edging the rocky pasture-land which gradually merged into the lower slopes of the range, she pointed out King Lafayette, and his lower mate, Lincoln, with his two slides. The Sleeping Infant, lying between the latter and Garfield’s sharply defined peak, was immediately heralded by the little maid, Sheila, as the long-lost infant, which some kind-hearted fairy some day, with her magic wand, would awaken. The Twins, and the huge Sleeping Giant, and some of the lower peaks, all came in for a share in the mystic doings of the little girl’s fanciful imagination.
One day, Nathalie took the boys to a terrace a few feet behind a brown-shingled cottage across the road from Peckett’s. It was situated on a lower spur of Garnet Mountain, facing the Franconia Range. On this grassy ridge, gently sloping down to a green meadow below and bordered by a tree-lined road that ran along the rocky pasture land merging into the lower slopes of the range, she pointed out King Lafayette and his companion, Lincoln, with his two slides. The Sleeping Infant, lying between Lincoln and Garfield’s sharply defined peak, was quickly proclaimed by the little girl, Sheila, as the long-lost infant that a kind-hearted fairy would one day awaken with her magic wand. The Twins, the enormous Sleeping Giant, and some of the lower peaks all captured the imagination of the little girl in her whimsical storytelling.
The atmosphere was so translucent that each shaggy crest, pointed dome, and spire of the range, sharply defined against the sapphire-blue of the sky, stood forth with a strange lucidity, seemingly so near that 212 one had the inclination to put forth a hand to touch them.
The air was so clear that every rough peak, sharp dome, and spire of the mountain range stood out against the bright blue sky, looking so vivid that 212 it felt like you could reach out and touch them.
Lafayette’s craggy foretop, standing up from the deep green-verdured gorge that cleft one side of it, was startlingly like some huge elephant’s head, with a mouse-colored, wrinkly and baggy-skinned trunk. The boys accentuated the resemblance by locating two big rocks, which, they declared, were the beady eyes of the animal, while Sheila insisted she could see the eyes move.
Lafayette’s rugged peak, rising from the lush green gorge that cut into one side, looked astonishingly like a giant elephant's head, complete with a grayish, wrinkled, and saggy trunk. The boys emphasized the likeness by finding two large rocks, which they claimed were the beady eyes of the creature, while Sheila insisted she could see the eyes moving.
As they rested on the ledge of a little circling wall of cobble-stones, evidently the unfinished foundation of a stone tower, Nathalie told how Lincoln’s rounded dome had been named in honor of a great American named Abraham Lincoln. “Some people used to call him ‘Old Abe,’ or ‘Father Abraham,’ not from any disrespect,” continued the girl, “but because he was so kindly in his nature, his heart so filled with love for mankind, that it was a title of honor, and showed the love of the people for him.”
As they rested on the edge of a small circular wall made of cobblestones, clearly the unfinished base of a stone tower, Nathalie shared how Lincoln’s rounded dome was named after a remarkable American named Abraham Lincoln. “Some people used to call him ‘Old Abe’ or ‘Father Abraham,’ not out of disrespect,” the girl continued, “but because he was so warm-hearted, with his heart filled with love for people, making it a title of honor that reflected the affection the people had for him.”
“Ain’t he the gink that got to be President of the United States, and made the darkies free?” inquired Danny eagerly.
“Aren’t you talking about the guy who became President of the United States and freed the slaves?” Danny asked eagerly.
Nathalie nodded, and then led the boy on to tell how Lincoln, from a long-legged, ungainly pioneer youth, brought up in a log cabin in the wilds of Indiana, ended his career as the hero of the greatest republic in the world.
Nathalie nodded and then encouraged the boy to describe how Lincoln, from a tall, awkward pioneer kid raised in a log cabin in the wilderness of Indiana, became the hero of the greatest republic in the world.
213 The little newsie told his story importantly, proud to think that he had remembered these odd bits of knowledge from the little schooling he had received. And what he didn’t remember Nathalie did, dwelling at length on the part this leader of men took in freeing the slaves, and what slavery meant to the negroes of the South.
213 The young newsboy shared his story with great pride, thrilled to recall these random bits of information from the limited education he had. And whatever he couldn’t remember, Nathalie did, elaborating on the role this leader of men played in freeing the slaves, and what slavery really meant for the Black people in the South.
As the little group listened with wide-eyed interest, the girl suddenly cried, “Oh, children! think what it would mean to you if you were not allowed to move about as you pleased, but were forced to do what you did not want to do, although you might be tired and hungry, and were driven about like cattle, and lashed if you disobeyed your master!”
As the small group listened with eager interest, the girl suddenly exclaimed, “Oh, kids! Just imagine what it would be like if you weren’t allowed to move around freely, but had to do things you didn’t want to do, even when you were tired and hungry, and were treated like cattle, getting whipped if you disobeyed your owner!”
She then explained that all men were born free and equal, and that God never intended that any man should be a bond-servant to his fellow-men. “Every one,” she emphasized, “has the right to enjoy the beautiful things of life without being subjected to cruel treatment, and forced to hard labor, as the slaves had been, just because their skin was black instead of white.
She then explained that all men are born free and equal, and that God never intended for anyone to be a servant to others. “Everyone,” she emphasized, “has the right to enjoy life's beautiful things without being subjected to cruel treatment or forced into hard labor, like the slaves were, just because their skin is black instead of white.
“But there is another kind of slavery.” said Nathalie earnestly, “which, although it may not mean the slavery of the body, like that of the negroes on a plantation, is the slavery of the will. That is, a man may not be lashed on his back, but his will is made subject to another man’s will, and he has to obey and direct his life the way this man says, whether he wants to 214 or not. All over the world, for centuries, the people of different nations have been forced to obey the will of one man, that is, the ruler, or the king, of the nation to which they belonged. The peoples of the world have not been free; they have not had the right, or the liberty, to do as they thought or felt.”
“But there’s another kind of slavery,” Nathalie said earnestly. “This type might not involve physical bondage, like the enslavement of Black people on a plantation, but it is still a form of slavery of the will. A person may not be physically beaten, but their will is subjected to someone else’s control, and they have to follow that person’s orders and shape their life according to that person’s wishes, whether they want to or not. For centuries, people all over the world have been forced to comply with the desires of one individual—the ruler or king of their nation. The peoples of the world have not been free; they have not had the right or the freedom to act as they believe or feel.” 214
She then tried to make the children understand that liberty was something as high and wide, and as vast, as the beautiful mountains which rose before them. “It is like the air,” she said, “or the atmosphere, which stretches about you on every side, and around the great earth like a gray blanket. It is so big it can’t be seen, like the mountains, or measured, and yet it can be felt. For if you were shut up in a box without any air, or atmosphere to breathe into your lungs, you would die. So liberty, God’s special gift, is so dear and sweet to man, that without it he can’t grow or expand, for he is like a man shut up in a box without air. He is like a little Tom Thumb, for he can only grow just so high.”
She then tried to help the children understand that freedom was as high and wide, and as vast, as the beautiful mountains in front of them. “It’s like the air,” she said, “or the atmosphere, that surrounds you on all sides and wraps around the great earth like a gray blanket. It’s so big that you can’t see it, like the mountains, or measure it, and yet you can feel it. Because if you were trapped in a box without any air or atmosphere to breathe, you would die. So freedom, God’s special gift, is so precious and sweet to people that without it, they can't grow or expand. They’re like a person stuck in a box without air. They're like a little Tom Thumb, because they can only grow so high.”
Nathalie now interested the children in the story of the Pilgrims, the pioneers of liberty in America, telling how, because they were not allowed to have liberty under the rule of the English king, they came to this new world and sought to worship God as they deemed right. In doing this, she explained, they not only founded a colony where they had the right to worship God as their conscience dictated, but they made religious 215 freedom possible for the people who came after them. By the signing of the Compact in the cabin of the Mayflower, they gave this nation democratic liberty, by giving every man the right to express his thoughts and feelings, thus giving him a say as to how the people should be ruled, which meant a government for and by the people.
Nathalie now engaged the kids with the story of the Pilgrims, the pioneers of freedom in America. She explained how they left because they weren’t allowed to have liberty under the English king. They came to this new world to worship God in the way they believed was right. By doing this, she pointed out that they not only established a colony where they could worship God according to their conscience, but they also paved the way for religious freedom for those who followed them. Through the signing of the Compact in the cabin of the Mayflower, they granted this nation democratic liberty by giving every person the right to express their thoughts and feelings, allowing them a voice in how the people should be governed, which meant a government for and by the people.
Nathalie now told of the patriots, and how, in the War of the Revolution, they fought the mother-country, England, in order to maintain the liberty given them by the founders of the nation. “By uniting the thirteen colonies into one, they not only added unity to justice and liberty, but gave us the United States of America.
Nathalie now talked about the patriots, and how, during the Revolutionary War, they fought against England, the mother country, to preserve the freedom given to them by the nation's founders. “By bringing the thirteen colonies together as one, they not only added unity to justice and liberty but also created the United States of America.
“These lovers of liberty also organized a society, in New York, which became known as the Sons of Liberty, all the members determined to defend with their lives the liberty and principles given them by their forefathers. As liberty means the right to express our thoughts and feelings, it also means that these thoughts and feelings must be good and pure, the best within us,” added the girl with sudden gravity. “And these Sons of Liberty were so called not only because they fought for liberty, but because they gave of their best to mankind.”
“These lovers of freedom also formed a society in New York, which became known as the Sons of Liberty. All the members were committed to defending with their lives the freedom and principles handed down to them by their ancestors. Since freedom means the right to share our thoughts and feelings, it also implies that these thoughts and feelings should be good and pure, the best within us,” the girl added with sudden seriousness. “And these Sons of Liberty were called that not just because they fought for freedom, but because they contributed their best to humanity.”
Danny added another link to this story of liberty by telling about the Declaration of Independence, and how the Liberty Bell was rung from the old State House 216 in Philadelphia, so that every one should know that a new nation had been born. The ride of Paul Revere was described with spirited impressiveness by the boy, as well as what had occurred on Lexington common, and the famous battle by the old North Bridge at Concord.
Danny added another link to this story of freedom by talking about the Declaration of Independence and how the Liberty Bell was rung from the old State House 216 in Philadelphia, so that everyone would know a new nation had been born. He described Paul Revere's ride with exciting detail, as well as what happened on Lexington Common and the famous battle at the old North Bridge in Concord.
Whereupon Nathalie pointed out Mount Washington’s cone-tipped crest, majestically rising above a wreath of silver-gray clouds, and explained that, although the Indians had named it Agiochook, in later years the white people had named it Mount Washington, in honor of the great man Danny had been telling about.
Whereupon Nathalie pointed out Mount Washington’s cone-shaped peak, majestically towering above a ring of silver-gray clouds, and explained that, although the Indigenous people had named it Agiochook, later on, the white settlers named it Mount Washington, in honor of the great man Danny had been talking about.
After dwelling upon Washington’s magnificent character, and recalling little incidents from his life, Nathalie said that, like the great mountain that towered so far above its fellows, so George Washington, the first President of this great nation, was known to civilization as one of the greatest men in the world, because he had given of his best to help his fellow-men, and proved that he was a true Son of Liberty.
After thinking about Washington’s impressive character and remembering small moments from his life, Nathalie said that, just like the great mountain that rises far above its peers, George Washington, the first President of this great nation, is recognized by the world as one of the greatest men ever because he gave his best to help others and showed that he was a true Son of Liberty.
Jefferson Mountain, its crest rising in low humility near Washington’s greater height; Adams, whose stony front stood forth in rugged grandeur on the left; and Madison, Monroe, Franklin, Clay, and Webster, as well as other peaks, were pointed out to the children, each one named for some great American, who had proved his right to be known as a Son of Liberty.
Jefferson Mountain, its peak rising modestly near Washington’s taller height; Adams, with its rocky face standing out in impressive grandeur on the left; and Madison, Monroe, Franklin, Clay, and Webster, along with other peaks, were shown to the children, each named after a great American who had earned the title of Son of Liberty.
217 To be sure, some of the peaks were shrouded in a veil of mystical haze, while others were but dimly discerned, as they peeped between the gaps made by their nearer mates, but each and every one served to illustrate in whose honor it had been named, and why he was a lover of what every one loved—liberty.
217 Sure enough, some of the peaks were covered in a mystical haze, while others were barely visible as they peeked through the gaps created by their closer companions. But each one served to show who it was named after and why he loved what everyone cherished—freedom.
Nathalie now drew the children’s attention to Mount Lafayette, and said that this peak had also been named in honor of a great man, also a Son of Liberty, although he was not an American. The children had heard the name of Lafayette mentioned so often in connection with the present war, that they listened with greedy avidity as the girl told about this “Boy of Versailles,” as some one had called him, when, as the young Marquis de Lafayette,—a mere boy,—he used to lead the revels at that famous French palace in helping the girl queen, Marie Antoinette, make merry at her garden parties, when her boy husband was too busy in his workshop, taking some old clock apart, to entertain his guests at court.
Nathalie now pointed out Mount Lafayette to the children and mentioned that this peak was named after a great man, also a Son of Liberty, even though he wasn't an American. The kids had heard Lafayette's name mentioned so often in relation to the current war that they listened eagerly as she talked about this "Boy of Versailles," as someone had dubbed him. When he was the young Marquis de Lafayette—a mere boy—he used to lead the celebrations at that famous French palace, helping the girl queen, Marie Antoinette, host her garden parties while her boy husband was too busy tinkering with an old clock to entertain their court guests.
She told how the little marquis loved to walk behind the brave soldiers of the day, the one ambition of his life being his longing to be a soldier. She told, too, of his life in the lonely castle among the southern mountains of France, where his only companions were governesses and masters, all intent upon drilling him to dance, to bow with courtly grace, to pick up a lady’s handkerchief, and other accomplishments of the court.
She shared how the little marquis enjoyed walking behind the brave soldiers of the day, his one dream in life being his desire to become a soldier. She also recounted his life in the isolated castle in the southern mountains of France, where his only companions were governesses and tutors, all focused on teaching him to dance, bow gracefully, pick up a lady’s handkerchief, and other skills for court life.
218 After leaving the College du Plessis, where his education as a courtier was completed, he returned to his estate, now the heir to great wealth, where he used to spend his time making friends with the peasants,—the people who lived on his lands,—thus becoming acquainted with their mode of life. In this way he learned the need of liberty, the liberty that gave people the right to think and feel, and to express their thoughts and feelings, and the great need that the people of the nations in the world should have a voice in their own government, and thus learn to govern themselves.
218 After leaving the College du Plessis, where he finished his training as a courtier, he went back to his estate, now the heir to significant wealth, where he spent his time getting to know the peasants—the people living on his land—thereby becoming familiar with their way of life. Through this, he discovered the importance of freedom, the kind of freedom that allows people to think and feel freely and to express their thoughts and feelings, as well as the critical need for people around the world to have a say in their own government and, in turn, learn to govern themselves.
Nathalie then told how, when the patriots of America began to fight against King George in order to gain their rights, that the young nobleman, now tall and slender, with reddish hair and bright eyes, heard of it, and, although an officer in the French army, he determined to go to America and help these people of the colonies to win their liberty. He had a young and lovely wife,—they had been sweethearts when children,—and yet so inspired was he to help the Americans that he left her. With a friend, the Baron de Kalb, he eluded the spies and officers of his own country, and in various disguises finally reached Spain, whence he embarked for America, and gallantly fought with the American patriots during the War of the Revolution, winning fame not only for his bravery, but for his great friendship for Washington.
Nathalie then shared how, when the American patriots began their fight against King George to gain their rights, a young nobleman, now tall and slender with reddish hair and bright eyes, heard about it. Even though he was an officer in the French army, he decided to go to America to help the colonists secure their freedom. He had a young and beautiful wife—they had been childhood sweethearts—but he was so inspired to support the Americans that he left her behind. With his friend, Baron de Kalb, he evaded the spies and officers from his own country, and in various disguises, he eventually made it to Spain, from where he set sail for America. He bravely fought alongside the American patriots during the Revolutionary War, gaining fame not just for his courage, but for his strong friendship with Washington.
219 “Indeed,” said the girl, as she finished her recital, he was a real Son of Liberty, and it is a splendid thing to think that these two grand old mountains, facing each other in such magnificent grandeur, should now be the monuments to these two wonderful men, monuments, too, that can only perish when the mountains turn and flee away at the command of the Most High God.
219 "Absolutely," said the girl, as she wrapped up her performance, he was a true Son of Liberty, and it’s amazing to think that these two majestic mountains, standing opposite each other in such impressive beauty, are now the monuments to these two incredible men—monuments that can only disappear when the mountains move away at the command of the Most High God.
“Lincoln, whose life-story you know,” Nathalie pointed to the green-wooded heights of Mount Lincoln, “also proved himself a Son of Liberty when he gave of the noblest and best that was in him to the people, in his great struggle to free the slaves. In fact,” the girl spoke a little sadly, “this great man was not only a Son of Liberty, but he was a martyr to Liberty.” And then she told how he had lost his life because of his heroic determination to do what he thought was right.
“Lincoln, whose life story you know,” Nathalie pointed to the green wooded heights of Mount Lincoln, “also showed himself to be a Son of Liberty when he gave everything noble and good within him to the people in his significant struggle to free the slaves. In fact,” the girl said a bit sadly, “this great man was not just a Son of Liberty; he was also a martyr for Liberty.” Then she explained how he lost his life because of his courageous commitment to do what he believed was right.
“Children,” cried the girl suddenly, facing the row of intent, eager faces regarding her, “can any of you tell me who to-day are proving themselves true Sons of Liberty?”
“Kids,” the girl suddenly shouted, turning to the eager faces staring at her, “can any of you tell me who today is showing they're real Sons of Liberty?”
“The soldiers who are fighting in the trenches!” burst from Danny quickly.
“The soldiers who are fighting in the trenches!” Danny exclaimed quickly.
Before Nathalie could assent, a thin, quavering voice burst out with the ringing cry, “Vive la Belgique! Vive la Belgique!”
Before Nathalie could agree, a thin, trembling voice suddenly shouted, “Long live Belgium! Long live Belgium!”
“Good for you, Jean,” cried the girl, as she enthusiastically clapped her hands in approval. “It is long 220 live Belgium. Yes, Jean, the soldiers of Belgium, of France, England, and America, too, now, are proving themselves Sons of Liberty, because they are all fighting to give liberty to the world. And brave Belgium,” patting the shoulder of the refugee, whose pale face was strangely illumined, “every man in that little country has proved that he is a Son of Liberty, when, rather than dishonor the great principles of liberty and justice, he took up arms and defended it against the Germans when they made their mad rush to Paris. They not only saved France, but every nation as well, saved it so that each man in it could fight and thus give liberty to the world. Now, children, let us cry with Jean, ‘Vive la Belgique.’”
“Good for you, Jean,” the girl exclaimed, enthusiastically clapping her hands. “Long 220 live Belgium! Yes, Jean, the soldiers from Belgium, France, England, and now America too, are showing they are Sons of Liberty because they’re all fighting to bring freedom to the world. And brave Belgium,” she said, patting the shoulder of the refugee, whose pale face was strangely lit up, “every man in that little country has proven he is a Son of Liberty by choosing to take up arms and defend freedom against the Germans when they made their crazy push to Paris. They not only saved France, but every nation as well, ensuring that every man could fight and help give freedom to the world. Now, kids, let’s shout with Jean, ‘Vive la Belgique!’”
When this cry ceased, Tony’s velvety black eyes, with a sly gleam of humor lurking in their shadows, became scarlet flames, suddenly remembering that his native land was also in the war, and, with dramatic fervor, he yelled, “Viva l’Italia!”
When this cry stopped, Tony’s deep black eyes, with a hint of humor lurking in their shadows, turned into bright red flames as he suddenly remembered that his homeland was also at war, and with dramatic intensity, he shouted, “Viva l’Italia!”
Danny, not to be outdone in this burst of patriotism, immediately started in with the lusty shout of, “Hurrah for the United States! Hurrah for the United States!”
Danny, wanting to match the enthusiasm, jumped in with a loud cheer of, “Hooray for the United States! Hooray for the United States!”
Altogether it was a very patriotic little company that stood by the old stone ledge facing those blue-hazed mountains on that sunny afternoon and “yelled their heads off,” as Danny said, in honor of the Sons of Liberty, 221 who were fighting in the trenches across the sea to give liberty to the world.
Altogether, it was a very patriotic little group that stood by the old stone ledge facing those blue-hazed mountains on that sunny afternoon and “yelled their heads off,” as Danny put it, in honor of the Sons of Liberty, 221 who were fighting in the trenches across the sea to bring freedom to the world.
After the shouting and demonstration of the patriots had begun to wane, Nathalie put up her hand for silence, and then, in her simple way, the way that somehow always seemed to go right to the heart of every child, said very softly, “And now, children, let us show that we, too, each one of us, want to do what is right, to give of our best to make others happy. Let us show that, although we cannot go and fight in the trenches, we are still Sons of Liberty, by keeping a big, deep place in our hearts for the boys in the trenches, not only our American boys, but the boys of the Allies, every soldier of every nation who is fighting for the victory of peace and right.
After the shouting and protests from the patriots started to die down, Nathalie raised her hand for silence, and then, in her straightforward way that always seemed to touch the heart of every child, said softly, “And now, kids, let’s show that we, too, each of us, want to do what’s right, to give our best to make others happy. Let’s demonstrate that, even though we can’t go and fight in the trenches, we are still Sons of Liberty by holding a big, deep space in our hearts for the boys in the trenches, not just our American boys, but the boys of the Allies, every soldier from every nation who is fighting for the victory of peace and justice.
“I know you all want to belong to the Sons of Liberty, that you would like to show that you are real soldiers, fighting for the right; and so, will you not bow your heads for a moment, and down in the big, deep place in your hearts, silently say a little prayer? Just ask God that He will bless the soldiers, these Sons of Liberty across the sea, who are fighting for you and me, and give them a great victory in this world’s battle for the rights of men, a victory that means happiness, love, and peace for every one in the world.”
“I know all of you want to be part of the Sons of Liberty, that you want to prove you’re true soldiers fighting for what’s right; so, will you take a moment to bow your heads and, deep down in your hearts, silently say a little prayer? Just ask God to bless the soldiers, the Sons of Liberty across the sea, who are fighting for you and me, and grant them a great victory in this world’s struggle for human rights, a victory that brings happiness, love, and peace for everyone.”
CHAPTER XV
THE GALLERY OF THE GODS
There was a frightened look on the faces of the children for a moment or so, and then Sheila cried in a distressed tone, “But, Miss Natty, I don’t know how to pray that way.”
There was a scared expression on the children's faces for a moment, and then Sheila said in a worried tone, “But, Miss Natty, I don’t know how to pray like that.”
Danny immediately flung about and flashed an annihilating look upon the little girl, but Nathalie, drawing the child close, explained what a silent prayer meant. Then, as she solemnly bowed her head, every little head went down, and for the space of a moment or so, up there on that high mountain,—that Nathalie always felt must be very close to God,—there was a reverent silence, a sacred moment, as from each child-heart went up a prayer. Perhaps it was only a dumbly spoken word, or a reverent desire, but surely God heard.
Danny quickly turned around and shot a piercing look at the little girl, but Nathalie, pulling the child close, explained what a silent prayer was. Then, as she solemnly bowed her head, every little head went down, and for a moment or so, up there on that high mountain—which Nathalie always felt was very close to God—there was a respectful silence, a sacred moment, as from each child's heart went up a prayer. It might have just been an unspoken word or a heartfelt wish, but surely God heard it.
As Nathalie raised her head, and the children followed her example,—evidently there had been some peeping eyes,—all but Jean, who still kept his head down, his pale lips slowly moving, there was a moment’s quiet, and then Nathalie exclaimed, “Oh, boys, what do you say to calling these rocks a fort?”
As Nathalie lifted her head, the children followed her lead—clearly, there had been some spying going on—except for Jean, who kept his head down, his pale lips moving slowly. There was a brief silence, and then Nathalie exclaimed, “Oh, boys, how about we call these rocks a fort?”
“Crackie! that will be dandy!” responded Danny quickly. “And, Miss Nathalie,” he added, his face 223 lighting with sudden thought, “why can’t we call it Liberty Fort?”
“Awesome! That sounds great!” Danny replied quickly. “And, Miss Nathalie,” he added, his face 223 lighting up with a sudden thought, “why can’t we call it Liberty Fort?”
And so the round ledge of cobble-stones was named Liberty Fort, and then, before Nathalie realized what the suggestion carried, Tony proposed that the path at the foot of the terrace on which the fort stood, on the summit of the lower slope leading down to the meadow, be a trench.
And so the circular ledge of cobblestones was called Liberty Fort, and then, before Nathalie understood what the suggestion implied, Tony proposed that the path at the base of the terrace where the fort stood, at the top of the lower slope leading down to the meadow, should be a trench.
Other suggestions followed, which culminated in a lengthy discussion, leading the children the following afternoon to the woods, where they gathered dried leaves, and little pebbles and twigs, to fill some bags, which Janet and Nathalie had made out of some old potato-sacks, to represent sand-bags to pile on top of the trench. The two girls meanwhile sat in the fort and not only made epaulettes for the young soldiers’ shoulders, but also gas-masks, which these Sons of Liberty vociferously declared that they must have, or they would be gassed.
Other suggestions came up, resulting in a long discussion that led the kids the next afternoon to the woods, where they collected dried leaves, small pebbles, and twigs to fill some bags that Janet and Nathalie had made from old potato sacks to act as sandbags to pile on top of the trench. Meanwhile, the two girls sat in the fort and made epaulettes for the young soldiers' shoulders, along with gas masks, which these Sons of Liberty insisted they needed, or else they would be gassed.
After the Stars and Stripes, with the various flags of the Allies, had been fastened to a pole and mounted on the fort, the battle of the Marne took place, represented by these small soldiers, with guns held high, leaping over the sand-bags and rushing madly down the slope to the meadow below, which had been named “No Man’s Land.” Here, with eyes aflame and hair all tousled, they fought frenziedly with the imaginary gray uniforms of the German soldiery, who were supposed 224 to have rushed towards them from their entrenchments, the stone wall by the road just beyond the meadow.
After the Stars and Stripes, along with the various flags of the Allies, were attached to a pole and raised on the fort, the battle of the Marne happened, illustrated by these small soldiers, guns raised high, leaping over the sandbags and charging down the slope to the meadow below, which was called “No Man’s Land.” There, with burning eyes and messy hair, they fought wildly against the imaginary gray uniforms of the German soldiers, who were supposed to have charged at them from their trenches, the stone wall by the road just beyond the meadow.
It was great sport, notwithstanding that their helmets—old tin pails—would insist upon falling over their faces just when some very wonderful capture was about to be made. But they soon learned not to mind a little thing like that, as Danny observed with officer-like brusqueness—he was the general-in-chief of these liberty forces—that only slackers or mollycoddles would stop fighting for a hat. So they fought most furiously, imitating in every way possible the maneuvers and tactics of the soldiers in France.
It was a lot of fun, even though their helmets—old tin pails—always seemed to fall over their faces right when they were about to make an amazing capture. But they quickly learned not to let something like that bother them, as Danny pointed out with his authoritative tone—he was the leader of these freedom fighters—that only lazy people or wimps would quit fighting over a hat. So they fought with all their might, copying in every way possible the moves and strategies of the soldiers in France.
They took possession of a rustic seat on the ridge near the woods for an outpost, and here Sheila, with a big paper soldier’s cap on her head, was posted to parade with military precision before it as a sentry. Danny, meanwhile would climb a tree, to watch a make-believe enemy’s aëroplane, or to play the rôle of a bird-man, getting ready to fly in a patrol over the enemy’s entrenchments.
They claimed a simple spot on the ridge by the woods as their outpost, and here Sheila, wearing a large paper soldier's cap, stood guard with military precision as a sentry. Meanwhile, Danny would climb a tree to keep an eye on a pretend enemy airplane or to act as a bird-man, preparing to patrol over the enemy's positions.
The parts the little girl played were numerous, sometimes acting as a canteen girl, selling lemonade and make-believe “smokes,”—twigs trimmed to represent cigarettes,—or again, playing the part of a captured Boche, always insisting that she was a prince, or some high German official. She entered into the playing of holding up her hands in token of surrender, while calling 225 “Kamerad” with dramatic fervor. Then, as if suddenly reminded that she was a scion of royalty, she would take to fighting and kicking furiously to be released, bringing her teeth into action, and inflicting sundry bites on her captor with such energy that Nathalie, or Janet, tricked out with a white head-gear, starred with a red cross, would hurry to the scene, and bind up with soft rags the wounds of the afflicted one.
The roles the little girl played were many, sometimes acting as a canteen girl selling lemonade and pretend “smokes”—twigs trimmed to look like cigarettes—or playing the part of a captured German soldier, always claiming she was a prince or some high-ranking official. She fully got into the scene, holding up her hands in surrender while dramatically calling “Kamerad.” Then, as if suddenly remembering her royal status, she would start fighting and kicking wildly to break free, using her teeth to bite her captor with such force that Nathalie or Janet, dressed in white with a red cross, would rush over and wrap the wounds of the injured one with soft rags.
Jean, who had begun to prove that his real self was only lying dormant beneath a shroud of sorrow, was triumphantly happy as the bugler, and one day suggested that they have a tank,—he had seen one on a battle-field. An old tin can was then procured from Sam, which had done duty in holding chicken-feed. It was now made to roll, in a horribly queer way, down the slope and over No Man’s Land, maneuvered by Jean, who was inside of it, and who proved that he was a keen trailer of the Boches, as the lad always called the Germans.
Jean, who had started to show that his true self was just waiting to emerge from beneath a layer of sadness, was extremely happy as the bugler. One day, he suggested they create a tank—he had seen one on a battlefield. An old tin can was then obtained from Sam, which had been used for holding chicken feed. It was now made to roll, in a very awkward way, down the slope and over No Man’s Land, guided by Jean, who was inside it, and who demonstrated that he was a skilled tracker of the Boches, as the boy always referred to the Germans.
The boy frightened Nathalie, sometimes, by the intense hatred he displayed whenever the Germans were mentioned, as his face would grow tense and a sudden fire would flame up in his eyes, while his one hand would clench rigidly and his little form trembled with the force of the passion within his breast.
The boy sometimes scared Nathalie with the intense hatred he showed whenever the Germans were brought up; his face would tense up and a sudden fire would ignite in his eyes, while his one hand would clench tightly and his small body shook with the intensity of the passion inside him.
But the children did not always play at war in France, for sometimes they were Indians, and would wriggle over the grass snake-fashion. They were all 226 sachems, or big chiefs, named after some red-skinned hero of some Indian tale Nathalie had told them, each one intent on scalping some white man. Sometimes Jean would teach the boys how to play some of the games played in Belgium, as jet, a game which seemed to be played with a stick on a stone, and which they all seemed to enjoy. Then again they would play hopscotch in Jean’s way, and which he called “Kalinker.” But always at the end of their play they would line up in the circling ledge of stones, and, as if inspired by Nathalie’s suggestion on the day of their first visit to the fort, stand very still as they again bowed their heads in a silent prayer for the boys who were fighting “over there.”
But the kids didn't always pretend to be at war in France; sometimes they were Indians, slithering over the grass like snakes. They were all 226 chiefs, named after some legendary Native American hero from a story Nathalie had told, each one focused on "scalping" some white guy. Occasionally, Jean would show the boys how to play some games from Belgium, like jet, a game that seemed to involve a stick and a stone, and they all seemed to have fun with it. Then they would play hopscotch in Jean’s style, which he called “Kalinker.” But at the end of their playtime, they would always line up on the circle of stones and, inspired by Nathalie’s suggestion from their first visit to the fort, stand quietly as they bowed their heads in a silent prayer for the boys fighting “over there.”
Then, one morning, a telephone message came from Mr. Banker that he would be up that afternoon and take the children to the Flume. Whereupon they all became so exuberantly happy that Nathalie had rather a hard time pinning them down to their usual duties.
Then, one morning, a phone message came from Mr. Banker saying he would come by that afternoon and take the kids to the Flume. As a result, everyone got so excited that Nathalie had quite a struggle getting them to focus on their usual tasks.
After a delightful drive, in which Nathalie and Mr. Banker were kept busy answering the many queries propounded by the sightseers, as they gazed in awed wonder at the strange rock formations with their purple and green tints, the silvery waterfalls, and the many natural beauties of the Notch, they arrived at the Flume.
After a great drive, during which Nathalie and Mr. Banker were busy answering the many questions from the tourists as they looked in amazement at the unusual rock formations with their purple and green colors, the shimmering waterfalls, and the numerous natural wonders of the Notch, they arrived at the Flume.
Here, opposite the Flume House, they climbed a zigzagging path up a hill backed by two massive mountains, 227 and then went through a belt of woodland to inspect the Pool. This was a mountain freak, a great basin over a hundred feet wide and forty deep, hollowed out by the Pemigewasset River’s age-old tools, sand and water, as they flowed over its rocky bed.
Here, across from the Flume House, they climbed a winding path up a hill that was flanked by two huge mountains, 227 and then walked through a stretch of woods to check out the Pool. This was a natural wonder, a large basin over a hundred feet wide and forty feet deep, carved out by the Pemigewasset River’s long-standing forces of sand and water as they flowed over the rocky bed.
The lustrous green of its waters rippling between lichen-covered cliffs, and canopied by overhanging trees—that looked as if they would fall from age—was so transparent that the children could see the shiny pebbles at the bottom of the Pool.
The shiny green of its waters flowing between lichen-covered cliffs, sheltered by overhanging trees that seemed like they might fall due to their age, was so clear that the kids could see the smooth pebbles at the bottom of the Pool.
On returning to the road they started for the Flume, passing over a wooden bridge, and then up an incline, a sort of up-hill-and-down-dale road, as it followed the mountain brook flowing from the cascade that dashed over the rocks at the head of the gorge. The wild picturesque beauty of this “Gallery of the Gods,” as Mr. Banker called it, not only elicited many exclamations from the children, but brought forth more weird fancies from Sheila, which challenged the humorous gleam in that gentleman’s eyes many times.
On their way back to the road, they headed for the Flume, crossing a wooden bridge and then climbing an incline, on a kind of bumpy road that followed the mountain stream flowing from the waterfall that tumbled over the rocks at the top of the gorge. The stunning and wild beauty of this “Gallery of the Gods,” as Mr. Banker referred to it, not only drew many exclamations from the kids but also sparked more strange ideas from Sheila, which brought out the playful glint in that gentleman’s eyes time and again.
The child’s mind was so rich in imagery, that every hooded mountain or queer-shaped cliff, every passing cloud or glint of sunlight as it filtered down through the leaves in the forest, and the soft patter of the raindrops as they danced on the window-pane in a storm, were sources of constant delight. In childish prattle she would tell Nathalie what the wind said as it swept through the trees, or came with a soft rustle around the 228 corner of the veranda on a breezy day. The soft twirl of a leaf, the trill of a bird in the silent forest, were all pixie-whispers.
The child’s imagination was so vivid that every hooded mountain or oddly shaped cliff, every passing cloud or sparkle of sunlight filtering through the leaves in the forest, and the gentle sound of raindrops dancing on the window during a storm brought her constant joy. In her playful chatter, she would tell Nathalie what the wind said as it rushed through the trees or softly rustled around the 228 corner of the porch on a breezy day. The gentle swirl of a leaf and the trill of a bird in the quiet forest were all like whispers from fairies.
She would pick up a leaf from the road, beautiful to her in its satiny greenness, or some gay-petaled flower, and talk to it as if it were her dolly, or some tricksy creature from fairy-land, always giving it some fanciful name that was keenly suggestive of its nature. Animals she caressed and fondled with the fearless confidence and love of trusting childhood.
She would pick up a leaf from the road, beautiful to her in its smooth green color, or a bright flower, and talk to it like it was her doll or some mischievous creature from a fairy tale, always giving it a fanciful name that hinted at its nature. She cuddled and played with animals with the fearless confidence and love of a trusting child.
They finally reached the remarkable rock gallery in the very heart of the mountain, which Nathalie now introduced to them as Liberty Mountain. She explained that it was cut in two by the deep gorge, or fissure, known as The Flume, whose walls reached to a perpendicular height of fifty or seventy feet, while at its farther end a mountain-brook came dashing down with great splashes of white foam.
They finally arrived at the incredible rock gallery in the center of the mountain, which Nathalie now introduced to them as Liberty Mountain. She explained that it was split in two by the deep gorge, or fissure, called The Flume, whose walls rose to a straight height of fifty or seventy feet, while at the far end a mountain stream rushed down with large splashes of white foam.
The children were hushed to profound wonder at the frowning gloom of the great wall that reached so high and dark above their heads, with its patches of green moss, and where, from its many crevices, young birches had fastened their roots, and ferns and vines clung to soften its harsh gray. Every now and then a tiny white mountain-flower could be seen peeping down at them, like a fairy, Sheila declared, from a mossy bed of green.
The children were silenced in deep awe at the dark, looming wall that towered high above them, covered in patches of green moss. Young birches had rooted themselves in its many cracks, and ferns and vines clung to soften its rough gray surface. Every now and then, a tiny white mountain flower peeked down at them, which Sheila said looked like a fairy from a mossy bed of green.
They climbed up and up, stepping from rock to 229 rock, to clamber at last over the slippery smoothness of the granite ledges. Here the cascade had simmered to a lazy flow, to eddy with a silver tinkling into the many hollows that perforated the rocks, making tiny glistening pools, which gave the children unfeigned delight as they dipped their hands in its soft trickle.
They climbed higher and higher, stepping from rock to 229 rock, finally scrambling over the smooth, slippery granite ledges. Here, the waterfall had slowed to a gentle trickle, swirling with a silvery sparkle into the various hollows in the rocks, creating small, glimmering pools that brought genuine joy to the children as they dipped their hands into its soft flow.
But when they reached the narrow foot-bridge, sometimes only railed by a single birch pole, or a rope that clung tremblingly to one side of the steep wall, and looked down into the gorge below, they came to a sudden halt. With a haunting fascination they watched the brook as it now dashed with a mad plunge, splashed with patches of snowy foam, over the masses of green-embossed boulders, that looked as if they had been tossed, helter-skelter fashion, into the narrow slit of rock, in angry mood, by old Father Time.
But when they got to the narrow footbridge, sometimes just bordered by a single birch pole or a rope that shakily clung to one side of the steep wall, and looked down into the gorge below, they suddenly stopped. With a haunting fascination, they watched the brook as it rushed down with a wild plunge, splashing with patches of white foam over the green-covered boulders that seemed to have been tossed haphazardly into the narrow gap in the rock by an angry Father Time.
With strange awe they glanced up the gorge, through the weird gloom of the scene, at the pearly glitter of the falling water, with its blur of green background, that appeared as if some miraculous hand had suddenly wrenched the earth apart to send forth its flashing spray. And then they grew curiously still as they spied the eerie shadows on the high black wall, where the sunlight, as it glinted down into the glen in wanton sport, played hide-and-seek with golden glimmer.
With strange awe, they looked up the gorge, through the unusual gloom of the scene, at the pearly sparkle of the falling water, with its blur of green in the background, which seemed as if some miraculous hand had suddenly torn the earth apart to release its flashing spray. Then they became oddly still as they noticed the eerie shadows on the high black wall, where the sunlight, glinting down into the glen in playful sport, played hide-and-seek with golden glimmers.
But the silence was broken as Mr. Banker pointed out a huge tree-trunk that had fallen across the stream, reaching from side to side of the gorge, making an 230 aërial pathway high above their heads. When the gentleman said it was called “The Devil’s Bridge,” and that sometimes people had walked on it across the gorge, their tongues began to clatter.
But the silence was interrupted when Mr. Banker pointed out a massive tree trunk that had fallen across the stream, spanning the width of the gorge and creating an 230 aerial pathway high above them. When the gentleman mentioned it was called “The Devil’s Bridge,” and that sometimes people had walked across it over the gorge, they started chattering excitedly.
Fired by curiosity, the boys regained their nerve and pushed manfully up the foot-bridge, barred with slats, like a horse’s plank, while Mr. Banker, holding little Sheila by the hand, followed close behind. Nathalie, with a strange timidity, hesitatingly followed, always being oppressed by an odd, queer feeling when ascending any great height, a feeling that she wanted to cling to something more tangible than space. But there was nothing to cling to but that shaky old railing, and little Jean was hanging to it fearsomely with his one hand, his little form shaking tremulously, and his eyes black with an odd fear.
Driven by curiosity, the boys found their courage again and bravely climbed the slatted footbridge, similar to a horse’s plank, while Mr. Banker, holding little Sheila’s hand, followed closely behind. Nathalie, feeling a strange shyness, hesitantly trailed behind, always overwhelmed by an odd, unsettling sensation when climbing to a great height—a feeling that made her want to hold onto something more solid than just empty space. But the only thing to hold onto was that shaky old railing, and little Jean gripped it tightly with one hand, his small body shaking nervously, and his eyes wide with a peculiar fear.
Stirred to pity, Nathalie drew the child to the other side of her, near the high wall, away from that gaping rut in the earth beneath, and then caught him firmly by the shoulder. Then suddenly, perhaps it was a quick glance down into the depths below, she felt a strange, indefinable sensation pass through her. A deathly faintness seized her; she closed her eyes, and then she felt herself falling, falling——
Stirred by compassion, Nathalie pulled the child to the other side of her, near the tall wall, away from the deep hole in the ground below, and then grabbed him firmly by the shoulder. Then suddenly, maybe it was a quick look down into the depths below, she felt a strange, indescribable feeling wash over her. A wave of dizziness hit her; she closed her eyes, and then she felt herself falling, falling——
But a pitiful cry from the boy, “Oh, Mademoiselle Natty! No, you not fall! Jean will hold you,” aroused her, and she opened her eyes to see the white 231 face of the boy, as he stared up at her while clutching her frantically with his one hand.
But a desperate cry from the boy, “Oh, Mademoiselle Natty! No, don't fall! Jean will catch you,” woke her up, and she opened her eyes to see the pale face of the boy, as he looked up at her while gripping her tightly with his one hand.
“Oh, no, Jean; I’m all right now,” but even as she spoke that same old sensation again thrilled her. She felt sick and faint again, and then——
“Oh, no, Jean; I’m fine now,” but even as she said that, the same old feeling rushed over her once more. She felt nauseous and lightheaded again, and then——
“Rather steep just here, isn’t it? But cling to that rail, and you’ll be all right; you can’t fall.”
“Pretty steep here, huh? But hold on to that railing, and you’ll be fine; you can't fall.”
The girl turned quickly, once more roused from the sudden fear that had assailed her, and found herself gazing into the sun-tanned face of a young man in khaki. He had slipped his arm back of her, against the railing, as if to prevent her from falling, while from under the shadow of his wide-brimmed hat two dark-blue eyes, heavily lashed, smiled down at her reassuringly.
The girl turned quickly, startled once again by the sudden fear that had overwhelmed her, and found herself looking at the sun-tanned face of a young man in khaki. He had slipped his arm behind her, resting it on the railing, as if to keep her from falling, while two dark-blue eyes, framed by thick lashes, smiled down at her reassuringly from under the shadow of his wide-brimmed hat.
Nathalie heaved a deep sigh. Oh, it was such a relief to see that strong, brown hand grasping the rail. And then, with a quick little smile, in sudden realization of her foolish fancy that she was slipping down into the gorge below, she cried, “Oh, I don’t suppose I could fall, but something—— O dear! I know I am very foolish, but I always feel so queer when I stand on any great height, especially when I look down.”
Nathalie let out a deep sigh. It was such a relief to see that strong, brown hand holding onto the rail. Then, with a quick little smile, realizing how silly her thoughts were about slipping down into the gorge below, she exclaimed, “Oh, I don’t think I could fall, but something— O dear! I know I’m being really silly, but I always get this strange feeling when I stand at a great height, especially when I look down.”
“That is a sensation that is shared by many people when they get up in the air, I guess,” was the kindly response. And then, as if to give the girl time to regain her poise, he turned to Jean. “Do you see that 232 place between the walls?” directing the child’s gaze to a place midway between the top of the gorge and the brook below. “Well, ever since the Flume has been known to white men,” he continued, “a great rock, or boulder, was wedged, or suspended, between the two walls. It was like a nut in a cracker, a most curious sight.
“That’s a feeling a lot of people have when they’re up in the air, I guess,” was the kind response. Then, to give the girl a moment to get herself together, he turned to Jean. “Do you see that 232 spot between the walls?” he said, directing the child’s gaze to a place halfway between the top of the gorge and the stream below. “Well, ever since the Flume has been known to white men,” he continued, “a huge rock, or boulder, has been stuck or hanging between the two walls. It looked like a nut in a cracker, a very strange sight.”
“I remember it as a child, when up in the mountains,” he related, “and always had a strange fear that it would tumble down. But every one asserted that it was an impossibility, for it would take an earthquake, or some great convulsion of nature, to dislodge it. Nevertheless I always fought shy of it, and would scurry by as if a witch was after me. But, strange to say,” continued the young man, smiling, and showing his even white teeth, “the prophets were away off, for it fell just a few years ago, and without the aid of an earthquake.”
“I remember it as a kid, when I was up in the mountains,” he said, “and I always had this weird fear that it would collapse. But everyone insisted it was impossible, claiming it would take an earthquake or some massive natural disaster to knock it down. Still, I always avoided it and would rush past as if a witch was chasing me. But, oddly enough,” the young man continued, smiling and showing his straight white teeth, “the so-called experts were totally wrong, because it fell just a few years ago, and it didn’t even need an earthquake.”
“Oh, did it fall on any one?” gasped the girl quickly.
“Oh, did it hit anyone?” the girl gasped quickly.
“No, luckily for the wise-alls; for it fell in the middle of the night, and no one was hurt.”
“No, thankfully for the know-it-alls; it happened in the middle of the night, and no one got hurt.”
Nathalie drew a relieved sigh. “What an escape! Oh, suppose it had fallen when some one was passing beneath it!”
Nathalie let out a relieved sigh. “What a close call! Oh, imagine if it had fallen when someone was walking underneath it!”
233 “Well, they would have been pulverized,” laughed the young man. “I beg your pardon, Miss, but would you not like to have me help you to the top? For I see you have the little boy with you, and, as you are timid, I do not think I would risk it alone.”
233 “Well, they would have been crushed,” laughed the young man. “Excuse me, Miss, but would you like me to help you to the top? I see you have the little boy with you, and since you seem a bit nervous, I wouldn't want to take the chance of going up alone.”
“Oh, thank you; you are very kind,” replied the girl hastily, her face dimpling, for she had begun to feel like her old self. “But no; I don’t think I will venture any farther. I guess I am too timid. I will go back.” She glanced down at Jean, who was gazing up at the young soldier with worshipful awe in his eyes.
“Oh, thank you; you’re very kind,” replied the girl quickly, her face lighting up, as she started to feel like herself again. “But no; I don’t think I’ll go any further. I guess I’m too shy. I’ll head back.” She looked down at Jean, who was staring up at the young soldier with admiring awe in his eyes.
“Let me assist you down, then, to where you will not be affected by the height.” And Nathalie, glad to think that she did not have to turn back and go down that plank alone, allowed the young man to pilot her down, firmly grasping her by the arm, until she stood where she asserted she felt no fear. She would wait there on the rocks, until the rest of her party came down, she said, after thanking her rescuer.
“Let me help you down, then, to where you won't be bothered by the height.” Nathalie, relieved that she didn’t have to go down that plank alone, let the young man guide her, holding onto her arm securely, until she was standing where she said she felt no fear. She decided to wait there on the rocks until the rest of her group came down, she said, after thanking her rescuer.
The young man bowed silently, lifted his hat, and turned to ascend the foot-bridge again, while Nathalie sought a rock where she and Jean could sit down. But in a moment he was back at her side, crying, “I beg your pardon,” Nathalie noticed that he had a pleasant voice that somehow had a familiar ring to it, “but perhaps the little boy would like to go up to the top, as every one likes to see the cascade as it plunges over the rocks. I will take good care of him if he would like to go,” glancing at the little empty sleeve with a compassionate expression in his eyes.
The young man bowed silently, took off his hat, and turned to head back up the footbridge, while Nathalie looked for a rock where she and Jean could sit. But in a moment, he returned to her side, saying, “I’m sorry,” Nathalie noticed he had a nice voice that felt somehow familiar, “but maybe the little boy would like to go up to the top, since everyone enjoys seeing the waterfall as it cascades over the rocks. I’ll take good care of him if he wants to go,” he said, glancing at the little empty sleeve with a compassionate look in his eyes.
234 Nathalie was on the verge of saying, “Oh, no; I think Jean would rather stay with me,” when she caught a sudden expression in the boy’s eyes that caused her to say, “Jean, would you like to go to the top with this gentleman? Mr. Banker and the boys are up there, you know.”
234 Nathalie was about to say, “Oh, no; I think Jean would prefer to stay with me,” when she noticed a sudden look in the boy’s eyes that made her say, “Jean, would you like to go to the top with this gentleman? Mr. Banker and the guys are up there, you know.”
There was no doubt as to the child wanting to see and to do as the other children, or his evident trust in the young soldier, and a minute later the young man, with Jean’s hand held firmly in his, was guiding the child’s steps up the foot-bridge.
There was no question that the child wanted to see and do what the other kids were doing, nor was there any doubt about his obvious trust in the young soldier. A moment later, the young man, with Jean's hand firmly in his, was leading the child's steps up the footbridge.
Some time later, as the car glided along the road on its homeward journey, a short distance from the Flume House, Mr. Banker showed the party a singular rock-formation, caused by the undulations of the topmost ridge of Liberty Mountain. The outlines were those of a huge recumbent figure, wrapped in a cloak or shroud, and bore such a close resemblance, especially the contour of the forehead and nose, to those of General Washington, as after his death he lay in state, on view to the public, that it had been called “Washington in State.” Many people, he asserted, claimed that the great American’s body should lie at rest on this mountain ridge, named for what the great man had striven so hard to maintain, liberty, and thus be his everlasting mausoleum.
Some time later, as the car smoothly made its way along the road heading home, just a short distance from the Flume House, Mr. Banker pointed out a unique rock formation created by the waves of the topmost ridge of Liberty Mountain. The outlines resembled a large reclining figure wrapped in a cloak or shroud, and it closely resembled, especially the shape of the forehead and nose, General Washington as he lay in state after his death for the public to view. It had been called "Washington in State." He claimed that many people believed the great American's body should be laid to rest on this mountain ridge, named for what he fought so hard to uphold—liberty—and thus become his eternal mausoleum.
A six-mile ride and they descended from the car, to 235 walk to the shores of Profile Lake, a few feet from the road. But it was not to look at the sunlit sheen of silver water, embedded like a gem in a green and purple forest setting, but to gaze with awesome wonder at a huge stone face. It was the Old Man of the Mountain that gazed forth with a stony stare from a steep and craggy setting, twelve hundred feet high above the lake, on the battlemented spires of Profile, or Cannon Mountain.
A six-mile drive later, they got out of the car to 235 walk to the shores of Profile Lake, just a few feet from the road. But they weren't there to admire the sunlit shimmer of silver water, sparkling like a gem in a green and purple forest. Instead, they stood in awe, gazing at a massive stone face. It was the Old Man of the Mountain, looking out with a stony gaze from a steep and rugged cliff, twelve hundred feet above the lake, on the towering spires of Profile or Cannon Mountain.
It was another weird formation created by Father Time, that Mr. Banker claimed looked as if it had been stuck on the huge mountain-cliff, like the head of some criminal of medieval days, when spiked on the stone gateway of some kingly stronghold for some dastardly deed.
It was another strange formation made by Father Time, which Mr. Banker said looked like it had been stuck on the massive mountain cliff, like the head of some medieval criminal, when it was displayed on the stone gateway of some royal fortress for a wicked act.
“But this face is not that of a felon, for note the calm majesty, the beautiful benignity of its expression. To me,” commented the gentleman, “it is an unchangeable token and an everlasting confirmation that there is a Creator, and bears witness to the account in Genesis where it says that God created man in His own image, ‘in the image of God created he him.’”
“But this face isn’t that of a criminal, because you can see the calm dignity and the lovely kindness in its expression. To me,” the gentleman remarked, “it’s an undeniable sign and a lasting proof that there is a Creator, and it supports the passage in Genesis that says God created man in His own image, ‘in the image of God created he him.’”
Mr. Banker explained that the face was composed of three masses of rock, one forming the forehead and helmet, another the nose and upper lip, and the third the chin, and that the whole length of the rock-face was eighty feet from the top to the bottom. When 236 viewed at a close range it lost its contour, and seemed but a few huge rocks tumbled one upon another, with no regularity of form or feature.
Mr. Banker explained that the face was made up of three large rock masses: one creating the forehead and helmet, another for the nose and upper lip, and the third for the chin. The entire length of the rock face was eighty feet from top to bottom. When viewed closely, it lost its shape and looked like just a few massive rocks piled on top of each other with no clear form or features.
After the boys had studied the gigantic “face in air,” as Sheila called it, and deciphered many oddities upon it, evoked by her imagination, Nathalie told them the story of “The Great Stone Face.”
After the boys had looked at the huge “face in the air,” as Sheila named it, and figured out many strange things about it, inspired by her imagination, Nathalie shared the story of “The Great Stone Face.”
They were all greatly interested in Hawthorne’s tale, and readily grasped its meaning, that, after all, it was goodness and greatness gained by studying the great and good in others, the giving of our best to our fellows as Sons of Liberty, Nathalie tried to explain, that helped one to become godlike.
They were all very interested in Hawthorne's story and quickly understood its message, which was that true goodness and greatness come from learning from the great and good people around us. Nathalie tried to explain that by giving our best to others as Sons of Liberty, we can become godlike.
Mr. Banker then told the legend called Christus Judex, which told of an artist, who had resolved to paint a picture of Christ sitting in judgment, and how he wandered up and down the world from one place to another, seeking in art galleries, palaces, or churches, a face that would serve him as a model for his great masterpiece. But alas, it was not to be found, not even among the paintings of the old masters, and finally, lured by some wayfarer’s tale, he crossed the sea, and in this great stone face found the countenance that embodied the features and the expression that satisfied his ideal.
Mr. Banker then shared the legend called Christus Judex, which tells the story of an artist who decided to paint a picture of Christ sitting in judgment. He wandered around the world, going from place to place, searching in art galleries, palaces, and churches for a face that would serve as a model for his masterpiece. But unfortunately, he couldn't find it, not even in the paintings of the old masters. Finally, drawn by the story of a traveler, he crossed the sea and discovered in a great stone face the features and expression that matched his ideal.
After walking a short distance around the lake, to view its beauties, and picking out the stone cannon on the top of the mountain, they drove to the Basin, another 237 rock-wonder, a miniature edition of the great Pool. Giant’s Heel, a rock-formation of a human leg and foot, seemed to possess a luring charm to the children, and after they had studied it, and then discussed it with curious wonder and awe, the little party started on their homeward drive.
After taking a short walk around the lake to admire its beauty and spotting the stone cannon on top of the mountain, they drove to the Basin, another 237 rock formation, a smaller version of the great Pool. The Giant’s Heel, a rock formation that looks like a human leg and foot, had an irresistible charm for the children. After they examined it and talked about it with curiosity and amazement, the small group began their drive home.
On the way Mr. Banker pointed out various stone formations, among them the Elephant’s Head and the head of a dog, while Echo Lake, alight with the calm glow of a setting sun, revealed so many tempting bits of lake-wonders that the children begged that they might spend a day there, as it was not far from Franconia village.
On the way, Mr. Banker pointed out different stone formations, including the Elephant’s Head and a dog's head, while Echo Lake, glowing peacefully in the light of the setting sun, showed so many enticing lake features that the kids begged to spend a day there since it wasn't far from Franconia village.
Nathalie was unusually quiet on the homeward ride, not only feeling almost too tired to talk, but pondering with a puzzled air over the young soldier-boy. She had a vague feeling that she had seen his face before, but where? She finally determined to push the matter from her mind, when a sudden smile leaped to her eyes. Oh, what a ninny she was, for he was one of the soldier-boys she had met at Camp Mills, to whom she had proffered the cherries! And he had not only helped to gather them up from the dust of the road, but he was the boy who had waved his hat to them in a parting salute as the car whirled out of sight!
Nathalie was unusually quiet on the way home, feeling almost too tired to talk and wondering about the young soldier-boy. She had a vague sense that she had seen his face before, but where? She decided to let it go when a sudden smile lit up her eyes. Oh, what a silly girl she was, because he was one of the soldier-boys she had met at Camp Mills, the one she had offered the cherries to! Not only had he helped to pick them up from the dirt of the road, but he was also the boy who had waved his hat at them in a farewell salute as the car sped away!
CHAPTER XVI
BUTTERNUT LODGE
One afternoon, as Nathalie was preparing to take the children on a tramp to Butternut Lodge, an old farmhouse on the opposite side of Garnet Mountain, that had been fitted up for picnic parties by the proprietor of a near-by hotel, her mother called her.
One afternoon, as Nathalie was getting ready to take the kids on a hike to Butternut Lodge, an old farmhouse on the other side of Garnet Mountain that had been set up for picnic parties by the owner of a nearby hotel, her mom called her.
“Nathalie,” she said, as the girl appeared in answer to her call, “I wish you would run over to the little red house and see Mrs. Carney. Sam tells me she is ill, and that his wife, who generally looks after her, is visiting some relatives. It would be only neighborly if you would take her some fruit custard; there is plenty in the ice-box, left over from dinner.”
“Nathalie,” she said, as the girl came in response to her call, “I wish you would run over to the little red house and check on Mrs. Carney. Sam tells me she’s not feeling well, and his wife, who normally takes care of her, is visiting some relatives. It would be nice of you to bring her some fruit custard; there’s plenty in the fridge, leftover from dinner.”
“But mumsie,” pleaded the girl in an annoyed tone, “I can’t go this afternoon, for I have promised to take the children to Butternut Lodge. And then,” she added rebelliously, “I don’t want to go to see that horrid old woman. Why, I thought that you had decided not to have anything to do with her, after the disagreeable way she acted!”
“But Mom,” the girl complained, sounding annoyed, “I can’t go this afternoon because I promised to take the kids to Butternut Lodge. And besides,” she added defiantly, “I don’t want to visit that awful old woman. I thought you decided to cut ties with her after the way she behaved!”
“Yes, that is so, daughter,” replied Mrs. Page with 239 a slight smile, “but, like a good Christian, I changed my mind, a privilege I reserve to myself when occasion warrants. When I heard from Sam that the poor creature was alone in the world, I made up my mind to play the part of the good Samaritan. We can well overlook the oddities of the aged, and it must be trying to lie there all alone, with no one to give you a helping hand or a comforting word.”
“Yes, that’s true, my daughter,” Mrs. Page replied with a slight smile, “but, as a good Christian, I changed my mind, a privilege I allow myself when the situation calls for it. When I heard from Sam that the poor soul was alone in the world, I decided to take on the role of the good Samaritan. We can easily overlook the quirks of the elderly, and it must be tough to lie there all alone, with no one to offer a helping hand or a comforting word.”
Nathalie was not conquered, as she had a stubborn will, and she had been rudely repulsed so many times that she felt her duty did not require her to accept any more humiliations. She was about to argue the case, when suddenly the motto that she had vowed to make her own that summer, flashed before her mental vision with a vivid distinctness.
Nathalie was not defeated, as she had a strong will, and she had been pushed away so many times that she felt she didn't need to endure any more humiliations. She was about to make her point when suddenly the motto she had promised to adopt that summer appeared in her mind with striking clarity.
Making no reply, she slowly walked out on the lawn, where the children stood waiting for her. After explaining her reasons for giving up the afternoon hike, she turned to hurry into the house, determined to get the disagreeable task over as soon as possible. Halfway up the steps she paused, her eyes lit up with an amused thought evidently, for, with a half-laugh, she turned and hurried back to the group standing with woe-begone faces, trying to think what they could do to ease their disappointment. A moment later they were crowding about her, listening eagerly as she talked, their faces keen and bright, as if with the inspiration of a novel appeal.
Making no reply, she slowly walked out onto the lawn, where the kids stood waiting for her. After explaining her reasons for canceling the afternoon hike, she turned to rush into the house, determined to get the unpleasant task done as quickly as possible. Halfway up the steps, she paused, her eyes lighting up with an obviously amused thought, for, with a half-laugh, she turned and hurried back to the group, who were standing with sad faces, trying to think of something to do to ease their disappointment. A moment later, they were crowding around her, listening eagerly as she spoke, their faces animated and bright, as if inspired by a fresh idea.
240 Some time later, Nathalie, with a queer little smile dimpling the corners of her mouth, knocked softly on the screen-door leading into the little red house. As she heard a faint “Come in!” in answer, she gently pushed the door open and entered. In her hands she carried a bowl, while behind her, all cautiously tiptoeing, as if afraid of making the slightest sound, came four small figures, each one carefully holding something for the invalid, whom they found lying on a couch in the front room.
240 A little while later, Nathalie, with a quirky smile at the corners of her mouth, softly knocked on the screen door leading into the little red house. When she heard a quiet “Come in!” in response, she gently pushed the door open and went inside. In her hands, she held a bowl, while behind her, four small figures cautiously tiptoed in, as if afraid to make any noise, each carefully holding something for the sick person, who was lying on a couch in the front room.
“Good afternoon, Mrs. Carney,” said Nathalie, and then, in a distressed tone, “Oh, I’m afraid we have disturbed you, but Sam said you were not feeling well, and mother sent me over with the boys, to see if we could not help you in some way. We have brought you something, too, that may possibly make you feel better.”
“Good afternoon, Mrs. Carney,” Nathalie said, and then, in a worried tone, “Oh, I’m sorry if we bothered you, but Sam mentioned that you weren’t feeling well, and Mom sent me over with the boys to see if we could help you in any way. We also brought you something that might make you feel better.”
The girl was in the throes of despair, as no reply came from the recumbent figure, only the slow-moving of a big fan. O dear! she thought, perhaps her little ruse to relieve the awkwardness of a most curious situation was not going to succeed.
The girl was feeling hopeless, as there was no response from the person lying down, only the slow movement of a large fan. Oh no! she thought, maybe her little trick to ease the tension of this really strange situation wasn’t going to work.
But at this instant, Sheila came forward. Her sympathies had been aroused on learning about the curious old lady, and on finding that there was nothing for her to carry to the sick one, she had gone out to the roadside and gathered a big bunch of wild flowers, to her a panacea for every ill.
But just then, Sheila stepped up. She felt sympathetic after hearing about the strange old lady, and since there was nothing for her to bring to the sick woman, she had gone out to the roadside and picked a big bunch of wildflowers, which she considered a remedy for any problem.
241 These she now thrust towards the figure on the couch, crying, in her sweet childish treble, “I’m sorry, lady, you’re sick, but here’s some flowers; I picked ’em for you.” The child spoke in a half-frightened tone, somewhat at a loss to understand the silence beneath the handkerchief-covered face.
241 She now held out the flowers towards the person on the couch, saying in her sweet, childlike voice, “I’m sorry, ma’am, you’re sick, but here are some flowers; I picked them for you.” The child spoke in a slightly frightened tone, unsure about the silence coming from the handkerchief-covered face.
Suddenly the handkerchief was withdrawn, and the old lady sat bolt upright, with a startled exclamation, gazing in amazed wonder at the four small figures, with their pleading eyes and offerings of sympathy, standing in a row before her.
Suddenly, the handkerchief was pulled away, and the old lady sat up straight, letting out a startled gasp as she stared in astonishment at the four small figures with their pleading eyes and gestures of sympathy, lined up in front of her.
“Bless me!” she cried, a half smile dawning in her sharp eyes. “Where did these children come from?”
“Bless me!” she exclaimed, a half-smile appearing in her sharp eyes. “Where did these kids come from?”
“Oh—why—they’re my Liberty boys,” answered Nathalie quickly, with a sudden flash of relief that at last the old lady’s silence was broken.
“Oh—why—they’re my Liberty boys,” Nathalie quickly replied, feeling a rush of relief that the old lady had finally broken her silence.
“Your Liberty boys?” she questioned with some bewilderment, as she peered keenly at the slim young figure. “But you’re too young to have these boys.”
“Your Liberty boys?” she asked, looking a bit confused as she closely examined the slender young figure. “But you’re too young to have these boys.”
“Oh, but they’re not mine! I’m not married.” exclaimed Nathalie, a merry note in her voice. “Why, I’ve just adopted them for the summer, so I call them my boys. I suppose they’re what you call Fresh-Air-Funders; that is, they live on the East Side in New York, and I’m afraid the poor things wouldn’t have had any outing if I hadn’t brought them up here to get a breath of this mountain air, and—”
“Oh, but they’re not mine! I’m not married,” Nathalie exclaimed, her voice cheerful. “I’ve just adopted them for the summer, so I call them my boys. I guess they’re what you’d call Fresh-Air Fund kids; they live on the East Side in New York, and I’m worried the poor things wouldn’t have had any fun if I hadn’t brought them up here to enjoy this mountain air, and—”
But at this point, Jean, scrupulously faithful to Nathalie’s 242 drilling, took a step forward, and, holding out his plate of fruit, in his fright forgetting the little English he knew, cried, “Voici du fruit!”
But at this moment, Jean, strictly adhering to Nathalie’s 242 instructions, took a step forward and, holding out his plate of fruit, forgetting the little English he knew in his panic, exclaimed, “Here’s some fruit!”
The woman peered at the boy, and then, with a slight cry as she saw the little empty sleeve, drew him to her, as she took the plate of fruit carefully from his hand. “Why, you poor lad!” she exclaimed in sudden tenderness. “So you have some fruit for me. Is he a refugee?” she queried softly, turning inquiringly towards Nathalie.
The woman looked at the boy and then, with a soft gasp when she noticed his empty sleeve, pulled him closer as she gently took the plate of fruit from his hand. “Oh, you poor thing!” she exclaimed with unexpected warmth. “So you brought me some fruit. Is he a refugee?” she asked softly, glancing curiously at Nathalie.
As the girl nodded dumbly, Tony pushed forward his offering, a covered dish of milk toast. Quickly removing the cover, he smacked his lips with gusto, while his velvety eyes glanced in a smile, as if to say, “Here’s something nice for you, too!”
As the girl nodded silently, Tony leaned in with his gift, a dish of milk toast. He quickly took off the lid, smacking his lips eagerly, while his soft eyes twinkled with a smile, as if to say, “Here’s something nice for you, too!”
By this time Nathalie saw that the atmosphere had cleared, and after she and Danny had proffered their gifts,—some chicken soup and custard,—with the help of the boys she drew a table to the side of the couch. Deftly unfolding a napkin for a covering, she spread out the toothsome dainties before her hostess, while Sheila, in childish prattle, entertained her new friend by telling about the fairies, whom she insisted lived in the flowers.
By this time, Nathalie noticed that the atmosphere had lightened up, and after she and Danny offered their gifts—some chicken soup and custard—she, with the help of the boys, pulled a table over to the side of the couch. Skillfully unfolding a napkin to use as a cover, she laid out the delicious treats in front of her hostess, while Sheila, in a playful manner, entertained her new friend by talking about the fairies she was convinced lived in the flowers.
As the old lady partook of the edibles that had been prepared for her, the children, won by her seeming interest, with childish confidence told her about their lives in the city, how they liked the beautiful mountains, 243 all about their many battles down at the old stone ledge, and how they were all learning to be Sons of Liberty. This drew Nathalie into the conversation, and she was soon animatedly telling how she happened to become a Liberty Girl, and how she was not only trying to carry out her plans in regard to liberty up there in the mountains, but was anxious to help the children know what it meant to become good Americans, and to understand why our nation had sent soldiers across the sea to fight the Hun.
As the old lady enjoyed the food that had been prepared for her, the children, encouraged by her apparent interest, confidently shared their lives in the city, how they loved the beautiful mountains, 243 all about their many adventures down at the old stone ledge, and how they were all learning to be Sons of Liberty. This engaged Nathalie in the conversation, and she soon excitedly shared how she became a Liberty Girl, explaining that she was not only trying to pursue her plans for freedom up in the mountains, but also eager to help the children understand what it meant to be good Americans and why our nation had sent soldiers across the ocean to fight the Hun.
Tony needed but one invitation, and the violin was brought forth from under his arm,—he always carried it,—and presently he was playing some little Italian airs, after which Jean sang Belgium’s national anthem, at Mrs. Carney’s request, and Danny recited a war-poem that Janet had taught him. Even Sheila contributed her quota to the impromptu entertainment and recited “Betsy’s Battle Flag,” as she, too, was a pupil of Janet’s, that young lady having become so interested in the children that she had not only helped her friend to teach them to sing, but had taught them to recite.
Tony only needed one invitation, and he pulled out his violin, which he always carried. Soon, he was playing a few Italian tunes. After that, Jean sang Belgium’s national anthem at Mrs. Carney’s request, and Danny recited a war poem that Janet had taught him. Even Sheila joined in the impromptu entertainment and recited “Betsy’s Battle Flag,” as she was also a student of Janet’s. Janet had become so invested in the kids that she not only helped her friend teach them to sing but also taught them how to recite.
But now it was time to go, as Nathalie did not want to weary Mrs. Carney, although, to the girl’s surprise, that lady insisted that her sick headache had disappeared, cured, she laughingly confessed, by the young visitors, who had entertained her so charmingly.
But now it was time to leave, as Nathalie didn’t want to tire out Mrs. Carney, although, to the girl’s surprise, that lady insisted that her migraine had gone away, cured, she joked, by the young visitors who had kept her so entertained.
With the promise to call again with her charges, 244 Nathalie hurried them away, happily content that she had followed her mother’s suggestion and tried to be helpful and kind to her seemingly odd little neighbor. “It pays to be pleasant with people,” she remarked sagely, as she related the results of the visit. “For even if you don’t like them it gives you a pleasant feeling to think that you have done ‘your bit’ in keeping the chain of brotherly love well oiled.”
With a promise to call again with her charges, 244 Nathalie rushed them away, feeling happy that she had listened to her mother's advice and tried to be helpful and kind to her seemingly strange little neighbor. “It’s worth it to be nice to people,” she said wisely, as she shared what happened during the visit. “Because even if you don’t like them, it feels good to know you’ve done your part in keeping the spirit of kindness alive.”
Mrs. Page sat knitting on the veranda the following morning when Nathalie came hurrying out of the house with an angry light in her eyes. “Oh, mother, what do you think?” she exclaimed irritably. “Cynthia has set the children all looking for that mystery thing. Did you ever hear of anything so absurd? And they have gone wild about it, and are running around the attic and the upper floors, pulling things about in a most disorderly fashion. Oh, I do think she is the limit!”
Mrs. Page was sitting on the porch knitting the next morning when Nathalie rushed out of the house with anger in her eyes. “Oh, Mom, can you believe this?” she said irritably. “Cynthia got the kids all excited about that mystery thing. Have you ever heard anything so ridiculous? They’re going crazy over it, running around the attic and upstairs, throwing things everywhere. Ugh, I really think she’s gone too far!”
Mrs. Page looked at Nathalie in silence for a moment, and then said, with some amusement in her eyes, “It is absurd, but don’t get wrought up about it. Cynthia hasn’t stopped to think. She is so anxious to find it that it has become an obsession with her. But it won’t do to let the children get mixed up in anything of that kind.” Her face sobered, and for a space the only sound was the clicking of her knitting-needles, while Nathalie, with a frown on her face, pondered how she was going to undo the mischief that Cynthia 245 had wrought, keenly realizing what would follow if the children were not stopped in looking for something that she knew they would never find.
Mrs. Page looked at Nathalie silently for a moment, then said, with a hint of amusement in her eyes, “It’s ridiculous, but don’t get worked up about it. Cynthia hasn’t thought this through. She’s so eager to find it that it’s become an obsession for her. But we can’t let the kids get involved in anything like that.” Her expression turned serious, and for a while, the only sound was the clicking of her knitting needles, while Nathalie, frowning, considered how she was going to fix the trouble Cynthia had caused, fully aware of what would happen if the kids weren’t stopped from searching for something she knew they would never find.
“Go and tell the children to come here, Nathalie,” said her mother, “and we’ll have a little talk.” The girl, with a brighter face, complied, as she always felt greatly relieved, when anything went wrong with her boys, to have her mother straighten things out.
“Go and tell the kids to come here, Nathalie,” said her mom, “and we’ll have a little chat.” The girl, looking a bit happier, agreed, as she always felt a huge relief when things went wrong with her boys, knowing her mom would sort it out.
In a moment they were on the veranda, looking very much bedraggled and dust-begrimed, as, with faces eagerly alert, they told what they had been doing, after a little adroit questioning on the part of Mrs. Page. It did not take the good lady long to make it clear to the mystery-seekers that this valuable thing that they had been searching for was something that only concerned Nathalie and her cousins.
In no time, they were on the porch, looking quite disheveled and covered in dust, as they eagerly shared what they had been up to, after some clever questioning from Mrs. Page. It didn't take the kind woman long to make it clear to the curious kids that this valuable thing they had been looking for was something that only involved Nathalie and her cousins.
She now made it clear to them that the searching was undoubtedly a whim on the part of the former inmate of Seven Pillars, and that the finding of it simply meant a reward to the one of the three girls who had proved the most industrious in looking for it. She ended by saying that it would not likely be of any great value, adding, “And, children, it would not be yours even if you found it.”
She made it clear to them that the search was definitely just a whim from the former resident of Seven Pillars, and that finding it would simply mean a reward for whichever of the three girls was the most diligent in looking for it. She concluded by saying that it probably wouldn’t be worth much, adding, “And, kids, it wouldn’t belong to you even if you found it.”
“Oh, but we’re going to give it to Miss Natty!” came a chorus of determined little voices. “And Miss Cynthia said it was something awful rich,” added Sheila, “and I just guess that it must be a great big 246 jewel, or a pot of gold.” “Sure, and we want Miss Natty to have it,” ended Danny, with big, disappointed eyes.
“Oh, but we’re going to give it to Miss Natty!” came a chorus of determined little voices. “And Miss Cynthia said it was something really fancy,” added Sheila, “and I just think it must be a huge jewel, or a pot of gold.” “Yeah, and we want Miss Natty to have it,” concluded Danny, with big, disappointed eyes.
This was not the first time that Mrs. Page had had to do away with a seeming mystery connected with Mrs. Renwick’s peculiar instructions. For the mystery-room had proved a source of morbid curiosity to the children, as they questioned as to what was behind that great, dark red curtain. They would scurry by the door with bated breath and big, excited eyes, in whose depths lurked a latent fear of some unknown terror, until Mrs. Page had ordered the curtain down, declaring that the door simply closed, and barred, would end the mystery.
This wasn't the first time Mrs. Page had to clear up a puzzling situation related to Mrs. Renwick's strange instructions. The mystery room had become a source of morbid curiosity for the kids as they wondered what was behind that big, dark red curtain. They would rush past the door, holding their breath and with wide, excited eyes, where a hidden fear of some unknown threat lingered, until Mrs. Page ordered the curtain to come down, saying that just closing and locking the door would put an end to the mystery.
Fortunately the children’s attention was now turned to other matters, but Nathalie, somehow, could not put the incident from her mind. She had a vague, conscience-stricken feeling that she would never gain the reward for being industrious, for although she had not failed to make an entry in her diary, she had failed to search as diligently as she should have done. Whereupon, with a silent vow that she would put aside an hour every day for this disagreeable task, she hastened upstairs to put her plan in execution.
Fortunately, the kids' attention was now focused on other things, but Nathalie couldn’t shake the incident from her mind. She felt a vague sense of guilt that she would never earn the reward for being hard-working, because although she had managed to write in her diary, she had failed to look for things as thoroughly as she should have. So, with a silent promise to set aside an hour every day for this unpleasant task, she rushed upstairs to put her plan into action.
Nathalie was lying in the hammock in the moonlight a few evenings later, half-drowsing. She was more than usually tired, for they had spent the day at Butternut Lodge. It had been an all-day hike, setting 247 forth in the forenoon with a climb up old Garnet, starting in at the log gate-posts opposite Peckett’s flower-garden.
Nathalie was lying in the hammock under the moonlight a few evenings later, dozing a bit. She felt more tired than usual because they had spent the day at Butternut Lodge. It was an all-day hike, starting in the morning with a climb up old Garnet, beginning at the log gate-posts across from Peckett’s flower garden.
Ascending a grassy incline studded with rocks, where mountain-sheep and a gray donkey meandered, nibbling the coarse grass, they entered the cool damp of the forest gloom, where hundreds of trees confronted them. Age-ringed and gnarled, their limbs twisted in eerie contortion to grotesque shapes, they stood in the dim cathedral light bristling with shadows, a battalion of ghoulish-looking sentinels, guarding the rock-crowned heights.
Ascending a grassy slope dotted with rocks, where mountain sheep and a gray donkey wandered, munching on the rough grass, they entered the cool, damp darkness of the forest, where hundreds of trees faced them. Old and twisted, their branches contorted into strange shapes, they stood in the dim light like eerie sentinels, casting shadows, guarding the rocky peaks above.
But on they climbed, up the pine-needled path, stepping from lichen-covered rocks to gnarled tree-roots, or clambering deftly over blackened, flame-licked tree-trunks, that barred their way like yawning chasms. Every now and then they would stop to gather some tiny wood posy peeping coquettishly from the crevice of a broken crag, or a crimson-dyed leaf on a mossy patch, or to brush aside the black loam to burrow among dead leaves for feathery ferns, or one of the tiny umbrellas, as Sheila called the many-colored toadstools that grew by the path. But when the little maid spied a fleur des fées, a daintily-colored anemone, her delight was beyond bounds.
But they kept climbing up the pine-needle path, stepping from lichen-covered rocks to twisted tree roots, or skillfully climbing over charred, fire-damaged tree trunks that blocked their way like wide gaps. Every now and then, they would stop to pick some tiny wildflower peeking playfully from the crack of a broken boulder, or a bright red leaf on a mossy spot, or to clear away the dark soil to dig among dead leaves for feathery ferns, or one of the tiny umbrellas, as Sheila called the many-colored mushrooms that grew along the path. But when the little girl spotted a fleur des fées, a delicately colored anemone, her delight was beyond limits.
Sometimes they would pause to listen to the mountain-wind as it swayed the tops of long rows of trees, that, with the daring recklessness of new life, stretched 248 their bare-limbed trunks upward to catch the golden sunlight on their glossy leaves. But the sweetest melody, perhaps, was the wind that swept in solemn-toned harmony through the twisted boughs of the old mountain-guard.
Sometimes they would stop to listen to the mountain wind as it swayed the tops of long rows of trees, which, with the boldness of new life, stretched their bare trunks upward to catch the golden sunlight on their shiny leaves. But the sweetest sound, perhaps, was the wind that flowed in a deep harmony through the twisted branches of the old mountain guard.
But the wind was not the only musician that sunny morning up there in the stilled hush of the green wood, for sometimes it was the soft note of a belated bird’s warble, coming with a haunting sweetness from the dim recesses of the shadowed gloom, or the hammer of a woodpecker as he plied his tool of trade.
But the wind wasn’t the only player that sunny morning up there in the quiet stillness of the green woods. Sometimes, it was the gentle sound of a late bird’s song, coming with a haunting sweetness from the dark corners of the shaded gloom, or the tapping of a woodpecker as he worked at his craft.
But feathered songsters and musical wind were forgotten when the children struck the Red Trail,—splashes of red paint smeared at intervals on the bark of the trees to keep travelers in the path. The boys, as they scurried ahead, soon discovered a Yellow Trail, and then a Blue Trail, sign-posts to the lone woodchopper, perhaps, as he comes down the woodland path in the deep snows of winter. The Yellow Trail, they discovered, led down the mountain, coming out on the road near Lovers’ Lane, the wooded path opposite Seven Pillars. Nathalie now showed them how to blaze a trail that belonged exclusively to the Girl Pioneers, and their interest became tense with excitement as she became their leader and deftly bent the twigs in the shapes that meant so many things to the Pioneers.
But the singing birds and gentle breeze were forgotten when the kids hit the Red Trail—splotches of red paint smeared on the trees to keep travelers on track. The boys, rushing ahead, soon found a Yellow Trail, and then a Blue Trail, markers for the lone woodchopper, maybe, as he makes his way down the forest path in the heavy winter snows. They discovered the Yellow Trail led down the mountain, merging with the road near Lovers’ Lane, the wooded path across from Seven Pillars. Nathalie then taught them how to mark a trail that was just for the Girl Pioneers, and their excitement grew as she became their leader and skillfully shaped the twigs into symbols that meant so much to the Pioneers.
A little log cabin nestling beneath a clump of pine 249 trees, on the edge of a slope, just below Agassiz’s Rock, tempted the children to wander from the beaten path. But they soon returned, and, in wide-eyed wonder, declared that they had seen a pair of shoes by the door. Sheila was quite insistent that some fairy godmother lived there, whereupon she was rudely told by the boys that fairies never wore shoes. The children, however, were loth to leave the spot, curiously wondering as to who lived in the log hut.
A small log cabin tucked under a cluster of pine trees, on the edge of a slope just below Agassiz’s Rock, tempted the kids to stray from the usual path. But they quickly returned, and with wide eyes, announced that they had spotted a pair of shoes by the door. Sheila firmly believed that a fairy godmother lived there, but the boys rudely told her that fairies never wore shoes. Nonetheless, the kids were reluctant to leave the place, curiously wondering who lived in the log cabin.
But as no one was to be seen, either within or without the cabin, they followed Nathalie, and were soon standing on a jagged rock on Garnet’s top, in a wonderland of views that made them feel that they were indeed birds of the air, skimming swiftly through a dim, mystical atmosphere. With hushed breath and wide-seeing eyes they gazed down upon low-lying valleys,—dabs of green between craggy rocks and lofty steeps, gemmed with silver water, yellow corn-fields, and brown pasture-land. And above all, in picturesque grandeur, towered a rim of battlemented crests and ridges, silhouetted against curtains of crystalline blue, where sweeps of white cloud drifted in gossamer veils.
But since no one was visible, either inside or outside the cabin, they followed Nathalie and soon found themselves standing on a jagged rock at Garnet’s peak, surrounded by breathtaking views that made them feel like they were birds, gliding smoothly through a dim, mystical air. With held breath and wide-open eyes, they looked down at the low-lying valleys—patches of green nestled between rough rocks and steep cliffs, dotted with silver waters, yellow cornfields, and brown pastures. Above it all, in stunning beauty, loomed a line of battlement-like peaks and ridges, outlined against a backdrop of clear blue, where swaths of white clouds floated like delicate veils.
On the wide green slopes surrounding the farmhouse the children reveled in a summer-land of daisies and buttercups, that jeweled the softly creeping grass. While Sheila wove a wreath of mountain posies Nathalie told how, some years before, a bag of gold had been found in a log of wood in the old farmhouse. 250 This added a new glory to the scene, and there were many surmises in regard to this find, while the Girl Pioneer plied her craft and showed them how to make leaf-impressions in their little note-books, as each one had gathered a leaf from many trees on their way up the mountain.
On the vast green hills around the farmhouse, the kids enjoyed a summer paradise filled with daisies and buttercups that sparkled on the gently swaying grass. While Sheila wove a crown of wildflowers, Nathalie shared the story of how, years earlier, a bag of gold had been discovered in a log in the old farmhouse. 250 This added a new excitement to the scene, and there were many speculations about this discovery, while the Girl Pioneer demonstrated her skills and taught them how to create leaf prints in their little notebooks, as each child had collected leaves from various trees on their hike up the mountain.
After Danny had made a camp-fire and they had had a hike lunch of frankfurters, roasted potatoes, and many toothsome edibles found in their lunchboxes, they hurried back to the old farmhouse, and while the children peeped into the old-fashioned brick ovens in search of another pot of gold, Janet played on the yellow-keyed piano. Then came a stroll to a weather-beaten barn, where an old coach was stored, which had once been the mountain’s only method of conveyance, some decades ago, and on which was the name “Goodnow House.” Of course they all had to mount the rickety steps and crawl inside on the wide leather-cushioned seat, large enough to hold almost a dozen children. Danny and Tony, however, soon clambered out and mounted still higher, up to the two-step-driver’s seat, where they pretended they were driving a tally-ho, with Sheila and Jean sitting back, within the railed top, as outside passengers, while Nathalie and Janet, on the wide old seat within, acted the part of tourists traveling to the top of Mount Washington.
After Danny made a campfire and they had a lunch of hot dogs, roasted potatoes, and plenty of tasty snacks from their lunchboxes, they rushed back to the old farmhouse. While the kids peeked into the old brick ovens looking for another treasure, Janet played on the yellow piano. Then they took a walk to a weather-beaten barn, where an old coach was stored, which had once been the only way to get around the mountain decades ago, and on which was the name "Goodnow House." Naturally, they all had to climb the rickety steps and squeeze inside on the wide leather-cushioned seat, which was big enough for almost a dozen kids. However, Danny and Tony soon climbed out and went even higher, up to the two-step driver’s seat, where they pretended to drive a tally-ho, with Sheila and Jean sitting in the back as outside passengers, while Nathalie and Janet, on the wide old seat inside, played the part of tourists heading to the top of Mount Washington.
Wearying of these childish sports, Nathalie and 251 Janet hied themselves back to the farmhouse, where, after resisting the inclination to drowse, induced by the lulling hum of the bees as they darted busily about in the sweet-scented, sunny air, they sat down on the little porch and took out their knitting.
Tired of these childish games, Nathalie and 251 Janet made their way back to the farmhouse, where, after fighting off the urge to doze off, influenced by the soothing buzz of the bees as they buzzed around in the warm, fragrant air, they settled on the small porch and pulled out their knitting.
Suddenly the deep silence that they had drifted into, lured to thought by their active fingers, was broken by loud squeals, mingled with boyish shouts of laughter. And then a thrill came, as Nathalie suddenly perceived the old stage-coach, drawn by Danny and Tony as horses, while Jean, as the driver, was exultantly happy, perched up in the driver’s high seat. Sheila, meanwhile, bewreathed and betwined with wild posies, sat within the coach, posing as a beautiful white princess who had been captured by bandits.
Suddenly, the deep silence they had fallen into, lost in thought as their hands moved, was shattered by loud squeals mixed with boyish laughter. Then a thrill ran through Nathalie as she suddenly noticed the old stagecoach, with Danny and Tony acting as the horses, while Jean, as the driver, was happily perched high up in the driver’s seat. Meanwhile, Sheila, surrounded and adorned with wild flowers, sat inside the coach, pretending to be a beautiful white princess who had been captured by bandits.
Nathalie’s heart swung in wild leaps as she saw the one-armed boy’s perilous position, as the ramshackle, clumsy coach rocked like a cradle, and realized what it would mean if anything happened to it, as it was a most valuable relic to the proprietor of the hotel.
Nathalie's heart raced as she saw the one-armed boy in a dangerous spot, with the rickety, awkward coach swaying like a cradle, and she realized what it would mean if anything happened to it, since it was a highly valuable relic for the hotel owner.
With a sudden cry she jumped to her feet, and a moment later was excitedly explaining to the would-be bandits the wrong they had committed. In disappointed silence Jean was helped down from the top of the coach, and Sheila, in whimpering protest, was hauled out. Then, amid a profound and tragic stillness to the children, they managed, with the help of the two girls, to get the stage back in the barn. 252 Whereupon, Nathalie closed the door and marched her charges off in another direction, while pondering how to amuse them, for she had learned that their active brains and nimble fingers must be kept busy or mischief would brew.
With a sudden shout, she leaped to her feet and moments later was excitedly telling the would-be robbers what they had done wrong. In disappointed silence, Jean was helped down from the top of the coach, and Sheila, protesting with sobs, was pulled out. Then, in a deep and serious quiet for the kids, they managed, with the help of the two girls, to get the stage back in the barn. 252 After that, Nathalie closed the door and led the kids off in another direction, thinking about how to keep them entertained, because she knew their sharp minds and quick hands needed to stay busy, or trouble would start.
A low cry from Sheila roused her, to see a few feet away, on the outskirts of the wood, a baby deer, gazing at them with mild eyes of wonder. But the cries from the boys caused it to leap wildly into the woods.
A soft cry from Sheila woke her up, and she saw a baby deer just a few feet away, at the edge of the woods, looking at them with curious, gentle eyes. But the boys' shouting made it jump and dash into the woods.
Such had been the events of the day.
Such were the events of the day.
Nathalie stirred uneasily, as a ray of moonshine fell athwart her face. She rubbed her eyes, and then sat up in the hammock, staring about in a bewildered, sleepy fashion. “Why, I must have been dreaming,” she thought, vaguely conscious that she had been living over again the long day with its many adventures.
Nathalie shifted uncomfortably as a beam of moonlight crossed her face. She rubbed her eyes and sat up in the hammock, looking around in a confused, sleepy way. “I must have been dreaming,” she thought, vaguely aware that she had been reliving the long day filled with its many adventures.
“But it must be late; the children should be in bed.” She could hear Danny and Tony down on the lawn, their voices in loud and excited argument. O dear! she hoped they were not going to fight again, and then she gave a hurried “Tru-al-lee!”
“But it must be late; the kids should be in bed.” She could hear Danny and Tony outside on the lawn, their voices raised in a loud and excited argument. Oh no! she hoped they weren’t going to fight again, and then she gave a hurried “Tru-al-lee!”
At the familiar call the boys came hurrying across the lawn, when, to her surprise, she saw that Sheila was not with them. As she questioned them sharply as to her whereabouts, they insisted that they supposed that she was with her. The girl, somewhat alarmed, for the little lady was inclined to wander off by herself, instituted a search. The barn, grounds, 253 Lovers’ Lane opposite, and even the little red house were peeped into, but all to no purpose.
At the familiar call, the boys hurried across the lawn, and to her surprise, she noticed that Sheila wasn’t with them. When she questioned them sharply about where she was, they insisted that they thought she was with her. The girl, feeling a bit worried since the little lady had a habit of wandering off alone, started a search. They checked the barn, the grounds, 253 Lovers’ Lane across the way, and even peeked into the little red house, but it was all in vain.
As Sam was in Littleton for the night, the boys were dispatched to Sugar Hill village to make inquiries, while she and Janet, who had just returned from a stroll in the moonlight with Mrs. Page, started to look on the road leading to “The Echoes.” Some time later the searchers returned to Seven Pillars to report that no clews as to the child’s whereabouts had been discovered. Suddenly distracted, conscience-stricken, Nathalie gave a low wail.
As Sam was staying in Littleton for the night, the boys were sent to Sugar Hill village to ask questions, while she and Janet, who had just come back from a moonlit walk with Mrs. Page, began to check the road leading to “The Echoes.” After a while, the searchers returned to Seven Pillars to report that they hadn’t found any clues about the child's whereabouts. Suddenly overwhelmed and guilty, Nathalie let out a soft cry.
“Oh, I do believe she has gone to the top of Garnet Mountain!” The girl had suddenly remembered that for several days Sheila had been telling how one of the boarders at Peckett’s—a lady as white as snow—had told her that every moonlight night at twelve o’clock the fairies came out of the woods and danced on the top of Garnet. She had even suggested that if Sheila could see them, she might be rewarded by receiving some of the beautiful garnets that were hidden in the rocks, and which only the fairies knew where to find.
“Oh, I really think she’s gone to the top of Garnet Mountain!” The girl suddenly remembered that for the past few days Sheila had been saying how one of the guests at Peckett’s—a woman as white as snow—had told her that every moonlit night at midnight the fairies came out of the woods and danced on top of Garnet. She had even suggested that if Sheila could see them, she might be rewarded with some of the beautiful garnets hidden in the rocks, which only the fairies knew how to find.
There was a grim silence at Nathalie’s cry, as each one stared at the other with a white, dismayed face, while Nathalie, with clasped hands, nervously swayed herself to and fro.
There was a heavy silence at Nathalie’s cry, as everyone looked at each other with pale, shocked expressions, while Nathalie, with her hands clasped, nervously rocked back and forth.
A sudden scuffle of small feet caused them all to swing about, to see Danny hurrying towards the door.
A sudden scuffle of tiny feet made them all turn around to see Danny rushing towards the door.
254 “Oh, where are you going, Dan?” cried Nathalie in a choked voice, staring at the lad with bewildered eyes.
254 “Oh, where are you going, Dan?” Nathalie asked in a shaky voice, staring at the boy with confused eyes.
“I’m going to find my sister—Sheila—” came in a strangled sob from the boy.
“I’m going to find my sister—Sheila—” came out as a choked sob from the boy.
“But don’t go alone. I will go with you,” exclaimed Nathalie, quickly springing to his side, as he stood with his face buried in his elbow, while his slim body heaved convulsively.
“But don’t go alone. I’ll go with you,” Nathalie exclaimed, quickly moving to his side as he stood with his face buried in his elbow, his slim body trembling.
It was soon decided that Janet and Dan would climb the mountain-trail that came out near Lovers’ Lane, Mrs. Page and Tony would hurry in the direction of Hildreth’s farm, while Nathalie and Jean would follow the Red Trail of the mountain, opposite Peckett’s hotel.
It was soon decided that Janet and Dan would hike the mountain trail that led out near Lovers’ Lane, Mrs. Page and Tony would rush toward Hildreth’s farm, while Nathalie and Jean would take the Red Trail of the mountain, across from Peckett’s hotel.
Twenty minutes later Nathalie and Jean, breathless from their hurried climb, paused for a moment by a big tree that stood ghoulishly somber by the path. As the girl, still panting, leaned against it, a ray of moonlight filtering through the canopy of leaves overhead showed that it was the Seat Tree, as they had named it on their climb that morning, on account of its singular formation.
Twenty minutes later, Nathalie and Jean, out of breath from their quick climb, stopped for a moment by a big tree that stood dark and eerie by the path. As the girl, still catching her breath, leaned against it, a beam of moonlight filtering through the leaves above revealed that it was the Seat Tree, as they had called it during their climb that morning, because of its unusual shape.
By some freak of nature, from its main trunk, a short space from the ground, another trunk had sprung, giving it the appearance of two trees in one, and in this hollow some kindly-intentioned person had placed a seat. As the girl perceived the seat she sat down, 255 and feeling Jean’s soft breath come puffing against her cheek, drew the tired boy down on her lap. Tige, the yellow terrier, crouched at their feet, his red tongue hanging out of his mouth like a signal-light in the weird darkness.
By some twist of nature, a short distance from the ground, another trunk had grown from the main trunk, making it look like two trees in one. In this hollow, someone kind-hearted had placed a seat. When the girl saw the seat, she sat down, 255 and feeling Jean’s gentle breath against her cheek, she pulled the tired boy onto her lap. Tige, the yellow terrier, lay at their feet, his red tongue hanging out like a signal light in the strange darkness.
Fortunately the darkness of the ascent had been lightened at intervals by the moon, which was at its full, so that the girl had not been compelled to use her flashlight except in the deeply shadowed places. When they had begun to climb, Jean had whistled, his customary way of calling Sheila, while Nathalie had not only called the child by name, but had given her Pioneer call of “Tru-al-lee.”
Fortunately, the darkness of the climb was occasionally brightened by the full moon, so the girl didn’t have to use her flashlight except in the really dark spots. When they started climbing, Jean whistled, his usual way of calling Sheila, while Nathalie not only called the child by name but also used the Pioneer call of “Tru-al-lee.”
But these calls had only re-echoed through the cathedral arches with such a dismal, dirge-like sound that they had desisted. Feeling sure that the child would keep near the path, Nathalie had kept her eyes busy peering on all sides of her, thinking that she could easily discern Sheila’s white dress if she was anywhere near.
But these calls had only echoed through the cathedral arches with such a gloomy, mournful sound that they stopped. Confident that the child would stay close to the path, Nathalie kept her eyes scanning all around her, thinking she could easily spot Sheila’s white dress if she was anywhere nearby.
All at once a low cry escaped the girl, as, with a convulsive clutch of Jean’s slight body, she bent forward, and peered through the eerie tree-shadows to a dim, flickering light that shone some distance beyond in the deep recesses of the forest. As the boy’s eyes followed her glance, in a tense whisper he cried, “Oh, Mademoiselle! see, there is a man digging in the ground!”
All of a sudden, a soft cry came from the girl as she grabbed Jean’s slim body tightly, bending forward to look through the spooky tree shadows at a faint, flickering light shining a bit further back in the dark forest. As the boy's eyes tracked her gaze, he whispered urgently, “Oh, Mademoiselle! Look, there’s a man digging in the ground!”
CHAPTER XVII
THE CABIN ON THE MOUNTAIN
Yes, it was a man digging in the ground. The quivering, yellowish glare from a torch that had been stuck in the ground by his side—as it flickered and flared, sometimes almost extinguished by the night air, and then suddenly blazing to a vivid flame—silhouetted his form in sharp outline against the high rock by which he was standing.
Yes, it was a man digging in the ground. The quivering, yellowish light from a torch that was stuck in the ground beside him—as it flickered and flared, sometimes nearly going out from the night air, then suddenly bursting into a bright flame—outlined his figure sharply against the tall rock he was standing by.
As the girl’s eyes dilated in puzzled wonder as to who the man was, and why he was digging in the woods at this hour of the night, a queer, odd quiver, or twitching of his head at times, as he bent over the spade, aroused within her a vague consciousness that she had seen some one before who had that same peculiar motion.
As the girl’s eyes widened in confused curiosity about who the man was and why he was digging in the woods at this late hour, a strange twitch or jerking of his head from time to time, as he leaned over the shovel, sparked a vague recollection in her that she had seen someone before with that same unusual motion.
Tige, the little yellow dog crouching at their feet, at this moment gave a low growl, a warning that he might betray their presence. Nathalie, quickly pushing Jean from her lap, grabbed the dog, and snuggled him close to smother the growl, afraid that the man would discover that he had been seen. Assailed by a nameless fear, she seized Jean’s hand and pushed on 257 up the incline, stepping cautiously, almost noiselessly, on the fallen leaves and stones, ever and anon glancing back, as if fearful that the man would pursue them.
Tige, the little yellow dog crouching at their feet, let out a low growl, warning that he might give away their location. Nathalie, quickly pushing Jean off her lap, grabbed the dog and hugged him tight to quiet the growl, worried that the man would realize he’d been spotted. Overwhelmed by a vague fear, she took Jean’s hand and urged him up the incline, stepping carefully, almost silently, on the fallen leaves and stones, occasionally glancing back, as if afraid the man would chase after them.
Recalled to herself at Jean’s wide, frightened eyes, and the tremor of his slight form, she whispered with assumed courage, “Oh, I guess the man is only burying some dead animal, or something of that kind up here in the woods.” Nevertheless she was almost as frightened as the child, and was devoutly thankful when they reached a little clearing nearer the top, where the moon shone down with the brightness of day.
Recalled to herself by Jean’s wide, scared eyes and the tremble of his small body, she whispered with feigned bravery, “Oh, I think the guy is just burying some dead animal or something like that up here in the woods.” Still, she was nearly as scared as the kid and was truly grateful when they reached a small clearing closer to the top, where the moonlight shone as brightly as day.
Yes, it would be about here that Sheila would come, for it was not far from the jutting rock where they had seen such beautiful views that morning. With keen eyes the girl peered around, but only craggy rocks, scrubby bushes, tree-stumps—weird black objects in the moonlight—here and there, backed by a forest of heavily-branched trees met her gaze. Oh! what was that tiny glimmer of light over by the tree yonder? Was it a light held by the man who had been digging, and who was perhaps watching them from behind the tree?
Yes, this is about where Sheila would show up, since it wasn't far from the jutting rock where they had seen such amazing views that morning. With sharp eyes, the girl scanned the area, but all she saw were rough rocks, scraggly bushes, tree stumps—strange dark shapes in the moonlight—spread out here and there, backed by a forest of thickly-branched trees. Oh! What was that tiny glimmer of light over by the tree over there? Was it a light held by the guy who had been digging, and who might be watching them from behind the tree?
Nathalie’s heart gave a wild leap, again shaken by that nameless fear, and then, to her intense relief, she saw that the light came from the little log cabin the children had found that morning in prowling about the clearing. Yes, some one must live there. But 258 suppose it should be the man they had seen? Ah, they would hurry on, and gripping Jean’s hand in a closer pressure, she started forward. But no; Jean stood obstinately still, with low-bent head, as if listening.
Nathalie's heart raced wildly, gripped by that unknown fear, and then, to her great relief, she saw that the light came from the little log cabin the kids had discovered that morning while wandering around the clearing. Yes, someone must live there. But 258 what if it was the man they had seen? Ah, they needed to move quickly, and clutching Jean's hand tighter, she began to move forward. But no; Jean remained stubbornly still, with her head down, as if she were listening.
What was it? Oh, it was a noise,—a low sound like a moan. Could it be Sheila? Was she lying somewhere there in the woods? Why, it sounded as if it came from the little cabin! Nathalie’s head went up as she peered resolutely through the gloom. No, she would not allow her foolish fear to master her. She would go forward and see what it was—perhaps. A moment or so later the girl, still frenziedly clinging to the little boy’s hand, her heart leaping with anxious agitation and nervous fear, tapped loudly on one of the log posts of the open doorway, which was hung with what appeared to be a large dark-colored shawl that waved dismally in the wind. Almost immediately, in answer to her rap, the shawl was pushed hastily aside and a man stood in the doorway.
What was that? Oh, it was a noise—a low sound like a moan. Could it be Sheila? Was she lying somewhere in the woods? It sounded like it came from the little cabin! Nathalie lifted her head as she peered determinedly through the darkness. No, she wouldn’t let her silly fear get the better of her. She would go forward and see what it was—maybe. A moment later, the girl, still frantically holding onto the little boy’s hand, her heart racing with anxious agitation and nervous fear, knocked loudly on one of the log posts of the open doorway, which was covered with what looked like a large dark shawl that waved gloomily in the wind. Almost immediately, in response to her knock, the shawl was pushed aside, and a man stood in the doorway.
From the weird red gleam of a lantern that hung from the center of the cabin, Nathalie perceived that the man was young, with a strange pallor on his lean, brown face, which was lighted by large, densely black eyes, that were peering down at her from beneath a tangle of soft, wavy black hair.
From the strange red glow of a lantern hanging in the center of the cabin, Nathalie noticed that the man was young, with an unusual paleness on his lean, brown face, illuminated by large, deep black eyes that were looking down at her from under a mess of soft, wavy black hair.
Inwardly quaking, but determined not to show her fear, Nathalie inquired, “Have you seen anything of a little girl about?” Without answering, the man 259 turned and was pointing towards a log couch built up against the wall, spread with an old army-coat. Nathalie gave a hurried glance, and then made a wild rush forward, for the little form lying so strangely still on the coat was Sheila!
Inwardly trembling, but determined not to reveal her fear, Nathalie asked, “Have you seen a little girl around?” Without replying, the man 259 turned and pointed towards a log couch propped against the wall, covered with an old army coat. Nathalie quickly glanced over, then dashed forward in a panic, because the small figure lying so eerily still on the coat was Sheila!
But the man’s hand stayed her as he said in a low, but pleasant-sounding voice, “Sh-sh! I would not awaken her. Poor little thing, she cried herself to sleep.” He then briefly explained how he had been awakened by the low whimpering of a child, and, on going out to the clearing, had found her sitting on a rock, crying piteously for the fairies to come and get her. He was moved to question her, and then, by a little coaxing, and the explanation that the fairies had all gone back to fairyland, as it was long after midnight, he had coaxed the child into the cabin, and finally she had fallen asleep. As Nathalie bent over her in anxious solicitude she saw the undried tears still on her lashes, while low, whimpering moans—the sounds that had arrested her attention—came at intervals from between the soft, red lips.
But the man's hand stopped her as he said in a low, pleasant voice, “Sh-sh! I wouldn’t want to wake her. Poor little thing, she cried herself to sleep.” He then briefly explained how he had been woken by the quiet whimpering of a child and, when he went out to the clearing, found her sitting on a rock, crying desperately for the fairies to come and take her away. He felt compelled to talk to her, and after a bit of coaxing, along with the explanation that the fairies had all gone back to fairyland since it was well past midnight, he managed to persuade the child to come into the cabin, and eventually, she fell asleep. As Nathalie leaned over her with concern, she noticed the unshed tears still on her lashes, while soft, whimpering sounds—the noises that had caught her attention—escaped at intervals from between the child’s delicate, red lips.
As the girl pondered as to how she was to get Sheila home, Danny’s policeman’s whistle, as he called it, followed by Janet’s shrill “hoo-hooing,” announced that the rest of the party of searchers had arrived. In a short space they were all in the little cabin, animatedly discussing how to carry the little girl down the mountain. Danny, meanwhile, had hastened to the couch 260 and was down on his knees, softly kissing the little hand thrown over the side, in the abandon of sleep, while the young man stood at one side, quietly watching the little group.
As the girl wondered how she would get Sheila home, Danny's whistle, which he referred to as his policeman’s whistle, along with Janet's loud “hoo-hooing,” signaled that the rest of the search party had arrived. Before long, they were all in the small cabin, excitedly discussing how to carry the little girl down the mountain. Meanwhile, Danny had rushed to the couch and was on his knees, gently kissing the little hand that hung over the side as she slept, while the young man stood nearby, quietly observing the small group.
It was soon decided, at his suggestion, that they leave the little girl there in the cabin with Danny until morning, when there would be more light to get her down the mountain. This difficulty settled, with relieved hearts they were about to set forth on their return journey down the trail, when Nathalie, whose eyes had been wandering about the rustic hut, cried, “But do you live here all alone up on this mountain?”
It was quickly agreed, based on his suggestion, that they would leave the little girl in the cabin with Danny until morning, when there would be more light to help her down the mountain. With this issue resolved, and feeling relieved, they were just about to start their return journey down the trail when Nathalie, who had been looking around the rustic hut, exclaimed, “But do you really live here all alone up on this mountain?”
The young man’s eyes lighted. “Why, yes, I live alone up here. It is not much of a summer-resort,” he said, with a rarely winning smile. “Still it answers my purpose, for I am guaranteed plenty of pure air. I am an English soldier,” he volunteered somewhat slowly, “and have recently come over here from England. I was wounded,—” he glanced down at his arm with its gloved hand, and which Janet had been eying rather sharply, for it hung down in a strangely stiff way,—“and I thought the mountains would benefit me. But I am very glad I found the child,” he broke off abruptly, as if he had been revealing something he did not care to talk about. “I hope she will be none the worse for her adventure,” he continued kindly, “even if she failed to find the fairies.” Nathalie had explained how the child had come to wander away.
The young man’s eyes brightened. “Yeah, I live alone up here. It’s not much of a summer spot,” he said, giving a rarely charming smile. “But it works for me because I get plenty of fresh air. I’m an English soldier,” he added slowly, “and I just came over here from England. I was wounded—” he looked down at his arm, which was gloved and had caught Janet's attention, as it hung down in a strangely stiff manner—“and I thought the mountains would help me. But I’m really glad I found the child,” he suddenly stopped, as if he had been sharing something he didn’t want to discuss. “I hope she’ll be okay after her adventure,” he continued kindly, “even if she didn’t find the fairies.” Nathalie had explained how the child had ended up wandering away.
261 Early the next morning Danny and Sheila appeared, the little girl now quite wide-awake, but she grew very shamefaced when Mrs. Page scolded her gently for giving them such a fright, dwelling upon the deep anxiety she had caused Miss Natty, when she had been so good to her, too. The tears came into the brown eyes at this rebuke, and, impulsively running to the girl, she protested with a stifled sob that she would not run after any more fairies.
261 Early the next morning, Danny and Sheila showed up, with the little girl now fully awake. However, she felt very embarrassed when Mrs. Page gently scolded her for scaring them so much, emphasizing the deep worry she had caused Miss Natty, who had treated her so kindly. Tears filled her brown eyes at this criticism, and, impulsively running to the girl, she protested with a muffled sob that she wouldn’t chase after any more fairies.
Of course Nathalie had to kiss the woeful little damsel, but perceiving that the auspicious moment had arrived to impress her with a fact that she should know, she took her out on the porch, and then gravely and carefully made clear to the little mind that there were no fairies, but just beautiful fancies that existed in the brains of people, who put them in stories so as to make them interesting to children.
Of course, Nathalie had to kiss the sad little girl, but realizing it was the right time to share an important truth, she took her out on the porch and seriously explained to her that there were no fairies, just lovely ideas that lived in people's minds, which they used in stories to make them interesting for kids.
But Danny, apparently greatly distressed, now drew Nathalie to one side, and confided to her that he believed that the young man must be hungry and very poor, for there seemed to be no food in the cabin. And he had heard him mutter,—when he thought the boy was asleep,—as he counted some loose change he had taken from his pocket and thrown on the table, “Well, that won’t get much food.” And then he had sat very quiet for a long time, as if thinking.
But Danny, clearly very upset, pulled Nathalie aside and told her that he thought the young man must be hungry and quite poor, since there didn't seem to be any food in the cabin. He had overheard him mumbling—thinking the boy was asleep—while counting some loose change he had taken from his pocket and tossed on the table, “Well, that won’t buy much food.” Then he had sat in silence for a long time, as if deep in thought.
Nathalie immediately rushed to impart this news to her mother, with the result that, a half-hour later, 262 Danny and Tony, each with a basket filled with food, started up the mountain-trail. In his pocket Danny carried a note written by Mrs. Page, in which she not only thanked the young man again for his kindness to Sheila, but made it clear that the food came from the child, a thank offering to him, and that she hoped he would find it acceptable, as she knew that it must be a difficult matter to obtain much food up there on the mountain top.
Nathalie quickly rushed to share this news with her mother, which led to Danny and Tony starting up the mountain trail half an hour later, each carrying a basket filled with food. Danny had a note from Mrs. Page in his pocket, where she not only expressed her gratitude again for his kindness to Sheila but also explained that the food was a thank-you gift from the child, hoping he would find it acceptable, as she understood how hard it must be to get enough food up there on the mountaintop.
Some time later the two boys returned in a state of great excitement. They claimed that they had found the young man asleep on the couch, and although they had tried to awaken him, and had “hollered and hollered right into his ear,” as Danny expressed it, he had not even stirred. The faces of the listeners grew grave as they heard this, and Janet, with a sudden sharp exclamation, turned and rushed up-stairs, to reappear in a moment with a medicine-case and her hat. Her training as a district nurse was now to be put to a real test. “I just believe that boy has been starved to death,” she ejaculated, her blue eyes luminous with sympathy, “for I could see by the look of him last night that he was in a bad way.”
Some time later, the two boys came back really excited. They said they had found the young man asleep on the couch, and even though they tried to wake him up and “shouted and shouted right into his ear,” as Danny put it, he hadn’t even moved. The listeners’ expressions turned serious when they heard this, and Janet, with a sudden sharp gasp, turned and dashed upstairs, only to come back a moment later with a medicine case and her hat. Her training as a district nurse was about to be put to the test. “I really think that boy has been starved to death,” she exclaimed, her blue eyes shining with concern, “because I could tell from the look of him last night that he was in rough shape.”
Of course Nathalie would not let Janet go alone, and so the two girls and the boys again hurried up the mountain to the cabin, where they found the young man not dead, as Nathalie had vaguely feared, but in a state of unconsciousness. Under Janet’s able ministrations 263 he was finally brought to, and after Nathalie had warmed some broth—Danny had made a fire in the open—it was gently fed to him by Janet. As Nathalie watched her, she opened her eyes in amazement at the girl’s deftness and gentleness in handling her charge, for this indeed was a new phase of her cousin’s character.
Of course, Nathalie wouldn’t let Janet go alone, so the two girls and the boys quickly made their way up the mountain to the cabin, where they found the young man not dead, as Nathalie had vaguely feared, but unconscious. With Janet's skilled care, he eventually came to, and after Nathalie warmed up some broth—Danny had started a fire outside—it was gently fed to him by Janet. As Nathalie watched her, she opened her eyes in surprise at how deft and gentle the girl was with her charge, as this was indeed a new side of her cousin’s character.
Won by the girls’ sympathy and interest, Philip de Brie—as that proved to be the young man’s name—said he had been wounded at the battle of Loos, and then wounded again and taken a prisoner at the battle of the Somme. After many months, under most harrowing circumstances, he had made his escape, and finally reached England, only to find that his mother had died in the meantime. “As I was alone,” there was a perceptible quiver in his voice,—“my father had died when I was a lad,—I decided to come over here.
Won over by the girls' sympathy and interest, Philip de Brie—who turned out to be the young man's name—said he had been injured at the battle of Loos and then wounded again and taken prisoner at the battle of the Somme. After enduring many months under extremely difficult circumstances, he managed to escape and finally made it to England, only to discover that his mother had passed away in the meantime. “Since I was all alone,” there was a noticeable tremor in his voice, “my father had died when I was a kid—I decided to come over here."
“My father was an American,” he continued. “I was born in America, and, as I knew that I had a grandmother living here, now my only relative, I felt that I wanted to see her. But I found that she, too, had died,” the young man’s eyes saddened, “and, well, once up on these grand old mountains, somehow I wanted to stay, they seemed so restful after the nerve-shocked life of a battle-field and my prison experience. I found this old shack up here one day in wandering about, and, after finding its owner, hired it for the 264 summer. You see, my arm was bayoneted by a German,” his mouth set in a hard line, “and was never properly treated in the German camp. Sometimes I fear I will lose it altogether. But you have been very kind to me—I shall get along now.” He attempted to rise, but Janet, forcing him back, insisted upon ripping open the sleeve covering the bayoneted arm, notwithstanding his protests, and here she found a condition that made her eyes grow very grave.
“My dad was American,” he continued. “I was born in the U.S., and since I knew I had a grandmother living here, my only relative now, I felt I wanted to see her. But I found out she had died too,” the young man said sadly, “and, well, once I got up into these grand old mountains, I somehow wanted to stay. They felt so peaceful after the nerve-racking life of the battlefield and my time in prison. I stumbled upon this old shack one day while exploring, and after meeting its owner, I rented it for the 264 summer. You see, a German soldier bayoneted my arm,” his mouth set in a hard line, “and it was never properly treated in the German camp. Sometimes I worry that I might lose it altogether. But you've been very kind to me—I’ll manage now.” He tried to get up, but Janet, pushing him back down, insisted on tearing open the sleeve covering the injured arm, regardless of his protests, and what she found made her expression very serious.
After cleaning the wound and applying what remedies she had on hand, she rebandaged the arm, which made the patient feel much better, he affirmed. After giving him a soothing draught, and fixing him as comfortably as she could with the meager bed-clothing in the cabin, so he could sleep, she and Nathalie withdrew outside.
After cleaning the wound and using the remedies she had available, she rewrapped the arm, which made the patient feel much better, he confirmed. After giving him a calming drink and arranging him as comfortably as she could with the limited bedding in the cabin, so he could sleep, she and Nathalie stepped outside.
Under the trees the two girls sat and discussed the situation with much perplexity, for Janet maintained that it was a serious case,—that the young man’s temperature was not only rising, but that his arm needed a surgeon’s care. But what were they to do? And the girls’ eyes grew tragically grave as they realized that the young man was an object of much solicitude, alone and ill in a strange country, and evidently without any means.
Under the trees, the two girls sat and talked about the situation with a lot of confusion, because Janet insisted it was a serious matter—that the young man's fever was getting worse and that his arm needed a doctor's attention. But what could they do? The girls' expressions turned seriously worried as they understood that the young man was an object of great concern, alone and sick in a foreign country, clearly without any resources.
It was finally decided that they take turns in caring for him, with the help of Danny, who was not only sympathetically interested, but who was quite a handy 265 man in many ways. He said he had learned to care for Sheila, and for the old woman whom he called his nurse, who had cared for them, and who was not only very aged, but miserably ill for some time before she died.
It was finally decided that they would take turns looking after him, with support from Danny, who was not only genuinely interested but also quite skilled in many ways. He mentioned that he had learned to take care of Sheila and the elderly woman he referred to as his nurse, who had looked after them and who, unfortunately, was not only very old but had also been seriously ill for a while before she passed away. 265
But the next morning, unfortunately,—Janet and Danny had remained during the night,—the patient’s condition was worse and Janet, with tears in her eyes, besought Nathalie to go to the village and see if she could get help.
But the next morning, unfortunately,—Janet and Danny had stayed overnight,—the patient’s condition had worsened and Janet, with tears in her eyes, pleaded with Nathalie to go to the village and see if she could get help.
As the girl hurried down the trail her mind was active. Oh, she did hate to make the young man a public charge, as he looked so refined, and had such a noble, winning way with him. And he was a soldier, too; yes, a “Son of Liberty,” as she confided to Tony, who was by her side. For had he not been fighting in France to give liberty to the world? “Why, there isn’t anything too good for him,” lamented the girl, “and yet there he is up there alone, perhaps at the point of death for want of proper care.” And yet where was she to get the money to call a physician, and where could she find one, were perplexing questions.
As the girl rushed down the trail, her mind was racing. Oh, she really hated to make the young man a public burden since he seemed so refined and had such a noble, charming way about him. And he was a soldier, too; yes, a “Son of Liberty,” as she confided to Tony, who was with her. After all, hadn’t he been fighting in France to bring freedom to the world? “Honestly, there isn’t anything too good for him,” the girl lamented, “and yet there he is up there alone, maybe at death’s door because he doesn’t have proper care.” But where was she supposed to get the money to call a doctor, and where could she even find one? Those were confusing questions.
As these thoughts ran rapidly through the girl’s brain, sometimes spoken aloud in her stress, inspired perhaps by Tony’s unspoken sympathy, as he gently patted her hand, she caught her breath quickly, and a bright flash illumined her eyes.
As these thoughts raced through the girl's mind, sometimes spoken aloud in her stress, perhaps inspired by Tony's silent understanding as he gently patted her hand, she caught her breath quickly, and a bright spark lit up her eyes.
266 “Yes, I will do it,” she muttered aloud, absent-mindedly returning the boy’s caresses. “I will take the money. I was saving it. O dear!” Nathalie almost wailed, “shall I ever be able to save even a sou towards going to college? Well, it can’t be helped. I’ll just have to take it and see if I can’t get some one to tell me where I can get a physician.”
266 “Yes, I’ll do it,” she mumbled, distracted, while returning the boy’s affection. “I’ll take the money. I was saving it. Oh no!” Nathalie nearly cried, “will I ever be able to save even a cent for college? Well, it can’t be helped. I’ll just have to take it and see if I can find someone who can tell me where to get a doctor.”
Hurrying into the house, Nathalie informed her mother as to the patient’s condition, and then told that she intended taking the money she had saved and call a doctor. Mrs. Page kissed the girl softly with troubled eyes, saying gently, “Never mind, Nathalie, you are investing your money at a greater per cent of interest in giving it to this unknown stranger, than if you used it for yourself. And then, who knows, dear? Something may turn up some day——”
Hurrying into the house, Nathalie told her mother about the patient's condition and then said she planned to use her savings to call a doctor. Mrs. Page kissed her daughter softly with worried eyes, saying gently, “It’s okay, Nathalie. You’re getting a better return on your investment by helping this unknown stranger than if you spent it on yourself. And then, who knows, dear? Something good might happen someday——”
“Oh no,” cried Blue Robin in a discouraged voice, “nothing will ever turn up.” And then, with a feeble smile, she cried, “But, as you often say, mumsie, things are foreordained, and so perhaps it wouldn’t be for my good to have my wish. And then, anyway, I shall have the satisfaction,” the brown eyes were sparkling again, “of knowing that the ‘drop in the bucket,’ is going to do some good to some one.”
“Oh no,” cried Blue Robin in a discouraged voice, “nothing will ever come through.” And then, with a weak smile, she exclaimed, “But, as you often say, moms, things are meant to be, so maybe it wouldn’t be good for me to have my wish. And anyway, I’ll have the satisfaction,” her brown eyes were sparkling again, “of knowing that the ‘drop in the bucket’ is going to help someone.”
After finding Sam, who was rarely ill and could give her no information as to where to get a physician unless it was at Littleton, she started for the village. As she passed the little red house she ran in for a 267 moment to tell Mrs. Carney about the man in the cabin, as she had become much interested in the young man’s story. The queer old lady and the girl had become very good friends since that visit with the children, for Nathalie had learned that the sometimes sharp gray eyes covered a kindly nature, notwithstanding the old lady’s brusque, queer ways.
After finding Sam, who was hardly ever sick and couldn’t tell her where to find a doctor except in Littleton, she headed to the village. As she passed the little red house, she popped in for a 267 moment to fill Mrs. Carney in on the man in the cabin, as she had become really interested in the young man’s story. The eccentric old lady and the girl had formed a close friendship since that visit with the children because Nathalie had discovered that the sometimes sharp gray eyes hid a kind heart, despite the old lady’s brusque and quirky ways.
“Yes, it just breaks my heart to take my college money,” she dolefully confided. Then, half-ashamed of her repining, she tried to explain how college had been the dream of her life, and how many times she had been disappointed. A kindly gleam in Mrs. Carney’s eyes, however, assured her that the old lady understood how she felt, and after a hurried good-by she was on her way to the post-office.
“Yes, it really breaks my heart to use my college money,” she said sadly. Then, feeling a bit embarrassed about her complaining, she tried to explain how going to college had been her lifelong dream and how often she had been let down. A warm look in Mrs. Carney’s eyes, though, reassured her that the old lady understood her feelings, and after a quick goodbye, she made her way to the post office.
Nathalie feared she was going to get no more information here than what Sam had imparted, when suddenly a lady, who had been standing near, and who had been interested in her story, informed her that there was a famous surgeon from New York up at the Sunset Hill House, and that possibly she could get him.
Nathalie was worried she wouldn’t learn anything new beyond what Sam had told her, when suddenly a woman who had been nearby and seemed interested in her story told her that there was a famous surgeon from New York staying at the Sunset Hill House, and that she might be able to see him.
Thanking her warmly, the girl hurried up the board walk to the hotel,—the children tagging on behind her,—feeling extremely nervous as she realized her boldness in asking a big physician, who had probably come to the mountains for a rest, to be bothered with a poor patient. And then, too, who knew what terribly high prices he might ask for his services? Nathalie 268 began to feel that her “drop in the bucket” might not prove of any help after all.
Thanking her warmly, the girl rushed up the boardwalk to the hotel, with the children trailing behind her, feeling super nervous as she realized her boldness in asking a well-known doctor, who had probably come to the mountains for a break, to deal with a poor patient. And then, who knew how ridiculously high his fees might be? Nathalie 268 started to think that her “drop in the bucket” might not actually help at all.
But, bracing to the ordeal, she told the children to wait at the little Observation Tower, as she called it, in front of the hotel, and hurried to the office. She had just nervously cleared her throat to question the clerk when the sudden cry, “Oh, Nathalie! Nathalie! where did you come from?” caused her to swing about. The next moment Nita Van Vorst had her arms about her, and was hugging and kissing her excitedly, while her mother stood by with pleased, shining eyes.
But preparing for the challenge, she told the kids to wait at the little Observation Tower, as she called it, in front of the hotel, and rushed to the office. She had just nervously cleared her throat to ask the clerk a question when the sudden shout, “Oh, Nathalie! Nathalie! Where did you come from?” made her turn around. The next moment, Nita Van Vorst had her arms around her, hugging and kissing her excitedly, while her mother stood by with happy, shining eyes.
After a hearty greeting from Mrs. Van Vorst, Nathalie cried laughingly, although the sudden revulsion from nervous anxiety had brought tears to her eyes, “Oh, where did you come from, and when did you get here?”
After a warm greeting from Mrs. Van Vorst, Nathalie laughed and exclaimed, though the sudden relief from nervous anxiety had brought tears to her eyes, “Oh, where did you come from, and when did you get here?”
“We arrived last night,” replied Nita, bubbling over with delight at being with her friend again. “Our coming here is a surprise for you, and we were just going to see if we could get some information as to where Seven Pillars was, so as to motor there.”
“We got here last night,” Nita said, overflowing with joy at being with her friend again. “Our visit is a surprise for you, and we were just planning to find out where Seven Pillars is so we can drive there.”
“Oh, I’m so glad to see you, and now you can see my boys!” And then, after Mrs. Van Vorst had led them into one of the little side-rooms opening from the long hall, where they could converse without being heard, she told all about her boys,—Sheila, the boy-girl, as she called her, the good times they were all having, and about the young man who was lying so 269 ill up on the mountain, and what had brought her to the hotel. “I am so nervous,” sighed the girl, as she finished her story, “for I don’t know this big man, and I dread to speak with him, for fear he will be brusque and sharp with me, but something must be done for that poor soldier boy.”
“Oh, I’m so glad to see you, and now you can meet my boys!” After Mrs. Van Vorst led them into one of the small side rooms off the long hallway, where they could talk without being overheard, she shared everything about her boys—Sheila, the boy-girl, as she called her, the fun times they were all having, and about the young man who was lying so 269 seriously ill up on the mountain, and what had brought her to the hotel. “I’m so nervous,” the girl sighed as she wrapped up her story, “because I don’t know this big man, and I’m afraid to talk to him, worrying that he’ll be brusque and sharp with me, but something has to be done for that poor soldier boy.”
“Excuse me a moment,” exclaimed Mrs. Van Vorst after she had conversed a while; “I want to go and see if I have any mail.” But, to Nathalie’s surprise, she did not go in the direction of the desk, but hurried after a tall, rather stout gentleman who at that moment passed through the hall.
“Excuse me for a moment,” said Mrs. Van Vorst after chatting for a bit; “I want to check if I have any mail.” But to Nathalie’s surprise, she didn’t head toward the desk. Instead, she quickly followed a tall, somewhat heavy-set gentleman who was just passing through the hall.
But the little incident was forgotten, as Nathalie and Nita had so much to say to one another that they both talked at once, as if their tongues were hung in the middle. Nita insisted that her friend would have to remain to dinner with her, as she had so much news to tell, especially about the Liberty Girls, that it would take hours to tell it.
But the little incident was forgotten, as Nathalie and Nita had so much to talk about that they both spoke at the same time, as if their words were tangled up. Nita insisted that her friend stay for dinner with her, as she had so much news to share, especially about the Liberty Girls, that it would take hours to go through it all.
In the midst of these many bits of enjoyed information, Nita’s mother returned, and Nathalie in a moment was dazedly bowing to the tall gentleman, whom her friend presented as Dr. Gilmour. “He is the surgeon, Nathalie,” she added smilingly, “whom you came after. As he is a very old friend of mine, and a good American to boot,” she nodded at the gentleman, “he has consented to go with you up the mountain to see your Son of Liberty, as you call him.”
In the middle of all this interesting information, Nita’s mother came back, and Nathalie quickly found herself awkwardly bowing to the tall man her friend introduced as Dr. Gilmour. “He’s the surgeon, Nathalie,” she said with a smile, “the one you came looking for. Since he’s a very old friend of mine and a good American too,” she gave a nod to the gentleman, “he’s agreed to go with you up the mountain to see your Son of Liberty, as you call him.”
270 “Oh, I am so glad! I am so glad!” burst from the girl with a joy-thrilled voice. “And, oh, I thank you so much; it is so kind of you,” she added with misty eyes, turning impulsively towards the physician.
270 “Oh, I’m so happy! I’m so happy!” exclaimed the girl with a voice full of joy. “And thank you so much; that’s really kind of you,” she added with teary eyes, turning quickly towards the doctor.
But the big man, with an amused smile in his keen gray eyes, patted her on the shoulder as he said, “My little lady, I think that every true American should stand ready to do anything to help any man, or boy, who has been brave enough to face those fiendish Huns.”
But the big guy, with a playful smile in his sharp gray eyes, gave her a pat on the shoulder as he said, “My little lady, I believe that every real American should be ready to do whatever it takes to help any man or boy who has had the courage to face those brutal Huns.”
“Oh, I think so, too,” cried the relieved girl, a wave of color flushing her cheeks, “and I think it must have been that thought that gave me the courage to come and ask you.”
“Oh, I think so, too,” the relieved girl exclaimed, a rush of color flushing her cheeks. “And I believe it was that thought that gave me the courage to come and ask you.”
“Oh, isn’t it just dandy!” enthused Nita, as Dr. Gilmour hurried away to get his little black case, while Nathalie led her friend down the steps of the veranda to where three little figures sat patiently waiting for her on the tower-steps.
“Oh, isn’t this great!” Nita exclaimed as Dr. Gilmour rushed off to grab his small black bag, while Nathalie guided her friend down the steps of the veranda to where three little figures sat patiently waiting for her on the tower steps.
But the girl’s eyes widened as she suddenly perceived that they were not alone, for a brown-clad figure with soldierly bearing, but with a golf-bag slung over his shoulder, with one foot on the steps, was bending down and talking to the children. And then a sudden thrill stirred her as she recognized the soldier lad who had helped her down the foot-bridge that day at the Flume, and who had so kindly taken Jean to see the cascade.
But the girl's eyes widened as she suddenly realized they weren't alone, because a figure in brown, with a soldierly stance and a golf bag slung over his shoulder, was bent down talking to the children while one foot rested on the steps. A rush of excitement went through her as she recognized the soldier who had helped her down the footbridge that day at the Flume, and who had kindly taken Jean to see the waterfall.
271 As Nathalie reached the children, she became embarrassed, as she suddenly realized that she did not know the name of the young soldier. But her embarrassment was momentary, as Nita called out merrily, “Hello, Van. Is that what you are doing, making love to the kiddies? I thought you were going to play golf.”
271 When Nathalie got to the kids, she felt embarrassed, realizing she didn’t know the young soldier’s name. But her embarrassment was short-lived as Nita cheerfully called out, “Hey, Van. Is that what you're doing, flirting with the kids? I thought you were going to play golf.”
“That was my intention,” replied the boy, straightening up and lifting his hat, and then his dark blue eyes brightened quickly, as he perceived Nita’s companion.
"That was my plan," the boy said, standing up straighter and taking off his hat, and then his dark blue eyes lit up quickly when he noticed Nita's friend.
Nathalie was now introduced to Mr. Van Darrell, the son of a friend of Nita’s mother, and then the little group were chatting merrily as they waited for Dr. Gilmour, and Mrs. Van Vorst, who had gone to order the car to take them to the foot of the Trail that led to the top of Garnet Mountain.
Nathalie was now introduced to Mr. Van Darrell, the son of a friend of Nita’s mom, and the little group chatted happily as they waited for Dr. Gilmour and Mrs. Van Vorst, who had gone to order the car that would take them to the base of the trail leading to the top of Garnet Mountain.
All at once young Darrell turned towards Nathalie as he said, “But, Miss Page, have we not met before? Were you not one of the girls at Camp Mills one day last month, who asked a party of us if we did not want some cherries? And then, if I remember rightly, we all helped you to gather up the fruit after you had knocked the basket from the car.”
All of a sudden, young Darrell turned to Nathalie and said, “But, Miss Page, haven’t we met before? Weren’t you one of the girls at Camp Mills last month who asked a group of us if we wanted some cherries? And if I remember correctly, we all helped you pick up the fruit after you knocked the basket from the car.”
“Oh, yes, I remember you,” dimpled Nathalie. “No, not when I met you that day at the Flume, although your face haunted me as being familiar, but it all came to me on the ride home.”
“Oh, yes, I remember you,” Nathalie said with a smile. “No, not when I met you that day at the Flume, even though your face seemed familiar and stuck in my mind, but it all hit me on the ride home.”
272 “But I knew you right away,” said the boy half shyly, “although I did not like to make myself known, for, of course, I did not even know your name.”
272 “But I recognized you immediately,” the boy said, a bit shyly, “even though I didn’t want to introduce myself since, well, I didn’t even know your name.”
“Or I yours,” laughed Nathalie. And then, with her mind filled with thoughts of the young English soldier, she told his story to Mr. Darrell, who immediately became so interested in Tommy Atkins, as he called him, that he begged Nathalie to let him go with her, quite assured, he declared, that he could be of some assistance to him.
“Or I yours,” laughed Nathalie. Then, with her mind filled with thoughts of the young English soldier, she shared his story with Mr. Darrell, who immediately became so interested in Tommy Atkins, as he called him, that he begged Nathalie to let him come with her, confidently declaring that he could be of some help to him.
Before the girl could reply a new voice suddenly shrilled, “Oh, Nathalie, how do you do? Did you come up here to call on us?”
Before the girl could respond, a new voice suddenly exclaimed, “Oh, Nathalie, how are you? Did you come up here to visit us?”
The girl, thus addressed, stared with some bewilderment, to see her two New York schoolmates hurrying towards her. They looked very fetching in their modish golf-costumes, with their bags slung carelessly over their shoulders, as each one seized her hand and shook it cordially, while smiling down upon her in a most friendly and chummy way.
The girl, being spoken to, looked a bit confused as she saw her two New York schoolmates rushing toward her. They looked great in their trendy golf outfits, with their bags casually thrown over their shoulders. Each one grabbed her hand and shook it warmly while smiling down at her in a really friendly way.
For a full second the girl simply stared, dazed and confused, as it suddenly flashed into her consciousness that the last time she had met these girls they had snubbed her, deliberately turning their backs upon her, when she greeted them, the day she had come to the hotel to leave the sweet peas. Ah, a sudden red leaped into Nathalie’s cheeks, her eyes flamed angrily, and she was about to return their snub by turning her 273 back upon them, for she had intuitively divined that they were nice to her because they wanted to be introduced to her friends. Yes, they wanted to know the soldier-boy.
For a full second, the girl just stared, dazed and confused, as it suddenly hit her that the last time she had seen these girls, they had ignored her, turning their backs when she greeted them on the day she had come to the hotel to drop off the sweet peas. Ah, a sudden flush came to Nathalie’s cheeks, her eyes burned with anger, and she was about to respond to their snub by turning her back on them, because she had instinctively sensed that they were being nice to her because they wanted to meet her friends. Yes, they wanted to know the soldier-boy.
But something deep within the girl, her finer nature, whispered, “Never mind, ignore their slight, and show that you are above them by acting the lady.” With simple dignity the girl coolly returned their effusive greeting, and then, with cold formality, introduced them to her two friends. Oh, how delighted they were to meet Miss Van Vorst; they had heard all about her from a friend of hers,—Nita never was able to discover this friend. Then, turning from Nita as quickly as possible, they made an onslaught upon the soldier lad. Oh, how pleased they were to meet him, they had been just wild to know him ever since they had sighted his uniform. Was he a New York guardsman? What regiment did he belong to? These and a score of similar questions were quickly hurled at the young man, somewhat to his embarrassment. Nathalie could not hear all they said as she chattered with Nita, but vaguely realized, as they rattled on, with an angry flutter of her heart, that they were again ignoring her, as she heard them urging Mr. Darrell to join them at a game of golf.
But something deep inside the girl, her better self, whispered, “It’s fine, just brush off their slight, and show that you’re above them by acting gracefully.” With simple dignity, the girl calmly returned their overly enthusiastic greeting, and then, with cold politeness, introduced them to her two friends. Oh, how thrilled they were to meet Miss Van Vorst; they had heard all about her from a friend of hers—Nita could never figure out who this friend was. Then, turning away from Nita as quickly as they could, they bombarded the soldier boy with questions. Oh, how excited they were to meet him; they had been eager to know him ever since they spotted his uniform. Was he a New York guardsman? What regiment was he in? These and a bunch of similar questions were quickly thrown at the young man, which made him a bit uncomfortable. Nathalie couldn’t hear everything they said while she chatted with Nita, but she vaguely sensed, with an angry flutter in her heart, that they were ignoring her again as she overheard them urging Mr. Darrell to join them for a game of golf.
But a few moments later, when Nita waved a good-by to her mother from the car, she was seated between the soldier lad and Nathalie, with the children 274 crowding upon their laps, and the doctor in front with the chauffeur.
But just a few moments later, when Nita waved goodbye to her mom from the car, she was sitting between the soldier guy and Nathalie, with the kids all crowding onto their laps, and the doctor in front with the driver.
As the car whizzed away from the hotel Nita gave Nathalie’s sleeve a sudden twitch as she cried, “Oh, look, Nathalie; there’s the Count!”
As the car sped away from the hotel, Nita gave Nathalie's sleeve a quick tug and exclaimed, “Oh, look, Nathalie; there’s the Count!”
“The Count,” repeated her friend in mystified wonder, as she bent forward to gaze after a young man who had just flashed by in an automobile. But suddenly, with a curious gleam in her eyes, the girl drew back, a slight flush on her cheeks.
“The Count,” her friend repeated, puzzled, as she leaned forward to watch a young man zoom past in a car. But then, with a curious spark in her eyes, the girl pulled back, a slight blush warming her cheeks.
“Oh, no, he’s not a real Count,” informed Nita with some amusement in her eyes; “but every one calls him that because they think he’s so Frenchy-looking, with his dark skin and big black eyes. The girls seem quite wild about him, for he takes them riding in his car. Some one told mother that he was from Chicago, and was quite wealthy.”
“Oh, no, he’s not a real Count,” Nita said, amusement sparkling in her eyes. “But everyone calls him that because they think he looks so French, with his dark skin and big black eyes. The girls seem totally crazy about him since he takes them for rides in his car. Someone told my mom that he’s from Chicago and is pretty well-off.”
But Nathalie manifested no further interest in the gentleman whom Nita had dubbed the Count, although she immediately recognized the young man as the one who had repaired her car the day she had gone after the children. But, alas, she felt that he was no gentleman, for had he not stared at her rudely in the post-office, and then accosted her near the cemetery a short time later?
But Nathalie showed no more interest in the man Nita called the Count, even though she instantly recognized him as the one who fixed her car the day she went to get the kids. However, she thought he was not a gentleman at all since he had rudely stared at her in the post-office and then approached her near the cemetery shortly after.
CHAPTER XVIII
THE LIBERTY CHEER
After Nita’s arrival the two Pioneer-Liberty girls were so occupied with things to see and do, that at the week’s end it was hard to realize it was not a month since her coming.
After Nita arrived, the two Pioneer-Liberty girls were so busy with things to see and do that by the end of the week, it was hard to believe it had only been a month since she got there.
In the order of events had been the anxious moments waiting to know the doctor’s decision as to the condition of the young English soldier. This had been followed by Nathalie’s deep joy when she realized that her “drop in the bucket” was doing its bit. Yes, the doctor announced that the young man’s condition was serious, induced by his gangrenous wound and the life he had lived for the last two years. Still, as he had a good constitution, and youth is a ready up-builder, with proper care and food,—emphasizing the word “food,”—he would be all right in a short time. Yes, Janet had sensed the situation when she had proclaimed that she believed the man was more than half starved.
In the sequence of events, there were tense moments waiting to hear the doctor’s decision about the young English soldier’s condition. This was followed by Nathalie’s immense joy when she realized that her “drop in the bucket” was making a difference. Yes, the doctor confirmed that the young man’s condition was serious, caused by his gangrenous wound and the lifestyle he had led for the past two years. Nevertheless, since he had a strong constitution and youth is a great healer, with proper care and good nutrition—emphasizing the word “nutrition”—he would recover quickly. Yes, Janet had sensed the situation when she said she believed the man was more than half starved.
Under the care of the skillful surgeon, with Janet’s good nursing, assisted by Nathalie and Nita, who had 276 begged hard to be allowed to help, the patient soon began to improve. Possibly the atmosphere created by having three young nurses, the soldier-boy as orderly, Danny as handy man, with the other children as servitors, with nourishing food, had done as much as medicine and skill in giving renewed ambition to a man who had been dragging out his life on half-rations, in the solitude of a friendless existence.
Under the care of the skilled surgeon and Janet’s excellent nursing, along with Nathalie and Nita, who had 276 insisted on being allowed to help, the patient started to recover quickly. The atmosphere created by having three young nurses, the soldier-boy as an orderly, Danny as a handyman, and the other children assisting, along with nutritious food, might have contributed just as much as the medicine and expertise in giving new hope to a man who had been living on limited resources in the loneliness of a friendless life.
The most important aid to the convalescent’s recovery, undoubtedly, was the thought of being able to refill an empty pocketbook, for Mrs. Van Vorst, as soon as she learned that he was a proficient French scholar,—he had lived in France, his mother being a French woman,—and was graduated from Oxford, had immediately made the suggestion that he give Nita French lessons. With her usual tact the suggestion had been so delicately made, pleading it as a personal favor to her, so as not to offend the fine sensibilities of the young man, that it had been soon arranged.
The biggest boost to the convalescent’s recovery was definitely the thought of being able to refill an empty wallet. As soon as Mrs. Van Vorst found out that he was a skilled French scholar—having lived in France because his mother was French—and graduated from Oxford, she quickly suggested he give Nita French lessons. With her usual finesse, she made the suggestion so tactfully, framing it as a personal favor to her to avoid upsetting the young man's delicate feelings, that it was arranged in no time.
The young soldier’s peculiar situation had been noised about, and general interest and sympathy being awakened, many of the guests from the near-by hotels had climbed the mountain trails, with offerings of fruit or some delicacy for the invalid.
The young soldier’s unusual situation had been talked about, and with general interest and sympathy stirred up, many of the guests from the nearby hotels had hiked the mountain trails, bringing offerings of fruit or some treat for the soldier.
When the fact became known that Nita was to take French lessons from him, other young ladies at the hotels were eager to be his pupils, among them Nathalie’s two New York schoolmates, who ardently 277 sounded the praises of the handsome English soldier, whose refined scholarly face, tall, athletic figure, his romantic story, bade fair to make him a possible rival of the Count, who was considered the most eligible parti at the hotel. But the fact that the young man up in the cabin had played a soldier’s part in the present war, was an asset that carried more weight than mere wealth, in the minds of the ladies, particularly when it was fashionable to be patriotic.
When it became known that Nita was going to take French lessons from him, other young women at the hotels were eager to be his students, including Nathalie’s two schoolmates from New York, who eagerly praised the handsome English soldier. His refined, scholarly face and tall, athletic build, along with his romantic backstory, seemed to make him a potential rival for the Count, who was regarded as the most eligible catch at the hotel. However, the fact that the young man in the cabin had served his country in the current war was more impressive than just wealth in the eyes of the ladies, especially with patriotism being in vogue.
Possibly Nathalie’s two friends seized upon this opportunity to make themselves one of a very happy party of young people, who somehow managed to have a most enjoyable time in ministering to their charge. As soon as the sick man was able, he was made comfortable in a hammock under the trees, on a clearing near the cabin, where each one vied with the other to cheer him.
Possibly Nathalie’s two friends took this chance to join a very happy group of young people who somehow had a great time looking after their friend. As soon as the sick man was able, he was made comfortable in a hammock under the trees, in a clearing near the cabin, where everyone competed to cheer him up.
Sometimes there would be a reading, then again just a merry chat, but as the meetings gained in numbers, stories became the vogue, the story-teller generally relating some tale about the mountains, or an Indian legend, while the listeners sat and knitted for the soldiers, as even Sheila and the boys,—all but poor Jean,—had become expert knitters, under Nathalie’s tutelage. As the patient had brightened so perceptibly at these little mountain-top gatherings, Nathalie had dubbed them Liberty Cheers.
Sometimes there would be a reading, and other times just a fun chat, but as the meetings grew in number, storytelling became the trend. The storyteller usually shared a tale about the mountains or an Indian legend, while the listeners sat and knitted for the soldiers. Even Sheila and the boys—all except for poor Jean—had become skilled knitters under Nathalie’s guidance. Since the patient had noticeably brightened during these little mountain-top gatherings, Nathalie had named them Liberty Cheers.
When Blue Robin saw that her two schoolmates had 278 foisted themselves upon the party, she felt indignantly grieved, as the snub they had administered to her still rankled. She had been on the point of revealing the incident to Nita, in one of their little confidential chats, when that young lady had remained at Seven Pillars over night, as she loved to do. But second thoughts stayed her, as she knew her friend’s loyal devotion to her, and her vehement way of disposing of people when they displeased her, the result of her spoiled childhood. Nathalie, also, was afraid to offend the two girls, for fear they would not continue to take lessons of Philip de Brie, and she knew that would mean a loss to him.
When Blue Robin saw that her two classmates had 278 butted into the gathering, she felt hurt and angry, as the slight they had given her still stung. She had been about to share the incident with Nita during one of their little private conversations, especially since Nita had stayed over at Seven Pillars for the night, which she loved to do. But she thought twice, knowing her friend's unwavering loyalty and her tendency to cut people off when they upset her, a result of her spoiled upbringing. Nathalie was also hesitant to upset the two girls, fearing they might stop taking lessons from Philip de Brie, which she knew would be a loss for him.
Van Darrell, the Camp Mills soldier, and Philip had fraternized as “mates”; for the latter, by his life on the battlefield, and in the trenches, and with his experiences in a German prison-camp, had a stock of information at his command that Van was greedy to devour. With the wholehearted patriotic enthusiasm of our young American boys when called to the colors, he was keen to be on the “firing-line,” so as to get a chance, as he expressed it, “to get a few jabs at the Big Willie gang.”
Van Darrell, the Camp Mills soldier, and Philip had become friends; Philip, through his experiences on the battlefield, in the trenches, and in a German prison camp, had a wealth of information that Van was eager to absorb. With the full patriotic enthusiasm of young American boys when called to serve, he was eager to be on the “firing line” so he could, as he put it, “take a few shots at the Big Willie gang.”
Philip’s deep appreciation of Nathalie’s kindness to him, and also that of her friends, was not only expressed in words, but by the warm, eloquent glances of his dark eyes. His deferential courtesy to all, his chivalrous manner towards her and Janet, and his kindly, winning way of making friends with the children, 279 had won the girl’s admiration. Nevertheless she had noticed that it was Janet who had won his deepest regard. It was to her that he turned with questioning eyes when anything of moment came up, on her that his admiring, ardent glances fell when that young lady appeared in some simple, but fluffy, bewitching little costume, which she had taken to doing lately, somewhat to Nathalie’s surprise.
Philip’s deep appreciation for Nathalie’s kindness to him, as well as that of her friends, was shown not only in words but also through the warm, expressive looks in his dark eyes. His respectful courtesy to everyone, his chivalrous attitude toward her and Janet, and his friendly, charming way of getting along with the kids had earned the girl’s admiration. However, she noticed that it was Janet who had captured his deepest affection. He turned to her with questioning eyes whenever something important came up, and his admiring, passionate glances fell on her when she appeared in some simple yet fluffy, enchanting little outfit she had started wearing lately, much to Nathalie’s surprise. 279
When he grew tired and showed a restlessness, a desire to be free of the merry-makers, a pleased look would dawn in his eyes when they left him to the ministrations of the head nurse. The somber shadows in his eyes would light with a strange glow as she hovered about him, trying to make him comfortable, or giving him the medicine that he probably would have forgotten if she had not been there to give it to him.
When he got tired and restless, wanting to escape the party-goers, a pleased look would appear in his eyes when they left him in the care of the head nurse. The gloomy shadows in his eyes would brighten with a strange glow as she moved around him, attempting to make him comfortable or giving him the medicine he likely would have forgotten if she hadn’t been there to remind him.
And Janet? Well, she had been, as it were, curiously transformed into a new creature, seemingly, by the sweet pity in her soft eyes, and the flush on her winsome face, as, with tireless patience and quiet diligence, she performed her duties. Evidently, for the nonce, her vocation of mingled pacifist, farmerette, and suffragette had been relegated to the past.
And Janet? Well, she had somehow been transformed into a new person, it seemed, by the gentle compassion in her soft eyes and the blush on her charming face as, with endless patience and quiet dedication, she carried out her responsibilities. Obviously, for the time being, her roles as a mix of pacifist, farmer, and suffragette had been set aside.
Oh, no, the girls did not spend all their time with Philip, for, as this was Nita’s first visit to the White Hills, there were many things to see. One of the first places she had been taken by her friend was to the Sweet Pea Tea-House, to meet the invalid and the 280 deaf-and-dumb lady. She was not only charmed with their garden of gardens, but enthusiastic in her warm admiration of the charms of its owners. And it was not long before she was alternating with Nathalie in reading to Miss Whipple, for Nathalie had managed, with her many duties and joys, to keep up the readings to the shut-in.
Oh no, the girls didn't spend all their time with Philip. Since it was Nita's first visit to the White Hills, there was so much to see. One of the first places her friend took her was the Sweet Pea Tea-House to meet the invalid and the deaf-mute lady. Nita was not only charmed by their beautiful garden, but she was also genuinely impressed by the appeal of its owners. Before long, she was taking turns with Nathalie reading to Miss Whipple, as Nathalie had managed to balance her many responsibilities and joys while still keeping up the readings for the shut-in.
Mrs. Carney, of the little red house, also received a call, and the young girl had come away curiously impressed with the oddities of the queer little old lady, whose small black figure, with her basket of yarn for knitting, always in that funny poke-bonnet, was a familiar sight on the road.
Mrs. Carney, from the little red house, also got a visit, and the young girl left feeling oddly fascinated by the quirks of the strange little old lady, whose small black figure, always with her basket of yarn for knitting and that funny poke-bonnet, was a common sight on the road.
Janet, Nita declared, was “just lovely,” and that this admiration was reciprocated was evidenced by Janet taking her down to her farm, although sadly neglected at present. Here Nita not only did her share of weeding, but returned with such glowing accounts of the farm’s luxuriance, expatiating so glowingly upon its fertility, and what wonders Janet had been able to accomplish so late in the season, that Nathalie forebore poking fun at it, as she generally did.
Janet, Nita said, was “just lovely,” and the fact that this admiration was mutual was clear when Janet took her to her farm, which was unfortunately in disrepair at the moment. Here, Nita not only helped with weeding, but came back with such enthusiastic stories about the farm’s abundance, raving about its fertile ground, and the amazing things Janet had managed to achieve so late in the season, that Nathalie held back from teasing her, which was her usual habit.
Nita had gazed at the mystery room with a keen desire to peep within, had read Nathalie’s diary of each day’s doings, and had prowled all over the house, intent on selecting what she thought was the most valuable thing for Nathalie to select, as she, too, was anxious that she should “win the prize,” as the children 281 called it. She had even visited Cynthia in her sanctum sanctorum, to Nathalie’s astonishment, the artist apparently having taken a great fancy to the hunchback girl, being particularly cordial to her, and returning Mrs. Van Vorst’s call, to the amazement of Mrs. Page, before that lady had had a chance to do so.
Nita had stared at the mysterious room with a strong urge to peek inside, had read Nathalie’s diary of her daily activities, and had wandered all around the house, determined to pick what she thought was the most valuable thing for Nathalie to choose because she also wanted her to “win the prize,” as the kids 281 called it. She had even gone to see Cynthia in her private space, much to Nathalie’s surprise, as the artist seemed to have taken a liking to the hunchback girl, being especially friendly to her and returning Mrs. Van Vorst’s visit, stunning Mrs. Page, who hadn’t had a chance to do so first.
But the reason therefor was apparently explained, when it became known that she had suggested to Mrs. Van Vorst that she allow her to paint Nita’s portrait, insisting that her golden hair and violet eyes would show up beautifully on a canvas. Nathalie was still more surprised when that kind-hearted lady, whose income was amply sufficient to allow her to indulge in many whims, consented, and Cynthia was in a glorified state at the success of her plan.
But the reason for this was apparently explained when it became known that she had suggested to Mrs. Van Vorst that she let her paint Nita’s portrait, insisting that her golden hair and violet eyes would look stunning on canvas. Nathalie was even more surprised when that kind-hearted lady, whose income was more than enough to indulge in many whims, agreed, and Cynthia was overjoyed at the success of her plan.
Liberty Fort had proved a good inspirer of patriotism, as Nita not only became, for the time, a most valiant Son of Liberty, entering with great zest into the children’s sham battles on the meadow below, but she introduced an element of war that was hailed with delight. This was a battery gun, which she contrived to make, with the help of Jean, out of an old lead pipe found in the cellar, and which was placed on wheels, the remains of an old hayrack, and installed at the top of the terrace in front of the fort.
Liberty Fort had really inspired a sense of patriotism, as Nita not only became, for a while, a brave Son of Liberty, eagerly joining in the kids' mock battles in the meadow below, but she also brought in a new element of war that everyone loved. This was a cannon that she managed to create, with Jean's help, using an old lead pipe they found in the cellar. It was mounted on wheels made from the remnants of an old hayrack and set up at the top of the terrace in front of the fort.
She had also helped the boys to make wooden swords out of sticks, and also hand-grenades of thick paper filled with gravel, which would have had a most disastrous 282 effect upon the enemy if the latter had not been imaginary.
She had also helped the boys make wooden swords out of sticks and hand-grenades made from thick paper filled with gravel, which would have had a really disastrous 282 effect on the enemy if they hadn't been imaginary.
It was here one afternoon, as the boys were having a battle with all the horrors of war, that young Darrell appeared, and as he and the two girls sat on the stone ledge, he told them how he was “all in” by having had a boxing-match with a prisoner when on police duty.
It was here one afternoon, as the boys were having a battle with all the horrors of war, that young Darrell showed up, and as he and the two girls sat on the stone ledge, he told them how he was “all in” after having a boxing match with a prisoner while on police duty.
“The chap was a foreigner,” he explained. “He could only speak a little English, and I had heard him mutter to himself several times in rather a queer way. Suddenly, when I was off my guard, he let his club fly at me and gave me a whack on the head that knocked me silly. I saw stars for a moment, and then I let out on the chap,—he was a big fellow, as strong as an ox,—and was just about to use my automatic when the Military Police rushed up and in a few moments they had him as tight as a drum. It turned out that he was off his nut, and I believe he is now in some asylum. Anyway he put me in the hospital with a cracked skull for a while, and then I was granted a furlough, and came up here with mother.”
“The guy was a foreigner,” he explained. “He could only speak a little English, and I had heard him mutter to himself a few times in a pretty strange way. Suddenly, when I wasn’t paying attention, he swung his club at me and hit me on the head hard enough to knock me out. I saw stars for a moment, and then I went after the guy — he was a big dude, as strong as an ox — and I was just about to pull out my gun when the Military Police showed up, and within moments they had him secured. It turned out he was crazy, and I think he’s in some asylum now. Anyway, he put me in the hospital with a cracked skull for a while, and then I got a leave and came up here with my mom.”
The girls, under the spell of the military, were inclined to make a hero of the soldier-boy, with the long-lashed, merry blue eyes and cheery laugh, in their minds at least, if not openly. Later, when he was sitting alone with Nathalie, in a burst of confidence, with sudden gravity, he lamented that he feared that he would never reach the “firing-line” overseas. When 283 Nathalie expressed her surprise at his fears, he explained that he had been detailed to sanitary work in the hospital, and then he added, with gloom-shadowed eyes, “And it looks to me as if it would be steady company; but it is up to Uncle Sam, and a soldier is no soldier if he kicks at his job.”
The girls, enchanted by the military, were drawn to make a hero out of the soldier-boy, with his long lashes, bright blue eyes, and cheerful laugh, at least in their minds, if not openly. Later, when he was sitting alone with Nathalie, he suddenly became serious and, in a moment of honesty, admitted that he was worried he might never reach the “firing line” overseas. When 283 Nathalie expressed her surprise at his concerns, he explained that he had been assigned to sanitary work in the hospital, and then he added, with eyes clouded by gloom, “And it seems to me this will just be steady work; but it's up to Uncle Sam, and a soldier isn’t a true soldier if he complains about his duty.”
“Oh, I just wish I were a man, so I could go over there,” sighed Nathalie a little dolefully. “Sometimes I wish I had a million lives so I could give them to my country, and go over and fight.”
“Oh, I just wish I were a guy so I could go over there,” Nathalie sighed a bit sadly. “Sometimes I wish I had a million lives so I could give them to my country and go over and fight.”
“Ho! ho! Blue Robin! You have changed your mind then, haven’t you?” good-naturedly jeered Nita, who had just come up behind them. Her blue eyes gleamed mischief as she continued laughingly, “Surely that was not the way you felt a short while ago.”
“Hey! Hey! Blue Robin! You’ve changed your mind, haven’t you?” good-naturedly teased Nita, who had just come up behind them. Her blue eyes sparkled with mischief as she continued laughingly, “Surely that’s not how you felt a little while ago.”
“No, that is true,” replied Nathalie with reddened cheeks, “but I was selfish then, and failed to read the handwriting on the wall.”
“No, that’s true,” Nathalie replied, her cheeks flushing, “but I was selfish back then and didn’t see the warning signs.”
As Nathalie looked up in a shamefaced way at the young soldier she saw a strange expression flit across his face as he gazed down at her.
As Nathalie looked up, feeling embarrassed, at the young soldier, she noticed a strange look pass across his face as he stared down at her.
“Did you call Miss Page Blue Robin?” he asked hurriedly of Nita, with a sudden, strange interest.
“Did you call Miss Page Blue Robin?” he asked Nita quickly, with a sudden, strange interest.
“Oh, that is just a nickname,” began Nathalie, “and——”
“Oh, that’s just a nickname,” Nathalie started, “and——”
“No, it isn’t a nickname,” returned Nita, with a defiant toss of her head. “It is just your own particular name. Shall I tell Mr. Darrell how you came by 284 it?” And then, without waiting for permission, she told their companion the story of how Nathalie found the nest of bluebirds in the old cedar tree and thought they were blue robins. And when the Girl Pioneers claimed that she must become one of them, she had to join the Bluebird group. “Because, you see, she was a real bluebird,” ended the girl.
“No, it’s not a nickname,” Nita replied, defiantly tossing her head. “It’s just your unique name. Should I tell Mr. Darrell how you got it?” Then, without waiting for an answer, she shared the story of how Nathalie discovered the bluebird nest in the old cedar tree and thought they were blue robins. When the Girl Pioneers insisted she had to join them, she ended up in the Bluebird group. “Because, you know, she was a real bluebird,” the girl concluded.
It was then that Nathalie, who hated to be the subject of a conversation, began to tell the young soldier of her many trials in training her boys in military tactics. To her joy he offered to give them a lesson, whereupon the young Sons of Liberty were lined up, Nita and Sheila with them, and drilled in a simple manual-of-arms,—how to stand as a sentinel on post, how to salute an officer or civilian, and how to stand at attention when the national anthem, the “Call to the Colors,” or “To the Standard,” were played, and when the flag went by.
It was then that Nathalie, who disliked being the focus of a conversation, started to share with the young soldier her many challenges in training her boys on military tactics. To her delight, he offered to give them a lesson, so the young Sons of Liberty lined up, with Nita and Sheila among them, and were instructed in a simple manual of arms—how to stand as a sentry on duty, how to salute an officer or civilian, and how to stand at attention when the national anthem, the “Call to the Colors,” or “To the Standard,” was played, and when the flag passed by.
There was a drill in calisthenics, and then the young military instructor explained to his youthful audience the necessity for a Son of Liberty—he had caught the phrase from Nathalie—to have clean hands, face, teeth, and finger-nails. “No boy or young man,” he emphasized, “will ever make a good soldier who will not discipline himself in these small things. It is also essential for a soldier not only to be clean, but to be courteous, helpful, and kind, especially to the aged and weak.”
There was a workout session, and then the young military instructor explained to his audience of young people the importance of a Son of Liberty—he had picked up the term from Nathalie—having clean hands, face, teeth, and fingernails. “No boy or young man,” he emphasized, “will ever become a good soldier if he doesn't discipline himself in these small things. It's also crucial for a soldier to be not only clean but also courteous, helpful, and kind, especially to the elderly and vulnerable.”
285 The drill was conducted in such a masterful, soldier-like way, and the little talk made significant by so many points that Nathalie was laboring to teach her boys, that the girls were greatly impressed, and also the children, if one were to judge by their alert attention and the worshipful glances they cast upon the young soldier as they went through their war maneuvers.
285 The drill was carried out in such a skillful, disciplined manner, and the little discussions were made impactful by so many points that Nathalie was trying to teach her boys, that the girls were really impressed, and the younger kids seemed to be as well, judging by their attentive expressions and the admiring looks they directed at the young soldier as they performed their military maneuvers.
Nathalie and the boys were anxious to show Nita their mountain walks, and so, with young Darrell, they spent many an afternoon, from glen and vale, in studying the mountains, with their rugged crests and beautiful cloud-effects. Their ever-changing beauty, their gigantic immensity, their awe-inspiring silences lifted the newcomers to a reverent calm, as they gazed at these everlasting memorials to the omnipotency of the Creator.
Nathalie and the boys were excited to show Nita their mountain hikes, so, along with young Darrell, they spent many afternoons exploring the mountains, with their rugged peaks and stunning cloud formations. The constantly changing beauty, their massive scale, and the breathtaking silence elevated the newcomers to a peaceful reverence as they looked at these eternal monuments to the Creator's power.
Sometimes the little party would walk four or five miles, something that the little hunchback had never been able to do until she became a Pioneer. The visit to the Flume was not only repeated, but they visited the Lost River. The weird mystery of the silver stream, as it gleamed luringly between massive gray bowlders, tempted them down the little ladder, to slide over rocky ledges, and climb stony declivities, until at last they were standing beneath the rocks in Shadow Cave. The Giant’s Pot Hole, with the shiny water peering at them from between the stone walls, so suggestive of giants and strange dragons, with its weird, 286 mystical stream, made the underground trip to Mother Nature’s caverns a revelation and a delight to all of the party.
Sometimes the small group would walk four or five miles, something that the little hunchback had never been able to do until she became a Pioneer. Their visit to the Flume was not just repeated; they also explored the Lost River. The strange mystery of the silver stream, as it shimmered enticingly between huge gray boulders, drew them down the small ladder, allowing them to slide over rocky ledges and climb steep slopes, until they finally stood beneath the rocks in Shadow Cave. The Giant’s Pot Hole, with the shiny water peeking at them from between the stone walls, evoked images of giants and strange dragons, with its eerie, 286 mystical stream, making the underground trip to Mother Nature’s caverns a revelation and a joy for everyone in the group.
They ascended Mount Agassiz at Bethlehem, where they tried to signal to Philip and Janet on the top of Garnet, through the sun’s rays shining on a mirror, but although this method of signaling was greatly enjoyed, it was not very successful. With all of the merry times, however, the young invalid on the mountain was not forgotten, although he and Janet—with Mrs. Page for company sometimes—passed many hours in each other’s company.
They climbed Mount Agassiz at Bethlehem, where they attempted to signal Philip and Janet at the top of Garnet using a mirror to reflect the sunlight. Although they had a lot of fun with this signaling method, it didn't work very well. Despite all the good times, they didn’t forget about the young invalid on the mountain, even though he and Janet, along with Mrs. Page occasionally, spent many hours together.
Then came a cool, sunny afternoon in August, when they all gathered around a trench camp-fire on the top of Garnet, for Philip had convalesced sufficiently to do a little climbing, and had a luncheon in the woods. And it was the two young soldiers who boiled the potatoes in a pot that hung from a green pole, fastened in crotches on two upright saplings over the fire-pit, from which a trench a foot deep branched out on each of its four sides. This new kind of fire, as Sheila called it, was a real soldier’s fire, for it was where Philip had cooked his meals before he was visited by Nathalie and Janet, his good angels, as he called them.
Then came a cool, sunny afternoon in August when they all gathered around a campfire at the top of Garnet. Philip had recovered enough to do some climbing, so they had lunch in the woods. The two young soldiers boiled potatoes in a pot that hung from a green pole, secured in notches on two upright saplings over the fire pit. From there, a trench about a foot deep branched out on each of its four sides. This new type of fire, as Sheila called it, was a real soldier's fire, where Philip had cooked his meals before he was visited by Nathalie and Janet, his good angels, as he referred to them.
With keen satisfaction the children watched Philip toast the sweet, nutty bacon for his guests, while Van showed the girls his way of making flapjacks, as he 287 tossed them so high in the air that a shrill, “Oh, you’ll lose it!” almost unnerved the would-be cook.
With excitement, the children watched Philip toast the sweet, nutty bacon for his guests while Van demonstrated his method of making flapjacks, as he 287 tossed them so high in the air that a sharp, “Oh, you’ll drop it!” almost rattled the aspiring cook.
But no such dire catastrophe happened, and soon they were all enjoying the brown cakes spread with maple sugar, and war-bread sandwiched with bacon between. After the edibles had been disposed of and the fire was banked, as Philip called it, for a later meal, Danny and Tony made a Pioneer Camp-fire, and around its glowing embers—for the wind was keen that cool August day up there on those craggy heights—they held a Liberty Cheer.
But no such terrible disaster happened, and soon they were all enjoying the brown cakes spread with maple sugar, and the war-bread filled with bacon. After they finished eating and Phillip had saved the fire for a later meal, Danny and Tony made a Pioneer Campfire, and around its glowing embers—for the wind was sharp that cool August day up on those rugged heights—they held a Liberty Cheer.
As they were about to cast lots as to who should tell the first story, Van, who never tired of listening to Philip’s experiences, begged him to tell the girls something of his life as a soldier fighting in France.
As they were getting ready to draw lots to decide who would tell the first story, Van, who never got tired of hearing about Philip's experiences, urged him to share some of his life as a soldier fighting in France with the girls.
CHAPTER XIX
“THE WHITE COMRADE”
Philip, who sat leaning against a tree, with his arm around Jean, softly stroked the lad’s dark head. Somehow he had shown more than the usual interest in the little refugee, undoubtedly drawn to him in recognition of the fact that he was also a victim of German barbarity, and because they both spoke the same language. Nathalie, with a thrill of joy, had noticed his tender, protecting watchfulness over the boy, and how Jean’s big eyes would gaze up at the young man with a gleam in their depths like that of some adoring dog, who yearns for the hand of his master in silent caress!
Philip, who was leaning against a tree with his arm around Jean, gently stroked the boy's dark hair. He had somehow shown more interest than usual in the little refugee, likely drawn to him because they were both victims of German brutality and shared the same language. Nathalie, filled with joy, noticed his gentle, protective attention over the boy, and how Jean's big eyes looked up at the young man with a shining admiration, like an adoring dog longing for his master's touch!
“There is not much to tell,” returned Philip after a pause, with the hesitancy of one who dislikes to talk about himself, “for you must know I am no hero.” He smiled at the girlish faces so eagerly watching him. Suddenly he sat bolt upright, unconsciously pushing Jean from him. “I am an American,” he exclaimed abruptly, “for my father came of good old New England stock, although I was born in the South. But my heart has been strangely stirred since I came over here, for the Americans are asleep,—they do not sense what 289 they are up against in this war of the nations.” His dark gray eyes flashed into flame. “Sometimes I feel I would like to be another Paul Revere, and ride like the wind, knocking on doors and windows, shouting to the slumberers, ‘The Huns are coming!’ They must be roused to the truth that this war is their war, and that they have not buckled to their job.”
“There’s not a lot to share,” Philip replied after a pause, sounding hesitant as someone who doesn't really like discussing himself. “You should know I’m no hero.” He smiled at the eager, youthful faces watching him. Suddenly, he sat up straight, unintentionally pushing Jean away. “I’m an American,” he declared suddenly, “because my father came from good old New England stock, even though I was born in the South. But ever since I got here, my heart has been strangely moved, because Americans are asleep—they don’t realize what they’re facing in this war between nations.” His dark gray eyes lit up with intensity. “Sometimes I feel like I want to be another Paul Revere, riding through the night, banging on doors and windows, shouting to the sleepers, ‘The Huns are coming!’ They must wake up to the fact that this war is their war, and that they haven’t stepped up to the challenge.”
He paused a moment, the fire dying out of his eyes as he continued, “I was feeling in unusually good spirits that summer of 1914, for I had just formed a partnership with a well-known architect, and business gave assurance of giving me a very comfortable income, and place me in a position to repay my mother, who had denied herself in order to put me through college.
He paused for a moment, the fire fading from his eyes as he continued, “I was feeling unusually good that summer of 1914, because I had just partnered with a well-known architect, and business promised to provide me with a very comfortable income, allowing me to repay my mother, who had sacrificed so much to put me through college.
“Into this mood of complacent satisfaction with myself and world in general, came a jar one day in June when the newspapers announced, in glaring headlines, the assassination of the Archduke Ferdinand. And, almost before we had digested its portent, came Austria’s ultimatum to little Serbia. People began to grow restive, alarm-fired, keyed to a tense state of expectancy that something was in the air, but—what? Then tongues were loosened and eyes flashed fire as the Prime Minister’s scathing denunciation of Germany’s ‘infamous proposal’ was bandied from mouth to mouth, followed by Great Britain’s ultimatum that Belgium’s neutrality must be respected.
“Into this mood of self-satisfaction with myself and the world, a shock hit one day in June when the newspapers blared, in bold headlines, the assassination of Archduke Ferdinand. And, almost before we had grasped its significance, came Austria’s ultimatum to tiny Serbia. People started to feel restless, anxious, tuned to a tense state of anticipation that something was about to happen, but—what? Then conversations heated up and eyes lit up as the Prime Minister’s sharp condemnation of Germany’s ‘infamous proposal’ was passed around, followed by Great Britain’s ultimatum that Belgium’s neutrality had to be upheld.”
290 “Then came hours of anxious suspense, a harrowing waiting-time, with every one’s heart aquiver, while a little group of men in Downing Street held their watches in their hands as they awaited Germany’s reply. It came. The deep-toned clang of Big Ben told to English hearts that the world’s decades of peace had been shattered, and that the Prussian barbarians had struck their first blow at civilization.
290 “Then came hours of anxiety, a tense waiting period, with everyone’s heart racing, while a small group of men in Downing Street anxiously checked their watches, waiting for Germany’s response. It arrived. The deep chime of Big Ben signaled to the people of England that decades of peace had been broken, and that the Prussian aggressors had dealt their first blow to civilization.
“From every corner and window now glared forth, ‘Your King and your Country need you.’ Those words seared my heart like fire, but no, I argued, I must make good with mother. But no matter how I tried to cajole myself, the words seemed to follow me around like an accusing finger. No, he wasn’t my king. I was an American by right of birth, but still they blazoned at me until I could see them with my eyes shut. They starred the darkness of night; why, even in my sleep they clutched me in a ghostly dream. The next day and for many days I saw them aflame on the pavement, they were written on the sky in white letters, but still I fought.
“From every corner and window now shouted, ‘Your King and your Country need you.’ Those words pierced my heart like fire, but no, I insisted, I needed to make things right with my mother. But no matter how hard I tried to convince myself, the words seemed to follow me around like a pointing finger. No, he wasn’t my king. I was an American by birthright, but still they blared at me until I could see them with my eyes closed. They lit up the darkness of night; even in my sleep they held me in a haunting dream. The next day and for many days after, I saw them glowing on the pavement, they were written in the sky in white letters, but still I resisted.
“When England’s young manhood sprang, as it were, from the earth, armed to the teeth, and marched shoulder to shoulder in regular beat,—it seemed like the pulsation of my own heart—as they swung along through the streets of London, my head swam, my throat tightened, and—But when I read of heroic little Belgium so nobly holding out against the ruthless 291 destroyer of justice and honor, I gave in and became one of Kitchener’s mob.
“When England's young men emerged, as if springing from the earth, fully armed, and marched in unison, it felt like the beat of my own heart. As they strode through the streets of London, I was overwhelmed, my throat tightened, and—But when I read about the brave little Belgium standing strong against the cruel destroyer of justice and honor, I surrendered and joined Kitchener's crowd.
“Those were not pleasant hours,” continued Philip, “waiting at the Horse Guard Parade to read when I must report at the regimental depot at Hounslow, for I felt I was a misfit, in with a lot of men that, to my inexperienced eyes, seemed the scum of England, and I sickened of my job.
“Those were not pleasant hours,” continued Philip, “waiting at the Horse Guard Parade to find out when I had to report at the regimental depot in Hounslow, because I felt out of place, surrounded by a bunch of guys who, to my inexperienced eyes, seemed like the dregs of England, and I grew tired of my job.
“But when the news continued to pour in that Liège had fallen, that the Germans had entered Brussels, that the British Expeditionary Forces were retreating, heroically fighting, that Namur, Louvain, and other towns were being ruthlessly seized and devastated by the enemy, and their hellish atrocities began to be rumored about, the past, together with all hopes and desires for the future, were wiped out as clean as a slate in a spirit of forgetfulness. I lived in the moment, buoyed by the grim determination to fight like hell to down the oppressor of men’s rights, to lose my life if need be, in order to give freedom to those who were to come after.
“But when the news kept coming in that Liège had fallen, that the Germans had entered Brussels, that the British Expeditionary Forces were retreating while fighting valiantly, that Namur, Louvain, and other towns were being ruthlessly taken and destroyed by the enemy, and that their horrific acts began to leak out, the past, along with all hopes and dreams for the future, was wiped clean like a slate in a moment of forgetfulness. I lived in the present, driven by a fierce determination to fight hard against the oppressor of people's rights, willing to sacrifice my life if necessary, to give freedom to those who would come after.”
“My spirits took a leap when I registered at the Hounslow Barracks as a Royal Fusileer, although I grinned humorously, for if I had felt like a misfit in London I was a guy now, appareled like a bloomin’ lay-figure in the cast-off rags of some old-clothes shop, and had sensed that I was only a steel rivet in a big machine. I was no duck either, taking to the drills 292 like water, for I would stand hopelessly bewildered at the sharp orders, ‘Form fours! One-one-two! Platoon! Form Fours!’ and similar commands, that were like kicks on a befuddled brain. But I gritted my teeth and stuck to my guns.
My spirits lifted when I signed up at the Hounslow Barracks as a Royal Fusileer, although I couldn’t help but smile wryly because if I felt out of place in London, I was definitely a fish out of water now, dressed like a mannequin in the cast-off clothes from a thrift shop, and I realized I was just a small part of a massive machine. I wasn't exactly a natural either, struggling with the drills like it was completely foreign to me; I would just stand there, utterly confused by the sharp commands like, ‘Form fours! One-one-two! Platoon! Form Fours!’ which felt like getting kicked in the head. But I gritted my teeth and held my ground.
“As soon as my rawness wore off and I began to get the hang of it, the martial spirit asserted itself. I began to be obsessed by the desire to show that I was the right stuff, that the heroism of my American ancestors, the spirit of ’76, was in me. Through all my intensive training I was feverishly eager to know every detail of company and battalion drill, musketry and target-practice, and all the daily grind of the other sundry factors in military discipline.
“As soon as I got past my initial awkwardness and started to understand everything, my fighting spirit kicked in. I became fixated on proving that I had what it takes, that the heroism of my American ancestors, the spirit of ’76, was within me. During all my intense training, I was eagerly determined to learn every detail about company and battalion drills, marksmanship, target practice, and all the daily routines that come with military discipline.”
“When I began to ‘matey’ my comrades, I soon understood why a Tommy Atkins is not like an American, who is born with a fine sense of personal independence, and who feels that he is as good as any Lord or Duke; or like a volatile Frenchman, with his easy grace of manner and buoyant spirit. I realized that although there may be a ‘Sentimental Tommy’ here and there, the average Tommy Atkins is a stolid chap, humdrum and prosaic, but with as kind a heart as any rookie in the world.
“When I started to bond with my comrades, I quickly realized why a Tommy Atkins is different from an American, who is raised with a strong sense of personal independence and believes he is as good as any Lord or Duke; or from a lively Frenchman, with his effortless charm and upbeat attitude. I understood that while there might be the occasional ‘Sentimental Tommy,’ the average Tommy Atkins is a solid guy, dull and practical, but with a heart as kind as any newcomer in the world.”
“As spring came along, after months of soldiering in many different quarters, which meant roughing it in leaky tents where cold, rain, and mud played a large part, and poor equipment a larger, we were no longer 293 raw rookies, parading or drilling before an unadmiring public,—a target for pretty girls’ laughter, or the ire of a berating sergeant,—for our battalion had acquired a high degree of efficiency.
“As spring arrived, after months of serving in various locations, which meant enduring leaks in our tents where we dealt with the cold, rain, and mud, along with inadequate gear, we were no longer 293 inexperienced newbies, marching or practicing before an indifferent crowd,—a target for the laughter of pretty girls or the anger of a shouting sergeant,—for our battalion had developed a strong level of efficiency.”
“Our arms were one with us, we had done with squad, platoon formation, and company drills, had shown our metal at the rifle-range at Aldershot, taken part in field maneuvers, bayonet charges, and mimic battles. We had become experts at trench-digging, bomb-throwing, and sniping, while the machine-gunners were quite up to the mark in that important weapon; in fact, we had become familiar with all branches of the army service.
“Our weapons were an extension of ourselves, we had finished with squad, platoon formations, and company drills, had proven our skills at the rifle range at Aldershot, participated in field maneuvers, bayonet charges, and simulated battles. We had become skilled at digging trenches, throwing bombs, and sniping, while the machine gunners were well-versed in that crucial weapon; in fact, we had gained knowledge of all branches of military service.
“Then when every man was ‘in the pink’ the marching orders came, and we assembled on the barrack-square at Aldershot. Not only were we physically fit, fine specimens of the trained soldier, but we were completely equipped, even to the identification tag, which registered your name, regimental number, regiment, and religion; besides, we carried the first-aid field dressing,—an antiseptic gauze pad and bandage, and a small bottle of iodine. Also, each soldier carried a copy of Lord Kitchener’s letter, as to what was expected of every British soldier. The words ‘Do your duty bravely. Fear God. Honor your King,’ meant much to me, although I was an American.
“Then when everyone was feeling great, the marching orders came, and we gathered on the barrack square at Aldershot. Not only were we in top shape, good examples of trained soldiers, but we were also fully equipped, right down to the ID tag that listed your name, regimental number, regiment, and religion; in addition, we carried the first-aid field dressing—a gauze pad and bandage, along with a small bottle of iodine. Each soldier also had a copy of Lord Kitchener’s letter outlining what was expected of every British soldier. The words ‘Do your duty bravely. Fear God. Honor your King,’ resonated with me, even though I was an American.”
“And then we were off, merry and blithe, no matter what our hearts registered, cheering like fiends when 294 some of the boys in khaki chalked the gun-carriages ‘at Berlin,’ a new challenge to each Tommy to do his stunt in making the Huns pay. Then came a drifting period when we were herded like cattle from one train to another, or made long, weary marches in the blind,—for nobody seemed to know our destination. But at last we were in the shadow of the great battle, down in the earth, in one sector of a long line of a serpentine trench, zigzagging from the sea to the Alps.
“And then we were off, happy and carefree, no matter what we really felt, cheering like crazy when 294 some of the guys in uniforms marked the gun-carriages ‘at Berlin,’ giving every soldier a new challenge to make the enemy pay. Then came a long stretch where we were herded like cattle from one train to another, or forced to take long, exhausting marches in the dark,—because no one seemed to know where we were heading. But finally, we found ourselves in the shadow of the big battle, underground, in one section of a long line of a winding trench, snaking from the sea to the Alps.
“This burrowing underground like a mole, digging trenches, or holes, in No Man’s Land, to string up barbed wire entanglements, or to pile sand-bags on the parapet, or to clean out the wreckage of a trench that had been battered by German gunners, or a trench-mortar—sometimes to gather up the pieces of some ‘matey’ whom you had chummed with,—all meant new activities. They were experiences and sounds—the sounds of hell—and sights that cut deep, with an impelling remembrance haunting you like grewsome shadows.
“This digging underground like a mole, creating trenches or holes in No Man’s Land to set up barbed wire barriers, stack sandbags on the wall, or clear out the debris from a trench that had been pounded by German gunners or mortars—sometimes gathering up the remains of a ‘buddy’ you had hung out with—all represented new tasks. They were experiences and sounds—the sounds of hell—and sights that left a deep mark, with a haunting memory that lingered like gruesome shadows.”
“Yes, it was a strange new life,” the young soldier paused musingly, “for this kind of fighting is no battlefield with glittering helmets and bayonets, the furling of colors, the prancing of horses, the roll of gun-carriages, but stinging eyelids and a choking in thick gray smoke, with the roar of cannonading, the sharp screech of shrapnel, the bursting of star-shells, or the whir of strange, queer monsters above your head.
“Yes, it was a strange new life,” the young soldier paused thoughtfully, “because this kind of fighting isn’t like a battlefield with shiny helmets and bayonets, flags waving, horses prancing, or the rumble of gun carriages, but instead it’s about stinging eyes and struggling to breathe in thick gray smoke, with the roar of cannons, the sharp screech of shrapnel, the explosion of star shells, or the sound of strange, bizarre machines flying overhead."
295 “There was the turning of night into day,”—Philip’s face had a weary expression,—“the daily mental strain, the danger constantly facing you, the learning to know the sounds of the different shells and in what direction they were going to fall. Involuntarily, with stilled breath, you waited, and then came the sinking of your heart when you sensed that it was your turn now, and then to find yourself still there, but to realize that some of your mates had ‘gone West.’
295 “There was the transition from night to day,”—Philip’s face looked tired,—“the everyday mental pressure, the constant danger looming over you, learning to recognize the sounds of the different shells and figuring out where they would land. Involuntarily, holding your breath, you waited, and then came the sinking feeling in your stomach when you sensed that it was your turn now, only to find yourself still there, but realizing that some of your buddies had ‘gone West.’
“And the gas. Oh, the horror of the great, greenish balls that came rolling towards you, close to the earth, the celerity of getting into your gas-masks, and the horrible thing that a comrade became if he failed to accomplish this job on time, and lay writhing in an ugly, venomous atmosphere of green.
“And the gas. Oh, the nightmare of the huge, greenish balls that came rolling toward you, low to the ground, the urgency of putting on your gas masks, and the terrible thing that a comrade turned into if he didn’t get it done in time, writhing in a nasty, toxic cloud of green.”
“Then there were the cooties, the parasites that feed on you, and with whom you maintain a constant warfare,” Philip smiled as he saw the girls squirm; “and the rats, as big as cats, with sharp, ferret-like eyes, darting from some dark crevice, or playing leap-frog over your legs at night, or mistaking your head for their nest. Ugh! But the dead-and-gone feeling—exhausted nature asserting her rights—which assailed you at some critical moment, perhaps when you were trying to be a man at your job, just got you through and through.
“Then there were the germs, the pests that feed on you, with whom you’re always at war,” Philip grinned as he watched the girls squirm; “and the rats, as big as cats, with sharp, ferret-like eyes, darting from some dark corner, or jumping over your legs at night, or even mistaking your head for their nest. Gross! But the overwhelming feeling of being completely drained—nature claiming her rights—hit you at some crucial moment, maybe when you were trying to man up at work, and it just cut you to the core.
“Ah, there was the first ‘over-the-top’ experience, when you stood on the fire-step with gun in hand, palefaced, 296 but with clenched teeth, in an oppressive silence, waiting to hear the command come down the line,—whispered from mouth to mouth. Then you leaped wildly over into long-anticipated perils, to become entangled in barbed wire, or perhaps to get your first shock, as the man next you dropped like lead at the first ‘ptt’ of a German sharpshooter’s bullet.
“Ah, there was the first ‘over-the-top’ experience, when you stood on the fire-step with your gun in hand, pale-faced, 296 but with clenched teeth, in a heavy silence, waiting to hear the command come down the line,—whispered from mouth to mouth. Then you jumped wildly into the long-anticipated dangers, only to get tangled in barbed wire, or maybe to experience your first shock as the guy next to you dropped like a stone at the first ‘ptt’ of a German sharpshooter’s bullet.
“But on you rush in a mad frenzy with red-misted eyes, in the face of a heavy artillery fire and a pitiless gale of shrapnel, through a dense smoke-screen, split with lurid flashes of flame, over a ground pitted with shell-holes—to stumble over some dead Tommy, whose glazed eyes stare up at you as if in mockery of your determination to play the man in this crusade for humanity.
“But you charge ahead in a wild frenzy with bloodshot eyes, facing heavy artillery fire and a relentless hail of shrapnel, through a thick smoke screen, illuminated by bright flashes of flames, across a ground filled with shell holes—only to trip over a dead soldier, whose vacant eyes stare back at you as if mocking your resolve to be brave in this fight for humanity.”
“Then my adventure came,—a raid on a German trench, an undertaking attended with great peril. With blackened faces, each man, with his bag of bombs and automatic, at the flicker of a white light crawled stealthily into the sable blackness of ‘dead man’s yard,’ and, in a downpour of drenching rain, crept on hands and knees, sometimes wiggling on his stomach,—quickly rolling into a shell-hole if a sound was heard,—until the German trench loomed menacingly only a few feet beyond.
“Then my adventure began—a raid on a German trench, a mission filled with great danger. With our faces smeared with black, each man, carrying his bag of bombs and his automatic, crawled quietly into the pitch-black ‘dead man’s yard’ when a white light flickered. In a heavy downpour, we moved on our hands and knees, sometimes wriggling on our stomachs—quickly rolling into a shell hole if we heard any noise—until the German trench appeared ominously just a few feet ahead.”
“Everything was deadly still. Then the signal came, and with a rush we clambered stealthily up and peeped over, to see a yellow-haired Heinie asleep in the 297 little alcove back of his gun-emplacement, the head of the sentry-on-post tipsily nodding on his chest, and two big fellows snoring like porpoises on the floor near. In just one minute we had slid into that trench and had our men with hands up. Sure it was a surprise-party for Fritz, for the Germans came running out of their dug-outs, wrapped in blankets, noisily demanding to know what was up. They soon knew, and then came a riot of a time as we let our hand-grenades fly, and our bayonets too, aided by a lively fire from our machine-guns. And then we were out, making a quick run for our own trenches with our trophies, and several of the surprised ones, with the German guns thundering in our rear.
“Everything was completely silent. Then the signal came, and we hurriedly climbed up and peeked over to see a blonde German soldier asleep in the little alcove behind his gun position, the sentry's head bobbing sleepily on his chest, and two big guys snoring like porpoises on the floor nearby. In just one minute, we slipped into that trench and had our men with their hands up. It was definitely a surprise party for Fritz, as the Germans came running out of their bunkers, wrapped in blankets, loudly demanding to know what was going on. They quickly figured it out, and then chaos erupted as we threw our hand grenades and used our bayonets, supported by our machine guns firing away. Then we dashed out, making a quick run for our own trenches with our spoils and several of the surprised ones, with the German guns booming behind us.”
“Yes, I had captured my first Hun, and mighty proud I was of my achievement, and pictured my delight-to-be when retailing my adventure to my comrades, when Zipp! and I was downed by the pieces of a bursting shell that got me in the hand and foot. And the prisoner? Oh, the dirty Boche saw his chance. I saw his hand go up,—he must have had a stiletto hidden somewhere,—but I was too quick for him for I let fly a hand-grenade, and—well, he bothered me no more.
“Yes, I had captured my first Hun, and I was really proud of my achievement, imagining my excitement when I shared the story with my friends. Just then, Zipp! I was hit by shrapnel from a shell that got me in the hand and foot. And the prisoner? Oh, that dirty Boche saw his opportunity. I saw his hand go up—he must have had a knife hidden somewhere—but I was quicker and threw a hand grenade, and—well, he didn't bother me again."
“For hours I crawled, or wiggled, along, dropping into a chalk-pit or a shell-hole every few moments, for it was like hell under that liquid fire, Fritzie’s aërial bombs and the machine-gun fire; in fact, it seemed as 298 if every kind of projectile had been let loose, for now the Germans were mad clean through. Finally, being too exhausted to make any further headway, I crept into a shell-hole, where I lay for a day and a night, lying on my face most of the time, playing dead, for the German fiends would sneak out into No Man’s Land at night after a bombardment, and kill every wounded enemy soldier they could find.
“For hours I crawled or wriggled along, dropping into a chalk pit or a shell hole every few moments, because it felt like hell under that liquid fire, Fritz's aerial bombs, and the machine-gun fire; in fact, it seemed as if every kind of projectile had been unleashed, since the Germans were completely mad. Finally, too exhausted to move any further, I crept into a shell hole, where I lay for a day and a night, mostly on my face, playing dead, because the German fiends would sneak out into No Man’s Land at night after a bombardment and kill every wounded enemy soldier they could find.
“What did I think about, you ask, Miss Nathalie, while lying in that shell-hole?” Philip smiled a little sadly. “Well, at first I was crazed with thirst and hunger, and the cold—oh, it was something fierce. And then the doubts and misgivings that had assailed me at times, as to whether there was a God in heaven, returned with renewed force. I dumbly felt that my faith was leaving me, for why this useless slaughter of men’s bodies, this agonizing devil’s gas, this torturing of the aged and weak, this violating of womanhood, this maiming of little, innocent children? Ah, the agony of body was nothing compared to the agony of my soul, as I lay in that hole.
“What was I thinking about, you ask, Miss Nathalie, while lying in that shell-hole?” Philip smiled a little sadly. “Well, at first, I was overwhelmed by thirst and hunger, and the cold—oh, it was something fierce. Then the doubts and uncertainties that had troubled me before, about whether there was a God in heaven, came back even stronger. I felt helplessly that my faith was slipping away because why this pointless slaughter of men, this agonizing poison gas, this tormenting of the elderly and weak, this violation of women, this maiming of innocent children? Ah, the suffering of my body was nothing compared to the suffering of my soul as I lay in that hole.
“Then that night—there was no moon, and everything was a dead calm, for a lull had come in fighting—I turned over, face upward, to ease the aching that racked my body. As I lie gazing up at the stars,—they seemed unusually bright,—something white suddenly flashed before me, and then I saw a face bend down and gaze at me. It was a marvelously beautiful 299 face, with such calm serenity of expression as the eyes smiled into mine, that a strange peace came into my soul, my pains were eased, I was filled with a wonderful joy, and—then I knew;—it was the face of the Great White Comrade,—the face of Christ!
“Then that night—there was no moon, and everything was completely still, as a lull had settled over the fighting—I turned over, facing up, to relieve the ache that was racking my body. As I lay there gazing up at the stars—they seemed unusually bright—something white suddenly flashed before me, and then I noticed a face bending down to look at me. It was a remarkably beautiful 299 face, with such a calm and serene expression as the eyes smiled into mine, that an unexpected peace washed over my soul, my pain subsided, and I was filled with an incredible joy, and—then I knew;—it was the face of the Great White Comrade,—the face of Christ!
“It may have been a delusion from overwrought nerves,—I may have been dreaming,—I don’t know, for there had been great talk among the soldiers of seeing the white apparition of Christ on the battlefield. He was said to have appeared to the soldiers, showed them His bleeding side and hands, and then the suffering ones had felt a wonderful peace come into their souls, and their very agonies had made them triumphant in the thought that as He had died to make men holy, so He had given them the great privilege of suffering and dying to make men free. No, I didn’t see any bleeding side, or the nail-prints on the hands, but I saw Christ’s face, and, oh, it was Heaven!
“It might have been a trick of my stressed-out mind—I could have been dreaming—I’m not sure, but there was a lot of talk among the soldiers about seeing the white figure of Christ on the battlefield. They said He appeared to them, showed His bleeding side and hands, and those who were suffering felt an incredible peace fill their souls. Their pain even turned into a triumph in the belief that just as He died to make people holy, He had given them the incredible honor of suffering and dying to make people free. No, I didn’t see any bleeding side or the nail marks on His hands, but I did see Christ’s face, and oh, it was heavenly!
“Then my brain cleared. I realized that I had been groping in a great darkness, but that a wonderful light had come, and I knew God was in His Heaven. That smile had brought revelation. It had told me that we were no better than Christ, and He had suffered,—He, an innocent soul. And as He had agonized on the cross, and God had suffered with Him, so every moan, sob, and cry had reached His ears in this great wail from humanity. It told me that this bruising of bodies, this rending of women’s hearts, this wringing 300 of men’s souls, had wrung His heart with a suffering greater than men could know.
“Then my mind cleared. I realized that I had been wandering in a deep darkness, but now a wonderful light had appeared, and I knew God was in His Heaven. That smile had brought insight. It had shown me that we were no better than Christ, and He had suffered—He, an innocent being. And just as He had endured agony on the cross, and God had suffered with Him, so every moan, sob, and cry had reached His ears in this great wail from humanity. It made me understand that this hurting of bodies, this tearing of women’s hearts, this anguish of men’s souls, had caused His heart to ache with a suffering deeper than humanity could ever know.
“It told me that it was all the working-out of God’s great plan for the good of mankind. It told me that the men, women, and children, who had passed through these seas of blood were to come forth with white garments, to be a great host led by the Angel of His Presence, and that their deeds were to live after them, to bring light into the dark places in men’s souls. It told me that these blood-soaked battlefields were to become gardens, where flowers would spring, the glorious flowers of freedom, and that every tear shed was to become great waters, to flow like a river of peace to all nations.”
“It told me that this was all part of God’s great plan for the good of humanity. It told me that the men, women, and children who had gone through these seas of blood would emerge in white garments, to form a vast assembly led by the Angel of His Presence, and that their actions would be remembered, bringing light to the dark corners of people’s souls. It told me that these blood-soaked battlefields would turn into gardens, where flowers would bloom, the beautiful flowers of freedom, and that every tear shed would turn into great waters, flowing like a river of peace to all nations.”
As Philip ceased speaking, the faces of his young listeners became very grave, and for a moment there was an impressive stillness, as if each one had been hushed to a reverent silence. “Well, after that, I was strangely happy,” continued the young man slowly. “I think I must have fallen asleep, for I was suddenly aroused by the cold snout of a dog nosing into my face. He was a little beast, not much bigger than Tige here,” softly stroking the refugee’s yellow dog as he spoke, at which Jean’s eyes grew soft and bright, for with the lad it was “Love me, love my dog.”
As Philip stopped talking, the faces of his young audience turned serious, and for a moment, there was a powerful silence, as if everyone had been quieted into a respectful hush. “Well, after that, I felt strangely happy,” the young man went on slowly. “I think I must have dozed off because I was suddenly woken up by a cold nose of a dog nudging my face. He was a little guy, not much bigger than Tige here,” gently petting the refugee’s yellow dog as he spoke, making Jean's eyes soften and shine, because for him it was always, “Love me, love my dog.”
“Yes, it was a Red Cross dog, whose beautiful eyes seemed almost human as they told me that help was near, and—” Philip stopped abruptly. He had had a 301 weary, tired look for some time, but now a sudden pallor overspread his face, and Janet, who had been watching him nervously, stepped quickly to his side, crying, “And now you must stop talking, Mr. de Brie, for you are overdoing.”
“Yes, it was a Red Cross dog, and its beautiful eyes looked almost human as they told me that help was near, and—” Philip stopped abruptly. He had had a 301 weary, tired look for a while, but now a sudden pallor spread across his face, and Janet, who had been watching him nervously, quickly stepped to his side, exclaiming, “And now you have to stop talking, Mr. de Brie, because you’re pushing it.”
Philip smiled into her blue eyes, but waved her aside as he cried, sitting up with sudden resolution, “But no, you must let me finish my story.”
Philip smiled into her blue eyes but waved her aside as he exclaimed, sitting up with newfound determination, “But no, you have to let me finish my story.”
“Oh, yes, do let him finish his story!” came a chorus of eager voices.
“Oh, yes, let him finish his story!” came a chorus of eager voices.
But at this moment Nathalie, whose face had suddenly brightened, cried, “Oh, no; let’s wait, for a big idea has suddenly come to me, and,” the girl’s eyes sparkled, “if it turns out all right it will add to our enjoyment if we wait to hear Mr. de Brie’s story some other time.”
But at that moment, Nathalie, whose face suddenly lit up, exclaimed, “Oh, no; let’s hold off, because a great idea just popped into my head, and,” her eyes sparkled, “if it goes well, it will make our experience even better if we wait to hear Mr. de Brie’s story another time.”
“A big idea,” cried Nita, all aquiver with curiosity. “Oh, Nathalie, do tell us what it is!”
“A big idea,” Nita exclaimed, buzzing with curiosity. “Oh, Nathalie, please tell us what it is!”
“No, not now,” answered the girl. “It will keep; but in the meantime let us have a story from Mr. Darrell. You know he promised to tell us about Lovewell, the Ranger, and now is his chance, and we are not going to let him off.”
“No, not now,” the girl replied. “It can wait; but in the meantime, let’s hear a story from Mr. Darrell. You know he promised to tell us about Lovewell, the Ranger, and now is his chance, and we’re not going to let him off the hook.”
CHAPTER XX
THE LIBERTY TEA
As Nathalie was ably seconded by the rest of the Liberty Cheerers, Van—he claimed he was a chump at story-telling—began the story of Lovewell, the Ranger, by saying that it was like one of the old Norse Sagas, for it had been told and retold by the mountaineer’s fireside for many generations.
As Nathalie was well-supported by the rest of the Liberty Cheerers, Van—who said he wasn’t great at telling stories—started the tale of Lovewell, the Ranger, by mentioning that it resembled one of the old Norse Sagas, since it had been shared and re-shared around the campfire for many generations.
“When the white settlers were being harassed in the early times by marauding bands from the neighboring tribe of Sokoki Indians,” said the young soldier, “John Lovewell, a hardy ranger, set out from the Indian village of Pigswacket, now Fryeburg, near North Conway, and made his way, with forty-five of his followers, to Ossipee. Here they built a fort, and his scouts having found Indian tracks, they pushed farther on to a lake by whose shores they encamped for the night. The following morning, while trailing an Indian in the woods, Paugas, an Indian chieftain, whose name was a terror to every white settler on the frontier, stole up behind the rangers, to their encampment, which unfortunately they had left unguarded, and counted their packs. Finding that they were only thirty-four in 303 number, the Indians placed themselves in ambush in the woods near, and when the rangers returned it was to be surrounded by the redmen, while the air was filled with their deadly fire and hideous warwhoops.
“When the white settlers faced harassment from raiding groups of the nearby Sokoki Indians,” said the young soldier, “John Lovewell, a tough ranger, set out from the Indian village of Pigswacket, which is now Fryeburg, near North Conway. He took forty-five followers with him to Ossipee. There, they built a fort, and after Lovewell's scouts discovered Indian tracks, they ventured further to a lake where they set up camp for the night. The next morning, while tracking an Indian through the woods, Paugas, an Indian chief whose name struck fear in the hearts of every white settler on the frontier, crept up behind the rangers at their camp, which they had unfortunately left unguarded, and counted their supplies. Realizing they were only thirty-four in number, the Indians set up an ambush in the nearby woods, and when the rangers returned, they found themselves surrounded by the warriors, as the air filled with gunfire and terrifying war cries.”
“Here, by this little lake, under the very shadow of Mount Kearsarge, fifty miles from any settlement, was fought one of the bloodiest battles in Indian warfare, as the loyal rangers fought for their lives. They finally compelled the Indians to flee, but not before Lovewell and many of his men had been killed. The survivors made their way back to the fort at Ossipee, only to find it empty, for the guard, on hearing that Lovewell and his band had been killed, had deserted it.
“Here, by this small lake, under the shadow of Mount Kearsarge, fifty miles from any settlement, one of the bloodiest battles in Indian warfare took place as the loyal rangers fought for their lives. They eventually forced the Indians to retreat, but not before Lovewell and many of his men were killed. The survivors made their way back to the fort at Ossipee, only to discover it was empty, as the guard, upon hearing that Lovewell and his band had been killed, had deserted it.”
“After many incredible hardships,” continued Van, “twenty emaciated men finally reached the white settlement, many of them only to fall dead from wounds, or from hunger and exhaustion. But, practically, Lovewell’s band had won a great victory, for Paugas had been killed, and the remainder of the tribe forsook their strongholds among the foothills, and the white settlers were molested no more.”
“After many incredible hardships,” continued Van, “twenty emaciated men finally reached the white settlement, many of them only to collapse from their wounds, or from hunger and exhaustion. But, in reality, Lovewell’s group had achieved a significant victory, for Paugas had been killed, and the rest of the tribe abandoned their strongholds in the foothills, and the white settlers were no longer troubled.”
Van also related how a ranger, the only remaining one of three brothers who had set forth with Lovewell, when one of his brothers fell dead at his feet from the wounds inflicted by the savages, had started for their village, only to find his other brother’s body riddled with bullets.
Van also told how a ranger, the last of three brothers who had gone out with Lovewell, saw one of his brothers die at his feet from wounds caused by the savages. He then started for their village, only to discover his other brother’s body filled with bullet holes.
“Determined to be revenged, he pursued the Indians 304 to the mountain fastnesses, where the defeated tribe, under the chief Chocorua, still lingered. He finally sighted the chieftain, who had ascended a high mountain to see if the white men had departed. As he started to descend he was confronted by the ranger, who, with his gun in hand, slowly forced the Indian back, step by step, until he stood on the verge of the precipice where he had been standing. As the chieftain saw that his end had come,—as he had no alternative between the precipitous cliff and the white man’s weapon,—with a cry of bitter defiance he leaped from the pinnacle, to be dashed to pieces on the rocks below. Hence the name, Chocorua Mountain.”
“Determined to get revenge, he tracked the Indians 304 to the secluded mountains, where the defeated tribe, led by Chief Chocorua, was still hanging on. He finally spotted the chieftain, who had climbed a tall mountain to check if the white men had left. As he started to come down, he was confronted by the ranger, who, with his gun in hand, slowly pushed the Indian back, step by step, until he stood at the edge of the cliff where he had been. Realizing that his end had come— with no choice between the steep ledge and the white man’s weapon—he let out a cry of desperate defiance and jumped from the peak, crashing onto the rocks below. That’s how Chocorua Mountain got its name.”
A mountain romance was now told by Janet, in the story of Nancy Stairs, a native of Jefferson, who had fallen in love, and become engaged to a farm-hand. On the eve of the wedding the girl’s lover disappeared, carrying with him a small sum of money, her dot. How Nancy set forth, to overtake him at a camp many miles away, walking at night through the dark woods, clambering over rocks and fording the Saco, finally to reach the place where he had encamped, to find it deserted, aroused the sympathies of all. “Finally,” continued Janet, “the girl sank exhausted on the banks of a brook, to be found some time later in the calm repose of a deathless sleep, almost buried under the snow, under a canopy of friendly evergreen that stretched above her.
A mountain romance was now shared by Janet, telling the story of Nancy Stairs, a local from Jefferson, who had fallen in love and gotten engaged to a farmhand. On the eve of the wedding, her fiancé vanished, taking with him a small amount of money, her dowry. How Nancy set out to catch up with him at a campsite many miles away, walking through the dark woods at night, climbing over rocks and fording the Saco, only to reach the campsite and find it empty, touched everyone's hearts. “Eventually,” Janet continued, “the girl collapsed exhausted by a brook and was later found in the peaceful embrace of an eternal sleep, nearly buried under the snow, sheltered by a canopy of friendly evergreens that spread above her.
305 “But Nancy had her revenge,” smiled the storyteller, “for when the farm-hand heard of her fate he lost his reason, and tradition tells us that, on the anniversary of her death, the mountain-passes through which she pushed, in her weary pursuit of her lover, resound to his cries of grief.”
305 “But Nancy got her revenge,” the storyteller smiled, “because when the farmhand found out what happened to her, he went insane. Legend has it that every year on the anniversary of her death, the mountain paths she traveled in her desperate search for her lover echo with his cries of sorrow.”
Nita’s contribution to the Liberty Cheer was a little tale of an Indian maiden, who was so beautiful that no hunter was found worthy of her. Suddenly she disappeared, and was never seen again, until one day an Indian chief, on returning from the chase, told how he had seen her disporting in the limpid waters of the river Ellis, with a youth as peerless as she. When the bathers saw the chieftain they had immediately vanished from sight, thus showing the girl’s parents that her companion must have been a mountain-spirit. From now on they would go into the wilds and call upon him for a moose, a deer, or whatever animal they chose, and lo! it would immediately appear, running towards them.
Nita’s contribution to the Liberty Cheer was a little story about an Indian maiden so beautiful that no hunter was deemed worthy of her. Out of nowhere, she vanished and was never seen again, until one day an Indian chief, returning from a hunt, shared how he had spotted her playing in the clear waters of the river Ellis with a youth as captivating as she was. When the bathers noticed the chief, they quickly disappeared from view, revealing to the girl’s parents that her companion must have been a mountain spirit. From that point on, they would venture into the wilderness and call upon him for a moose, a deer, or any animal they desired, and voila! It would instantly appear, running toward them.
Danny’s story was about some white settlers captured by the Indians on their way to Canada. When they came to the banks of a beautiful stream, one of the captives, a mother with several children, from a babe in arms to a girl of sixteen, gathered her little ones about her in dumb despair. She had toiled through trackless forests, forded swollen streams, climbed rocky heights, slept on the cold, bare earth, and 306 then, when she had refused to obey the commands of an Indian chieftain, from lack of strength, she had been goaded with blows, or the gory scalps of two of her children, which still hung from his belt, had been flourished menacingly before her eyes.
Danny's story was about some white settlers who were captured by the Indians while on their way to Canada. When they reached the banks of a beautiful stream, one of the captives, a mother with several children ranging from a baby in her arms to a sixteen-year-old girl, gathered her little ones around her in silent despair. She had struggled through dense forests, crossed swollen streams, climbed rocky heights, and slept on the cold, hard ground. Then, when she refused to follow the orders of an Indian chief due to exhaustion, she was prodded with blows, or those bloody scalps of two of her children, which still dangled from his belt, were waved threateningly in front of her. 306
As she stood on the banks of the river, feeling that her reason would forsake her from anguish, she suddenly heard one of the Indians ask her oldest daughter to sing. The girl stood speechless with amazement, not knowing what to do for a moment, and then there floated out through the vast solitudes of these lonely mountains a curiously fresh young voice, as the girl chanted the sublime words of the psalmist in the plaintive river-song.
As she stood by the river, feeling like she was losing her mind from the pain, she suddenly heard one of the Indians ask her oldest daughter to sing. The girl was speechless with surprise, unsure of what to do for a moment, and then a surprisingly fresh young voice floated out through the vast emptiness of the lonely mountains as she sang the beautiful words of the psalmist in the sorrowful river song.
There was a slight pause, and then Danny’s voice, sweet and clear, to the accompaniment of the soft strains of Tony’s violin, was heard as he chanted:
There was a brief pause, and then Danny's voice, sweet and clear, accompanied by the gentle sounds of Tony's violin, was heard as he sang:
“By the rivers of Babylon, there we sat down, yes, we wept,
when we remembered Zion.
“We hanged our harps upon the willows in the midst thereof.
“For there they that carried us away captive required of us a
song; and they that wasted us required of us mirth.”
“By the rivers of Babylon, we sat down and wept when we remembered Zion.
“We hung our harps on the willows there.
“For those who took us captive demanded a song from us, and those who destroyed us asked for joy.”
Tony’s hands lovingly fingered his bow, and the music, like the rippling flow of the river Ellis, continued its sweet low murmur, as the little newsie told how the magic charm of these beautiful words must have touched some chord in the savage breasts, for, as the girl ceased, the fiercest Indian caught the babe gently 307 from the mother’s arms and carried it across the river. One of his companions also softened, and, picking up another child, bore it safely over the stream.
Tony lovingly ran his fingers over his bow, and the music, like the gentle flow of the river Ellis, continued its sweet low murmur, as the little newsie explained how the magic of these beautiful words must have touched something deep in the hearts of the fiercest warriors. When the girl finished, the most fearsome Indian gently took the baby from the mother’s arms and carried it across the river. One of his companions also softened, and, picking up another child, safely brought it over the stream.
Nathalie chose the familiar Willey story, about the family who lived in an inn on the side of Mount Willey, at the entrance to the great Notch. “In 1826,” said the girl, “one evening in June they heard a queer, rumbling noise, and hurried out to see an avalanche of stones and uprooted trees making its way with great speed down the mountain. Fortunately, before it reached the house it swerved one side, and the Willeys, believing it quite safe, returned to the house, and, as time passed on, carelessly forgot the warning that had been given them.
Nathalie picked the well-known Willey story about the family living in an inn on the side of Mount Willey, right at the entrance to the great Notch. “In 1826,” the girl said, “one evening in June, they heard a strange rumbling sound and rushed outside to see a rush of stones and uprooted trees speeding down the mountain. Luckily, before it hit the house, it veered to one side, and the Willeys, thinking they were safe, went back inside. As time went by, they carelessly forgot the warning they had received.
“In August a severe storm occurred, which raged with indescribable fury for a day and a night, the rain falling in sheets, while the Saco overflowed its banks, thus creating a state of general upheaval. Two days later, a tourist traveling through the Notch arrived at the inn, to find it uninjured, but deserted, with the exception of a half-starved dog who was whining dismally. He made his way to Bartlett, and the mountaineers, hurrying to the scene, finally discovered the bodies of Mr. and Mrs. Willey and two hired men, who were buried in a mass of wreckage not far from the inn. The bodies of the children were never discovered.
“In August, a severe storm hit, raging with incredible intensity for a day and a night. The rain fell in sheets while the Saco River overflowed its banks, creating chaos everywhere. Two days later, a tourist passing through the Notch arrived at the inn, finding it intact but empty, except for a half-starved dog whining sadly. He made his way to Bartlett, and the locals quickly came to the scene, eventually uncovering the bodies of Mr. and Mrs. Willey and two hired men, who were buried in a pile of debris not far from the inn. The bodies of the children were never found.”
“It is supposed,” explained Nathalie, “that they had 308 all rushed out on again hearing the rumbling noises, and had evidently tried to seek the shelter of a cave near. But they were too late,” she ended with a pathetic sigh, “for the avalanche was upon them before they reached it. If they had only remained in the house they would have been saved.”
“It’s said,” Nathalie explained, “that they all rushed out when they heard the rumbling noises, and they clearly tried to find shelter in a nearby cave. But they were too late,” she finished with a sad sigh, “because the avalanche hit them before they could get there. If only they had stayed in the house, they would have been safe.”
A little later, as Philip and Van became engaged in a conversation about the war, a topic of which they never seemed to weary, Nathalie and Nita, with arms intertwined in long-cemented camaraderie, wandered to the high, jutting rock which Nathalie called “Heaven’s window.” Here in awed silence they gazed at the faraway, scintillating blue peaks, huge escarpments, and yawning mountain crevasses towering above the alpine meadow, that, rich in many shades of verdure, darkened with cloud-shadows, and cut with ribbon-like trails of forest foliage, were a
A little later, while Philip and Van were deep in conversation about the war, a topic they never seemed to tire of, Nathalie and Nita, with their arms linked in a long-standing camaraderie, strolled over to the high, jutting rock that Nathalie called “Heaven’s window.” In awed silence, they gazed at the distant, shimmering blue peaks, massive cliffs, and deep mountain crevices that loomed over the alpine meadow, which was rich in various shades of green, darkened by cloud shadows, and crisscrossed with ribbon-like trails of forest foliage.
“Wondrous woof of various greens.”
"Beautiful mix of various greens."
In the sun-dyed splendor it was like a cloth of gold, a wondrous tapestry woven by Nature in her most majestic mood, a picture that held them with the calm of its infinite beauty.
In the sun-kissed glory, it looked like a golden fabric, a stunning tapestry created by Nature at her most magnificent, a scene that captivated them with its endless beauty.
Suddenly Nita, who never was quiet very long, cried: “Oh, Nathalie, you must tell us what you meant when you said that you had a big idea. Don’t you remember, it was when Janet made Philip stop his story?”
Suddenly, Nita, who could never stay quiet for long, exclaimed, “Oh, Nathalie, you have to tell us what you meant when you said you had a big idea. Don’t you remember? It was when Janet made Philip stop his story?”
“I don’t know as it is a very big idea,” replied her 309 companion, “for its bigness depends, as Dick says, on whether we make a go of it or not. I spoke of it then, not only because I had just thought of it, but because I wanted to second Janet, for Philip was as white as a ghost.
“I’m not sure it’s such a big idea,” her companion replied, “because its importance, as Dick says, depends on whether we can make it work or not. I brought it up not just because I had just thought of it, but also because I wanted to support Janet, since Philip looked as pale as a ghost.”
“You know,” she continued slowly, “the afternoon teas at the Sweet Pea Tea-House have not been very well attended lately. I presume the minds of the people have been diverted by some new form of amusement. I’m awfully sorry, too, for I think my dear Sweet-Pea ladies need the money. Now what do you think of having Philip tell the rest of his story some afternoon at the Tea-House? We’ll get Jean to tell his story, too, and the boys can sing patriotic songs; and then, there’s Tony, with his violin. I think we can get up a real good entertainment, and we can call it a Liberty Tea.”
“You know,” she said slowly, “the afternoon teas at the Sweet Pea Tea-House haven’t been very popular lately. I guess people’s minds have been taken up with some new kind of entertainment. I feel really bad about it because I think my dear Sweet-Pea ladies need the money. What do you think about having Philip share the rest of his story one afternoon at the Tea-House? We can ask Jean to share his story too, and the boys can sing patriotic songs; and then there’s Tony with his violin. I think we can put together a really good event, and we can call it a Liberty Tea.”
“Oh, Nathalie, that’s a peach of an idea!” Nita’s blue eyes glowed enthusiastically.
“Oh, Nathalie, that’s an amazing idea!” Nita’s blue eyes sparkled with excitement.
“You see,” returned her friend, “it would attract the people to the Tea-House again, and also bring Philip into notice. I think his story would interest every one, and it might get him a few more pupils.”
“You see,” her friend replied, “it would draw people back to the Tea-House and also bring Philip into the spotlight. I believe his story would captivate everyone, and it might help him gain a few more students.”
As the little party wended their way down the trail, they were busy making plans and devising ways to make Nathalie’s “big idea” feasible. They had broached the subject to Philip,—Nathalie being careful not to make it appear as if he would gain by the 310 performance,—and he had readily consented to do his part. Janet, too, was won over, and as for the children, they were in a beatific state at the idea of appearing on a platform, and “speaking a piece,” as Sheila called it.
As the small group made their way down the trail, they were busy brainstorming and figuring out how to make Nathalie’s “big idea” work. They had brought it up to Philip—Nathalie being careful not to make it seem like he would benefit from the performance—and he had agreed to do his part without hesitation. Janet was on board as well, and as for the kids, they were overjoyed at the thought of being on stage and “speaking a piece,” as Sheila put it.
Miss Whipple, when the idea was suggested to her, Nathalie making it appear that Philip would derive great benefit from it, heartily favored the plan. So, for the next two days Nita and Nathalie were as busy as bees, drilling the children, making posters to feature the event at the different hotels, and then motoring to each one, and tacking them up, after getting the desired permission, so that the affair would be well advertised.
Miss Whipple, when the idea was brought up to her, with Nathalie making it sound like Philip would gain a lot from it, fully supported the plan. So, for the next two days, Nita and Nathalie were as busy as ever, training the kids, designing posters to promote the event at various hotels, and then driving to each one to hang them up after getting the necessary permission, ensuring the event was well advertised.
The boys and Van Darrell, with the help of some friends of Nita’s at the Sunset Hill House, the morning of the event decorated the Tea-House with greens, goldenrod, and flags. Sam assisted by erecting a small platform so gaudily festooned with red, blue, and white bunting that Nita said it was a regular “call to the colors,” as she stood off and surveyed his work. Chairs, rustic seats, in fact, everything that could be used for a seat was now brought into the room, while the veranda was not only decorated with bunting and Japanese lanterns, the posts being twined with the national colors in crêpe paper, but filled with small tea-tables and chairs.
The boys and Van Darrell, along with some friends of Nita’s from the Sunset Hill House, decorated the Tea-House with greenery, goldenrod, and flags on the morning of the event. Sam helped by setting up a small platform that was so elaborately covered with red, blue, and white bunting that Nita called it a real “call to the colors” as she stood back and admired his work. Chairs, rustic seats, and just about anything that could serve as a seat were brought into the room, while the veranda was decorated not only with bunting and Japanese lanterns, with the posts wrapped in crêpe paper in the national colors, but also filled with small tea tables and chairs.
At the hour designated for the performance to begin—to the girls’ delight, the room was crowded—Janet 311 began to play softly on the piano, suddenly breaking into “Hail Columbia,” then a patriotic march, following these selections with “The Royal March of Italy,” the “Lorraine March” and several other well-known favorites either of the Americans or the Allies, ending with France’s adored march, “Sambre et Meuse.”
At the time set for the performance to start—much to the girls' excitement, the room was packed—Janet 311 began to play softly on the piano, quickly transitioning into "Hail Columbia," then a patriotic march, followed by "The Royal March of Italy," the "Lorraine March," and several other popular tunes, either of the Americans or the Allies, wrapping up with France’s beloved march, "Sambre et Meuse."
The boys, in their khaki suits, each one carrying his gun, now marched before the audience. They were headed by Sheila, who, as a little Goddess of Liberty, acted as the color-bearer. As she stepped to one side of the stage and stood at attention, the boys saluted the flag and then repeated the oath of allegiance.
The boys, dressed in their khaki uniforms and each carrying a gun, marched in front of the audience. They were led by Sheila, who, like a little Goddess of Liberty, served as the color-bearer. As she moved to one side of the stage and stood at attention, the boys saluted the flag and then recited the oath of allegiance.
Sheila now fell in line, and they went through a manual-of-arms, and then, amid loud applause, broke into the “Red, White, and Blue.” This was followed by a number of patriotic airs, and the national anthem, when all rose to their feet and joined in the singing with patriotic fervor. After a short pause Danny started to whistle “La Marseillaise”—Janet playing the accompaniment on the piano very softly—as the children joined in, coming out with startling effect with the words:
Sheila fell into formation, and they performed a series of drills, and then, amidst loud applause, launched into the “Red, White, and Blue.” This was followed by several patriotic tunes and the national anthem, prompting everyone to stand and sing along with enthusiasm. After a brief pause, Danny began to whistle “La Marseillaise”—with Janet softly accompanying him on the piano—while the children chimed in, producing a striking effect with the lyrics:
“To arms! Ye warriors all!
Your bold battalions call!
March on, ye free!
Death shall be ours,
Or glorious victory!”
“To arms! All you warriors!
Your brave troops are calling!
March on, you free!
Death will be ours,
Or glorious victory!”
Van Darrell now appeared in front of the little platform—he had modestly refused to ascend it—and 312 introduced Mr. Philip de Brie as a British soldier, a member of “Kitchener’s mob,” known as the greatest volunteer army in the world. As Philip stepped forward in response to an enthusiastic ovation he bowed courteously, but with a certain diffidence of manner that showed that this was a more trying ordeal than being under fire at the front.
Van Darrell now stood in front of the small platform—he had humbly declined to step up—and 312 introduced Mr. Philip de Brie as a British soldier, a member of “Kitchener’s mob,” recognized as the greatest volunteer army in the world. As Philip stepped forward to an enthusiastic round of applause, he bowed respectfully, but with a hint of nervousness that indicated this was a more challenging experience than being in combat at the front.
The personal part of Philip’s story was quickly told,—how he came to join the army,—the audience cheering lustily when he claimed he was an American, while a tenseness seized them as he related his strange experience while lying in a shell-hole, and the revelation the apparition of the White Comrade had brought to him.
The personal part of Philip’s story was told quickly—how he joined the army—the audience cheering loudly when he said he was an American, while a tension took over as he shared his strange experience lying in a shell-hole, and the revelation that the appearance of the White Comrade had brought to him.
Their interest continued as he told how, in the British offensive south of the Somme, he and his company, with four machine-guns, had cleaned out a Prussian machine-gun nest that had been making havoc with their men. They peppered the enemy so severely, he asserted, while playing a crisscross game with their guns, that the only remaining German gunner was captured, surrounded by his dead comrades.
Their interest remained strong as he described how, during the British offensive south of the Somme, he and his unit, armed with four machine guns, took out a Prussian machine-gun position that had been wreaking havoc on their troops. He claimed they hit the enemy so hard, using a crisscross strategy with their guns, that the last surviving German gunner was captured, surrounded by his fallen comrades.
When their ammunition failed, and they attempted to return to their lines under a fierce artillery fire, with bursting shells and shrapnel flying around them, they were compelled to take refuge under a bridge, where they remained for four hours under a fierce gas attack. He was again cheered as he told how, in another attempt to regain the firing-line, a bomb exploded, killing 313 several of their men, and how, when their lieutenant was missed, noted for his bravery and daring, he started out to find him.
When their ammunition ran out, and they tried to make it back to their lines under heavy artillery fire, with shells bursting and shrapnel flying all around them, they had to take cover under a bridge, where they stayed for four hours during a severe gas attack. He was cheered again as he recounted how, in another effort to reach the firing line, a bomb went off, killing 313 several of their men, and how, when their lieutenant went missing—known for his bravery and daring—he set out to find him.
This recital was made graphic as he told of crawling on his stomach to dodge a bomb, or wiggling along to peer into shell-pits, and how, when a flare was thrown up by the enemy, illuminating the battlefield like some big electric show, he suddenly found himself, as it were, back to the wall,—for he had no ammunition,—desperately fighting a big, husky German who was fumbling in his pocket, evidently for a hand-grenade. Another cheer, and then almost a groan went through the room as Philip continued, and told how, as he tried to get him by the throat, he made a lunge at him and thrust his bayonet through his arm. The German finished off his work by knocking him on the head with his rifle, finally leading him, dazed and blinded, behind the German lines, a prisoner.
This recital was vividly brought to life as he described crawling on his stomach to avoid a bomb, or wriggling along to peek into shell holes. He explained how, when the enemy shot up a flare that lit up the battlefield like a massive electric show, he suddenly found himself with his back against the wall—because he had no ammo—desperately fighting a strong German soldier who was rummaging in his pocket, clearly looking for a hand grenade. Another cheer went up, followed by a groan as Philip went on to recount how, while trying to grab the German by the throat, he lunged and drove his bayonet into the man's arm. The German finished the fight by hitting him on the head with his rifle, eventually leading him, dazed and blind, behind enemy lines as a prisoner.
The neglect he received in the field and base hospital and the horrible treatment he was compelled to witness, as endured by the wounded prisoners, was received with a storm of hisses. How he was pronounced cured, although he had been rendered dumb, either from nerve-shock or the force of the blow on the head, and then taken to a German prison-camp, and crowded in with hundreds of men in a wooden shed, with a flooring of mud four inches thick, aroused renewed indignation. Here, with no blankets, no ventilation, 314 overcoat, or personal belongings, he slept on a straw tick, with insufficient food, and that of such a horrible quality that he grew emaciated and covered with boils.
The neglect he faced in the field and the base hospital, along with the awful treatment he had to watch the wounded prisoners endure, was met with a wave of hisses. He was declared cured, even though he had been left mute, either from nerve shock or from the blow to his head, and then taken to a German prison camp, packed in with hundreds of men in a wooden shed with muddy floors four inches thick, which sparked more outrage. There, with no blankets, no ventilation, 314 no overcoat or personal belongings, he slept on a straw mattress, with hardly any food, and the little he received was of such terrible quality that he became emaciated and covered in boils.
When some of the prisoners were transferred to another camp Philip told how he had the good luck to be one of them, and how, when the train was struck by a bursting bomb, crashing in the roof when going at a speed of thirty miles an hour, he, with two other prisoners, climbed up and jumped to the ground, one man being killed.
When some of the prisoners were moved to another camp, Philip shared how he was fortunate to be one of them. He recounted how, when the train was hit by a bomb that exploded on the roof while traveling at thirty miles per hour, he and two other prisoners managed to climb up and jump to the ground, although one man was killed.
This was the beginning of his race for life, in which he dodged guards and sentries, cut his way through barbed wire, and hid in a forest for three days, and, after many other thrilling adventures, finally came to a field within a few miles of the British lines.
This was the start of his fight for survival, where he evaded guards and sentries, sliced through barbed wire, and concealed himself in a forest for three days. After many other exciting escapades, he finally reached a field just a few miles from the British front lines.
“Here,” Philip continued, “as we lay concealed in a dugout under a bank, we heard a familiar whirr, and looked up to see an air-battle taking place between a French and Boche plane. With taut breath I watched the planes circle round and round in the air, while keeping up a steady fire at one another, until the French plane began to drive its enemy back and back, until they were directly over the British entrenchments. Then we heard the rat-tat-tat, and knew that one of the planes had been fired upon from below. Suddenly it burst into flames, lunged to one side, and then, in a long sweep through the air, began to circle downward like a great flash of fire, sending forth a shower of 315 sparks as it fell. And then I screamed from sheer joy, for I recognized that it was the Boche plane that had fallen. It is needless to say that my speech had returned.”
“Here,” Philip continued, “as we hid in a dugout under a bank, we heard a familiar whirr and looked up to see a dogfight between a French and a German plane. Holding my breath, I watched the planes circle around in the sky, firing at each other continuously, until the French plane started pushing the enemy back and back, right over the British trenches. Then we heard the rat-tat-tat and knew that one of the planes had been shot at from below. Suddenly, it burst into flames, veered to one side, and then, in a long arc through the air, began to spiral down like a huge flash of fire, scattering sparks as it fell. And then I screamed out of sheer joy, because I realized it was the German plane that had gone down. It goes without saying that I was able to speak again.”
After telling how they had regained the British lines, and how he had finally reached a hospital in London, where he remained for some weeks in a miserably depressed state of mind, on learning that his mother had died during his absence, Philip finished his story by telling how he came to sail for America. He told of his search for his grandmother, and how he came to live in the little cabin on the mountain. From the plaudits that greeted him, as he bowed and retired from the platform, it was evident that his story had been greatly enjoyed by his listeners.
After explaining how they had made it back to the British lines, and how he eventually got to a hospital in London where he spent several weeks feeling incredibly down after finding out that his mother had passed away while he was gone, Philip wrapped up his story by sharing how he ended up sailing to America. He talked about his quest to find his grandmother and how he came to live in the small cabin on the mountain. From the applause he received as he took a bow and left the stage, it was clear that his story had really resonated with the audience.
When Tony a moment or so later, in his old velveteen vest, with his violin under his arm, and his velvety black eyes aglow in a beatific smile, bobbed a funny little bow to his audience, he was warmly received. But a sudden hush succeeded as the little violinist, with his instrument tucked under his chubby chin, fingered the bow lovingly as he moved it over the strings, evoking such sweet, rich music that the violin seemed like some enchanted thing.
When Tony, a moment later, in his old velvet vest with his violin under his arm and his dark, bright eyes shining with a joyful smile, gave a quirky little bow to his audience, he was warmly welcomed. But a sudden silence followed as the little violinist, with his instrument cradled under his chubby chin, lovingly stroked the bow over the strings, producing such sweet, rich music that the violin felt like something magical.
Surely this little slum lad, with no training to guide him, of his own volition could not have produced such ravishing melody as floated through the room. As he played his face lost its smile, and there came a play of 316 expression, now tender and sad, now dreamy or grave, in accord with the varied moods of the music, as he played on and on with a passion, a rich tenderness, every note in tune, that seemed almost marvelous. When he ended with a vehement little shake of his head—that sent his waving hair flying about—in much the same manner that great musicians affect, it brought down the house in loud applause.
Surely this kid from the slums, with no training to guide him, couldn't have created such an enchanting melody on his own. As he played, his face lost its smile, and a mix of expressions crossed over it—sometimes tender and sad, other times dreamy or serious—matching the different moods of the music. He played with such passion and rich tenderness, every note perfectly in tune, that it seemed almost unbelievable. When he finished with an intense little shake of his head that sent his flowing hair flying around—just like great musicians do—it brought the house down with loud applause.
As an encore he played several Italian airs, weird, dreamy music, finally ending with “Traumerei,” Schumann’s “Dream Song.” No, he didn’t play it all, only snatches, and these were not always rendered according to the score, but he held his audience in a hushed stillness, until, with a little shake of his bow, and a low bow, he turned and ran quickly from the platform.
As an encore, he played several Italian tunes, strange, dreamy music, finally finishing with “Traumerei,” Schumann’s “Dream Song.” No, he didn’t play the whole piece, just bits and pieces, and these weren’t always played exactly as written, but he captivated his audience in a quiet stillness, until, with a little shake of his bow, and a slight bow, he turned and quickly left the stage.
Sheila hid her face in Nathalie’s skirt when her turn came to ascend the platform and speak her “liberty piece.” Nathalie was in the throes of despair, for fear that she was going to fail her, when Tony leaned forward and teasingly whispered, “Oh, Boy!” This reminiscent remark caused the little lady’s head to go up, and her chin, too, and in angry defiance she marched up on the platform. As Nathalie, who was sitting down in the front row of chairs, gave her the cue, her little treble was heard repeating James Whitcomb Riley’s poem “Liberty,” her voice ringing out loud and clear when she came to the stanza:
Sheila buried her face in Nathalie’s skirt when it was her turn to get on the platform and deliver her “liberty piece.” Nathalie was filled with dread, worried that she would let her down, when Tony leaned in and playfully whispered, “Oh, Boy!” This teasing comment made the little lady lift her head and chin, and in fierce defiance, she marched up to the platform. As Nathalie, sitting in the front row of chairs, gave her the cue, her small, bright voice was heard reciting James Whitcomb Riley’s poem “Liberty,” resonating loud and clear as she reached the stanza:
317
“Sing for the arms that fling
Their fetters in the dust
And lift their hands in higher trust,
Unto the one Great King;
Sing for the patriot home and land,
Sing for the country they have planned;
Sing that the world may understand
This is Freedom’s land!”
317
“Sing for the arms that throw
Their chains in the dust
And raise their hands in greater trust,
To the one Great King;
Sing for the homeland and land they love,
Sing for the nation they have envisioned;
Sing so the world can see
This is the land of Freedom!”
It was pathetic to see the little empty-sleeved Jean, as he straightened up his slender form, and, in an attempt at bravery, hurried on the platform. Without waiting for the accompanist,—forgetting to greet his audience in his fright,—he burst into the words of Belgium’s national anthem, “Brabanconne,” singing it with a verve and spirit,—as he stood, with his one hand nervously clinched in front of him and his eyes uplifted,—that showed that the soul of Belgium was not dead.
It was heartbreaking to see little Jean with his empty sleeve as he straightened his thin frame and, trying to be brave, rushed onto the stage. Without waiting for the pianist and forgetting to acknowledge the audience in his fear, he began to sing Belgium’s national anthem, “Brabanconne,” with energy and passion. Standing there with his one hand nervously clenched in front of him and his eyes raised, he showed that the spirit of Belgium was still alive.
This impassioned appeal from the boy as he ended, and stood in mute bewilderment, his eyes again haunted by that look of hopeless terror, aroused the audience to prolonged applause. Philip now stepped to his side, and, as he laid his hand reassuringly on the little shoulder, the refugee began his pitiful tale.
This heartfelt plea from the boy as he finished, standing in stunned confusion, his eyes once more filled with that look of hopeless fear, stirred the audience to give a long round of applause. Philip then moved to his side, and as he placed his hand comfortingly on the small shoulder, the refugee started to share his sorrowful story.
His arm had been cut off, he told, by a German soldier, who had made his mother cry, when he had rushed up and pounded him with his fists to make him desist. The soldier had dragged his mother away, and then he had been told that she had died. There was a quiver 318 to the lad’s voice as he related this sorrowful incident, but he winked his eyes together to keep back the tears.
His arm had been cut off, he said, by a German soldier, who had made his mother cry when he rushed up and pounded on him with his fists to make him stop. The soldier had dragged his mother away, and then he was told that she had died. There was a tremble in the boy's voice as he recounted this heartbreaking incident, but he squeezed his eyes shut to hold back the tears. 318
Two days later, with his aged grandparents, he had been driven to the town square, and there a soldier had shot his grandfather because the old man had rebuked him for dragging the boy’s grandmother roughly about. She had shrieked and fallen, to be trampled in the crush, for when they picked her up she was very white, and had never opened her eyes again. When all the women and children were herded together like cows, and driven along a road, with a big German soldier pointing his gun at them, Jean had suddenly run away, as fast as he could, and he had run and run with his eyes shut, for he was afraid of the bullets that came whistling on all sides of him.
Two days later, he was taken to the town square with his elderly grandparents, and there a soldier shot his grandfather because the old man had scolded him for roughly handling the boy’s grandmother. She had screamed and collapsed, only to be trampled in the chaos, and when they lifted her up, she was very pale and had never opened her eyes again. When all the women and children were rounded up like cattle and forced onto a road, with a large German soldier pointing his gun at them, Jean suddenly ran away as fast as he could, shutting his eyes tight, scared of the bullets whizzing all around him.
Finally he had fallen from exhaustion, and then he had crawled into the dark cellar of a shelled house. Here he had remained for a long time, going out at night to a battlefield near and taking what food he could find from the knapsacks of the dead soldiers. At last he could find no more food, and then he had wandered on, walking wearily along for miles and miles, until he had become part of those fleeing throngs of refugees that blocked the roads for many long miles, sleeping on the roadside at night. Sometimes he would have a little bread, or a piece of cheese given to him, and then for days he went hungry. Finally he reached a town, where a lady with a red cross on her 319 white cap had cared for him in a hospital. But the Germans shelled the hospital, and they said the lady was killed, and then— Well, he had gone on again, walking at night, alone, from place to place, when no one could see him, while hiding in the woods by day.
Finally, he had collapsed from exhaustion and crawled into the dark cellar of a bombed house. He stayed there for a long time, going out at night to a nearby battlefield, taking whatever food he could find from the knapsacks of dead soldiers. Eventually, he couldn’t find any more food and wandered on, walking wearily for miles and miles until he became part of the fleeing crowds of refugees that blocked the roads for many long miles, sleeping on the roadside at night. Sometimes, someone would give him a little bread or a piece of cheese, but then he would go days without food. Finally, he reached a town, where a lady with a red cross on her white cap took care of him in a hospital. But the Germans shelled the hospital, and they said the lady was killed, and then—he moved on again, walking at night, alone, from place to place when no one could see him, hiding in the woods during the day.
On learning that he was not far from the French army, he had struggled on until he was within a short distance of their lines, where he hid in a forest. When a dark still night came, he stealthily crept into No Man’s Land, and, on his hands and knees, worked his way from hole to hole, quickly wiggling into one if he heard the slightest sound, until he reached the French sentry, who pointed his gun at him and told him to halt.
On discovering that he was close to the French army, he pushed on until he was just a short distance from their lines, where he took cover in a forest. When a dark, quiet night arrived, he quietly crawled into No Man’s Land, moving from hole to hole on his hands and knees, quickly slipping into one if he heard the slightest noise, until he reached the French sentry, who pointed his gun at him and ordered him to stop.
He was so frightened when he saw that gun aimed at him that he burst into tears, but a moment later attempted to sing “La Marseillaise,” so as to let the soldier know that he was not a German. The soldier took him behind the front, where a regiment of artillery not only fed and cared for him, but adopted him as their “kid mascot,” as Philip interpreted it, when it was learned that his father, who was fighting in the Belgian army, had been captured and carried a prisoner to Germany. When the regiment had left for service at the front he was delivered into the hands of Father Belloy, a French priest, who finally gave him to a kind lady, who had brought him, with a number of other children, to America. As the little lad finished 320 his story, he turned to rush from the stage, and then, as if inspired by a sudden thought, he threw up his one hand and lustily cried, “Vive la Belgique!”
He was so scared when he saw that gun aimed at him that he burst into tears, but a moment later, he tried to sing “La Marseillaise” to show the soldier that he wasn't German. The soldier took him behind the front lines, where an artillery regiment not only fed and cared for him but also took him in as their “kid mascot,” as Philip understood it, when they learned that his father, who was fighting in the Belgian army, had been captured and taken prisoner in Germany. When the regiment left for service at the front, he was handed over to Father Belloy, a French priest, who eventually gave him to a kind lady, who had brought him, along with a number of other children, to America. As the little boy finished his story, he turned to rush off the stage, and then, as if struck by a sudden thought, he raised his hand and shouted, “Vive la Belgique!”
A second more and the audience, caught by the contagion of this cry, and the appeal to their sympathies by the Belgian’s story, broke into enthusiastic clapping and cheering, mingled with loud hurrahs for Belgium. It was at this point that a guest from the Sunset Hill House jumped to his feet, and proposed that a silver collection be taken up, to be divided between the American-British soldier, the little Sons of Liberty, and the ladies of the Tea-House, who had so kindly given it for the entertainment of the guests.
A moment later, the audience, swept up in the excitement of the shout and moved by the Belgian's story, erupted into enthusiastic applause and cheers, mixed with loud shouts for Belgium. At that moment, a guest from Sunset Hill House jumped up and suggested that a silver collection be taken to support the American-British soldiers, the little Sons of Liberty, and the ladies of the Tea House, who had so generously provided it for the guests' entertainment.
This suggestion was heartily seconded, and while Van and the gentleman were passing the hat, into which flowed a goodly collection of silver coins, the little Sons of Liberty appeared, and, as a finish to the entertainment, gave them a sing-song. The old, sweet songs, the songs that lie very near to the heart of every Anglo-Saxon, were sung by these clear childish voices, Danny either singing or whistling, while Tony accompanied them on his violin, with Janet, Nathalie, and Nita,—even the audience at times,—proving good seconds in this musical song-feast. “Annie Laurie,” “The Blue Bells of Scotland,” “Wearing of the Green,” “My Bonnie Lies Over the Ocean,” “Mother Machree,” “Dixie,” were given, followed by the new war-songs, as, “Keep the Home Fires Burning,” 321 “Pack up Your Troubles in Your Old Kit Bag,” “There’s a Long, Long Trail,” “Over There,” and, as a grand finale, “The Star-Spangled Banner,” when the audience rose and joined in with patriotic fervor.
This suggestion was enthusiastically supported, and while Van and the gentleman were passing around a hat that collected a nice amount of silver coins, the little Sons of Liberty showed up and wrapped up the entertainment with a sing-along. The old, beloved songs that hold a special place in the hearts of all Anglo-Saxons were sung by these clear, youthful voices, with Danny either singing or whistling, while Tony played along on his violin. Janet, Nathalie, and Nita, along with the audience at times, joined in to make for a delightful musical gathering. They performed “Annie Laurie,” “The Blue Bells of Scotland,” “Wearing of the Green,” “My Bonnie Lies Over the Ocean,” “Mother Machree,” and “Dixie,” followed by the newer war songs like “Keep the Home Fires Burning,” 321 “Pack up Your Troubles in Your Old Kit Bag,” “There’s a Long, Long Trail,” “Over There,” and as a grand finale, “The Star-Spangled Banner,” when the audience stood up and joined in with enthusiasm.
And then Miss Mona, Janet, Nathalie, Nita, the two soldiers, and even the little “Sons of Liberty” were all busy serving tea, out on the veranda, to the many guests, who all declared that they had not only enjoyed Philip’s and Jean’s stories, but the children’s singing.
And then Miss Mona, Janet, Nathalie, Nita, the two soldiers, and even the little “Sons of Liberty” were all busy serving tea on the veranda to the many guests, who all said that they not only enjoyed Philip’s and Jean’s stories but also the children’s singing.
Two days later, Nathalie was darning her boys’ socks on the veranda, when Nita drove up in her car. She was so excited that she began to shout that she had good news to tell, as soon as she caught sight of Nathalie’s brown head.
Two days later, Nathalie was mending her sons' socks on the porch when Nita pulled up in her car. She was so excited that she started shouting she had good news to share as soon as she saw Nathalie's brown hair.
“Oh, Nathalie,” she continued, all out of breath, as her friend hurried to meet her, “what do you think? The manager up at the Sunset Hill House,—you know he is a dear—has asked Mr. de Brie and the whole crowd who took part at the Liberty Tea, to come to the hotel next Saturday night and repeat the performance. And he says there will be another silver collection. And, oh, isn’t it just the dandiest thing that lots of the girls want to join the French class!” And then the young lady, in the exuberance of her joy, fell upon the neck of her friend and began to kiss her with hearty unction.
“Oh, Nathalie,” she said, breathless, as her friend rushed to meet her. “What do you think? The manager at Sunset Hill House—he's such a sweetheart—has invited Mr. de Brie and everyone who participated in the Liberty Tea to come to the hotel next Saturday night and do it again. And he mentioned there will be another silver collection. And, oh, isn’t it just fantastic that so many of the girls want to join the French class!” Then, overwhelmed with joy, the young woman threw her arms around her friend and started kissing her affectionately.
CHAPTER XXI
THE FUNNIES
Nathalie, with a limpid brightness in her eyes, and a deep pink in her cheeks, was whirling about—doing a one-step—with her soldier friend, Van Darrell, who she had discovered was “a love of a dancer.” It was the night of the second Liberty Tea, this time held at the Sunset Hill House. The affair had not only proved a glorious success, each one of the performers doing his or her part even better than at the Tea-House, but it had also netted quite a pile of silver coins, to the delight of the children, and added several new pupils to Philip’s French class at the hotel, besides giving him a few private ones.
Nathalie, with a clear sparkle in her eyes and a rosy flush on her cheeks, was spinning around—doing a one-step—with her soldier friend, Van Darrell, whom she had found to be “a fantastic dancer.” It was the night of the second Liberty Tea, this time held at the Sunset Hill House. The event had not only turned out to be a wonderful success, with each performer doing even better than at the Tea-House, but it had also brought in a good amount of money, much to the delight of the children, and added several new students to Philip’s French class at the hotel, along with giving him a few private lessons.
The informal little hop at the end of the performance contributed to the pleasure of the evening, proving a real joy-time to Nathalie, who loved dancing. The girl had laughingly asserted to Nita that she had fairly worn her slippers to a thread.
The casual little hop at the end of the show added to the enjoyment of the night, bringing genuine happiness to Nathalie, who loved to dance. The girl had playfully told Nita that she had almost worn her slippers down to nothing.
Compelled from sheer fatigue to rest, the young couple, in order to escape from the heat of the ballroom, had sought refuge in one of the little card-rooms opening from the long corridor. It was here, as they happily chatted, that Van suddenly made the announcement, 323 somewhat regretfully, “Do you know, Miss Blue Robin, that this is my last evening with you and the mountains, for I leave for Camp Mills to-morrow morning?”
Exhausted and needing a break, the young couple, trying to get away from the heat of the ballroom, found a small card room off the long hallway. As they chatted happily, Van suddenly said, somewhat regretfully, “You know, Miss Blue Robin, this is my last night with you and the mountains because I’m leaving for Camp Mills tomorrow morning.”
“Oh, I’m so sorry,” exclaimed the girl with a note of disappointment in her voice, for she was disappointed as well as surprised, for, somehow, she had taken a liking to this soldier-boy, with the frank, open gaze, who could be very merry at times, and then again unusually silent and grave. “We shall miss you at our Liberty Cheers, and Mr. de Brie, I know, will be lonely without his soldier ‘matey.’”
“Oh, I’m really sorry,” the girl said, her voice tinged with disappointment, because she felt both disappointed and surprised; somehow, she had developed a fondness for this soldier-boy with the honest, open gaze, who could be cheerful at times but also unusually quiet and serious. “We’re going to miss you at our Liberty Cheers, and I know Mr. de Brie will be feeling lonely without his soldier ‘buddy.’”
“I shall miss you all,” rejoined Van slowly, “for you girls have given me the joy-time of the summer, and I shall be sorry to say good-by to you all, especially you.” Van looked appealingly into the girl’s brown eyes, as if he wanted her to assure him that she would miss him.
“I’m really going to miss all of you,” Van said slowly, “because you girls have given me the best time this summer, and I’m going to be sad to say goodbye, especially to you.” Van looked into the girl’s brown eyes, hoping she would reassure him that she would miss him too.
Nathalie flushed a little, as she replied, “Well, it has been a great pleasure to meet you. I can assure you, however, that I never thought of meeting one of Uncle Sam’s soldiers when I came up here to these White Hills.”
Nathalie blushed slightly as she replied, “Well, it’s been a real pleasure to meet you. I can honestly say I never expected to meet one of Uncle Sam’s soldiers when I came up here to these White Hills.”
“I would like to tell you,” continued Van,—he gave his companion an odd look as he spoke,—“that I know a girl by the name of Blue Robin. She’s an awfully good sort,—” again that funny little gleam in his eyes. “I had a letter from her a short time ago. It was the 324 kind of a letter to set a fellow thinking. I would like to show it to you sometime,” he added hesitatingly.
“I want to tell you,” Van continued—he gave his companion a strange look as he spoke—“that I know a girl named Blue Robin. She’s really a great person—” again that funny little gleam in his eyes. “I got a letter from her not too long ago. It was the kind of letter that makes a guy think. I’d like to show it to you sometime,” he added hesitantly.
“Why, isn’t that funny! Are you sure her name is like mine?” questioned Nathalie in a whirl of amazement. Van nodded and smiled with some amusement, as he assured Nathalie that he was quite positive her name was Blue Robin. But, as the girl continued to ply him with questions about this girl who, he insisted, bore her name, his answers grew evasive, until finally Nathalie desisted from her questions, in a maze of mystery.
“Wow, that’s funny! Are you really sure her name is the same as mine?” Nathalie asked, totally amazed. Van nodded and smiled a bit, reassuring her that he was definitely certain her name was Blue Robin. However, as she kept bombarding him with questions about this girl who he claimed had her name, he started to give vague answers, and eventually, Nathalie stopped asking, feeling confused by the whole thing.
Presently they were in the ballroom again, and while taking another turn Van asked his partner if she would answer his letter if he wrote to her. Nathalie grew red with embarrassment at this direct question, for, as she had been whirling about, it had suddenly occurred to her what a queer thing it was for Van to say he would show her another girl’s letter.
Presently, they were back in the ballroom, and while they were dancing again, Van asked his partner if she would reply to his letter if he wrote to her. Nathalie blushed with embarrassment at this straightforward question, because, as they danced, it suddenly hit her how odd it was for Van to say he would show her another girl's letter.
Somehow the thought jarred her serenity, and, not knowing what reply to make, she finally settled the doubt in her mind by saying that if he wrote to her she would answer him if her mother thought best. For, happily, Nathalie was a real mother-girl, and, when in doubt about anything, always went to her for advice.
Somehow, the thought disrupted her calm, and not knowing how to respond, she finally resolved the uncertainty by saying that if he wrote to her, she would reply if her mother thought it was a good idea. Fortunately, Nathalie was a true mother’s girl, and whenever she had doubts about anything, she always turned to her for advice.
On the way home—Mrs. Van Vorst had sent them in her car—she had a disappointed feeling. She wished Van had not asked her to write to him, or told her about that other Blue Robin, for—O 325 dear! she had heard of boys who would coax a girl to write to them, and then show their letters and make a boast of them. Ah, well, she sighed regretfully, she had not supposed he was that kind.
On the way home—Mrs. Van Vorst had sent them in her car—she felt disappointed. She wished Van hadn’t asked her to write to him or mentioned that other Blue Robin because—oh dear!—she had heard of boys who would persuade a girl to write to them and then show off her letters. Ah, well, she sighed sadly, she hadn’t thought he was that type.
A few days later Nathalie was sitting under the trees before a small sewing-table, writing a letter to Helen. Presently she laid down her pen, and glanced over at her mother, who, while resting in the hammock near, had fallen asleep. Then, so as not to awaken her, almost in a whisper, she read:
A few days later, Nathalie was sitting under the trees at a small sewing table, writing a letter to Helen. After a while, she put down her pen and looked over at her mother, who was resting in the hammock nearby and had fallen asleep. To avoid waking her, Nathalie quietly began to read:
“Dear Helen:
"Dear Helen:"
“I am going to call this letter ‘The Funnies,’ for I have some awfully funny things I want you to know, but first, I must tell you about my liberty kids, as I have promised to do many times. Danny is fourteen, a regular street-gamin, steeped and double-dyed in the ways of the slums and the habits of a newsie. There is an alert sharpness about him at times that baffles me, and yet his freckled, peanut face, with its twinkling blue eyes, has an open, merry expression that assures me he has the makings of a splendid man in him. I call him my handy man, for he not only does all the laundering for the children, but can cook, and wait on the table in fine style.
“I’m going to call this letter ‘The Funnies’ because I have some really funny things I want you to know. But first, I need to tell you about my liberty kids, as I’ve promised many times before. Danny is fourteen, a true street kid, fully immersed in the ways of the slums and the habits of a newsboy. There’s a sharp-alertness about him at times that surprises me, and yet his freckled, peanut-shaped face, with its twinkling blue eyes, has a cheerful, open expression that makes me confident he has the potential to become an amazing man. I call him my handy man because he not only does all the laundry for the kids, but he can also cook and serve at the table like a pro.”
“He is a loyal little chap, so watchful of Sheila, and always tells the truth. He used to belong to the Junior Police Force,—he’s awfully proud of that,—and I think that has kept him on the square. I have an idea that his parents must have been refined people, for, when cleaning his room one day, his bag flew open—it was standing in a corner—and a little blue book fell out, scattering a lot of letters about, and a picture. 326 The picture was a miniature of a young woman. She had a lovely face, it reminded me of Sheila, and her eyes had the same laughing glints in them that Danny has in his. The blue book seemed to be a diary, for on it in gilt letters was the name, Sheila Gloom.
“He's a loyal little guy, really attentive to Sheila, and he always tells the truth. He used to be part of the Junior Police Force, and he's super proud of that, which I think has helped him stay straight. I have a feeling his parents must have been refined people because, while cleaning his room one day, his bag flew open—it was in a corner—and a little blue book fell out, scattering a bunch of letters and a picture. 326 The picture was a small portrait of a young woman. She had a beautiful face that reminded me of Sheila, and her eyes had the same playful sparkle that Danny has. The blue book looked like a diary, as it had the name Sheila Gloom in gold letters on it.
“I have told you how quaint and interesting Sheila is, and lots about Jean, so I am going to tell you about Tony. He reminds me of one of Raphael’s cherubs, with his soft, liquid brown eyes, his red lips and ivory-tinted skin, and his wavy black hair that is always in a frowse. He adores me, and has an odd, sweet little trick of taking my hand, and then bending down and kissing it, in such a gallant way that he makes me think of the knights of mediæval days, who knelt to their ladies fair. And I love to hear him say, ‘I lova you, Mees Natta,’ for his voice is so soft and musical. But alas, he is not as open as Danny, and will tell teeny, teeny white lies, while looking right up into your face with such a cherubic, innocent expression, that you have the feeling that you are the guilty one, and not he.
“I’ve told you how charming and interesting Sheila is, and a lot about Jean, so now I’m going to tell you about Tony. He reminds me of one of Raphael’s cherubs, with his soft, liquid brown eyes, red lips, and ivory-tinted skin, along with his wavy black hair that’s always a bit messy. He adores me and has this odd, sweet little trick of taking my hand and then bending down to kiss it in such a gallant way that he makes me think of the knights from medieval times, who would kneel before their fair ladies. And I love hearing him say, ‘I lova you, Mees Natta,’ because his voice is so soft and musical. But unfortunately, he’s not as straightforward as Danny and will tell teeny, teeny white lies, looking right up into your face with such a cherubic, innocent expression that you end up feeling like you’re the one in the wrong, not him.”
“Did I tell you in my last letter what good friends the little old lady in the red house and I have become? I run in there quite often. Sometimes I read to her, or hold her yarn, and for two days I nursed her when she was ill. I am a great chatterbox, for, O dear! I just talk about everything to her, but she says my chats cheer her up. But, you see, she keeps asking me questions, first about one person of our household, and then another. She loves to have me tell her about Janet, but she doesn’t seem to like Cynthia very much.
“Did I mention in my last letter what good friends the little old lady in the red house and I have become? I visit her pretty often. Sometimes I read to her or help her with her yarn, and I took care of her for two days when she was sick. I can’t help but talk a lot, because oh dear! I just share everything with her, but she says my chatting makes her feel better. But, you know, she keeps asking me questions, first about one person in our household, then another. She really enjoys hearing about Janet, but it seems she doesn’t like Cynthia very much.”
“I am getting used to her queer ways now, and can tell, by the gleam in her gray eyes,—sometimes they snap with humor,—the mood she is in, for, frankly speaking, at times she is most cantankerous. I feel sorry for her then, for I imagine that some great 327 sorrow has come into her life and soured the sweetness of it. She is always greatly interested in Mr. de Brie, and I have promised to take him in sometime to see her.
“I’m getting used to her peculiar ways now, and I can tell, by the sparkle in her gray eyes—sometimes they shine with humor—what mood she’s in, because, honestly, at times she can be really grumpy. I feel sorry for her then, because I think some deep sorrow has entered her life and tainted its sweetness. She is always very interested in Mr. de Brie, and I’ve promised to bring him in to see her sometime.”
“Oh, I must not forget to tell you that Dick is with us for a few days—on a furlough. And mother,—well, she goes about like a glorified saint. Now come the funnies. Cynthia Loretto’s young man is here. His name is Buddie, but he looks anything but a bud, although Cyn always speaks of him as if he had just gone into long trousers.
“Oh, I must not forget to tell you that Dick is with us for a few days—on leave. And mom,—well, she goes around like a glorified saint. Now here comes the funny part. Cynthia Loretto’s boyfriend is here. His name is Buddie, but he looks anything but a bud, even though Cyn always talks about him like he just graduated to long pants.”
“He is queerly interesting, for he sits and looks at Cynthia in a meek, adoring way, while his big solemn blue eyes keep up a blinking that have made the kiddies—you know boys always feature peculiarities—dub him, ‘The Blink.’ As to other details, he’s insignificant-looking, with a shock of yellow hair that gives him an unkempt, Hunnish appearance, and a sharp, ferret-like nose with an inquisitive tip on it that is sunburned to a bright red. Imagine!
“He is strangely interesting because he sits and gazes at Cynthia in a shy, admiring way, while his big solemn blue eyes blink continuously, which has led the kids—you know how boys always notice oddities—to nickname him ‘The Blink.’ As for other details, he looks quite average, with a mess of yellow hair that gives him a disheveled, barbaric look, and a sharp, ferret-like nose with a curious tip that is sunburned bright red. Can you imagine?”
“Now for funny number one. The Blink—we all unconsciously call him that—and the make-believe lady—that’s the boys’ name for Cynthia—have monopolized the hammock on the veranda ever since the gentleman’s arrival. It has been annoying, for they—Well, they spoon, and it gets on one’s nerves, and after a while these lovers are the star performers on the stage.
“Now for the first funny thing. The Blink—we all unknowingly call him that—and the imaginary lady—that’s what the boys call Cynthia—have taken over the hammock on the porch ever since the guy showed up. It's been irritating because they—well, they cuddle, and it gets on your nerves, and after a while, these lovebirds are the main act on the stage.
“The other morning I caught Danny and Tony fooling with the hammock. They said they were fixing it so it wouldn’t slip down. That evening every one had disappeared but your lonesome and the lovers, who were in the hammock with arms intertwined, with the usual turtle-dove cooing.
“The other morning, I caught Danny and Tony messing with the hammock. They said they were fixing it so it wouldn’t fall down. That evening, everyone had vanished except for you and the couple, who were in the hammock with their arms wrapped around each other, making the usual dove-like cooing sounds.”
“All at once I heard a queer sound, and looked in the direction from which it proceeded, to see two pairs 328 of legs sweeping through the air with a wild, frantic clawing, while shrill cries and a swear-word informed me that the hammock had turned over, and that the pair of love-makers were standing on their heads. I tried not to laugh, but a wee little giggle slipped out, and then I flew to the rescue and turned down, or turned up, Cynthia’s skirts, and then gave a helping hand to The Blink, who rose to his feet with a wild, bewildered stare in his blinking eyes. Then I flew, for if I hadn’t, I should have collapsed with merriment, for, as it was, I was stuffing my handkerchief in my mouth to keep in my laughter.
“All of a sudden, I heard a strange sound and looked over to see two pairs of legs flailing wildly in the air, while sharp cries and a curse let me know that the hammock had flipped over and the couple was upside down. I tried not to laugh, but a small giggle escaped, and then I rushed to help, adjusting Cynthia’s skirts and then giving The Blink a hand as he stood up with a dazed, confused look in his eyes. Then I dashed away, because if I hadn’t, I would have burst out laughing, and as it was, I was stuffing my handkerchief in my mouth to hold back the giggles.”
“As I flew through the hall queer sounds arrested my flight, and there, on the floor, were those two kids, Danny and Tony, rolling about in exultant joy, while emitting squeals of delighted glee. And then I knew why they had been fooling with the hammock that morning. I was smothering with laughter, but grabbed each one by an ear and marched them to mother, with appropriate explanations, leaving her to administer the punishment they deserved. Naturally Cynthia blamed me, insisting that I had encouraged the boys in their mischief, and hasn’t spoken to me since.
“As I flew through the hall, strange sounds caught my attention, and there on the floor were those two kids, Danny and Tony, rolling around in pure joy, letting out squeals of happiness. That’s when I realized why they had been messing with the hammock that morning. I was laughing so hard, but I grabbed each of them by an ear and marched them to mom, giving her the details, leaving her to deal with the punishment they deserved. Of course, Cynthia blamed me, claiming I had encouraged the boys in their antics, and she hasn’t talked to me since.”
“Funny number two. I have told you of Cynthia’s obsession for searching for the valuable thing. Well, evidently she has imparted her obsession to her lover, for we find him poking around into all sorts of out-of-the-way places, that annoys mother extremely. The other morning Mrs. Van Vorst sent me to the studio with a message for Cynthia. The door was open, and, to my amazement, I saw the lady in question hoisted up on a ladder,—The Blink was holding it,—poking about among the rafters of the attic.
“Funny number two. I’ve told you about Cynthia’s obsession with searching for valuable things. Well, apparently she has passed that obsession on to her boyfriend, because we find him rummaging through all sorts of strange places, which annoys Mom a lot. The other morning, Mrs. Van Vorst sent me to the studio with a message for Cynthia. The door was open, and, to my surprise, I saw her up on a ladder—The Blink was holding it—digging around in the rafters of the attic.”
“As I stood wondering what she was doing, I saw her suddenly duck her head, and then, to my stupefaction, 329 the Make-believe Lady was perched up there on that ladder like a poll-parrot, for her head was as bare as a billiard-ball, while her hair that was, was swaying gracefully on a nail some distance above.
“As I stood wondering what she was doing, I saw her suddenly duck her head, and then, to my shock, 329 the Make-believe Lady was perched up there on that ladder like a parrot, because her head was as bare as a billiard ball, while her hair, what was left of it, was swaying gracefully on a nail some distance above.”
“Suddenly discovering her nudity, she made a frenzied grab, not at the suspended wig, but at her skirts, hurriedly throwing them over her head, as if to hide its bareness, and then made frantic attempts to unhitch the black hairy thing that wiggled and wobbled just out of reach of her arm. At this moment Mr. Buddie—patience was written in his drooping pose, as he clung to that ladder—raised his head. His face immediately became the hue of his nose, for, alas, Cynthia, in her hurried endeavor to cover her denuded poll, had raised not only her dress-skirt but her under-skirts, and two black-hosed legs, lean and lank, stood forth from beneath her short, beruffled skirt. I waited to see no more, but hastily made my exit, to explode my mirth in the depths of my pillow on the bed in my room.
“Suddenly realizing she was naked, she frantically reached not for the wig hanging above her but for her skirts, quickly throwing them over her head as if to hide her bare body. Then she desperately tried to pull off the black hairy thing that was wriggling just out of her reach. At that moment, Mr. Buddie—patience was evident in his drooping posture as he clung to the ladder—looked up. His face immediately turned red, because, unfortunately, in her rush to cover her exposed head, Cynthia had lifted not just her dress but her undergarments as well, revealing two skinny, black-hosed legs from beneath her short, frilled skirt. I couldn't bear to see more, so I quickly left to stifle my laughter into the depths of my pillow on the bed in my room.”
“Funny number three. My bedroom was next to the mystery-room, and then comes Cynthia’s,—she and Janet room together. There is a door between, which is generally closed, unless it is very warm. The other evening we were just getting ready for bed, when I suddenly remembered something I wanted to tell Janet, so stepped to the door, which was open. The room was dimly lighted by a single candle, and Cynthia, who likes to undress in the dark, was on her knees by the bed, saying her prayers, while Janet sat near, taking off her shoes.
“Funny number three. My bedroom was next to the mystery room, and then there’s Cynthia’s—she and Janet share a room. There's a door between them that’s usually closed unless it’s really warm. The other night, we were just about to go to bed when I suddenly remembered something I wanted to tell Janet, so I walked over to the open door. The room was dimly lit by a single candle, and Cynthia, who prefers to undress in the dark, was on her knees by the bed, saying her prayers, while Janet sat nearby, taking off her shoes.”
“As I turned away so as not to disturb Cynthia at her devotions, I suddenly spied a man’s face peering in the transom over the door. Before I could cry out, Cynthia arose, and, carelessly glancing up, saw 330 the face. With a wild scream she seized one of Janet’s shoes lying on the floor, and sent it flying at the head peeping over the door.
“As I turned away to avoid interrupting Cynthia during her prayers, I suddenly noticed a man’s face looking in through the transom over the door. Before I could shout, Cynthia stood up and, glancing up without thinking, saw the face. With a terrified scream, she grabbed one of Janet’s shoes on the floor and threw it at the head peeking over the door.”
“I gasped, for it struck the man square on the nose. Then I heard a suppressed expletive, followed by a jarring crash, a general smashing sound, and then a dead silence. I gave one prolonged scream and rushed to the door. You can guess the rest, for Dick, mother, and even the boys had heard the racket, and a moment later, when they appeared on the scene, it was to find me trying to extricate the figure of a man, in a bath-robe, with a somewhat dazed expression on his meek, bewildered face,—that would have been pitiful if it had not been so ludicrous—from the débris of broken chairs and a turned-over table.
“I gasped as it hit the man right on the nose. Then I heard a muffled curse, followed by a loud crash, a general smashing noise, and then complete silence. I let out a long scream and rushed to the door. You can imagine what happened next, as Dick, Mom, and even the boys had heard the commotion, and a moment later, when they showed up, they found me trying to pull a guy in a bathrobe, looking a bit dazed and with a confused expression on his innocent face— which would have been sad if it weren't so funny—out from the wreckage of broken chairs and an overturned table.
“And his eye, well, it was already beginning to swell; for Cynthia had been game, Dick said, and had not only given her lover a swelled nose, but a swelled eye as well. O dear! it was comical to see the way she glared at the poor creature, meekly trying to explain that he was only trying to peer into the mystery-room, for he seems to think that the valuable thing is hidden in that room, and had gotten as far as he could get—into the wrong room. Mother says she is glad it happened and hopes he will now stop his prowling.
“And his eye was already starting to swell; because Cynthia had really gone for it, Dick said, and had not only given her boyfriend a swollen nose but a swollen eye too. Oh dear! It was funny to watch her glare at the poor guy, who was trying meekly to explain that he was just trying to peek into the mystery room, since he thinks the valuable thing is hidden in there, and had ended up as far as he could get—into the wrong room. Mom says she’s glad it happened and hopes he’ll finally stop his snooping."
“Now for funny number four. After the excitement caused by Mr. Buddie’s efforts to peep into the mystery-room quietness reigned for a while, until the other night. I was terribly tired, for I had been doing the kids’ ironing, and my feet ached so that I carried a pail of hot water to my room to soak them. I am on the upper floor now, near the boys, for Cynthia insisted that they made such a noise at night that they kept her awake. But everything that goes wrong she lays on their little shoulders, so I have mounted guard, to avoid any future unpleasantness. As I sat there, 331 trying to make up my mind to plunge my feet in that hot water, I heard a queer sound.
“Now for funny number four. After the excitement caused by Mr. Buddie’s attempts to peek into the mystery room, things were quiet for a while, until the other night. I was super tired because I had been ironing the kids’ clothes, and my feet hurt so much that I brought a bucket of hot water to my room to soak them. I’m on the upper floor now, near the boys, because Cynthia insisted that they made so much noise at night that they kept her awake. But everything that goes wrong, she blames on them, so I’ve taken it upon myself to keep watch, to avoid any future trouble. As I sat there, 331 trying to decide whether to put my feet in that hot water, I heard a strange sound.”
“There has been a report lately that burglars are in the neighborhood, for several of the ladies at the Sunset Hill House have missed articles of jewelry. Somehow that noise brought it to my mind, and I jumped up,—I was in my bare feet,—quickly turned off the light, stepped to the window, and poked my head out, and—if there wasn’t a man on the roof of the veranda, creeping stealthily towards the mystery-room, directly under mine. O dear! and its two windows were both unlatched,—one of the boys had discovered that,—but no one had dared to break the rule and go in to fasten them. In a moment he had begun to work at the shutters, very cautiously,—he had a flashlight in his hand,—stopping every moment or so to listen, to see if any one had heard him.
“There’s been a report lately that burglars are in the neighborhood, as several of the ladies at the Sunset Hill House have noticed missing jewelry. That noise made me think of it, and I jumped up—barefoot—quickly turned off the light, stepped to the window, and poked my head out. Sure enough, there was a man on the roof of the veranda, creeping quietly towards the mystery room, right below mine. Oh no! Both of its windows were unlatched—one of the boys had found that out—but no one had dared to break the rule and go in to close them. In a moment, he started working on the shutters very carefully—he had a flashlight in his hand—stopping every little while to listen and see if anyone had heard him."
“My heart bounded into my throat, but while I was making up my mind what to do, there came a wrench, and I knew that in a moment or so that man would be in the room! Desperate with fright, I flung about, and then my glance fell on that pail of water. Without further ado I seized it, pushed it softly out of the window, hurriedly turned it upside down, and then hurled the pail after the water. There came a smothered sound, a half-cry and groan, and then a funny, swishy noise.
“My heart raced in my throat, but while I was deciding what to do, I felt a jolt, and I knew that in a moment that man would be in the room! Overwhelmed with fear, I looked around, and then my eyes landed on the pail of water. Without thinking, I grabbed it, pushed it quietly out of the window, quickly turned it upside down, and then threw the pail after the water. There was a muffled sound, a half-cry and a groan, and then a strange, swishy noise.”
“As I peered down through the darkness I saw a black object slipping down the roof, and heard a sudden imprecation, as it rolled over the edge. There came a splashy sound, a deep groan, and then I knew that the thief had fallen off the roof, and landed in a hogshead of water that always stood under the veranda by the kitchen porch.
“As I looked down into the darkness, I saw a black object sliding down the roof and heard a sudden curse as it rolled over the edge. Then I heard a splashing sound, a deep groan, and I realized that the thief had fallen off the roof and landed in the barrel of water that was always under the veranda by the kitchen porch."
“Now came a fierce barking, mingled with growls, and I realized that Jean’s little dog, Tige, was chewing 332 up the thief. The next instant I made a mad rush for the door, to see Dick flying down the stairs in his bath-robe, followed by mother and the boys!
“Now there was loud barking mixed with growling, and I realized that Jean’s little dog, Tige, was attacking the thief. In the next moment, I sprinted for the door to see Dick racing down the stairs in his bathrobe, followed by Mom and the boys!”
“I plunged blindly forward, managed to grab him by the arm, and, between hysterical gasps, explained what I had seen, and begged him not to go out for fear the man would shoot him. But Dick shook me off like a feather, and, although mother tearfully seconded my plea, he was about to dash into the darkness when Cynthia rushed up and handed him her revolver,—Janet says she always sleeps with one under her pillow. The boys—each little chap, even Jean, was armed to the teeth, Danny with his policeman’s club, Tony with an iron bar, and Jean with a mountain-staff—lost no time in following him, with mother close behind.
“I rushed forward without thinking, grabbed him by the arm, and, between frantic breaths, explained what I had seen and begged him not to go out for fear the man would shoot him. But Dick shrugged me off like I was nothing, and even though Mom tearfully supported my request, he was about to run into the darkness when Cynthia rushed over and handed him her revolver—Janet says she always keeps one under her pillow. The boys—every single one, even Jean—were all armed, with Danny holding his policeman’s club, Tony with an iron bar, and Jean with a hiking stick. They quickly followed him, with Mom right behind them.
“I grabbed a chair—it could fell a man, at least—and followed mother, while Janet, Cynthia, and Sheila alternately yelled and wept as they sat huddled on the stairs, each one expecting to be shot. But by the time I reached the veranda Dick appeared, dragging a miserable-looking little object by the collar of his pajamas,—for his trousers had been about chewed off by Tige,—with rivulets of water oozing over his face, who was abjectly pleading and howling that he was no thief.
“I grabbed a chair—it could take down a guy, at least—and followed Mom, while Janet, Cynthia, and Sheila alternated between yelling and crying as they sat huddled on the stairs, each one expecting to get shot. But by the time I reached the porch, Dick showed up, dragging a sad-looking little kid by the collar of his pajamas—his pants had been pretty much chewed off by Tige—with streams of water running down his face, desperately pleading and howling that he wasn’t a thief.”
“But Dick was obdurate, and as we all stared with bulging eyes, he marched him up to Cynthia. As he shook him fiercely by the collar, as one would shake a dog, he cried, ‘Here, Miss Cynthia, here’s the thief, your estimable friend and lover, Mr. Buddie!’ I leave the rest for you to imagine. Mr. Buddie left the next morning.
“But Dick was relentless, and as we all watched with wide eyes, he marched him over to Cynthia. Shaking him strongly by the collar, like you would a dog, he said, ‘Here, Miss Cynthia, here’s the thief, your valuable friend and lover, Mr. Buddie!’ I’ll leave the rest to your imagination. Mr. Buddie left the next morning.”
“Now good-by. Be sure and tell me more about yourself and your work when you write again, for I am anxious to know everything that happens to you, 333 girl of my heart, for you are a brave dear, and I miss you more than I can express.
“Now goodbye. Please tell me more about yourself and your work when you write again, because I really want to know everything that's happening in your life, 333 girl of my heart. You’re so brave, and I miss you more than I can say.
“Nathalie Page.”
CHAPTER XXII
THE MAN IN THE WOODS
“Oh, Nathalie, what do you think? They have sent for a detective up at the hotel!” The speaker was Nita, who, with her friend, was sitting on the veranda of Seven Pillars, a few afternoons subsequent to Nathalie’s sending her letter to Helen.
“Oh, Nathalie, what do you think? They’ve called for a detective at the hotel!” The speaker was Nita, who, along with her friend, was sitting on the veranda of Seven Pillars a few afternoons after Nathalie sent her letter to Helen.
“A detective?” echoed Nathalie, looking at Nita in surprise. “What for?”
“A detective?” Nathalie exclaimed, looking at Nita in surprise. “What do you need that for?”
“Why, about those robberies. I told you some time ago how the guests were missing jewelry and other small articles of value. It has been kept very quiet, but mother heard this morning that the manager is getting worried as to who is the thief, and has sent for a secret-service man to come up and ferret out the mystery. But, Blue Robin,” she added, with a more serious expression, “those school friends of yours are not going to take any more French lessons.”
“About those robberies, I mentioned before that some guests have been missing jewelry and other small valuables. It has been kept under wraps, but my mom heard this morning that the manager is getting anxious about who the thief is and has called in a secret-service agent to uncover the mystery. But, Blue Robin,” she added, with a more serious look, “your school friends aren’t going to take any more French lessons.”
“And pray, why not?” demanded Nathalie. Then she ejaculated, “Dear me, what have we done to offend them now?”
“And why not?” Nathalie asked. Then she exclaimed, “Oh no, what have we done to upset them now?”
335 “I don’t know. But, Nathalie, did you notice the night of the Liberty Tea at the hotel, how they sat in a corner, whispering most of the time? I had an uncanny feeling that they were making unkind remarks about us, not that I care, for I don’t like them anyway,” added Nita disgustedly.
335 “I have no idea. But, Nathalie, did you see the night of the Liberty Tea at the hotel? They were sitting in a corner, whispering most of the time. I got this weird feeling that they were saying nasty things about us. Not that I care, because I don’t like them anyway,” Nita added, disgusted.
“I’m sorry,” said Nathalie regretfully, “for I hate to have Mr. de Brie lose any pupils. I imagine they were angry at the last Liberty Cheer, for, you remember, when they joined us we all grew very quiet. Not that any one meant to be rude, but they are so snobby that they cast a cloud over one’s fun.”
“I’m sorry,” Nathalie said with regret, “because I really hate to see Mr. de Brie lose any students. I guess they were upset at the last Liberty Cheer, since, you remember, when they joined us we all became really quiet. It’s not that anyone intended to be rude, but they’re so pretentious that they put a damper on the fun.”
“Well, I guess Philip can get along without them,” returned Nita confidently. “Did you notice that he was quite the lion the other evening? He cast the Count quite into the shade, for every one fell in love with him.”
“Well, I guess Philip can manage without them,” Nita replied confidently. “Did you notice how much of a showstopper he was the other night? He totally overshadowed the Count because everyone fell for him.”
“Yes, he can be very charming,” acquiesced Nathalie, “for he is so distinguished-looking in his uniform of a British lieutenant. Mother says that in his manners he combines the fineness of an American gentleman with the courtesy and charm of a Frenchman. I am sorry about his arm, for the doctor says he will always have to carry it stiffly.
“Yes, he can be really charming,” Nathalie agreed, “because he looks so distinguished in his British lieutenant uniform. Mom says that in his manners, he mixes the elegance of an American gentleman with the politeness and charm of a Frenchman. I feel bad about his arm; the doctor says he’ll always have to carry it stiffly.”
“But, Nita,” continued Nathalie, “I just adore that big doctor friend of yours. What do you think? I was worrying about his calling so many times on Philip, for I was afraid that my ‘drop in the bucket’ 336 would not be enough to pay the bill, and of course Philip wouldn’t have enough from his earnings to pay it. Finally I wrote the doctor to send his bill to me. And oh, Nita, he wrote me a love of a letter, in which he said that he never charged girls anything. And as for Mr. de Brie, he considered it his great privilege to be allowed to give his services to a man who had given the best of himself to give liberty to the world. Oh, I think he is just the dearest old thing!” ended the girl enthusiastically.
“But, Nita,” Nathalie continued, “I just love that big doctor friend of yours. What do you think? I was worried about how many times he was calling on Philip because I thought my ‘drop in the bucket’ 336 wouldn’t be enough to cover the bill, and obviously, Philip wouldn’t have enough from his earnings to pay it. Finally, I wrote to the doctor and asked him to send his bill to me. And oh, Nita, he wrote me such a sweet letter, saying that he never charged girls anything. As for Mr. de Brie, he considered it a great privilege to be allowed to offer his services to a man who had given the best of himself for the freedom of the world. Oh, I think he is just the sweetest old thing!” the girl concluded enthusiastically.
“Oh, I knew he would do that,” answered Nita, with a wise little smile, “for he has the best heart in the world.”
“Oh, I knew he would do that,” Nita replied, with a knowing little smile, “because he has the kindest heart in the world.”
“But listen,” went on her companion earnestly. “Janet told Philip about it, excusing herself by saying that he was worrying over the bill, and that she wanted to relieve his mind.”
“But listen,” her companion said seriously. “Janet told Philip about it, justifying herself by saying that he was stressed about the bill, and that she wanted to put his mind at ease.”
“Of course she did,” giggled Nita, “for one can see with half an eye what is going on in that direction for it is a clear case of ‘spoons,’ all right.”
“Of course she did,” giggled Nita, “because anyone can see with half an eye what’s happening over there. It’s definitely a clear case of ‘spoons,’ for sure.”
“Do you really think so?” cried Nathalie with sudden animation. “Why, I suggested something of that kind to mother, and she said I was a silly. Well, they were made for one another. Why, Philip just adores the ground she walks on, and as for Janet, it’s just a guessing game as to how she feels. But, to go on with my tale,” continued the girl. “As soon as Philip heard what Janet had to tell, he came straight to me, 337 and, with a voice that fairly shook with emotion, said that my kindness to him would be one of the unforgettable things in his life. Of course I had to make light of the matter, for I saw the poor fellow was terribly affected over it. Oh, I do hope things will brighten for him this fall, for he is going to the city, to make an attempt to get some pupils to tutor until his health is better. You know,” she added, dropping her voice, “I think there must have been some mystery about his grandmother, or his family, for although he loves to come down here and be one of us,—he says it is so homey with us,—he never says a word about her or his family.”
“Do you really think so?” Nathalie exclaimed with sudden excitement. “I suggested something like that to my mom, and she called me silly. Anyway, they’re perfect for each other. Philip absolutely adores her, and as for Janet, it’s anyone's guess how she feels. But back to my story,” the girl continued. “As soon as Philip heard what Janet had to share, he came straight to me, 337 and, with a voice that shook with emotion, told me that my kindness to him would be one of the unforgettable things in his life. Of course, I had to downplay it because I could see how much it affected him. Oh, I really hope things improve for him this fall, since he’s going to the city to try to find some students to tutor until he gets better. You know,” she added in a quieter voice, “I think there’s some kind of mystery regarding his grandmother or his family, because even though he loves coming down here and being with us—he says it feels so homey—he never talks about her or his family.”
Nita had been reading to Miss Whipple, and Nathalie had been tying up sweet peas, one morning a few days after Nita’s news about the detective, and the two girls were on their homeward way, when Nathalie suddenly exclaimed with a little burst of laughter, “Oh, Nita, I have something funny to tell you.”
Nita had been reading to Miss Whipple, and Nathalie had been tying up sweet peas one morning a few days after Nita’s news about the detective. The two girls were on their way home when Nathalie suddenly burst out laughing and said, “Oh, Nita, I have something funny to tell you.”
“Well, tell it to me then,” rejoined her companion somewhat dolefully, “for although I have something to tell you, alas, it is anything but funny.”
“Well, go ahead and tell me,” her companion replied a bit sadly, “because even though I have something to share with you, unfortunately, it’s not funny at all.”
“Oh, is it about Philip?” cried Nathalie, a sudden premonition of evil darkening the golden lights of her eyes. “Or are any more of the girls going to give up taking French lessons?”
“Oh, is it about Philip?” Nathalie exclaimed, a sudden feeling of dread shadowing the bright lights in her eyes. “Or are any more of the girls going to quit their French lessons?”
“It is worse than that,” answered Nita, with such grave import in her voice that Nathalie stared at her 338 with big eyes as she cried, “Oh, Nita! do hurry and tell me. Have those girls—”
“It’s even worse than that,” Nita replied, her tone so serious that Nathalie looked at her with wide eyes and exclaimed, “Oh, Nita! Please, hurry and tell me. Have those girls—”
“Yes, those girls, your friends—”
“Yeah, those girls, your friends—”
“Please don’t call them my friends,” pleaded poor Nathalie tremulously, “for they are anything but friends.”
“Please don’t call them my friends,” poor Nathalie pleaded nervously, “because they are anything but friends.”
“So it seems,” nodded Nita dryly, “for they have told—well, just about every one in the house—that they suspect that Mr. de Brie is the thief who has been robbing the hotel. You know he has been giving them private lessons. Nelda declares that she believes Philip took her watch,—it was lying on the table when she left the room to answer a ’phone call from the office. Justine was out riding with the Count. When Nelda returned the watch was gone. Five other girls came to me this morning and told me that they were not going to take any more lessons.
“So it seems,” Nita nodded dryly, “because they’ve told—well, almost everyone in the house—that they suspect Mr. de Brie is the one stealing from the hotel. You know he’s been giving them private lessons. Nelda insists that she thinks Philip took her watch—it was on the table when she stepped out to take a call from the office. Justine was out riding with the Count. When Nelda came back, the watch was gone. Five other girls came to me this morning and said they weren't going to take any more lessons.”
“These girls have circulated all over the house,” continued Nita gloomily, “that Philip is an impostor; that you picked him up without knowing anything about him and that he is not a British soldier at all. O dear! how hateful people can act! And the clerk of the hotel—Well, he informed me this morning that the Profile House had sent word that they did not care to have Philip speak to their guests, as people were tired of hearing about the war.”
“These girls have been spreading rumors all over the house,” Nita said gloomily. “They’re saying that Philip is a fraud; that you brought him in without knowing anything about him and that he isn’t even a British soldier. Ugh! People can be so awful! And the hotel clerk—Well, he told me this morning that the Profile House said they didn’t want Philip talking to their guests anymore because people are tired of hearing about the war.”
“Nita, this is terrible! Oh, I know Philip is not an impostor,” protested Nathalie with a dismayed face. 339 “Why, Nita, he showed me a letter written to him by a soldier at the front, and he called him Lieutenant de Brie. And where could he have gotten his uniform if he is an impostor? Oh, I just believe those horrid, hateful girls have made the whole thing up.” Nathalie stopped, suddenly remembering that she was not speaking kindly, and not living up to her motto. She gave a long sigh, and then asked, “But, Nita, have you heard anything more about the detective coming up from the city?”
“Nita, this is awful! Oh, I know Philip isn’t a fraud,” protested Nathalie, visibly upset. 339 “Seriously, Nita, he showed me a letter from a soldier at the front, and he referred to him as Lieutenant de Brie. And how could he have gotten his uniform if he’s a fake? I just believe those awful, spiteful girls have made everything up.” Nathalie paused, suddenly remembering that she wasn’t being very nice, and not living up to her values. She let out a long sigh, and then asked, “But, Nita, have you heard anything else about the detective coming up from the city?”
“Yes. Oh! there he is now, coming down the walk,” cried Nita, lowering her voice. Then she added, with a laugh, “Talk of the angels and you’ll hear the flutter of their wings.”
“Yes. Oh! There he is now, walking down the path,” Nita exclaimed, lowering her voice. She then added with a laugh, “Speak of the angels and you’ll hear the flutter of their wings.”
“Well, he doesn’t look much like an angel,” answered Nathalie, her eyes lighting humorously, as she watched a stout, red-faced man with a sandy moustache coming down the path towards them.
“Well, he doesn’t look much like an angel,” Nathalie replied, her eyes sparkling with humor as she observed a plump, red-faced man with a sandy mustache walking down the path toward them.
As the gentleman under discussion approached the girls he lifted his hat courteously, as he said, “I beg your pardon, but could you tell me how I can reach the top of Garnet? I understand that there are several trails up the mountain, but could you tell me which one would be the best one to ascend?”
As the man in question walked up to the girls, he politely tipped his hat and said, “Excuse me, could you help me? I’m trying to find the best way to get to the top of Garnet. I’ve heard there are a few trails up the mountain, but could you let me know which one is the best to take?”
The girls made no reply for a moment, assailed by the miserable fear that the man was going up the mountain to trail Philip. Then Nathalie, with an effort, turned and pointed down the road, explaining in 340 a few words that one of the trails started in near the Grand View road.
The girls didn’t respond for a moment, overwhelmed by the dreadful fear that the man was heading up the mountain to follow Philip. Then Nathalie, with some effort, turned and pointed down the road, explaining in 340 a few words that one of the trails began close to the Grand View road.
As the man thanked her and walked slowly on, Nathalie drew a deep breath, while a troubled light shone in Nita’s eyes, as she cried, “Oh, do you suppose he is going to arrest Philip?” She spoke in a half-whisper.
As the man thanked her and walked away slowly, Nathalie took a deep breath, while a worried look appeared in Nita's eyes as she whispered, "Oh, do you think he’s going to arrest Philip?"
“Arrest Philip? Why, the idea of such a thing! No, of course not,” Nathalie answered determinedly, as if she was not going to allow herself to become frightened. “Philip has committed no crime. That man can’t arrest him unless he has some evidence, and where is he going to get it?”
“Arrest Philip? Why would anyone even consider that! No, definitely not,” Nathalie replied firmly, as if she was refusing to let fear take over. “Philip hasn't done anything wrong. That guy can’t arrest him unless he has some proof, and where is he going to find that?”
Nita made no reply, and the two girls, depressed by the unpleasant occurrence, and the vague fear that trouble was brewing for their friend, sat down in one of the summer-houses near the board-walk. Here they sat in silence for a few moments, and then Nathalie, as if determined to throw off the depression that assailed her, cried, “Oh, Nita, I have not told you the funny thing.”
Nita didn't respond, and the two girls, feeling down from the awkward situation and a nagging fear that trouble was looming for their friend, sat down in one of the summer houses near the boardwalk. They sat in silence for a few moments, and then Nathalie, as if resolved to shake off the gloom that had gripped her, exclaimed, “Oh, Nita, I haven’t told you the funny thing.”
“Well, tell it to me, then; for I think it will take something real comical to get me out of the blues.”
“Well, go ahead and tell me; I think it will take something really funny to lift my spirits.”
“It is about Tony,” explained Nathalie. “You know the child is obsessed with the desire to have me find the mystery thing. Well, the other day Danny came running to tell me that Tony was rolling on the floor with the colic. I was alarmed, for I immediately 341 thought he had been eating green apples, the way Sheila did the other day, and mother had to poultice her with mustard.
“It’s about Tony,” Nathalie explained. “You know the kid is obsessed with wanting me to uncover this mystery thing. Well, the other day Danny came running to tell me that Tony was rolling on the floor with colic. I got worried because I immediately thought he had eaten green apples, like Sheila did the other day, and mom had to put a mustard poultice on her.”
“I flew to his room and there was the little fellow moaning and squirming about, apparently in great pain. When he saw me he immediately begged me to put a mustard plaster on his stomach. I was surprised, for generally children will suffer quite a little before they will have one on. I found some old linen,—mother was out,—hurried down to the kitchen closet, and got the mustard-box.
“I flew to his room and there was the little guy moaning and squirming around, clearly in a lot of pain. When he saw me, he quickly asked me to put a mustard plaster on his stomach. I was surprised because usually kids will endure quite a bit before they ask for one. I found some old linen—mom was out—rushed down to the kitchen cupboard, and grabbed the mustard box.
“But when I opened it, imbedded in the yellow, powdery stuff, was something that glittered strangely. I shook the box, and out rolled a little gold coin. I carefully examined it, and immediately saw that it was an ancient Roman coin, for although one side was so blurred and worn with age that I could not decipher anything on it, the other side bore the name and head of Cæsar within a circle of fine gold beading.
“But when I opened it, nestled in the yellow, powdery stuff, was something that glimmered oddly. I shook the box, and a little gold coin rolled out. I examined it closely and quickly realized it was an ancient Roman coin. One side was so faded and worn with age that I couldn’t make out anything, but the other side featured the name and head of Cæsar surrounded by a circle of fine gold beading.”
“Something immediately told me that the coin belonged to Tony, and that he had placed it there so I would find it, for, not long ago he lost something from his vest-pocket,—he keeps all of his treasures sewed up in that old vest. Danny had helped him look for it,—it had slipped out of a hole,—and after it had been found he came and told me about it, describing it as a little round piece of gold, the kind that you see, he said, up in the museum at Central Park.
“Something told me right away that the coin belonged to Tony and that he had put it there for me to find. Not too long ago, he lost something from his vest pocket—he keeps all his treasures sewn up in that old vest. Danny helped him look for it; it had slipped out of a hole. After it was found, he came and told me about it, describing it as a small round piece of gold, like the kind you see in the museum at Central Park.”
342 “I made the plaster and carried it, with the coin, up to Tony, but before I put on the poultice I showed him the gold piece and asked if it was not his. But the little chap, with a bland and innocent expression, vowed that he had never seen it. No amount of coaxing or persuasion could make him confess to the truth. You know that is the great trouble I have with Tony, he will tell teeny little stories.” Nathalie sighed dolefully.
342 “I made the plaster and took it, along with the coin, up to Tony, but before I applied the poultice, I showed him the gold piece and asked if it was his. But the little guy, with a calm and innocent look, insisted that he had never seen it. No amount of coaxing or persuasion could get him to confess the truth. You know, that's the big problem I have with Tony; he tells little white lies.” Nathalie sighed sadly.
“Although I was sure that he didn’t have any colic, and that the whole thing was just a trick to get me to look in the mustard-box to find the coin, I put the plaster on, and made him stay in bed, thinking that when it got to burning that he would ’fess up.’ But he didn’t, and although he howled and writhed with the sting of it,—while I was reading him a lecture on the sin of lying,—I told the story of Ananias and Sapphira,—he stuck it out. Then, finally, my conscience wouldn’t let me torture the boy any longer, and I took the plaster off. That night while he was asleep I found his old vest, and after putting the coin in the pocket, sewed it up.”
“Even though I was sure he didn’t have any colic and that this was just a trick to get me to look in the mustard box for the coin, I put the plaster on him and made him stay in bed, thinking that when it started to burn, he would confess. But he didn’t, and even though he howled and writhed from the sting of it—while I was lecturing him about the sin of lying—I told him the story of Ananias and Sapphira. He held out. Finally, my conscience wouldn’t let me torture the boy any longer, so I took the plaster off. That night while he was asleep, I found his old vest, and after putting the coin in the pocket, I sewed it up.”
After the girls had laughed over the incident, Nathalie started homeward, her mind full of dismal forebodings in regard to Philip. “Oh, I wish I could prove in some way that he is not an impostor. But suppose he should be?” The girl came to a sudden halt. Then, with her eyes full of a strange bright 343 light, she went on. No, she just knew that Philip was good and true.
After the girls had laughed about the incident, Nathalie headed home, her mind filled with dark worries about Philip. “Oh, I wish I could somehow prove that he isn’t a fraud. But what if he is?” She suddenly stopped. Then, with her eyes shining with a strange light, she continued on. No, she just knew that Philip was good and genuine.
“But I must do something,” she half moaned. “For how dreadfully he will feel if he thinks that people believe him a thief; and he will soon know something is wrong, when all the girls stop taking lessons. But Nita and I will have to pretend that the season is drawing to a close,—as it is. But, O dear! he does need the money so much. And Janet,—how it will hurt her, for I am sure she cares—” the girl halted at the thought, for it seemed too sacred a thing even to whisper to herself. Then she was busy again, trying to think how she could prove that her friend was what he claimed to be.
“But I have to do something,” she half groaned. “How awful he will feel if he thinks people see him as a thief; and he’ll soon realize something’s wrong when all the girls stop taking lessons. Nita and I will have to pretend like the season is ending, which it is. But, oh dear! He really needs the money. And Janet—this will hurt her so much, because I’m sure she cares—” The girl paused at the thought, feeling it was too sacred to even whisper to herself. Then she got back to it, trying to figure out how she could prove her friend was who he said he was.
As she unconsciously uttered her thoughts aloud, by some mysterious process of thought, or strange correlation between mind and matter, before her mental vision flashed the picture of a dark wood, lighted by gleams of moonlight that filtered through the tall tree-tops. In the foreground of a forest-gloomed retreat, in front of a high rock, a man was digging in the ground, plainly seen by the yellow flickerings from a burning torch that had been stuck upright in the ground, a few feet away.
As she mindlessly spoke her thoughts out loud, through some mysterious process of thinking or strange connection between mind and matter, a vision appeared in her mind of a dark woods, illuminated by patches of moonlight filtering through the tall treetops. In the foreground of the shadowy forest, in front of a tall rock, a man was digging in the ground, clearly visible in the yellow flickers from a torch that was stuck upright in the ground a few feet away.
Although the girl reasoned and tried to convince herself that there was no possible connection between that man and the thief at the hotel, she could not drive the impression from her mind. On going home she 344 questioned Jean, and found that he, too, still vividly remembered the incident.
Although the girl tried to convince herself that there was no connection between that man and the thief at the hotel, she couldn't shake the feeling. On her way home, she 344 asked Jean, and discovered that he also still clearly remembered the incident.
That night Nathalie could not sleep, for she was haunted by the picture of the man in the woods, although she hurled every name she could think of at herself for being so foolish. The next night again found her sleepless, but when morning dawned, as if pursued and driven by the haunting vision, she called the boys together, and stated the circumstances to them. She did not tell her mother, as she would say that she was losing her reason, and, well, she was determined to find out—something.
That night, Nathalie couldn’t sleep because she kept thinking about the man in the woods, even though she berated herself for being so foolish. The following night, she found herself awake again, and when morning came, almost as if pushed by that haunting image, she gathered the boys together and explained what had happened. She didn’t tell her mom, since she would say she was losing her mind, and honestly, she was set on discovering—something.
Early the following morning, before any one had gone through the woods, Nathalie and the boys met Nita at the Red Trail; she had been taken into their confidence, and accordingly was weirdly and thrillingly excited. They soon reached the seat-tree, and then, after locating the big rock, they all began to dig.
Early the next morning, before anyone had walked through the woods, Nathalie and the boys met Nita at the Red Trail. She had been let in on their secret, and because of that, she was strangely and thrillingly excited. They quickly found the seat-tree, and then, after identifying the big rock, they all started digging.
They had dug for almost an hour, by Nita’s wristwatch, and then, feeling tired, and on the verge of absolute despair, were talking about giving the whole thing up, when all at once Jean’s little terrier began to scratch in the ground on one side of the rock, and partly under it. Jean gave a queer little cry as he watched Tige, and the next moment had driven the dog away, and had begun to dig as furiously as he could with his one hand, in the place where the dog had been scratching up the earth.
They had been digging for almost an hour, according to Nita's watch, and feeling exhausted and on the brink of total despair, they were discussing whether to just give up when suddenly Jean's little terrier started scratching at the ground on one side of the rock, partially underneath it. Jean let out a strange little cry as he observed Tige, and within moments, he shooed the dog away and began to dig as hard as he could with one hand in the spot where the dog had been scratching up the dirt.
345 Nathalie watched him listlessly, for she had abandoned all hope, and felt utterly weary, too, after her two sleepless nights. Suddenly Jean gave a loud shout, and then a moment later they had all rushed to his side, and presently were boring down into the earth under the rock as quickly as they could, to unearth in a few moments a gold chain. Nita gave a loud scream as she snatched it from Danny, for she immediately recognized it as belonging to an old lady at the hotel, who had been bemoaning its loss. A few moments’ digging, and then, with pale faces, in repressed excitement, they replaced the chain in the hole, covered it with dirt, so as to make it appear that the spot had not been disturbed, and then they started home, stopping to rest on the stone ledge of Liberty Fort, while discussing their discovery. It was enough to excite any one, and might mean a great deal to Philip.
345 Nathalie watched him with little interest, having lost all hope and feeling completely drained after two sleepless nights. Suddenly, Jean shouted loudly, and moments later, everyone rushed to his side and started digging into the ground under the rock as fast as they could. In just a few moments, they uncovered a gold chain. Nita screamed when she grabbed it from Danny because she instantly recognized it as belonging to an elderly woman at the hotel who had been lamenting its loss. After a few moments of digging, they exchanged pale, excited looks and carefully placed the chain back in the hole, covered it with dirt to make it look undisturbed, and then headed home. They paused to rest on the stone ledge of Liberty Fort while discussing their find. It was enough to get anyone excited and could mean a lot for Philip.
Nita was quite insistent at first that they should immediately tell the manager of the hotel what they had seen. But Nathalie demurred, convinced, on second thought, that if the jewelry was found hidden up in the woods, because Philip lived up on the mountain, every one would say that that was sure proof that he was the thief. “No,” declared the girl determinedly, “we can’t do that; but we will have to come up here and watch for the man so we can identify him.” This plan was finally decided upon, and the little party, seething with suppressed excitement under 346 the weight of their momentous secret, returned home.
Nita was initially very adamant that they should immediately inform the hotel manager about what they had witnessed. However, Nathalie hesitated, convinced that if the jewelry was found hidden in the woods—since Philip lived on the mountain—everyone would assume he was the thief. “No,” the girl insisted firmly, “we can’t do that; instead, we need to stay up here and watch for the guy so we can identify him.” This plan was finally settled on, and the small group, bubbling with stifled excitement under the weight of their important secret, headed back home.
That night Nathalie, Danny, and Jean stole up the trail. Strange to say, it was again a moonlight night, the same as a month ago, when the man had been seen by Nathalie and Jean. After finding the seat-tree they all sat down and waited, alternately dozing and waking, but although they remained until the first streaks of gray dawn appeared, nothing happened.
That night, Nathalie, Danny, and Jean quietly made their way up the trail. Oddly enough, it was again a moonlit night, just like a month ago when Nathalie and Jean had seen the man. After locating the tree they planned to sit on, they all settled down and waited, dozing off and waking up at intervals, but even though they stayed there until the first light of dawn appeared, nothing happened.
The following night, Jean—Nathalie had put the boy to bed for the day, letting her mother think that he had one of his headaches to which he was subject—and Tony accompanied the girl to the tree. But alas, for the second time nothing came to pass. Nathalie began to be discouraged. Fortunately it rained that night, and, as they could not venture out, they all had a good night’s rest.
The next night, Jean—Nathalie had put the boy to bed for the day, making sure her mother believed he was dealing with one of his usual headaches—and Tony walked the girl to the tree. But unfortunately, for the second time, nothing happened. Nathalie started to feel discouraged. Luckily, it rained that night, and since they couldn’t go out, they all enjoyed a good night’s sleep.
The fourth night again found the girl with the boys at her post, oppressed and miserable, for by this time she began to fear that the man in the woods was a snare and a delusion,—something she had dreamed, or else he had gone. But why did he leave that jewelry behind?—for the children had discovered that there were other pieces hidden in that hole, or very near it.
The fourth night found the girl with the boys at her spot, feeling weighed down and unhappy, as by this time she started to worry that the man in the woods was just a trap and an illusion—something she had imagined, or maybe he had just left. But why did he leave that jewelry behind?—because the kids had uncovered other pieces hidden in that hole, or very close to it.
All at once—Nathalie had fallen quite sound asleep—Jean gave her a pinch; he was snuggling up against her, seated on her lap. The girl opened her eyes 347 sleepily, rubbed them drowsily, and then stretched them wide, caught by the gleam of a light over by the rock. Yes, the man was there! Her heart leaped excitedly, for he was digging under the rock, just where they had found the jewelry!
All of a sudden—Nathalie had fallen fast asleep—Jean pinched her; he was cuddled up against her, sitting on her lap. The girl opened her eyes 347 sleepily, rubbed them, and then stretched them wide, drawn in by the glimmer of light near the rock. Yes, the man was there! Her heart raced with excitement, as he was digging beneath the rock, right where they had discovered the jewelry!
With stilled breath, the three figures, hidden by the tree, watched him, Nathalie’s mind keeping up an incessant query as to how she could steal around behind the rock to get a view of his face. Ah, that queer shaking of the head! Who was it that she had seen who had that peculiar nervous affliction? And then, in a sudden revelation, she knew! It was the man who had stared at her so rudely in the post-office, the man who had repaired her automobile. Why, it was the man known as the Count!
With bated breath, the three figures, concealed by the tree, watched him, while Nathalie's mind churned with the constant question of how she could sneak around behind the rock to catch a glimpse of his face. Ah, that strange shaking of his head! Who was it that she had seen with that unusual nervous condition? And then, in a sudden realization, she knew! It was the man who had stared at her so rudely in the post office, the man who had fixed her car. Why, it was the man known as the Count!
CHAPTER XXIII
A MYSTERY SOLVED
Several hours later, Nathalie, Nita, Sheila, the three boys, and Mrs. Van Vorst were seated in that lady’s sitting-room on the second floor of the Sunset Hill House, overlooking the roof of the front veranda. Nathalie was nervously tapping the floor with her foot, as, with a perplexed, uneasy expression in her eyes, she watched Mr. Grenoble, the secret-service man, who had been employed to fathom the strange mystery of the many jewelry thefts that had occurred at the hotel within the last few weeks.
Several hours later, Nathalie, Nita, Sheila, the three boys, and Mrs. Van Vorst were sitting in that lady’s living room on the second floor of the Sunset Hill House, looking out over the roof of the front porch. Nathalie was nervously tapping her foot on the floor, her eyes showing a worried and confused look as she watched Mr. Grenoble, the secret-service agent, who had been hired to uncover the strange mystery behind the series of jewelry thefts that had taken place at the hotel in the past few weeks.
She had told her story, not only to the detective, but to the manager of the hotel, explaining how she had come to discover the man digging in the woods the night that Sheila had wandered away. She had told also how they had all dug under the rock, to find the pieces of missing jewelry, and how she and the boys had hid in the woods, and finally had seen the man again digging by the rock. She had verified her story in its details, and, although sharply questioned by the detective and the manager, she had stoutly maintained that the man whom she had seen was Mr. Keating, known as the Count. But her intuition immediately 349 revealed to her that they were not inclined to accept her theory as to the identification of the thief.
She had shared her story not just with the detective, but also with the hotel manager, explaining how she found the man digging in the woods the night Sheila had gone missing. She recounted how they all dug under the rock to find the missing jewelry, and how she and the boys hid in the woods, eventually seeing the man again digging by the rock. She had confirmed her story in detail, and even though the detective and the manager questioned her intensely, she firmly insisted that the man she saw was Mr. Keating, known as the Count. However, her intuition quickly told her that they weren’t willing to accept her idea about identifying the thief. 349
The manager immediately protested that she must be mistaken, that his guest was too well known, his position too assured, to identify him in any way with the man at the rock. As the girl realized that her story was doubted, a strange numbness seized her, and she had a paralyzing premonition that not only would her well-founded suspicions prove futile, as well as her long, watchful hours, and her many efforts to clear Philip, but that possibly these things would increase the circumstantial suspicions already directed towards him.
The manager immediately argued that she must be mistaken, that his guest was too well known and his position too secure to connect him in any way with the man at the rock. As the girl realized that her story was being questioned, a strange numbness overtook her, and she had a chilling feeling that not only would her well-founded suspicions turn out to be useless, along with her long hours of watching and her many attempts to clear Philip, but that these efforts might actually increase the circumstantial suspicions already aimed at him.
Seeing the apparent uselessness of further conversation the girl rose, oppressed by the dread that if she remained in that room a moment longer she would burst into tears. But no, she would not give up! She would go somewhere and think it all over, to see if there was not some way of ascertaining who the man was. Perhaps she could go again to the woods,—she would try and get behind that rock,—and make sure—
Seeing that further conversation seemed pointless, the girl got up, overwhelmed by the fear that if she stayed in that room even a moment longer, she would start crying. But no, she would not give up! She would go somewhere and think it through to see if there was any way to find out who the man was. Maybe she could return to the woods—she would try to get behind that rock—and confirm it—
At this moment Sheila, who was standing with Jean by the window, watching the automobiles constantly coming and going in front of the hotel, uttered a sharp cry. As Nathalie turned towards the child as if to still her, she heard her exclaim: “Oh, Jean, there’s the funny ’phone man! See, there he is! Don’t you 350 remember, he’s the man who put the black trumpet on top of his head when he was in the ’phone-box?” Sheila always called the receiver a “black trumpet.”
At that moment, Sheila, who was standing by the window with Jean, watching the cars constantly driving in and out in front of the hotel, let out a sharp cry. As Nathalie turned towards the child to calm her down, she heard her exclaim: “Oh, Jean, there’s the funny phone man! Look, there he is! Don’t you remember, he’s the guy who put the black trumpet on his head when he was in the phone booth?” Sheila always referred to the receiver as a “black trumpet.”
Nathalie, aroused by the remark, mechanically allowed her glance to follow the direction of the child’s finger, as she pointed towards Mr. Keating, who was coming up the walk leading to the hotel. Unconsciously she bent forward, and with alert eyes watched the man, for she had again seen that peculiar motion of the head that had identified him as the man whom she had seen digging in the woods.
Nathalie, sparked by the comment, instinctively let her gaze follow the direction of the child's finger as it pointed toward Mr. Keating, who was approaching the path to the hotel. Without realizing it, she leaned forward and watched the man intently, for she had once again noticed that distinctive motion of his head that had marked him as the man she had seen digging in the woods.
But Sheila’s exclamation had been overheard by the detective, who stepped quickly to the child’s side, crying: “What was that you said, little girl, about a funny ’phone man? Tell me about him.”
But Sheila’s exclamation had been overheard by the detective, who quickly stepped to the child’s side, asking: “What did you say, little girl, about a funny phone man? Tell me about him.”
The man’s manner was so abrupt and commanding, that Sheila shrank back against Nathalie, and shyly hid her face. But the girl, startled also by Mr. Grenoble’s abruptness, with a quick glance at his face, cried, “Yes, Sheila, tell the gentleman what you saw.” Oh, yes, she remembered now that the two children had told her about this “funny ’phone man” whom they had seen at the hotel one day, but she had paid no attention to their prattle at the time.
The man's tone was so sudden and overbearing that Sheila pressed back against Nathalie and shyly hid her face. But the girl, also taken aback by Mr. Grenoble's abruptness, quickly glanced at his face and exclaimed, “Yes, Sheila, tell the gentleman what you saw.” Oh, yes, she remembered that the two kids had mentioned this “weird phone guy” they saw at the hotel one day, but she hadn't really listened to their chatter at the time.
Sheila, with a quick upward glance into the girl’s face, as if instantly divining the seriousness of the situation, answered, “Why, that’s the man I saw in the ’phone-box,” again pointing towards the Count, 351 who had stopped to chat with a lady on the walk. “He put the black trumpet right up on top of his head, like this,”—she imitated the man’s motion,—“when he was talking through the ’phone.”
Sheila quickly glanced up at the girl’s face, as if sensing the seriousness of the situation, and said, “That’s the guy I saw in the phone booth,” pointing again at the Count, 351 who was stopped to talk with a lady on the path. “He held the black trumpet right on top of his head, like this,”—she mimicked the man’s action—“when he was talking on the phone.”
“Did you see him, too?” questioned the detective, turning towards Jean, his eyes suddenly illumined with an odd gleam. Jean nodded silently, and then, seeing that further confirmation was needed, in his odd, hesitating English, repeated the same words, accompanied by the same motion, as the little girl.
“Did you see him, too?” asked the detective, turning to Jean, his eyes suddenly lighting up with a strange glimmer. Jean nodded silently, and then, realizing that more confirmation was needed, in his strange, hesitant English, repeated the same words, along with the same gesture, as the little girl.
The detective nodded absently, still with that odd gleam in his eyes, and then walked hastily towards the door. As he reached it, as if suddenly remembering their former conversation, he turned towards the occupants of the room and, with slow deliberation, said, “Well, ladies, I think our problem is still unsolved; however, I will look into the matter and let you know the result in a few days.” With an abrupt nod he motioned to the manager, whose kindly face was strangely perturbed, as he quickly followed him from the room.
The detective nodded absently, still with that strange look in his eyes, and then hurried toward the door. As he got there, as if suddenly recalling their previous conversation, he turned to the people in the room and, with careful thought, said, “Well, ladies, it seems our problem is still unsolved; however, I’ll investigate and inform you of the outcome in a few days.” With a quick nod, he signaled to the manager, whose friendly face looked oddly unsettled, as he quickly followed him out of the room.
Nathalie and the children, a few mornings after the conference at the Sunset Hill House, were standing in front of the big white Roslinwood barn watching Teddy and Billy, two little black pigs that were the delight of Sheila’s heart. But they were tantalizing joys, for as soon as they caught sight of their admirer, as they peered out of the big barn-door, with 352 their bright, bead-like eyes, they would scurry away as quickly as their round, shiny black bodies would permit, greatly to that young lady’s disappointment.
Nathalie and the kids, a few mornings after the conference at Sunset Hill House, were standing in front of the big white Roslinwood barn, watching Teddy and Billy, two little black pigs that Sheila adored. But they were frustrating little joys, because as soon as they spotted their fan peeking out from the big barn door, with their bright, bead-like eyes, they would dart away as fast as their round, shiny black bodies would allow, much to the disappointment of that young lady.
As Sheila ran to gather a roadside nosegay, and the boys hurried homeward, for Philip had promised to teach them some new military tactics in their soldier-drill at the Liberty Fort, Nathalie, beguiled by the calm stillness of the woods, sat down on the seat under the trees where the sign, “Hit the Trail,” showed that was where the path started that led through Lovers’ Lane.
As Sheila ran to pick a wildflower bouquet by the roadside, the boys hurried home because Philip had promised to teach them some new military tactics during their soldier drill at the Liberty Fort. Nathalie, enchanted by the peacefulness of the woods, sat down on the bench under the trees where the sign "Hit the Trail" indicated the beginning of the path through Lovers' Lane.
The woods, aglow with the yellow and reds of the maples, were strangely still that beautiful September morning, save for the occasional chirp of some belated songster, or the loud caw of a crow as he signaled to his mates, who were making a noisy clatter in some leafy retreat of the greenwood.
The woods, shining with the yellows and reds of the maples, were oddly quiet that beautiful September morning, except for the occasional chirp of a late songbird or the loud caw of a crow calling to his friends, who were making a ruckus in some leafy hideout of the forest.
To Nathalie, the crimson branches of the reddening maples, showing vividly bright from among the green leaves of the spruce, fir, oak, or beech, softened with the glow from the silver poplars as they quivered in the wind, seemed like red banners. As they swayed in undulating motion, to her they were flags, curling and beating the air for that which is every man’s right, liberty.
To Nathalie, the red branches of the changing maples, standing out brightly against the green leaves of the spruce, fir, oak, or beech, softened by the glow of the silver poplars as they rustled in the wind, looked like red banners. As they swayed in a smooth motion, they appeared to her as flags, curling and waving in the air for what is every person's right, freedom.
The girl felt a little depressed at the thought that the summer was over, for the crumpled and autumn-hued leaves, as they fell from the trees, or swept by on 353 the wings of the wind in their dying splendor, seemed to be calling a sad and mournful farewell. Oh, how she would hate to leave these rocky heights that rose in such statuesque grandeur before her, the splendors of the sky with its glory of sunset, the forest gnomes in their crooked and gnarled ugliness, and the green fields, now starred with the yellow beauty of our national flower, the goldenrod!
The girl felt a bit down thinking that summer was coming to an end. The crumpled, autumn-colored leaves that fell from the trees, or blew by on the wings of the wind in their fading beauty, seemed to be saying a sad goodbye. Oh, how she would hate to leave these rocky heights that stood before her in such majestic grandeur, the stunning sky with its glorious sunsets, the forest gnomes in their crooked, twisted ugliness, and the green fields now dotted with the yellow beauty of our national flower, the goldenrod!
What an odd summer it had been! So different from what she had expected. How she would miss her beautiful companions on her morning walks, the blue-hazed mountains! And yet she had made friends. Ah, there was the soldier-boy. She wondered if he would write to her. Then there was Janet. Well, she was never going to let her go out of her life, for she was to visit them next winter.
What a strange summer it had been! So different from what she had expected. She would really miss her beautiful friends on her morning walks, the blue-hazed mountains! And yet she had made new friends. Ah, there was the soldier boy. She wondered if he would write to her. Then there was Janet. Well, she was never going to let her fade out of her life, since she was planning to visit them next winter.
Her eyes saddened as she thought of the Sweet-Pea ladies. Oh, how sorry she would be to bid them good-by, for Miss Whipple seemed to grow frailer every day, and then what would become of poor Miss Mona? And her queer little old friend in the red house? Well, she didn’t suppose that she would ever see her again, for she said that she never wrote to people. Yes, it was depressing to think that you had to meet people you liked, and then go away and just have to forget them, because they passed out of your life.
Her eyes filled with sadness as she thought about the Sweet-Pea ladies. Oh, how much she would hate to say goodbye to them, especially since Miss Whipple seemed to be growing weaker every day, and then what would happen to poor Miss Mona? And what about her quirky little old friend in the red house? Well, she figured she’d probably never see her again since she mentioned that she never wrote to anyone. Yeah, it was really depressing to think you had to meet people you liked, only to leave and have to forget them because they were gone from your life.
And the kiddies? She hated to think of their going 354 back to that slum life again. She wondered if any of the country people up in the mountains would like to take them to live with them, for, yes, Tony and Danny could learn to be very useful. But poor Jean—and Sheila! Then she wondered if her trying to make them Sons of Liberty would help them to be good and honorable men. Sometimes it seemed as if she hadn’t accomplished much, and then again she could see how different they were from what they had been when they came to her. O dear! they were problems.
And the kids? She hated the thought of them going 354 back to that rundown life again. She wondered if any of the rural folks in the mountains would want to take them in, because, yes, Tony and Danny could learn to be really helpful. But poor Jean—and Sheila! Then she thought about whether her efforts to make them Sons of Liberty would help them grow into good and honorable men. Sometimes it felt like she hadn’t achieved much, but then again she could see how different they were from when they first came to her. Oh dear! They really were problems.
And Philip de Brie? Surely she had made a friend of him, at least he was more than a friend to Janet, who—the perverse thing!—was so careful not to let her know if she really cared for him or not. Perhaps it was on account of Cynthia, for she had overheard that young lady telling Janet that Philip was an impostor, and that he had fooled her the way he had Nathalie Page and her mother. The story of his being a British soldier, and that story, too, about his grandmother, was all folderol.
And Philip de Brie? She must have made a friend out of him; at least he was more than a friend to Janet, who—the contradictory person!—was so careful not to let her know if she actually cared for him or not. Maybe it was because of Cynthia, since she had overheard that young woman telling Janet that Philip was a fraud, and that he had tricked her just like he had Nathalie Page and her mother. The tale of him being a British soldier, and the story about his grandmother, was all nonsense.
And poor Janet had meekly made no reply to this tirade, but Nathalie, in imagination, saw the red mount into her cheeks, and knew how humiliated she felt. Well, he was better than that funny little Mr. Buddie anyway. She believed it was just jealousy on Cynthia’s part, for she herself had tried to be very nice to Philip, but somehow he didn’t seem to understand 355 her,—no sensible person could,—and although he had always been very courteous to her, he had never made a friend of her.
And poor Janet had quietly said nothing in response to this outburst, but Nathalie could imagine the redness creeping into her cheeks and understood how embarrassed she felt. Well, he was definitely better than that quirky little Mr. Buddie anyway. She thought it was just jealousy on Cynthia’s part, because she had really tried to be nice to Philip, but for some reason, he didn’t seem to get her,—no sensible person could,—and even though he had always been very polite to her, he had never considered her a friend. 355
Well, she had done her best to clear him of the horrible suspicion that had lost him his pupils; but, alas, she seemed to have made the matter worse, or, at least, she had not done him any good, for when his cabin on the mountain had been burned one night, people had declared that he had set it afire himself to destroy evidences of his guilt.
Well, she had tried her hardest to clear him of the awful suspicion that had cost him his students; but, unfortunately, it seemed she only made things worse, or at least didn’t help him at all, because when his cabin on the mountain burned down one night, people claimed he had set it on fire himself to get rid of the evidence of his guilt.
And then, when the manager of the hotel had the ground dug up, where she and the children had discovered those pieces of jewelry, nothing had been found. And Mr. Keating, alias the Count, had gone, called to Chicago, he claimed, the very night before they dug up around the rock,—the very night, too, that the cabin had been burned. No, Philip had not been arrested, for certainly the evidence was not strong enough to warrant such action. And then the detective had disappeared, although Nathalie had a feeling at times that he was hanging around somewhere near the place, in disguise, perhaps, watching Philip.
And then, when the hotel manager had the ground dug up where she and the kids had found those pieces of jewelry, nothing was found. And Mr. Keating, also known as the Count, had left, claiming he was called to Chicago the very night before they excavated around the rock—the same night that the cabin had burned down. No, Philip hadn’t been arrested because the evidence wasn’t strong enough to justify that. Then the detective had vanished, although Nathalie sometimes felt like he was lurking nearby, maybe in disguise, keeping an eye on Philip.
And the people who had been so nice to Philip, now acted very queerly whenever they saw him, and Philip, the poor fellow, had said nothing, although Nathalie was afraid that he suspected that something was wrong. Her mother had persuaded him to come down to Seven Pillars after the burning of the cabin, and 356 although he had accepted their kind hospitality for the time being, he chafed under the favors showered upon him, and showed that he was inwardly suffering to have to be placed in such a position, for Janet said he resented charity. Yes, and ten days had passed, and Nathalie had not heard one word from the detective. O dear! the world was a queer place to live in, anyway.
And the people who had been so nice to Philip now acted really strangely whenever they saw him. Philip, the poor guy, didn’t say anything, though Nathalie worried that he might suspect something was off. Her mother had convinced him to come down to Seven Pillars after the cabin burned down, and 356 even though he accepted their kind hospitality for the time being, he felt uncomfortable with all the attention and showed that he was struggling with being in that situation, because Janet mentioned he didn’t like accepting charity. Yes, and ten days had passed, and Nathalie hadn’t heard a single word from the detective. Oh dear! The world was a strange place to live in, anyway.
Just after luncheon, as Nathalie and her mother sat knitting on the veranda, a loud “Honk! Honk!” announced the arrival of Nita, who, with her cheeks red with excitement, burst upon the group like a young whirlwind.
Just after lunch, as Nathalie and her mom sat knitting on the porch, a loud “Honk! Honk!” signaled Nita's arrival, who, with her cheeks flushed with excitement, rushed into the group like a young whirlwind.
“Oh, Blue Robin,” she cried, as she caught sight of Nathalie, “I have the most wonderful news for you.” And then, without waiting to be questioned by her friend, who had risen to her feet in nervous expectancy, she added excitedly, “Philip has been cleared!”
“Oh, Blue Robin,” she exclaimed, spotting Nathalie, “I have the most amazing news for you.” And then, without waiting for her friend, who had jumped to her feet in anxious anticipation, she added eagerly, “Philip has been cleared!”
“Oh, Nita, how do you know?” cried Nathalie, her face turning white, as she nervously clutched at her chair.
“Oh, Nita, how do you know?” Nathalie exclaimed, her face turning pale as she nervously gripped her chair.
“The news came this morning from the detective, and the manager told mother. He said Mr. Grenoble got his clew from Sheila. You just come right here, little girl,” broke off Nita abruptly, as she beckoned for Sheila to come to her, “so I can kiss you for a blessed dear.” She seized the somewhat astonished 357 child and began to hug her with excited exuberance.
“The news came this morning from the detective, and the manager told Mom. He said Mr. Grenoble got his lead from Sheila. You come right here, little girl,” Nita interrupted suddenly, waving for Sheila to come over, “so I can kiss you, you sweet dear.” She grabbed the somewhat surprised 357 child and started to hug her with excited joy.
“But who is the thief?” exclaimed Nathalie breathlessly. “Oh, do tell us!”
“But who’s the thief?” Nathalie gasped. “Oh, please tell us!”
“The thief? Why, Mr. Keating, the Count, of course,” laughed Nita gleefully; “and he was caught all through Sheila’s crying out about the funny ’phone man. When she spoke of the man in the booth placing the receiver on his head when telephoning, it gave Mr. Grenoble a big clew. It seems that the detective-bureau had been on the lookout for some time for a gentleman burglar who had the peculiar eccentricity of holding the receiver on the top of his head, as Sheila stated. He was born without any folds to his ears,—no, that isn’t the word; I guess it was ganglion cells. No, that isn’t right—Well, anyway he had something the matter with his auditory nerve, so that his hearing was defective. By placing the receiver on the top of his head, as he had very good bone-conduction,—yes, that’s right,—he could hear better.
“The thief? Oh, Mr. Keating, it was the Count, of course,” Nita said with a laugh; “and he got caught because of Sheila yelling about the funny phone guy. When she mentioned the guy in the booth putting the receiver on his head while talking, it gave Mr. Grenoble a big clue. Apparently, the detective agency had been searching for a gentleman burglar who had the unusual habit of holding the receiver on the top of his head, just like Sheila said. He was born without any folds in his ears,—no, that’s not the right term; I think it was something about ganglion cells. No, that isn’t correct—Well, anyway, he had a problem with his auditory nerve, which made his hearing impaired. By placing the receiver on the top of his head, since he had very good bone conduction,—yes, that’s it,—he could hear better.
“As soon as the detective heard what Sheila said he began to shadow our friend, the Count. He saw him do the same thing that Sheila told about, and that, with certain other clews, led to his arrest. He was not the Mr. Keating from Chicago that he claimed to be, whom the manager asserted had spent a summer at the hotel two years ago. That gentleman died this spring, and this ‘count’ fellow impersonated him, so as to gain a social standing in the hotel.
“As soon as the detective heard what Sheila said, he started to follow our friend, the Count. He saw him do exactly what Sheila described, and that, along with some other clues, led to his arrest. He was not the Mr. Keating from Chicago that he claimed to be, the one the manager said had spent a summer at the hotel two years ago. That man died this spring, and this 'count' guy impersonated him to gain social status at the hotel."
358 “The manager now admits that at times he had been puzzled by certain changes in Mr. Keating’s appearance, but he attributed it to the fact that he was older, and was now clean-shaven, when two years ago he wore a mustache. The detective thinks that the Count burned the cabin up in the woods so as to deepen the suspicion already fostered in regard to Philip.”
358 “The manager now acknowledges that he was sometimes confused by some changes in Mr. Keating’s appearance, but he thought it was just because he was older and now clean-shaven, whereas two years ago he had a mustache. The detective believes that the Count set the cabin in the woods on fire to intensify the suspicion already directed at Philip.”
“But he got away with the jewelry,” exclaimed that young gentleman, who, with Janet, had just stepped up to the edge of the veranda, while Nita had been talking.
“But he got away with the jewelry,” exclaimed the young man, who, with Janet, had just walked up to the edge of the veranda while Nita had been talking.
“But he did not get far,” rejoined Nita, “for when he walked into the New York station a few days ago,—that was just a ruse, talking about being called to Chicago,—he simply walked into the net that the detectives had spread for him, and he is now in jail.”
“But he didn't get far,” Nita replied, “because when he walked into the New York station a few days ago—that was just a trick, saying he was called to Chicago—he basically walked right into the trap that the detectives had set for him, and now he's in jail.”
“I saw that the detective doubted my story,” remarked Nathalie, “and it made me feel unpleasant. But, oh, I am so glad the thief has been caught—and—”
“I noticed that the detective didn't believe my story,” Nathalie said, “and it made me feel uncomfortable. But, oh, I’m so glad the thief has been caught—and—”
“That Philip is cleared,” interrupted that young man. “Yes, Miss Nathalie, you have added to the store of kind things that you have done for me. But wait,” Philip’s eyes glowed, “some day,—well, perhaps I can repay every one. And little Blue Robin,” he continued, laughingly, “I knew that I was the suspected one, although you were all so careful not to let anything slip out that would tell me, so as to save my 359 sensitiveness, but as I was innocent I knew that things would clear up somehow.”
"Philip is off the hook," that young man interrupted. "Yes, Miss Nathalie, you’ve added to the list of nice things you’ve done for me. But wait," Philip's eyes lit up, "one day, well, maybe I can repay everyone. And little Blue Robin," he added with a laugh, "I knew I was the one being suspected, even though you all did your best to keep anything from slipping out that might let me know, just to spare my feelings. But since I was innocent, I figured things would work out eventually."
And then he and Janet returned to their seats under the trees, where Philip had been reading to her, while Nathalie, with a glad light in her eyes, continued to discuss the many details of the affair. As Nita rose to go she suddenly exclaimed: “Oh, there, I forgot to tell you that we are going home in a couple of days. Mother is anxious to get back to the city.”
And then he and Janet went back to their seats under the trees, where Philip had been reading to her, while Nathalie, with a happy spark in her eyes, kept talking about all the details of the situation. As Nita stood up to leave, she suddenly said, “Oh, I forgot to mention that we’re heading home in a couple of days. Mom is eager to get back to the city.”
“Oh, I shall miss you terribly,” cried her friend, as she placed her arm affectionately around the little hunchback; “but then I presume we shall be going soon ourselves. But, Nita,” she added abruptly. “I came very near forgetting to tell you that we have all handed our diaries to Mr. Banker, and I am so glad that irksome task is over, for I hated to have to write in it every day. We are to meet Mr. Banker in the mystery-room to-morrow afternoon. It all sounds very thrilling, doesn’t it? We are all very curious to know what is hidden there.”
“Oh, I’m going to miss you so much,” her friend exclaimed, wrapping her arm affectionately around the little hunchback. “But I guess we’ll be leaving soon ourselves. But, Nita,” she added suddenly, “I almost forgot to tell you that we’ve all given our diaries to Mr. Banker, and I’m so relieved that annoying task is done, because I hated having to write in it every day. We’re meeting Mr. Banker in the mystery room tomorrow afternoon. It all sounds really exciting, doesn’t it? We’re all very curious to find out what’s hidden there.”
“Oh, I am just dying to know, too,” cried Nita. “Well, come over to tea to-morrow, and then perhaps the mystery will be a mystery no longer.”
“Oh, I can’t wait to find out, too,” Nita exclaimed. “Well, come over for tea tomorrow, and maybe the mystery will be a mystery no more.”
“But have you selected the valuable thing?” asked the girl laughingly, after she assured her friend that she would surely accept her invitation.
“But have you picked the valuable thing?” the girl asked with a laugh, after telling her friend that she would definitely accept her invitation.
“Why, no, not as yet,” returned Nathalie, “for I 360 am swayed by two loves. But it is all nonsense anyway, so I don’t think it will make much difference what any of us select. Cynthia will probably win the prize, as the kiddies say, for she has chosen a very valuable painting. Janet has selected a most curious thing,—a necklace. It came from China, and has a series or chain of heads; they say every one is a likeness of some old mummified mandarin. When you touch a spring—Janet didn’t know this until mother showed it to her, for she saw this necklace years ago, when Mrs. Renwick brought it home with her from one of her Oriental trips—each one of these mummified Chinamen sticks out his tongue.”
“Not yet,” Nathalie replied. “I’m caught between two loves. But it’s all just nonsense, so I don’t think it will make much difference what any of us choose. Cynthia will probably win the prize, as the kids say, because she picked a really valuable painting. Janet has chosen something quite strange—a necklace. It’s from China and has a chain of heads; they say each one looks like an old mummified mandarin. When you press a spring—Janet didn’t know this until Mom showed her, since she saw this necklace years ago when Mrs. Renwick brought it back from one of her trips to the East—each of these mummified Chinese men sticks out his tongue.”
“Well, good-by until to-morrow,” cried Nita, and then she was in her car and a moment later went whizzing along the road towards Sugar Hill village.
“Well, goodbye until tomorrow,” shouted Nita, and then she jumped into her car and a moment later zoomed down the road toward Sugar Hill village.
Nathalie had just finished putting her boys through their morning drill the following day, and seen them hurry away with Janet to do some weeding and hoeing for her in her garden, when she was joined by Philip. As he finished telling her a bit of war news,—she was industriously trying to finish a sweater for Dick,—his glance was arrested by the little Bible lying on the chair by her side, for Nathalie had continued her Scripture readings to the children.
Nathalie had just wrapped up her morning routine with her boys the next day and watched them rush off with Janet to do some weeding and hoeing in her garden when Philip joined her. As he finished sharing some war news—she was busy trying to complete a sweater for Dick—his attention was caught by the little Bible on the chair beside her, since Nathalie had kept up with her Scripture readings for the children.
Picking the book up, he began to turn over its leaves carelessly, almost mechanically, as if his mind was occupied with some other matter, when suddenly Nathalie 361 heard a surprised exclamation, and looked up to see Philip staring at the fly-leaf of the Bible, with an odd, curious expression on his face.
Picking up the book, he started flipping through its pages absentmindedly, almost on autopilot, as if he was focused on something else. Suddenly, Nathalie 361 heard a surprised exclamation and looked up to see Philip staring at the blank page of the Bible with a strange, curious look on his face.
“Where did you get this Bible?” he asked hurriedly, turning towards the girl.
“Where did you get this Bible?” he asked quickly, turning towards the girl.
“In one of the upper rooms of the house. I think it must have belonged to Mrs. Renwick’s son, Philip. Why, your name is Philip, too,” she cried smilingly. “Why, I never thought of that before.”
“In one of the upper rooms of the house. I think it must have belonged to Mrs. Renwick’s son, Philip. Wow, your name is Philip, too,” she said with a smile. “I never realized that before.”
“Yes, my name is Philip, and this Bible belonged to my father—”
“Yes, my name is Philip, and this Bible was my father's—”
“Your father?” repeated the dazed girl. But before Philip could answer her, in a quick revelation she cried, “Why, is your name Renwick?” staring at him with wide-open eyes.
“Your father?” repeated the dazed girl. But before Philip could answer her, in a sudden realization she exclaimed, “Wait, is your name Renwick?” staring at him with wide-open eyes.
“Yes, Philip de Brie Renwick.”
“Yes, Philip de Brie Renwick.”
“And Mrs. Renwick, who used to live here?”
“And Mrs. Renwick, who used to live here?”
“Was my grandmother!”
“That's my grandma!”
CHAPTER XXIV
THE WINNER OF THE PRIZE
As Nathalie sat in dazed surprise upon hearing Philip’s announcement, he went on and told her of the early life of his father, of his going to Europe, of his marriage with Marie de Brie, a French girl, of his return to America, and of his subsequent quarrel with his mother, who had refused to receive his wife, a story that the girl had already heard, but not in detail, from Mrs. Page.
As Nathalie sat in stunned surprise at Philip’s announcement, he continued to tell her about his father’s early life, his travels to Europe, his marriage to Marie de Brie, a French woman, his return to America, and the falling out with his mother, who had refused to accept his wife—a story Nathalie had already heard from Mrs. Page, but not in detail.
When his father left his grandmother, Philip stated, he was in a mood of mingled anger and humiliation, while his heart had been deeply seared with disillusioned love. He could not realize that the mother who had made him her idol, the mother whom he adored, could, from mere motives of false pride, wound him so deeply by refusing to receive the girl to whom he had given the affections of his young manhood.
When his father left his grandmother, Philip said he felt a mix of anger and humiliation, while his heart was deeply hurt by disillusioned love. He couldn't understand that the mother who had made him her idol, the mother he adored, could wound him so deeply out of false pride by refusing to accept the girl to whom he had given his young affections.
On leaving his mother, Philip Renwick had remained at the hotel for a time, vainly hoping that she would attempt a reconciliation, but when no word came from her, he took his wife to a southern town, where, a few 363 months later, he, Philip the second, had been born. A couple of years later the young couple had returned to England, where they had lived until his father’s death. Shortly after losing her husband, young Mrs. Renwick had returned to France, and had become the home-keeper for a bachelor brother. On his death she was left a small annuity on the condition that she retain her maiden name of de Brie; hence the reason that Philip had become known by his mother’s maiden name.
After leaving his mother, Philip Renwick stayed at the hotel for a while, hoping she would try to make amends, but when he didn’t hear from her, he took his wife to a southern town, where, a few 363 months later, their son, Philip the second, was born. A couple of years later, the young couple returned to England, where they lived until his father's death. Shortly after losing her husband, young Mrs. Renwick went back to France and became the home caretaker for her bachelor brother. When he died, she was left a small pension on the condition that she kept her maiden name, de Brie; that’s why Philip came to be known by his mother’s maiden name.
“But did you know that it was here, at Seven Pillars, that your grandmother used to live?” asked Nathalie, as Philip finished.
“But did you know that it was here, at Seven Pillars, that your grandmother used to live?” Nathalie asked as Philip finished.
“Yes, and that was why I felt that I could not refuse your mother’s kind invitation to spend a short time here as her guest, for the house had so many associations for me, for my father, as well as my grandmother, were very fond of this old place up here in these mountains.
“Yes, and that’s why I felt I couldn't turn down your mother's kind invitation to spend some time here as her guest. The house holds so many memories for me because both my father and grandmother really loved this old place up in the mountains.”
“The night you found me in the cabin, Miss Nathalie,” resumed the young man, “I had become tired of life, for it seemed as if there was nothing for me to live for, for I hadn’t enough ambition to try to better my condition. I could only face the fact that mother was gone, that I had not a cent in the world, as my mother’s annuity ceased with her life, and my soldier’s pension was only a few dollars a week. I realized that I would probably lose my arm, for I knew that it 364 should have a surgeon’s care and I had no money to pay one. And it is right here, Miss Nathalie, that I want you to understand my deep appreciation of, and my hearty thanks for, what you have done for me; also the kindness of Miss Janet,” a sudden light flamed in the young man’s eyes, “and the thoughtfulness of your mother, and your friends, Mrs. Van Vorst and Miss Nita.
“The night you found me in the cabin, Miss Nathalie,” the young man continued, “I had gotten really tired of life, because it felt like there was nothing for me to live for, and I didn’t have enough ambition to try to improve my situation. I could only accept that my mother was gone, that I didn’t have a dime to my name since her annuity ended with her passing, and my military pension was just a few dollars a week. I realized that I would probably lose my arm because I knew it needed a surgeon's care and I didn’t have the money to pay for one. Right here, Miss Nathalie, I want you to understand how deeply I appreciate and thank you for what you’ve done for me; also the kindness of Miss Janet,” a sudden light lit up the young man’s eyes, “and the thoughtfulness of your mother, and your friends, Mrs. Van Vorst and Miss Nita.
“The companionship of you all, even of the kiddies, your Liberty boys, has put new life into me. I did become a little discouraged, it is true, when I began to lose my French pupils, and surmised the reason, from various hints that were dropped by some of the people, who were the victims of the thief, for it is not an enlivening thought to fear that your only and very best friends might grow to think you a rascal.
“The companionship of all of you, even the kids, your Liberty boys, has revitalized me. I did feel a bit discouraged, it’s true, when I started losing my French students and guessed the reason from various hints dropped by some of the people who were victims of the thief. It’s not a comforting thought to worry that your only and closest friends might come to see you as a scoundrel."
“But you all proved so true to me, especially you, little Blue Robin, I call you that name, as the bluebird is a bird of cheer, and certainly you have inspired me with the ambition for a new career-to-be, as you have proved yourself such a loyal little comrade in my time of need. Remember, Nathalie, I shall never forget you, or what you have done for me.”
“But you all showed such loyalty to me, especially you, little Blue Robin. I call you that because the bluebird is a symbol of happiness, and you have definitely inspired me with the ambition for a new career. You’ve been such a faithful little friend during my time of need. Remember, Nathalie, I will never forget you or what you’ve done for me.”
Nathalie, her face a wave of color from the unexpected warmth of Philip’s praise, in hasty confusion, as if to change the subject to another one than herself, cried, “But why did you not go, when you were in Boston, to Mrs. Renwick’s trustees, and make yourself 365 known to them? For, if you are her grandson, you are entitled to some of her money.”
Nathalie, her cheeks flushed from the unexpected warmth of Philip's praise, quickly, as if trying to shift the conversation away from herself, exclaimed, “But why didn’t you go to Mrs. Renwick’s trustees when you were in Boston and introduce yourself? If you’re her grandson, you have a right to some of her money.”
“For two reasons,” replied Philip slowly. “One was that, in my hasty departure from England it slipped my mind to bring my credentials with me. And then, again,—perhaps my grandmother’s pride has descended to me,—I felt that if she did not love my father,—she had let him go so easily,—that I could have pride, too, and did not care to accept her money. If I could have met her when alive, and had learned that she did have some love for my father, why, then I would have revealed myself to her, and naturally would have felt differently in regard to accepting her money. But I have one thing by which I could have proved my identity to her if she had been still alive. See, it is this little ring. She gave it to my father, who always wore it, as I have done, ever since it came into my possession.”
“For two reasons,” replied Philip slowly. “One is that in my rushed departure from England, I completely forgot to bring my credentials with me. And then, perhaps my grandmother’s pride has been passed down to me— I felt that if she didn’t love my father—she let him go so easily—that I could have pride, too, and didn’t want to accept her money. If I could have met her when she was alive and learned that she actually had some love for my father, then I would have revealed myself to her and naturally would have felt differently about accepting her money. But I have one thing that I could have used to prove my identity to her if she had still been alive. Look, it’s this little ring. She gave it to my father, who wore it all the time, just as I have since it came into my possession.”
Philip took from one of his little fingers an odd, peculiar-looking seal ring. After showing his father’s and his grandmother’s initials and the date of its presentation, he touched a tiny spring back of the stone, and Nathalie saw a miniature picture of Mrs. Renwick. She knew it immediately from its resemblance to several pictures of her that were scattered about the house.
Philip took an unusual-looking seal ring from one of his little fingers. After showing the initials of his father and grandmother and the date it was given, he pressed a tiny spring behind the stone, and Nathalie saw a miniature picture of Mrs. Renwick. She recognized it right away because it looked like several pictures of her that were scattered around the house.
At this moment there was a loud wail from Sheila, who, in picking flowers in the meadow where Sam was 366 mowing, had been injured by the mower. It was some time before her cries were stilled, and her wound properly bandaged, so that, for the time being, the wonderful news that Philip had told was forgotten.
At that moment, Sheila let out a loud cry. While picking flowers in the meadow where Sam was mowing, she had been hurt by the mower. It took a while for her cries to quiet down and for her wound to be properly bandaged. As a result, for the time being, the wonderful news Philip had shared was forgotten.
When it finally came to mind, Nathalie was tempted to run and claim him as her cousin, to tell him about Mrs. Renwick’s peculiar letter, and what was expected to take place there that afternoon. But after some thought she wisely concluded to remain silent until after she had talked with Mr. Banker and her mother. Not but that she had faith in Philip’s story, but because it seemed the most prudent thing to do.
When it finally crossed her mind, Nathalie felt the urge to run over and claim him as her cousin, to tell him about Mrs. Renwick’s strange letter and what was supposed to happen that afternoon. But after thinking it over, she decided it was smarter to stay quiet until she had spoken with Mr. Banker and her mom. She believed in Philip’s story but thought it was the most sensible thing to do.
These thoughts were hasty ones, for the girl had suddenly remembered that she had not selected the valuable thing as yet, and that it was almost four o’clock, the hour of Mr. Banker’s arrival. She had partly decided to select a set of rubies,—a necklace and pair of bracelets,—and then a Russian curio had made its appeal, but somehow she bordered upon a state of indecision that was becoming intolerable.
These thoughts came quickly, as the girl suddenly remembered that she still hadn’t picked the valuable item, and that it was almost four o’clock—the time Mr. Banker was supposed to arrive. She had almost settled on choosing a set of rubies—a necklace and a pair of bracelets—but then a Russian antique caught her interest. Still, she found herself stuck in a state of indecision that was getting really frustrating.
As she turned to enter the house, her eyes fell on the little Bible that, in her hasty rush to Sheila, when she appeared with her bleeding foot, she had left lying on the chair under the trees. She ran hastily across the lawn and picked it up. As she did so, the book flew open and her attention was arrested by the name, Philip Renwick, on the fly-leaf, and its connection with what Philip had just told her. And then, she stood a 367 minute, pondering. Why had not she thought of that before? and then, with a dimpling face, she closed the book and hurried back to the veranda, almost knocking down Tony, who stood wistfully regarding her.
As she turned to enter the house, her eyes landed on the little Bible that she had left on the chair under the trees in her rush to get to Sheila when she showed up with her bleeding foot. She quickly ran across the lawn and picked it up. As she did, the book opened up, and she noticed the name, Philip Renwick, on the flyleaf, along with its connection to what Philip had just told her. Then, she paused for a moment, thinking. Why hadn’t she considered that before? With a smiling face, she closed the book and hurried back to the porch, nearly colliding with Tony, who was watching her with a wistful look.
“Pleass, scusa, Mees Natta, haf you gotta da theeng for de preez?—Mister Banka, hees com’ bimeby to looka for eet.” Tony’s big, velvety eyes were mutely pleading as he looked up at Nathalie.
“Please, excuse me, Miss Natta, do you have the thing for the prize?—Mr. Bank, he’s coming by soon to look for it.” Tony’s big, velvety eyes were silently pleading as he looked up at Nathalie.
The girl laughingly mimicked the boy as she patted him on the head, understanding that he was worried because she had not selected the thing that the children were so anxious should “win the prize,” as they called it, for her. Then her eyes sobered, and, drawing the little lad to her, she showed him the Bible she held in her hand, explaining that she had selected it, as it told about Christ the Savior, and contained God’s wonderful message to His people, telling them how to love Him and be good. “Yes, Tony,” she added solemnly, “the Bible is the most precious thing to everybody in the world. And then, as this little Bible used to belong to Mrs. Renwick’s only son, I am sure that it would be the most valuable thing to her, so I am going to select it.”
The girl laughed as she playfully copied the boy, giving him a pat on the head, knowing he was nervous because she hadn’t picked what the other kids were eager for her to choose as the thing that would “win the prize.” Then her expression became serious, and pulling the little boy closer, she showed him the Bible she was holding, explaining that she chose it because it talks about Christ the Savior and has God’s amazing message for His people, teaching them how to love Him and be kind. “Yes, Tony,” she said earnestly, “the Bible is the most precious thing to everyone in the world. Plus, since this little Bible used to belong to Mrs. Renwick’s only son, I’m sure it would mean the most to her, so I’m going to pick it.”
As the girl saw the child’s eyes light up, as if he comprehended what she meant, she laid the Bible on a chair and ran hastily up to her room to hunt for some white paper and blue ribbon. In a moment or so she was back, wrapping up the book, and then, to Tony’s infinite 368 delight, she slipped her card under the blue ribbon and gave the book to him, to place at the door of the mystery-room with the other packages.
As the girl saw the child's eyes brighten, as if he understood what she meant, she put the Bible on a chair and quickly ran up to her room to search for some white paper and blue ribbon. In just a moment, she was back, wrapping up the book, and then, to Tony's immense delight, she slipped her card under the blue ribbon and handed the book to him, to put by the door of the mystery room with the other packages.
Some time later, Nathalie, in company with her mother, Janet, Cynthia, and Mr. Banker, entered the mystery-room, no one perceiving as they entered that the children had slyly followed them, and were staring about with wondering, curious eyes. Ah, so this was the room they had all been so curious about; and Nathalie smiled as she saw that it was a homey, cozy room, suggestive of feminine tastes and occupations, but, after all, it was just nothing but Mrs. Renwick’s sitting-room, the room where she had sewed, read, and wrote her letters.
Some time later, Nathalie, along with her mother, Janet, Cynthia, and Mr. Banker, entered the mystery room, unaware that the children had quietly followed them and were looking around with wide, curious eyes. Ah, so this was the room they had all been so eager to see; Nathalie smiled as she noticed it was a warm, inviting space that reflected feminine tastes and activities, but in the end, it was just Mrs. Renwick’s sitting room, the place where she had sewn, read, and written her letters.
The low book-cases lining the wall, the hardwood floor with its costly Persian rug, the open fireplace set with fagots ready to light on a cool morning, the desk in one corner, with the Victrola near, and the antique furniture, all of solid mahogany, certainly did not savor of a mystery or anything uncanny. In fact, the little table in the center of the room, with its shaded lamp, books, and magazines, and the little upright work-basket near, rather intimated that the owner of the room had just left it for a moment or so.
The low bookshelves along the wall, the hardwood floor covered with an expensive Persian rug, the open fireplace stacked with logs ready to be lit on a cool morning, the desk in one corner with the Victrola nearby, and the antique furniture all made of solid mahogany definitely didn’t hint at any mystery or anything strange. In fact, the small table in the middle of the room, with its shaded lamp, books, and magazines, along with the little upright work-basket nearby, suggested that the room's owner had just stepped out for a moment.
But Mr. Banker was speaking. He stood by the little center-table on which lay the three valuable things. He held up Cynthia’s selection as he said: “I have here a picture, a most valuable painting, as it is a Van 369 Dyke. It has been selected by Miss Cynthia Loretto Stillwell, as I see by the name on the card. This little box bears the name of Miss Janet Page, and is a curio from China. And here is a Bible,” the gentleman’s voice deepened as he held up Nathalie’s selection. The girl’s heart, notwithstanding her indifference to the outcome of the selection, was beating against her side in a very annoying way.
But Mr. Banker was talking. He stood by the small coffee table where the three valuable items were displayed. He raised Cynthia’s choice and said, “I have here a picture, a truly valuable painting, as it’s a Van Dyke. It was selected by Miss Cynthia Loretto Stillwell, as noted on the card. This little box is labeled with Miss Janet Page's name and is a curio from China. And here is a Bible,” the gentleman’s voice deepened as he held up Nathalie’s choice. The girl’s heart, despite her indifference to the outcome of the selection, was beating against her side in a very annoying way.
“It is a curious selection,” continued Mr. Banker, “and—oh, what is this?” as something round and glittering fell from the book. “A gold coin,” he commented with some surprise; “yes, a Roman coin, for it bears the head of Cæsar, and I should imagine he turned the coin over as it lay in his palm, that it was of considerable value, as, from what I can decipher between the obliterations, it has a very ancient date. But I do not understand,” he glanced inquiringly, “which is the article that has been selected as the valuable thing, the coin or the Bible? The card on the letter bears the name of Nathalie Page,” turning as he spoke, and looking at the girl, who was staring at him, with mystified, bewildered eye, “A coin!” she finally managed to gasp. “Why, I didn’t see—”
“It’s an interesting choice,” Mr. Banker continued, “and—oh, what’s this?” as something round and shiny fell from the book. “A gold coin,” he noted with surprise; “yes, a Roman coin, since it has the head of Caesar on it. I imagine when he turned the coin over in his hand, he realized it was worth quite a bit, especially since, from what I can make out despite the wear, it’s very old. But I don’t get it,” he said, looking curiously, “which item is considered the valuable one, the coin or the Bible? The card with the letter has the name Nathalie Page on it,” he said as he turned to look at the girl, who was staring at him with a confused, bewildered expression. “A coin!” she finally managed to say. “I didn’t see—”
“Pleass ’scusa. Mister Banka,” cried Tony’s soft, musical voice at this point, “da coin eet belona to Mees Natta,—she fina eet wan day een a box.” The liquid black eyes of the boy were brilliant with a strange glow of joy.
“Please excuse me, Mr. Banka,” Tony said with a soft, musical voice at this moment, “the coin belongs to Miss Natta—she finally got it one day in a box.” The boy's deep black eyes sparkled with a strange joy.
370 “Oh, no, Tonio, the coin is not Miss Natta’s,” cried Nathalie, a sudden light breaking in upon her bewilderment. “It is your coin. Don’t you remember, I found it in the mustard-box the day you were ill? But it is yours, Tony; you placed it there for Miss Natta to find.” The girl, strangely amused, smiled down at the lad.
370 “Oh, no, Tonio, that coin doesn’t belong to Miss Natta,” Nathalie exclaimed, a sudden realization hitting her. “It’s your coin. Don't you remember? I found it in the mustard jar the day you were sick. But it’s yours, Tony; you put it there for Miss Natta to discover.” The girl, oddly entertained, smiled down at the boy.
“You bet my life, Mees Natta, Tonio, no, hees neva hada coin. Eet verra old, da coin, eet com’ f’om a beeg keeng wat liva een da Roma lan’. Ees belonga to Mees Natta,” the boy ended persistently.
“You bet my life, Miss Natta, Tonio, no, he's never had a coin. It's very old, the coin, it comes from a big king who lived in the Roman land. It belongs to Miss Natta,” the boy concluded insistently.
“Oh, Tony, you are in the wrong,” pleaded the girl, suddenly feeling that she wanted to cry, as she saw that the child was determined to persist in his untruth. “You know it is your coin, for Danny found it one day for you when it had dropped from your embroidered vest. Didn’t you, Danny?”
“Oh, Tony, you’re wrong,” the girl pleaded, suddenly feeling like she was about to cry, as she realized that the child was determined to stick to his lie. “You know it’s your coin, because Danny found it one day when it fell from your embroidered vest. Right, Danny?”
And Danny, with a troubled look in his blue eyes,—he, too, wanted Miss Natta to have that prize,—mutely nodded in confirmation of her word. But Tony, with a sudden tightening of his red lips, again protested in a sullen tone, “No, eet ees no Tonio’s coin. Eet belona to Mees Natta.”
And Danny, with a worried look in his blue eyes—he, too, wanted Miss Natta to have that prize—silently nodded in agreement with her. But Tony, with a sudden tightening of his red lips, protested again in a sulky tone, “No, it’s not Tonio’s coin. It belongs to Miss Natta.”
“Oh, Tony,” exclaimed the girl, as the tears swelled up into her eyes, “you hurt ‘Mees Natta.’ ‘Mees Natta’ rather not have the prize than have Tonio tell what is not so.”
“Oh, Tony,” the girl cried, tears welling up in her eyes, “you hurt ‘Mees Natta.’ ‘Mees Natta’ would rather not have the prize than have Tonio say what isn’t true.”
Tony’s eyes fell, as he shifted uneasily from one foot 371 to the other, and then, glancing up, still with that stubborn look on his face, and seeing the tears in the girl’s eyes, he dropped his face into the curve of his arm. Not a sound came from him, but the long, convulsive shivers of the slim little body told that the lad was crying.
Tony's gaze dropped as he shifted uncomfortably from one foot to the other. Then, looking up with that same stubborn expression, he saw the tears in the girl's eyes and buried his face in the curve of his arm. He didn't make a sound, but the long, shuddering shakes of his slim little body revealed that he was crying.
Nathalie turned towards Mr. Banker, distress depicted on her face, as she cried, “Oh, Mr. Banker, I am so sorry, but I selected the Bible.”
Nathalie turned to Mr. Banker, worry clear on her face, as she said, “Oh, Mr. Banker, I’m so sorry, but I picked the Bible.”
Mr. Banker hesitated a moment, and then his sharp eyes softened, as he saw the mute anguish of the little Italian lad and realized his keen disappointment, for he had often commented upon the boy’s affection for the girl. Stepping to his side, he patted him on the head, as he said cheerily: “Never mind, son; don’t cry. Who knows, perhaps ‘Mees Natta’ may win the prize, as you call it, even without the coin. Here, lad, take what belongs to you, and mind you,” he added in a sterner tone, “never again be tempted to tell an untruth, even for ‘Mees Natta.’” With another pat on the bowed head he stepped back beside the table, where he had been standing.
Mr. Banker paused for a moment, then his sharp eyes softened when he saw the silent pain of the little Italian boy and understood his deep disappointment, knowing he had often talked about the boy’s affection for the girl. He stepped up to the boy and patted him on the head, saying cheerfully, “Don’t worry, kid; don’t cry. Who knows, maybe ‘Ms. Natta’ will win the prize, as you call it, even without the money. Here, take what belongs to you, and remember,” he said in a more serious tone, “don’t ever be tempted to tell a lie, even for ‘Ms. Natta.’” With another pat on the boy’s bowed head, he stepped back to the table where he had been standing.
“I have gone over these diaries,” said the gentleman, as he picked up one of the three books that lay on the table, “and I find that Miss Cynthia Loretto Stillwell has not passed a day in this house, within the last two months in which she has not searched for the valuable thing. Certainly her diligence should be rewarded,” 372 ended the gentleman, as he bowed ceremoniously to that lady, whose eyes radiated with triumphant joy.
“I've looked through these diaries,” said the gentleman, picking up one of the three books on the table, “and I see that Miss Cynthia Loretto Stillwell hasn’t spent a single day in this house in the last two months without searching for the valuable thing. Surely her hard work deserves recognition,” 372 concluded the gentleman, giving a formal bow to the lady, whose eyes shone with triumphant joy.
“Miss Janet, I find,” his eyes gleamed pleasantly at that winsome young woman, “has been somewhat of a delinquent at times, for there are several entries missing in her diary. But as its reading shows that her heart is a kindly one, as shown by her careful nursing of the young British soldier, I certainly think that she should be well favored.
“Miss Janet, I see,” his eyes sparkled warmly at that charming young woman, “has been a bit of a troublemaker at times, since there are a few entries missing in her diary. However, since her writing shows that she has a kind heart, especially given how she took care of the young British soldier, I definitely think she deserves to be well appreciated.”
“Miss Nathalie, I am afraid, has not done her duty as faithfully as she might have, in looking for the valuable thing”; he spoke somewhat severely as he peered over his glasses at the girl, whose cheeks flushed, their red deepening, as she caught a gleam of satisfaction emanating from Cynthia’s eyes.
“Miss Nathalie, I’m afraid, hasn’t done her duty as well as she could have in searching for the valuable item,” he said somewhat sternly as he looked over his glasses at the girl, whose cheeks flushed, the redness deepening as she noticed a glimmer of satisfaction in Cynthia’s eyes.
“But her negligence has been more than compensated for,”—there was a queer note in the gentleman’s voice, “as this record of two months is so filled with kind acts for others, that— Well, ladies, possibly you have begun to sense that it is not the finding of the valuable thing that is to win out, but the acts it typifies. Each day has been conscientiously noted in Miss Nathalie’s diary, and almost every day bears a record of some good work done for others. I think—well—I am inclined to believe that the young lady—”
“But her carelessness has been more than made up for,”—there was a strange tone in the gentleman’s voice, “because this record of two months is so packed with kind actions for others, that— Well, ladies, you might have started to realize that it’s not about discovering the valuable thing that really matters, but the actions it represents. Each day has been carefully recorded in Miss Nathalie’s diary, and nearly every day has a note of some good deed done for others. I think—well—I’m starting to believe that the young lady—”
Mr. Banker paused abruptly, for at this moment a loud knocking sounded on the door. Cynthia, who 373 was standing near it, with a frown on her face, stepped impatiently forward, and with a hasty movement threw it open.
Mr. Banker stopped suddenly because, at that moment, a loud knock came from the door. Cynthia, who was standing close to it with a frown, stepped forward impatiently and quickly threw it open.
On the threshold stood Mrs. Carney, who, the next moment, with her sharp gray eyes peering defiantly out from under the queer poke-bonnet, while the basket on her arm stuck out aggressively, brushed quickly past Cynthia and into the room. But that lady, with two red spots on her cheeks, seized her by the arm, crying, “You can’t come in here now; we have company,” turning the old lady, as she spoke, and roughly shoving her towards the door.
On the threshold stood Mrs. Carney, who, a moment later, with her sharp gray eyes glaring defiantly from under her strange poke-bonnet, while the basket on her arm protruded aggressively, quickly brushed past Cynthia and into the room. But that lady, with two red spots on her cheeks, grabbed her by the arm, exclaiming, “You can’t come in here right now; we have company,” as she turned the old lady around and roughly pushed her toward the door.
“Oh, Cynthia, don’t be rude to Mrs. Carney!” pleaded distressed Nathalie, as she sprang to the side of her queer little friend. “How are you, Mrs. Carney?” she asked gently, smiling at the face under the bonnet. “We are very glad to see you. You don’t mind Mrs. Carney joining us, do you?” continued the girl, looking at Mr. Banker. “If you do,” she added quickly, “and will excuse me, I will go down-stairs with her, so we can have a little chat.”
“Oh, Cynthia, don’t be rude to Mrs. Carney!” Nathalie said urgently as she rushed to her quirky little friend's side. “How are you, Mrs. Carney?” she asked softly, smiling at the face beneath the bonnet. “We’re really happy to see you. You don’t mind if Mrs. Carney joins us, do you?” the girl asked, looking at Mr. Banker. “If you do,” she added quickly, “and if you don’t mind, I’ll go downstairs with her so we can have a little chat.”
“No, Miss Nathalie, we do not mind Mrs. Carney joining us; in fact,” again that queer little note in Mr. Banker’s voice, “I was just about to ask you to go and bring her here.” He advanced as he spoke and cordially shook the hand of the old lady, who pressed his warmly, but said nothing.
“No, Miss Nathalie, we don’t mind Mrs. Carney joining us; actually,” that odd little tone in Mr. Banker’s voice again, “I was just about to ask you to go and bring her here.” He stepped forward as he spoke and warmly shook the hand of the old lady, who grasped his hand affectionately but didn’t say anything.
“Ah, here is your favorite seat,” continued the gentleman; 374 “perhaps you would like to sit down in it. But I forgot, ladies; perhaps you have not met Mrs. John Renwick,” he had turned towards the occupants of the room smilingly, “the lady who has allowed you the privilege of summering in her house for the last two months, your neighbor of the little red house. As you see, Mrs. Renwick is alive, and I will ask her to take charge of her own letter of instruction, and see that the reward is given to the right one—and—”
“Ah, here’s your favorite seat,” the gentleman continued; 374 “maybe you’d like to sit down in it. But I forgot, ladies; maybe you haven’t met Mrs. John Renwick,” he turned toward the people in the room with a smile, “the lady who has let you stay in her house for the past two months, your neighbor from the little red house. As you can see, Mrs. Renwick is here, and I’ll ask her to take care of her own letter of instruction and make sure the reward goes to the right person—and—”
The gentleman paused, for Mrs. Page, with a glad light in her eyes, was already at the lady’s side, crying, “Oh, sister Mary, it was kind of you to take this way of giving us such a lovely summer. And I am so glad that you are alive and well.” She kissed Mrs. Renwick with warm cordiality. “Do you know,” she continued smilingly, “I was rather suspicious that you were up to one of your—”
The man paused, as Mrs. Page, with a happy spark in her eyes, was already by the lady’s side, saying, “Oh, sister Mary, it was so thoughtful of you to give us such a wonderful summer. And I’m so glad you’re alive and doing well.” She warmly kissed Mrs. Renwick. “You know,” she added with a smile, “I was a bit suspicious that you were up to one of your—”
“Eccentricities,” interrupted the old lady pleasantly, with an odd twinkle in her eyes. “Well, I was anxious to know these young ladies. Yes, I guess I know them now, one of them at least.” She glanced wrathfully at Cynthia, who stood with down-cast eyes, her face as crimson as a poppy, and her heart in a strange tumult of amazement, anger, and regret.
“Eccentricities,” the old lady interrupted cheerfully, with a strange sparkle in her eyes. “Well, I was eager to get to know these young ladies. Yes, I think I know them now, at least one of them.” She shot a furious glance at Cynthia, who stood with her eyes lowered, her face as red as a poppy, and her heart in a confusing mix of shock, anger, and regret.
But Nathalie, in her quick, impulsive way, had thrown her arms around Mrs. Renwick’s neck and was giving her a good hug, as she cried, “Oh! my dear little lady of the red house, I am so glad you are Aunt 375 Mary, for now you will have to be my friend, and answer my letters whether you want to or not.”
But Nathalie, in her quick, impulsive way, had thrown her arms around Mrs. Renwick’s neck and was giving her a good hug, as she cried, “Oh! my dear little lady of the red house, I am so glad you are Aunt 375 Mary, because now you will have to be my friend, and answer my letters whether you want to or not.”
The old lady’s gray eyes softened, as she bent forward and kissed the girl softly on each cheek as she answered gently, “Nathalie, you are just like your father,—he was my favorite brother,—but it is for yourself, child,” she added gravely, “that I have learned to love you. But who has won the prize?” she inquired abruptly, smiling down at the children who were staring at her uncomprehendingly, recognizing her as the inmate of the red house, who seemed to have suddenly assumed a new character.
The old lady’s gray eyes softened as she leaned in and kissed the girl gently on each cheek, saying softly, “Nathalie, you’re just like your father—he was my favorite brother—but it’s for you, my dear,” she added seriously, “that I’ve come to love you. But who won the prize?” she asked suddenly, smiling down at the children who stared at her in confusion, recognizing her as the resident of the red house, who seemed to have taken on a new persona.
“Come over here and look them over,—I mean the valuable things,” advised Mr. Banker, at this moment, as he led Mrs. Renwick to the table, “for the diaries you saw last night.” And then he pointed out in quick succession the three articles of value that were grouped on the table.
“Come over here and check them out—I mean the valuable items,” suggested Mr. Banker, leading Mrs. Renwick to the table, “for the diaries you saw last night.” Then he quickly pointed out the three valuable items that were arranged on the table.
Mrs. Renwick glanced carelessly at the picture. “Yes, it is most valuable,” she assented quietly, “a Van Dyke. And so is this”; she fingered Janet’s choice. “But what is this?” she added suddenly, as her eyes fell on the little Bible that lay at her elbow.
Mrs. Renwick glanced casually at the picture. “Yes, it’s really valuable,” she said softly, “a Van Dyke. And this one too,” she pointed to Janet’s selection. “But what’s this?” she asked suddenly, as her eyes landed on the little Bible that was next to her.
“This is Philip’s Bible,” said the gentleman, “and it was selected by Miss Nathalie—”
“This is Philip’s Bible,” said the man, “and it was chosen by Miss Nathalie—”
“Why, Nathalie, my child, did you select my dear son’s Bible?” As Nathalie mutely assented, Mrs. Renwick motioned for her to come and tell her why she 376 had made this choice. With some embarrassment the girl gave her reasons. As she finished, her aunt said: “Yes, my dear child, there is nothing in the house I value as highly as Philip’s Bible. Nathalie, you have won the prize, and you deserve it, my dear, for you have not only selected the most valuable thing, but you have learned what is the most valuable thing in life.” The old lady drew Nathalie close to her, as she again kissed her on both of her flushed cheeks.
“Why, Nathalie, my dear, why did you choose my son’s Bible?” As Nathalie silently nodded, Mrs. Renwick gestured for her to come over and explain her choice. With some hesitation, the girl shared her reasons. When she finished, her aunt replied, “Yes, my dear, there’s nothing in this house I treasure more than Philip’s Bible. Nathalie, you’ve won the prize, and you deserve it because you’ve chosen the most valuable item and discovered what truly matters in life.” The elderly lady pulled Nathalie close, kissing her on both flushed cheeks again.
But Nathalie drew quickly away, for a sudden thought had come to her. “Oh, wait a moment!” she exclaimed hurriedly. “I’ll be back presently,” and then, without waiting to be excused, she flew from the room.
But Nathalie quickly pulled away, as a sudden thought struck her. “Oh, hold on a second!” she exclaimed in a rush. “I’ll be back soon,” and then, without waiting for permission, she dashed out of the room.
“Oh, Philip!” screamed the girl a moment or so later, as she rushed up to her friend, who was reading in the hammock, “I want you to come with me—quick! Oh—I—” she paused as if at a loss to explain, and then added hurriedly, “Oh, do come! I have something to show you!”
“Oh, Philip!” shouted the girl a moment later as she ran up to her friend, who was reading in the hammock. “I need you to come with me—fast! Oh—I—” she hesitated, seeming unsure how to explain, and then quickly added, “Oh, please come! I have something to show you!”
Philip looked up at the girl in surprise, but, instantly perceiving from her bright, shining eyes, that she was more than usually excited, he jumped from the hammock crying, “All right, Blue Robin, you look very happy, so I suppose it is something very good to see, or good to eat.”
Philip looked up at the girl in surprise, but as soon as he saw her bright, shining eyes, he realized she was unusually excited. He jumped out of the hammock and exclaimed, “Okay, Blue Robin, you look really happy, so I guess it's something great to see or delicious to eat.”

“Oh, it is Philip, my son!”—Page 377.
“Oh, it’s Philip, my son!”—Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
377 Two minutes later the girl had pushed open the door of the mystery-room, and was trying to pull Philip in with her, but that gentleman, on seeing that strangers were present, had stepped back.
377 Two minutes later, the girl had pushed open the door to the mystery room and was trying to pull Philip in with her, but he stepped back upon seeing that there were strangers present.
“No, no, you must come in,” cried the girl in happy excitement. The young man, seeing the determination on his companion’s face, somewhat puzzled, silently followed her into the room. And then Nathalie swirled him about so that he faced Mr. Banker, crying, “Mr. Banker, this is Philip de Brie Renwick!” And then, without waiting for that gentleman to acknowledge the introduction, she took Philip’s hand and led him towards Mrs. Renwick, who, as she saw the young man approaching, tremblingly arose, and, with clasped hands, cried, “Oh, it is Philip, my son!”
“No, no, you have to come in,” the girl said excitedly. The young man, seeing the determination on her face, was somewhat puzzled but silently followed her into the room. Then Nathalie spun him around so he was facing Mr. Banker, exclaiming, “Mr. Banker, this is Philip de Brie Renwick!” Without waiting for Mr. Banker to respond to the introduction, she took Philip’s hand and led him toward Mrs. Renwick, who, seeing the young man coming, nervously stood up and, with her hands clasped, exclaimed, “Oh, it’s Philip, my son!”
“No it is not Philip, your son,” quickly answered the young man, who had instantly divined who the old lady was, “but Philip’s son, your grandson, Philip de Brie Renwick.”
“No, it’s not Philip, your son,” quickly replied the young man, who had immediately figured out who the old lady was, “but Philip’s son, your grandson, Philip de Brie Renwick.”
The next moment Philip was holding the old lady in his arms, while he quietly tried to soothe her sobs, as she wept in happy joy on his breast. As her sobs subsided somewhat, Philip said gently, “Mother Mine,”—it used to be his father’s pet name for his mother,—“here is the ring you gave father when at college.” He drew the seal ring from his finger and held it up before his grandmother, who, with one look at it, cried, “Yes, grandson, I know he has gone, for he promised me—” there was a quiver in her voice—“that the ring should never be removed until—” she drew a deep 378 breath that threatened to turn into a sob—“until he was no more. But he has given me—you, his son. Oh, my dear boy, my own grandson!”
The next moment, Philip was holding the old lady in his arms, trying to comfort her as she joyfully cried on his chest. As her sobs calmed down a bit, Philip said softly, “Mother Mine,”—his father's special name for his mother—“here is the ring you gave Dad when he was in college.” He took the seal ring off his finger and held it up for his grandmother, who, with just one glance at it, exclaimed, “Yes, grandson, I know he’s gone, for he promised me—” her voice trembled—“that the ring would never be taken off until—” she took a deep breath that almost turned into a sob—“until he was no more. But he has given me—you, his son. Oh, my dear boy, my own grandson!”
Nathalie sat by her little sewing-table under the trees, gazing off at her grand old friends, the purple-misted mountains. It had seemed hard to do anything, this her last day at Seven Pillars, but gaze at the lofty heights that stood forth so calm and beautiful in their mystical splendor on this gloriously White Mountain day. But she must read over that letter to see if it was all right, so, in soft, low tone she read slowly,
Nathalie sat at her small sewing table under the trees, staring off at her old friends, the purple-hazed mountains. It felt difficult to do anything on her last day at Seven Pillars except admire the majestic heights that stood so serene and beautiful in their mystical splendor on this gorgeous White Mountain day. But she had to go over that letter to check if it was okay, so she read it slowly in a soft, low voice.
“Dear Helen:
“Hey Helen:”
“I have such good news to tell you that I can hardly write,—for, oh, Helen! the little old lady who lived in the red house is Mrs. Renwick, and Philip de Brie, the British soldier whom we found up in the cabin on the mountain, is her grandson! And I have won the prize. No, of course, it is not really a prize, but the good-will and affectionate regard of Aunt Mary, because—well—I made her happy by selecting her son’s Bible as the most valuable thing in her house. And now I have dandy news to tell. She is going to send me to college. I have just lived in a dream ever since I heard the good news. Yes, and I have one hundred dollars for my very own, to do just as I like with—no restrictions, reparations, or indemnities, but just for wee little me. I think that blessed sum was given to me, because the boys, when told I had won the prize, could not understand anything so vague as going to college, but they did finger that crisp bank-note with eager, curious little fingers when I showed it to them. Sometimes I 379 feel a little guilty, for really Cynthia’s selection, a Van Dyke painting, was the most valuable from a certain point of view.
“I have such amazing news to share that I can barely write it down—oh, Helen! The sweet old lady who lived in the red house is Mrs. Renwick, and Philip de Brie, the British soldier we found at the cabin on the mountain, is her grandson! And guess what? I’ve won a prize. Well, it’s not really a prize in the traditional sense, but the love and affection of Aunt Mary, because—I made her happy by choosing her son’s Bible as the most valuable item in her house. And now I have fantastic news: She’s going to send me to college. I’ve been living in a dream since I heard this wonderful news. Plus, I have one hundred dollars that’s all mine, to spend however I want—no strings attached, reparations, or conditions, just for little old me. I think that generous amount was gifted to me because, when the boys heard I won the prize, they couldn’t quite grasp the idea of going to college, but they eagerly handled that crisp banknote with their curious little fingers when I showed it to them. Sometimes I 379 feel a bit guilty because, really, Cynthia’s selection—a Van Dyke painting—was technically the most valuable from one perspective.”
“And, oh, what I told you would happen about Philip and Janet is true, for they are engaged, and go about looking into each other’s eyes in a state of beatific happiness. Now she will be a grand lady, for she to live with her new husband, and mother, in a beautiful mansion in Boston. And Cynthia. Well, Mrs. Renwick was quite angry with her, but finally, after mother and I had talked to her, and told her the disadvantages she labored under, and how she wanted to marry Mr. Buddie, why she partly relented, for she is to set Cynthia up in a studio in Boston, and try to get her friends to buy her pictures, for she insists that Cynthia is a real artist.
“And, oh, what I told you would happen about Philip and Janet is true, because they’re engaged and are going around gazing into each other’s eyes in a state of pure happiness. Now she will be a grand lady, as she’ll be living with her new husband and mother in a beautiful mansion in Boston. And as for Cynthia, well, Mrs. Renwick was pretty mad at her, but eventually, after my mother and I talked to her and explained the challenges Cynthia was facing and how she wanted to marry Mr. Buddie, she sort of softened up. She plans to set Cynthia up in a studio in Boston and try to get her friends to buy her artwork, because she believes that Cynthia is a true artist."
“And Mrs. Renwick—mother says I must learn to call her Aunt Mary—wanted Sheila to live with her, and as there was no question of separating her from Danny, he goes to Boston with her and is to be educated, and I know he will grow to be just a splendid man. Mrs. Van Vorst has taken another one of my kids, Tony. She has always been in love with those black eyes of his, and she insists that he is going to be a great musician. Then there was dear little Jean. Yes, he had to have something good come into his life, too, so mother and I have decided to take him to live with us.
“And Mrs. Renwick—mom says I should start calling her Aunt Mary—wanted Sheila to move in with her, and since there was no way to separate her from Danny, he’s going to Boston with her to get educated. I know he’ll grow up to be a fantastic man. Mrs. Van Vorst has taken another one of my kids, Tony. She has always had a crush on his dark eyes, and she’s convinced that he’s going to be a great musician. Then there was sweet little Jean. Yes, he needed something good in his life, too, so mom and I decided to have him move in with us.
“And now for another bit of news. I had a nice, long letter from the soldier-boy, Van Darrell, and isn’t it too funny, but that Blue Robin girl of his was just me all the time. Now for the fairy-tale part of my story. Do you remember my telling you about writing a letter to a soldier-boy, and slipping it into a comfort-kit that, with a lot of others, was to be given to the boys at Camp Mills?
“And now for some more news. I got a nice, long letter from the soldier-boy, Van Darrell, and isn’t it hilarious, but that Blue Robin girl of his was just me all along. Now for the fairy-tale part of my story. Do you remember me telling you about writing a letter to a soldier-boy and slipping it into a comfort kit that, along with a bunch of others, was meant to be given to the guys at Camp Mills?”
380 “Well, Van got it. He says that it set him to thinking, and made him realize that we were not only going into this war of wars to get even with the Huns, but because it is our duty to give the liberty that we enjoy in our country to all the nations in the world. And he has been ordered overseas. Yes, and he says he’s going, ready to make the sacrifice if necessary, and to give his life that all men may be free. Oh, I’m so glad I wrote that letter, and to think it has done some one some good. Yes, and I’m going to pray as hard as I can that the soldier-boy will come back to his mother, and to his friend, Blue Robin. Yes, indeed, I am glad that he is not just a conceited boy, as I at one time feared.
380 “Well, Van got it. He says it made him think and realize that we’re not just going into this war to settle scores with the Huns, but because it’s our responsibility to extend the liberty we enjoy in our country to all nations. And he’s been ordered overseas. Yes, and he says he’s going, ready to make the sacrifice if needed, and to give his life so that everyone can be free. Oh, I’m so glad I wrote that letter, and to think it actually helped someone. Yes, and I’m going to pray as hard as I can that the soldier-boy comes back to his mother and to his friend, Blue Robin. Yes, I’m really glad he’s not just a self-absorbed kid, as I once feared.”
“So good-by, you dear little maid, serving the Lord so faithfully with those busy fingers of yours. I think of you every day, and pray for you every night, so, with a bushel of love, I am, as ever,
“So goodbye, you dear little maid, serving the Lord so faithfully with those busy fingers of yours. I think of you every day and pray for you every night, so, with a ton of love, I am, as always,
“Blue Jay.”
By NINA RHOADES
Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington
Large 12mo Cloth $1.50 net
This is considerably longer than the other books by this favorite writer, and with a more elaborate plot, but it has the same winsome quality throughout. It introduces the heroine in New York as a little girl of eight, but soon passes over six years and finds her at a select family boarding school in Connecticut. An important part of the story also takes place at the Profile House in the White Mountains. The charm of school-girl friendship is finely brought out, and the kindness of heart, good sense and good taste which find constant expression in the books by Miss Rhoades do not lack for characters to show these best of qualities by their lives. Other less admirable persons of course appear to furnish the alluring mystery, which is not all cleared up until the very last.
This book is much longer than the other works by this beloved author and features a more complex storyline, but it maintains the same charming quality throughout. It introduces the heroine in New York as an eight-year-old girl, but quickly jumps ahead six years, where we find her at a prestigious boarding school in Connecticut. A significant portion of the narrative also unfolds at the Profile House in the White Mountains. The beauty of school-girl friendship is beautifully highlighted, and the warmth, common sense, and good taste that are consistently present in Miss Rhoades' books are reflected in the characters who embody these admirable qualities. Naturally, there are also less admirable characters who provide an intriguing mystery that isn't fully resolved until the very end.
“There will be no better book than this to put into the hands of a girl in her teens and none that will be better appreciated by her.”—Kennebec Journal.
“There will be no better book than this to give to a teenage girl, and none that she will appreciate more.” —Kennebec Journal.
By NINA RHOADES
Illustrated by Bertha G. Davidson 12mo $1.25 net
This book is for the older girls, Marion being thirteen. She has for ten years enjoyed a luxurious home in New York with the kind lady who feels that the time has now come for this aristocratic though lovable little miss to know her own nearest kindred, who are humble but most excellent farming people in a pretty Vermont village. Thither Marion is sent for a summer, which proves to be a most important one to her in all its lessons.
This book is for older girls, and Marion is thirteen. For the past ten years, she has lived in a nice home in New York with a kind lady who believes it’s time for this aristocratic yet charming girl to meet her closest relatives, who are humble but wonderful farmers in a lovely village in Vermont. Marion is sent there for the summer, which turns out to be a very important one for her and all the lessons she learns.
“More wholesome reading for half grown girls it would be hard to find; some of the same lessons that proved so helpful in that classic of the last generation ‘An Old Fashioned Girl’ are brought home to the youthful readers of this sweet and sensible story.”—Milwaukee Free Press.
“It's tough to find more wholesome reading for young girls; some of the same lessons that were so valuable in the classic from the last generation, ‘An Old Fashioned Girl,’ are delivered to the young readers of this charming and sensible story.”—Milwaukee Free Press.
price by the publishers
LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO., Boston
By GERTRUDE FISHER SCOTT
Illustrated by Arthur O. Scott 12mo Cloth
Price, Net, $1.35 each
Here is the “real thing” in a girl’s college story. Older authors can invent situations and supply excellently written general delineations of character, but all lack the vital touch of this work of a bright young recent graduate of a well-known college for women, who has lost none of the enthusiasm felt as a student. Every activity of a popular girl’s first year is woven into a narrative, photographic in its description of a life that calls into play most attractive qualities, while at the same time severely testing both character and ability.
Here’s the “real thing” in a girl’s college story. Older authors can create situations and offer well-written general portrayals of characters, but they all miss the vital touch of this work by a bright young recent graduate from a well-known women’s college, who hasn’t lost any of the enthusiasm she had as a student. Every activity of a popular girl’s first year is woven into a narrative, vividly describing a life that showcases her most attractive qualities while also putting her character and abilities to the test.
This is a college story, although dealing with a summer vacation, and full of college spirit. It begins with a Yale-Harvard boat race at New London, but soon Jean and her room-mate sail for Great Britain under the chaperonage of Miss Hooper, a favorite member of the faculty at Ashton College. Their trip is full of the delight that comes to the traveler first seeing the countries forming “our old home.”
This is a college story, even though it focuses on a summer vacation, and it’s filled with college spirit. It starts with a Yale-Harvard boat race in New London, but soon Jean and her roommate set sail for Great Britain with Miss Hooper, a beloved faculty member at Ashton College, as their chaperone. Their trip is packed with the joy that comes from a traveler experiencing the countries that make up “our old home” for the first time.
Jean Cabot is a superb young woman, physically and mentally, but thoroughly human and thus favored with many warm friendships. Her final year at Ashton College is the culmination of a course in which study, sport and exercise, and social matters have been well balanced.
Jean Cabot is an exceptional young woman, both smart and attractive, but completely human and blessed with many close friendships. Her last year at Ashton College is the peak of a journey where academics, sports, and social activities have all been nicely balanced.
Such a group as Jean and her most intimate friends could not scatter at once, as do most college companions after graduation, and six of them under chaperonage of a married older graduate and member of the same sorority spend a eventful summer in a historic farm-house in Maine.
Such a group as Jean and her closest friends couldn’t break apart all at once like most college friends do after graduation, so six of them, along with a married older graduate and member of the same sorority, spent a memorable summer in a historic farmhouse in Maine.
of price by the publishers
Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co. Boston
By A. NEELY HALL
Author of “The Boy Craftsman,” “Handicraft for Handy Boys,”
“The Handy Boy”
AND DOROTHY PERKINS
Illustrated with photos and over 700 diagrams
and technical drawings
8vo Cloth Price, Net, $2.00 Postpaid, $2.25
With the aid of an experienced craftswoman, A. Neely Hall, who is in a class by himself as a thoroughly reliable teacher of handicraft, every operation that he describes being first practically worked out by himself, and every working drawing presented being original, new, and actual, has opened the door for the great and constantly increasing number of girls who like to “make things.” Such girls see no reason why the joy of mechanical work should be restricted to their brothers, and with this book it need no longer be. The first part of the book is devoted to a great variety of indoor craft that can be followed in autumn and winter, while the second part, “Spring and Summer Handicraft,” deals with many attractive forms of outdoor life, including an entire chapter on the activities of “Camp Fire Girls.”
With the help of an experienced craftswoman, A. Neely Hall, who stands out as a truly reliable teacher of handicraft, every technique he explains has been practically tested by him, and every drawing provided is original, fresh, and real. This has opened up opportunities for the growing number of girls who love to “make things.” These girls believe there's no reason why the joy of hands-on work should be limited to their brothers, and with this book, it doesn’t have to be anymore. The first part of the book focuses on a wide range of indoor crafts that can be done in the fall and winter, while the second part, “Spring and Summer Handicraft,” explores many appealing outdoor activities, including an entire chapter on the pursuits of “Camp Fire Girls.”
“This book will be hailed with delight by all girls who have a mechanical turn.”—Watchman-Examiner.
“This book will be celebrated by all girls who enjoy mechanics.”—Watchman-Examiner.
“Girls will love just such a book and will find interest for every day of the year in it.”—St. Louis Globe-Democrat.
“Girls will love this book and will find something interesting for every day of the year in it.”—St. Louis Globe-Democrat.
“Triumphs of ingenuity never dreamed of are to be found in this volume of handicraft that girls can make, but its chief charm is to be found in the practical value of most of the things to be made.”—Lexington Herald.
“Unimaginable feats of creativity can be found in this collection of crafts that girls can create, but its main appeal lies in the practical usefulness of most of the items to be made.”—Lexington Herald.
of price by the publishers
Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co. Boston
Illustrated Cloth $1.50 each
Nathalie Page is just such a girl of sixteen as one likes to read about. Obliged to exchange affluence in a large city for a modest home in a small one, she develops into capable young womanhood by becoming a member of The Girl Pioneers of America.
Nathalie Page is exactly the kind of sixteen-year-old that people love to read about. Forced to trade her comfortable life in a big city for a simple home in a smaller town, she grows into a capable young woman by joining The Girl Pioneers of America.
“Any girl of a dozen years or more, or even less, will enjoy this thoroughly, and anyone, young or old, will be the better for having read it.”—Pittsburgh Times-Gazette.
“Any girl who is twelve years old or older, or even younger, will really enjoy this, and anyone, no matter their age, will benefit from reading it.”—Pittsburgh Times-Gazette.
This is a rarely good and inspiring story of girls in a select school in Brooklyn who organize a club called “Daughters of America,” and under the care of a well-liked teacher take a trip to points on the New England coast made famous in our history. One of the girls has been brought up without knowledge of her own family, and so is called “America’s Daughter.” In the course of the trip she unravels the mystery of her birth and all ends happily and profitably.
This is a rarely good and inspiring story of girls in a select school in Brooklyn who organize a club called “Daughters of America.” Under the guidance of a well-liked teacher, they take a trip to locations on the New England coast that are famous in our history. One of the girls has been raised without knowledge of her own family, and is referred to as “America’s Daughter.” During the trip, she uncovers the mystery of her birth, and everything ends happily and positively.
“It is an inspiring story, well told and will be appreciated by girls who love an active, out of doors life.”—Daily Press, Portland, Me.
“It’s an inspiring story, well told, and will be appreciated by girls who enjoy an active, outdoor lifestyle.” —Daily Press, Portland, Me.
Nathalie Page, seventeen, bright and popular with all her mates, forms a club called the “Liberty Girls” and enthusiastically does her bit to help win the war. A surprising invitation to the White Mountains takes her from organized activity with her companions, but a girl like Nathalie will not be idle wherever she goes, and in carrying out the principles of patriotic service she wins great and deserved credit.
Nathalie Page, seventeen, bright and popular with all her friends, starts a club called the “Liberty Girls” and eagerly does her part to support the war effort. An unexpected invitation to the White Mountains pulls her away from her organized activities with her friends, but someone like Nathalie won’t stay inactive no matter where she is, and by putting her patriotic service ideals into action, she earns significant and well-deserved recognition.
1. Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
1. Obvious typos have been fixed.
2. Inconsistent spelling and hyphenation in the original document have been preserved.
2. The inconsistent spelling and hyphenation from the original document have been kept.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!